24693 lines
1.2 MiB
24693 lines
1.2 MiB
The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Republic, by Plato
|
|
|
|
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
|
|
almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
|
|
re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
|
|
with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
|
|
|
|
|
|
Title: The Republic
|
|
|
|
Author: Plato
|
|
|
|
Translator: B. Jowett
|
|
|
|
Posting Date: August 27, 2008 [EBook #1497]
|
|
Release Date: October, 1998
|
|
Last Updated: June 22, 2016
|
|
|
|
Language: English
|
|
|
|
|
|
*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE REPUBLIC ***
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
Produced by Sue Asscher
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
THE REPUBLIC
|
|
|
|
By Plato
|
|
|
|
|
|
Translated by Benjamin Jowett
|
|
|
|
|
|
Note: The Republic by Plato, Jowett, etext #150
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
INTRODUCTION AND ANALYSIS.
|
|
|
|
The Republic of Plato is the longest of his works with the exception
|
|
of the Laws, and is certainly the greatest of them. There are nearer
|
|
approaches to modern metaphysics in the Philebus and in the Sophist; the
|
|
Politicus or Statesman is more ideal; the form and institutions of
|
|
the State are more clearly drawn out in the Laws; as works of art, the
|
|
Symposium and the Protagoras are of higher excellence. But no other
|
|
Dialogue of Plato has the same largeness of view and the same perfection
|
|
of style; no other shows an equal knowledge of the world, or contains
|
|
more of those thoughts which are new as well as old, and not of one age
|
|
only but of all. Nowhere in Plato is there a deeper irony or a greater
|
|
wealth of humour or imagery, or more dramatic power. Nor in any other of
|
|
his writings is the attempt made to interweave life and speculation, or
|
|
to connect politics with philosophy. The Republic is the centre around
|
|
which the other Dialogues may be grouped; here philosophy reaches the
|
|
highest point (cp, especially in Books V, VI, VII) to which ancient
|
|
thinkers ever attained. Plato among the Greeks, like Bacon among the
|
|
moderns, was the first who conceived a method of knowledge, although
|
|
neither of them always distinguished the bare outline or form from
|
|
the substance of truth; and both of them had to be content with an
|
|
abstraction of science which was not yet realized. He was the greatest
|
|
metaphysical genius whom the world has seen; and in him, more than in
|
|
any other ancient thinker, the germs of future knowledge are contained.
|
|
The sciences of logic and psychology, which have supplied so many
|
|
instruments of thought to after-ages, are based upon the analyses
|
|
of Socrates and Plato. The principles of definition, the law of
|
|
contradiction, the fallacy of arguing in a circle, the distinction
|
|
between the essence and accidents of a thing or notion, between means
|
|
and ends, between causes and conditions; also the division of the mind
|
|
into the rational, concupiscent, and irascible elements, or of pleasures
|
|
and desires into necessary and unnecessary--these and other great
|
|
forms of thought are all of them to be found in the Republic, and were
|
|
probably first invented by Plato. The greatest of all logical truths,
|
|
and the one of which writers on philosophy are most apt to lose sight,
|
|
the difference between words and things, has been most strenuously
|
|
insisted on by him (cp. Rep.; Polit.; Cratyl. 435, 436 ff), although he
|
|
has not always avoided the confusion of them in his own writings (e.g.
|
|
Rep.). But he does not bind up truth in logical formulae,--logic is
|
|
still veiled in metaphysics; and the science which he imagines to
|
|
'contemplate all truth and all existence' is very unlike the doctrine of
|
|
the syllogism which Aristotle claims to have discovered (Soph. Elenchi,
|
|
33. 18).
|
|
|
|
Neither must we forget that the Republic is but the third part of a
|
|
still larger design which was to have included an ideal history of
|
|
Athens, as well as a political and physical philosophy. The fragment of
|
|
the Critias has given birth to a world-famous fiction, second only in
|
|
importance to the tale of Troy and the legend of Arthur; and is said as
|
|
a fact to have inspired some of the early navigators of the sixteenth
|
|
century. This mythical tale, of which the subject was a history of the
|
|
wars of the Athenians against the Island of Atlantis, is supposed to be
|
|
founded upon an unfinished poem of Solon, to which it would have stood
|
|
in the same relation as the writings of the logographers to the poems of
|
|
Homer. It would have told of a struggle for Liberty (cp. Tim. 25 C), intended
|
|
to represent the conflict of Persia and Hellas. We may judge from the
|
|
noble commencement of the Timaeus, from the fragment of the Critias
|
|
itself, and from the third book of the Laws, in what manner Plato would
|
|
have treated this high argument. We can only guess why the great design
|
|
was abandoned; perhaps because Plato became sensible of some incongruity
|
|
in a fictitious history, or because he had lost his interest in it, or
|
|
because advancing years forbade the completion of it; and we may please
|
|
ourselves with the fancy that had this imaginary narrative ever been
|
|
finished, we should have found Plato himself sympathising with the
|
|
struggle for Hellenic independence (cp. Laws iii. 698 ff.), singing a
|
|
hymn of triumph over Marathon and Salamis, perhaps making the reflection
|
|
of Herodotus (v. 78) where he contemplates the growth of the Athenian
|
|
empire--'How brave a thing is freedom of speech, which has made the
|
|
Athenians so far exceed every other state of Hellas in greatness!' or,
|
|
more probably, attributing the victory to the ancient good order of
|
|
Athens and to the favor of Apollo and Athene (cp. Introd. to Critias).
|
|
|
|
Again, Plato may be regarded as the 'captain' ('arhchegoz') or leader
|
|
of a goodly band of followers; for in the Republic is to be found the
|
|
original of Cicero's De Republica, of St. Augustine's City of God,
|
|
of the Utopia of Sir Thomas More, and of the numerous other imaginary
|
|
States which are framed upon the same model. The extent to which
|
|
Aristotle or the Aristotelian school were indebted to him in the
|
|
Politics has been little recognised, and the recognition is the
|
|
more necessary because it is not made by Aristotle himself. The two
|
|
philosophers had more in common than they were conscious of; and
|
|
probably some elements of Plato remain still undetected in Aristotle. In
|
|
English philosophy too, many affinities may be traced, not only in the
|
|
works of the Cambridge Platonists, but in great original writers like
|
|
Berkeley or Coleridge, to Plato and his ideas. That there is a truth
|
|
higher than experience, of which the mind bears witness to herself, is
|
|
a conviction which in our own generation has been enthusiastically
|
|
asserted, and is perhaps gaining ground. Of the Greek authors who at the
|
|
Renaissance brought a new life into the world Plato has had the greatest
|
|
influence. The Republic of Plato is also the first treatise upon
|
|
education, of which the writings of Milton and Locke, Rousseau, Jean
|
|
Paul, and Goethe are the legitimate descendants. Like Dante or Bunyan,
|
|
he has a revelation of another life; like Bacon, he is profoundly
|
|
impressed with the unity of knowledge; in the early Church he exercised
|
|
a real influence on theology, and at the Revival of Literature on
|
|
politics. Even the fragments of his words when 'repeated at second-hand'
|
|
(Symp. 215 D) have in all ages ravished the hearts of men, who have seen
|
|
reflected in them their own higher nature. He is the father of idealism
|
|
in philosophy, in politics, in literature. And many of the latest
|
|
conceptions of modern thinkers and statesmen, such as the unity of
|
|
knowledge, the reign of law, and the equality of the sexes, have been
|
|
anticipated in a dream by him.
|
|
|
|
The argument of the Republic is the search after Justice, the nature
|
|
of which is first hinted at by Cephalus, the just and blameless old
|
|
man--then discussed on the basis of proverbial morality by Socrates and
|
|
Polemarchus--then caricatured by Thrasymachus and partially explained
|
|
by Socrates--reduced to an abstraction by Glaucon and Adeimantus, and
|
|
having become invisible in the individual reappears at length in the
|
|
ideal State which is constructed by Socrates. The first care of the
|
|
rulers is to be education, of which an outline is drawn after the old
|
|
Hellenic model, providing only for an improved religion and morality,
|
|
and more simplicity in music and gymnastic, a manlier strain of poetry,
|
|
and greater harmony of the individual and the State. We are thus led on
|
|
to the conception of a higher State, in which 'no man calls anything his
|
|
own,' and in which there is neither 'marrying nor giving in marriage,'
|
|
and 'kings are philosophers' and 'philosophers are kings;' and there
|
|
is another and higher education, intellectual as well as moral and
|
|
religious, of science as well as of art, and not of youth only but of
|
|
the whole of life. Such a State is hardly to be realized in this world
|
|
and quickly degenerates. To the perfect ideal succeeds the government
|
|
of the soldier and the lover of honour, this again declining into
|
|
democracy, and democracy into tyranny, in an imaginary but regular order
|
|
having not much resemblance to the actual facts. When 'the wheel has
|
|
come full circle' we do not begin again with a new period of human life;
|
|
but we have passed from the best to the worst, and there we end. The
|
|
subject is then changed and the old quarrel of poetry and philosophy
|
|
which had been more lightly treated in the earlier books of the Republic
|
|
is now resumed and fought out to a conclusion. Poetry is discovered to
|
|
be an imitation thrice removed from the truth, and Homer, as well as
|
|
the dramatic poets, having been condemned as an imitator, is sent into
|
|
banishment along with them. And the idea of the State is supplemented by
|
|
the revelation of a future life.
|
|
|
|
The division into books, like all similar divisions (Cp. Sir G.C. Lewis
|
|
in the Classical Museum, vol. ii. p 1.), is probably later than the age of Plato. The
|
|
natural divisions are five in number;--(1) Book I and the first half
|
|
of Book II down to the paragraph beginning, 'I had always admired the
|
|
genius of Glaucon and Adeimantus,' which is introductory; the first
|
|
book containing a refutation of the popular and sophistical notions of
|
|
justice, and concluding, like some of the earlier Dialogues, without
|
|
arriving at any definite result. To this is appended a restatement of
|
|
the nature of justice according to common opinion, and an answer is
|
|
demanded to the question--What is justice, stripped of appearances? The
|
|
second division (2) includes the remainder of the second and the whole
|
|
of the third and fourth books, which are mainly occupied with the
|
|
construction of the first State and the first education. The third
|
|
division (3) consists of the fifth, sixth, and seventh books, in which
|
|
philosophy rather than justice is the subject of enquiry, and the
|
|
second State is constructed on principles of communism and ruled by
|
|
philosophers, and the contemplation of the idea of good takes the place
|
|
of the social and political virtues. In the eighth and ninth books (4)
|
|
the perversions of States and of the individuals who correspond to them
|
|
are reviewed in succession; and the nature of pleasure and the principle
|
|
of tyranny are further analysed in the individual man. The tenth book
|
|
(5) is the conclusion of the whole, in which the relations of philosophy
|
|
to poetry are finally determined, and the happiness of the citizens
|
|
in this life, which has now been assured, is crowned by the vision of
|
|
another.
|
|
|
|
Or a more general division into two parts may be adopted; the first
|
|
(Books I - IV) containing the description of a State framed generally in
|
|
accordance with Hellenic notions of religion and morality, while in the
|
|
second (Books V - X) the Hellenic State is transformed into an
|
|
ideal kingdom of philosophy, of which all other governments are the
|
|
perversions. These two points of view are really opposed, and the
|
|
opposition is only veiled by the genius of Plato. The Republic, like
|
|
the Phaedrus (see Introduction to Phaedrus), is an imperfect whole; the
|
|
higher light of philosophy breaks through the regularity of the
|
|
Hellenic temple, which at last fades away into the heavens. Whether this
|
|
imperfection of structure arises from an enlargement of the plan;
|
|
or from the imperfect reconcilement in the writer's own mind of the
|
|
struggling elements of thought which are now first brought together
|
|
by him; or, perhaps, from the composition of the work at different
|
|
times--are questions, like the similar question about the Iliad and
|
|
the Odyssey, which are worth asking, but which cannot have a distinct
|
|
answer. In the age of Plato there was no regular mode of publication,
|
|
and an author would have the less scruple in altering or adding to a
|
|
work which was known only to a few of his friends. There is no absurdity
|
|
in supposing that he may have laid his labours aside for a time, or
|
|
turned from one work to another; and such interruptions would be more
|
|
likely to occur in the case of a long than of a short writing. In all
|
|
attempts to determine the chronological order of the Platonic writings
|
|
on internal evidence, this uncertainty about any single Dialogue being
|
|
composed at one time is a disturbing element, which must be admitted
|
|
to affect longer works, such as the Republic and the Laws, more than
|
|
shorter ones. But, on the other hand, the seeming discrepancies of
|
|
the Republic may only arise out of the discordant elements which the
|
|
philosopher has attempted to unite in a single whole, perhaps without
|
|
being himself able to recognise the inconsistency which is obvious to
|
|
us. For there is a judgment of after ages which few great writers have
|
|
ever been able to anticipate for themselves. They do not perceive the
|
|
want of connexion in their own writings, or the gaps in their systems
|
|
which are visible enough to those who come after them. In the beginnings
|
|
of literature and philosophy, amid the first efforts of thought and
|
|
language, more inconsistencies occur than now, when the paths of
|
|
speculation are well worn and the meaning of words precisely defined.
|
|
For consistency, too, is the growth of time; and some of the greatest
|
|
creations of the human mind have been wanting in unity. Tried by this
|
|
test, several of the Platonic Dialogues, according to our modern ideas,
|
|
appear to be defective, but the deficiency is no proof that they were
|
|
composed at different times or by different hands. And the supposition
|
|
that the Republic was written uninterruptedly and by a continuous effort
|
|
is in some degree confirmed by the numerous references from one part of
|
|
the work to another.
|
|
|
|
The second title, 'Concerning Justice,' is not the one by which the
|
|
Republic is quoted, either by Aristotle or generally in antiquity, and,
|
|
like the other second titles of the Platonic Dialogues, may therefore be
|
|
assumed to be of later date. Morgenstern and others have asked
|
|
whether the definition of justice, which is the professed aim, or the
|
|
construction of the State is the principal argument of the work. The
|
|
answer is, that the two blend in one, and are two faces of the same
|
|
truth; for justice is the order of the State, and the State is the
|
|
visible embodiment of justice under the conditions of human society. The
|
|
one is the soul and the other is the body, and the Greek ideal of the
|
|
State, as of the individual, is a fair mind in a fair body. In Hegelian
|
|
phraseology the state is the reality of which justice is the idea. Or,
|
|
described in Christian language, the kingdom of God is within, and yet
|
|
developes into a Church or external kingdom; 'the house not made with
|
|
hands, eternal in the heavens,' is reduced to the proportions of an
|
|
earthly building. Or, to use a Platonic image, justice and the State are
|
|
the warp and the woof which run through the whole texture. And when the
|
|
constitution of the State is completed, the conception of justice is not
|
|
dismissed, but reappears under the same or different names throughout
|
|
the work, both as the inner law of the individual soul, and finally as
|
|
the principle of rewards and punishments in another life. The virtues
|
|
are based on justice, of which common honesty in buying and selling
|
|
is the shadow, and justice is based on the idea of good, which is the
|
|
harmony of the world, and is reflected both in the institutions of
|
|
states and in motions of the heavenly bodies (cp. Tim. 47). The Timaeus,
|
|
which takes up the political rather than the ethical side of the
|
|
Republic, and is chiefly occupied with hypotheses concerning the outward
|
|
world, yet contains many indications that the same law is supposed to
|
|
reign over the State, over nature, and over man.
|
|
|
|
Too much, however, has been made of this question both in ancient and
|
|
modern times. There is a stage of criticism in which all works, whether
|
|
of nature or of art, are referred to design. Now in ancient writings,
|
|
and indeed in literature generally, there remains often a large element
|
|
which was not comprehended in the original design. For the plan grows
|
|
under the author's hand; new thoughts occur to him in the act of
|
|
writing; he has not worked out the argument to the end before he begins.
|
|
The reader who seeks to find some one idea under which the whole may be
|
|
conceived, must necessarily seize on the vaguest and most general. Thus
|
|
Stallbaum, who is dissatisfied with the ordinary explanations of the
|
|
argument of the Republic, imagines himself to have found the true
|
|
argument 'in the representation of human life in a State perfected by
|
|
justice, and governed according to the idea of good.' There may be some
|
|
use in such general descriptions, but they can hardly be said to express
|
|
the design of the writer. The truth is, that we may as well speak of
|
|
many designs as of one; nor need anything be excluded from the plan of
|
|
a great work to which the mind is naturally led by the association of
|
|
ideas, and which does not interfere with the general purpose. What kind
|
|
or degree of unity is to be sought after in a building, in the plastic
|
|
arts, in poetry, in prose, is a problem which has to be determined
|
|
relatively to the subject-matter. To Plato himself, the enquiry 'what
|
|
was the intention of the writer,' or 'what was the principal argument
|
|
of the Republic' would have been hardly intelligible, and therefore had
|
|
better be at once dismissed (cp. the Introduction to the Phaedrus).
|
|
|
|
Is not the Republic the vehicle of three or four great truths which,
|
|
to Plato's own mind, are most naturally represented in the form of the
|
|
State? Just as in the Jewish prophets the reign of Messiah, or 'the day
|
|
of the Lord,' or the suffering Servant or people of God, or the 'Sun of
|
|
righteousness with healing in his wings' only convey, to us at least,
|
|
their great spiritual ideals, so through the Greek State Plato reveals
|
|
to us his own thoughts about divine perfection, which is the idea of
|
|
good--like the sun in the visible world;--about human perfection, which
|
|
is justice--about education beginning in youth and continuing in later
|
|
years--about poets and sophists and tyrants who are the false teachers
|
|
and evil rulers of mankind--about 'the world' which is the embodiment of
|
|
them--about a kingdom which exists nowhere upon earth but is laid up
|
|
in heaven to be the pattern and rule of human life. No such inspired
|
|
creation is at unity with itself, any more than the clouds of heaven
|
|
when the sun pierces through them. Every shade of light and dark, of
|
|
truth, and of fiction which is the veil of truth, is allowable in a work
|
|
of philosophical imagination. It is not all on the same plane; it easily
|
|
passes from ideas to myths and fancies, from facts to figures of speech.
|
|
It is not prose but poetry, at least a great part of it, and ought not
|
|
to be judged by the rules of logic or the probabilities of history. The
|
|
writer is not fashioning his ideas into an artistic whole; they take
|
|
possession of him and are too much for him. We have no need therefore
|
|
to discuss whether a State such as Plato has conceived is practicable or
|
|
not, or whether the outward form or the inward life came first into the
|
|
mind of the writer. For the practicability of his ideas has nothing to
|
|
do with their truth; and the highest thoughts to which he attains may be
|
|
truly said to bear the greatest 'marks of design'--justice more than the
|
|
external frame-work of the State, the idea of good more than justice.
|
|
The great science of dialectic or the organisation of ideas has no real
|
|
content; but is only a type of the method or spirit in which the
|
|
higher knowledge is to be pursued by the spectator of all time and
|
|
all existence. It is in the fifth, sixth, and seventh books that Plato
|
|
reaches the 'summit of speculation,' and these, although they fail to
|
|
satisfy the requirements of a modern thinker, may therefore be regarded
|
|
as the most important, as they are also the most original, portions of
|
|
the work.
|
|
|
|
It is not necessary to discuss at length a minor question which has
|
|
been raised by Boeckh, respecting the imaginary date at which the
|
|
conversation was held (the year 411 B.C. which is proposed by him will
|
|
do as well as any other); for a writer of fiction, and especially a
|
|
writer who, like Plato, is notoriously careless of chronology (cp. Rep.,
|
|
Symp., 193 A, etc.), only aims at general probability. Whether all the persons
|
|
mentioned in the Republic could ever have met at any one time is not
|
|
a difficulty which would have occurred to an Athenian reading the work
|
|
forty years later, or to Plato himself at the time of writing (any more
|
|
than to Shakespeare respecting one of his own dramas); and need not
|
|
greatly trouble us now. Yet this may be a question having no answer
|
|
'which is still worth asking,' because the investigation shows that we
|
|
cannot argue historically from the dates in Plato; it would be useless
|
|
therefore to waste time in inventing far-fetched reconcilements of them
|
|
in order to avoid chronological difficulties, such, for example, as
|
|
the conjecture of C.F. Hermann, that Glaucon and Adeimantus are not the
|
|
brothers but the uncles of Plato (cp. Apol. 34 A), or the fancy of Stallbaum
|
|
that Plato intentionally left anachronisms indicating the dates at which
|
|
some of his Dialogues were written.
|
|
|
|
The principal characters in the Republic are Cephalus, Polemarchus,
|
|
Thrasymachus, Socrates, Glaucon, and Adeimantus. Cephalus appears in the
|
|
introduction only, Polemarchus drops at the end of the first argument,
|
|
and Thrasymachus is reduced to silence at the close of the first book.
|
|
The main discussion is carried on by Socrates, Glaucon, and Adeimantus.
|
|
Among the company are Lysias (the orator) and Euthydemus, the sons of
|
|
Cephalus and brothers of Polemarchus, an unknown Charmantides--these are
|
|
mute auditors; also there is Cleitophon, who once interrupts, where, as
|
|
in the Dialogue which bears his name, he appears as the friend and ally
|
|
of Thrasymachus.
|
|
|
|
Cephalus, the patriarch of the house, has been appropriately engaged
|
|
in offering a sacrifice. He is the pattern of an old man who has almost
|
|
done with life, and is at peace with himself and with all mankind. He
|
|
feels that he is drawing nearer to the world below, and seems to linger
|
|
around the memory of the past. He is eager that Socrates should come
|
|
to visit him, fond of the poetry of the last generation, happy in the
|
|
consciousness of a well-spent life, glad at having escaped from the
|
|
tyranny of youthful lusts. His love of conversation, his affection, his
|
|
indifference to riches, even his garrulity, are interesting traits of
|
|
character. He is not one of those who have nothing to say, because their
|
|
whole mind has been absorbed in making money. Yet he acknowledges
|
|
that riches have the advantage of placing men above the temptation
|
|
to dishonesty or falsehood. The respectful attention shown to him by
|
|
Socrates, whose love of conversation, no less than the mission imposed
|
|
upon him by the Oracle, leads him to ask questions of all men, young and
|
|
old alike, should also be noted. Who better suited to raise the question
|
|
of justice than Cephalus, whose life might seem to be the expression of
|
|
it? The moderation with which old age is pictured by Cephalus as a very
|
|
tolerable portion of existence is characteristic, not only of him,
|
|
but of Greek feeling generally, and contrasts with the exaggeration of
|
|
Cicero in the De Senectute. The evening of life is described by Plato
|
|
in the most expressive manner, yet with the fewest possible touches. As
|
|
Cicero remarks (Ep. ad Attic. iv. 16), the aged Cephalus would have been out of
|
|
place in the discussion which follows, and which he could neither have
|
|
understood nor taken part in without a violation of dramatic propriety
|
|
(cp. Lysimachus in the Laches).
|
|
|
|
His 'son and heir' Polemarchus has the frankness and impetuousness of
|
|
youth; he is for detaining Socrates by force in the opening scene,
|
|
and will not 'let him off' on the subject of women and children.
|
|
Like Cephalus, he is limited in his point of view, and represents
|
|
the proverbial stage of morality which has rules of life rather than
|
|
principles; and he quotes Simonides (cp. Aristoph. Clouds) as his father
|
|
had quoted Pindar. But after this he has no more to say; the answers
|
|
which he makes are only elicited from him by the dialectic of Socrates.
|
|
He has not yet experienced the influence of the Sophists like Glaucon
|
|
and Adeimantus, nor is he sensible of the necessity of refuting them; he
|
|
belongs to the pre-Socratic or pre-dialectical age. He is incapable of
|
|
arguing, and is bewildered by Socrates to such a degree that he does not
|
|
know what he is saying. He is made to admit that justice is a thief, and
|
|
that the virtues follow the analogy of the arts. From his brother Lysias
|
|
(contra Eratosth.) we learn that he fell a victim to the Thirty Tyrants,
|
|
but no allusion is here made to his fate, nor to the circumstance that
|
|
Cephalus and his family were of Syracusan origin, and had migrated from
|
|
Thurii to Athens.
|
|
|
|
The 'Chalcedonian giant,' Thrasymachus, of whom we have already heard
|
|
in the Phaedrus, is the personification of the Sophists, according to
|
|
Plato's conception of them, in some of their worst characteristics. He
|
|
is vain and blustering, refusing to discourse unless he is paid, fond of
|
|
making an oration, and hoping thereby to escape the inevitable Socrates;
|
|
but a mere child in argument, and unable to foresee that the next 'move'
|
|
(to use a Platonic expression) will 'shut him up.' He has reached the
|
|
stage of framing general notions, and in this respect is in advance of
|
|
Cephalus and Polemarchus. But he is incapable of defending them in a
|
|
discussion, and vainly tries to cover his confusion with banter and
|
|
insolence. Whether such doctrines as are attributed to him by Plato were
|
|
really held either by him or by any other Sophist is uncertain; in the
|
|
infancy of philosophy serious errors about morality might easily grow
|
|
up--they are certainly put into the mouths of speakers in Thucydides;
|
|
but we are concerned at present with Plato's description of him, and not
|
|
with the historical reality. The inequality of the contest adds greatly
|
|
to the humour of the scene. The pompous and empty Sophist is utterly
|
|
helpless in the hands of the great master of dialectic, who knows how
|
|
to touch all the springs of vanity and weakness in him. He is greatly
|
|
irritated by the irony of Socrates, but his noisy and imbecile rage
|
|
only lays him more and more open to the thrusts of his assailant. His
|
|
determination to cram down their throats, or put 'bodily into their
|
|
souls' his own words, elicits a cry of horror from Socrates. The
|
|
state of his temper is quite as worthy of remark as the process of the
|
|
argument. Nothing is more amusing than his complete submission when
|
|
he has been once thoroughly beaten. At first he seems to continue the
|
|
discussion with reluctance, but soon with apparent good-will, and he
|
|
even testifies his interest at a later stage by one or two occasional
|
|
remarks. When attacked by Glaucon he is humorously protected by Socrates
|
|
'as one who has never been his enemy and is now his friend.' From Cicero
|
|
and Quintilian and from Aristotle's Rhetoric we learn that the Sophist
|
|
whom Plato has made so ridiculous was a man of note whose writings were
|
|
preserved in later ages. The play on his name which was made by his
|
|
contemporary Herodicus (Aris. Rhet.), 'thou wast ever bold in
|
|
battle,' seems to show that the description of him is not devoid of
|
|
verisimilitude.
|
|
|
|
When Thrasymachus has been silenced, the two principal respondents,
|
|
Glaucon and Adeimantus, appear on the scene: here, as in Greek tragedy
|
|
(cp. Introd. to Phaedo), three actors are introduced. At first sight
|
|
the two sons of Ariston may seem to wear a family likeness, like the two
|
|
friends Simmias and Cebes in the Phaedo. But on a nearer examination
|
|
of them the similarity vanishes, and they are seen to be distinct
|
|
characters. Glaucon is the impetuous youth who can 'just never have
|
|
enough of fechting' (cp. the character of him in Xen. Mem. iii. 6);
|
|
the man of pleasure who is acquainted with the mysteries of love; the
|
|
'juvenis qui gaudet canibus,' and who improves the breed of animals; the
|
|
lover of art and music who has all the experiences of youthful life. He
|
|
is full of quickness and penetration, piercing easily below the clumsy
|
|
platitudes of Thrasymachus to the real difficulty; he turns out to the
|
|
light the seamy side of human life, and yet does not lose faith in the
|
|
just and true. It is Glaucon who seizes what may be termed the ludicrous
|
|
relation of the philosopher to the world, to whom a state of simplicity
|
|
is 'a city of pigs,' who is always prepared with a jest when the
|
|
argument offers him an opportunity, and who is ever ready to second
|
|
the humour of Socrates and to appreciate the ridiculous, whether in
|
|
the connoisseurs of music, or in the lovers of theatricals, or in the
|
|
fantastic behaviour of the citizens of democracy. His weaknesses are
|
|
several times alluded to by Socrates, who, however, will not allow him
|
|
to be attacked by his brother Adeimantus. He is a soldier, and, like
|
|
Adeimantus, has been distinguished at the battle of Megara (anno
|
|
456?)...The character of Adeimantus is deeper and graver, and the
|
|
profounder objections are commonly put into his mouth. Glaucon is more
|
|
demonstrative, and generally opens the game. Adeimantus pursues the
|
|
argument further. Glaucon has more of the liveliness and quick sympathy
|
|
of youth; Adeimantus has the maturer judgment of a grown-up man of
|
|
the world. In the second book, when Glaucon insists that justice and
|
|
injustice shall be considered without regard to their consequences,
|
|
Adeimantus remarks that they are regarded by mankind in general only for
|
|
the sake of their consequences; and in a similar vein of reflection he
|
|
urges at the beginning of the fourth book that Socrates fails in making
|
|
his citizens happy, and is answered that happiness is not the first but
|
|
the second thing, not the direct aim but the indirect consequence of
|
|
the good government of a State. In the discussion about religion and
|
|
mythology, Adeimantus is the respondent, but Glaucon breaks in with a
|
|
slight jest, and carries on the conversation in a lighter tone about
|
|
music and gymnastic to the end of the book. It is Adeimantus again
|
|
who volunteers the criticism of common sense on the Socratic method of
|
|
argument, and who refuses to let Socrates pass lightly over the question
|
|
of women and children. It is Adeimantus who is the respondent in the
|
|
more argumentative, as Glaucon in the lighter and more imaginative
|
|
portions of the Dialogue. For example, throughout the greater part
|
|
of the sixth book, the causes of the corruption of philosophy and the
|
|
conception of the idea of good are discussed with Adeimantus. Glaucon
|
|
resumes his place of principal respondent; but he has a difficulty in
|
|
apprehending the higher education of Socrates, and makes some false hits
|
|
in the course of the discussion. Once more Adeimantus returns with the
|
|
allusion to his brother Glaucon whom he compares to the contentious
|
|
State; in the next book he is again superseded, and Glaucon continues to
|
|
the end.
|
|
|
|
Thus in a succession of characters Plato represents the successive
|
|
stages of morality, beginning with the Athenian gentleman of the olden
|
|
time, who is followed by the practical man of that day regulating his
|
|
life by proverbs and saws; to him succeeds the wild generalization of
|
|
the Sophists, and lastly come the young disciples of the great teacher,
|
|
who know the sophistical arguments but will not be convinced by them,
|
|
and desire to go deeper into the nature of things. These too, like
|
|
Cephalus, Polemarchus, Thrasymachus, are clearly distinguished from one
|
|
another. Neither in the Republic, nor in any other Dialogue of Plato, is
|
|
a single character repeated.
|
|
|
|
The delineation of Socrates in the Republic is not wholly consistent. In
|
|
the first book we have more of the real Socrates, such as he is depicted
|
|
in the Memorabilia of Xenophon, in the earliest Dialogues of Plato, and
|
|
in the Apology. He is ironical, provoking, questioning, the old enemy
|
|
of the Sophists, ready to put on the mask of Silenus as well as to argue
|
|
seriously. But in the sixth book his enmity towards the Sophists abates;
|
|
he acknowledges that they are the representatives rather than the
|
|
corrupters of the world. He also becomes more dogmatic and constructive,
|
|
passing beyond the range either of the political or the speculative
|
|
ideas of the real Socrates. In one passage Plato himself seems to
|
|
intimate that the time had now come for Socrates, who had passed his
|
|
whole life in philosophy, to give his own opinion and not to be always
|
|
repeating the notions of other men. There is no evidence that either the
|
|
idea of good or the conception of a perfect state were comprehended in
|
|
the Socratic teaching, though he certainly dwelt on the nature of
|
|
the universal and of final causes (cp. Xen. Mem.; Phaedo); and a deep
|
|
thinker like him, in his thirty or forty years of public teaching, could
|
|
hardly have failed to touch on the nature of family relations, for
|
|
which there is also some positive evidence in the Memorabilia (Mem.) The
|
|
Socratic method is nominally retained; and every inference is either put
|
|
into the mouth of the respondent or represented as the common discovery
|
|
of him and Socrates. But any one can see that this is a mere form, of
|
|
which the affectation grows wearisome as the work advances. The method
|
|
of enquiry has passed into a method of teaching in which by the help of
|
|
interlocutors the same thesis is looked at from various points of view.
|
|
The nature of the process is truly characterized by Glaucon, when
|
|
he describes himself as a companion who is not good for much in an
|
|
investigation, but can see what he is shown, and may, perhaps, give the
|
|
answer to a question more fluently than another.
|
|
|
|
Neither can we be absolutely certain that Socrates himself taught the
|
|
immortality of the soul, which is unknown to his disciple Glaucon in the
|
|
Republic (cp. Apol.); nor is there any reason to suppose that he used
|
|
myths or revelations of another world as a vehicle of instruction,
|
|
or that he would have banished poetry or have denounced the Greek
|
|
mythology. His favorite oath is retained, and a slight mention is made
|
|
of the daemonium, or internal sign, which is alluded to by Socrates as
|
|
a phenomenon peculiar to himself. A real element of Socratic teaching,
|
|
which is more prominent in the Republic than in any of the other
|
|
Dialogues of Plato, is the use of example and illustration (Greek):
|
|
'Let us apply the test of common instances.' 'You,' says Adeimantus,
|
|
ironically, in the sixth book, 'are so unaccustomed to speak in images.'
|
|
And this use of examples or images, though truly Socratic in origin, is
|
|
enlarged by the genius of Plato into the form of an allegory or parable,
|
|
which embodies in the concrete what has been already described, or is
|
|
about to be described, in the abstract. Thus the figure of the cave in
|
|
Book VII is a recapitulation of the divisions of knowledge in Book VI.
|
|
The composite animal in Book IX is an allegory of the parts of the
|
|
soul. The noble captain and the ship and the true pilot in Book VI are
|
|
a figure of the relation of the people to the philosophers in the
|
|
State which has been described. Other figures, such as the dog, or
|
|
the marriage of the portionless maiden, or the drones and wasps in the
|
|
eighth and ninth books, also form links of connexion in long passages,
|
|
or are used to recall previous discussions.
|
|
|
|
Plato is most true to the character of his master when he describes him
|
|
as 'not of this world.' And with this representation of him the ideal
|
|
state and the other paradoxes of the Republic are quite in accordance,
|
|
though they cannot be shown to have been speculations of Socrates. To
|
|
him, as to other great teachers both philosophical and religious, when
|
|
they looked upward, the world seemed to be the embodiment of error and
|
|
evil. The common sense of mankind has revolted against this view, or
|
|
has only partially admitted it. And even in Socrates himself the sterner
|
|
judgement of the multitude at times passes into a sort of ironical pity
|
|
or love. Men in general are incapable of philosophy, and are therefore
|
|
at enmity with the philosopher; but their misunderstanding of him is
|
|
unavoidable: for they have never seen him as he truly is in his own
|
|
image; they are only acquainted with artificial systems possessing no
|
|
native force of truth--words which admit of many applications. Their
|
|
leaders have nothing to measure with, and are therefore ignorant of
|
|
their own stature. But they are to be pitied or laughed at, not to be
|
|
quarrelled with; they mean well with their nostrums, if they could only
|
|
learn that they are cutting off a Hydra's head. This moderation towards
|
|
those who are in error is one of the most characteristic features
|
|
of Socrates in the Republic. In all the different representations of
|
|
Socrates, whether of Xenophon or Plato, and amid the differences of
|
|
the earlier or later Dialogues, he always retains the character of the
|
|
unwearied and disinterested seeker after truth, without which he would
|
|
have ceased to be Socrates.
|
|
|
|
Leaving the characters we may now analyse the contents of the Republic,
|
|
and then proceed to consider (1) The general aspects of this Hellenic
|
|
ideal of the State, (2) The modern lights in which the thoughts of Plato
|
|
may be read.
|
|
|
|
BOOK I. The Republic opens with a truly Greek scene--a festival in
|
|
honour of the goddess Bendis which is held in the Piraeus; to this is
|
|
added the promise of an equestrian torch-race in the evening. The whole
|
|
work is supposed to be recited by Socrates on the day after the festival
|
|
to a small party, consisting of Critias, Timaeus, Hermocrates, and
|
|
another; this we learn from the first words of the Timaeus.
|
|
|
|
When the rhetorical advantage of reciting the Dialogue has been gained,
|
|
the attention is not distracted by any reference to the audience; nor
|
|
is the reader further reminded of the extraordinary length of the
|
|
narrative. Of the numerous company, three only take any serious part in
|
|
the discussion; nor are we informed whether in the evening they went to
|
|
the torch-race, or talked, as in the Symposium, through the night.
|
|
The manner in which the conversation has arisen is described as
|
|
follows:--Socrates and his companion Glaucon are about to leave the
|
|
festival when they are detained by a message from Polemarchus, who
|
|
speedily appears accompanied by Adeimantus, the brother of Glaucon, and
|
|
with playful violence compels them to remain, promising them not only
|
|
the torch-race, but the pleasure of conversation with the young, which
|
|
to Socrates is a far greater attraction. They return to the house of
|
|
Cephalus, Polemarchus' father, now in extreme old age, who is found
|
|
sitting upon a cushioned seat crowned for a sacrifice. 'You should come
|
|
to me oftener, Socrates, for I am too old to go to you; and at my time
|
|
of life, having lost other pleasures, I care the more for conversation.'
|
|
Socrates asks him what he thinks of age, to which the old man replies,
|
|
that the sorrows and discontents of age are to be attributed to the
|
|
tempers of men, and that age is a time of peace in which the tyranny
|
|
of the passions is no longer felt. Yes, replies Socrates, but the world
|
|
will say, Cephalus, that you are happy in old age because you are rich.
|
|
'And there is something in what they say, Socrates, but not so much as
|
|
they imagine--as Themistocles replied to the Seriphian, "Neither you, if
|
|
you had been an Athenian, nor I, if I had been a Seriphian, would ever
|
|
have been famous," I might in like manner reply to you, Neither a good
|
|
poor man can be happy in age, nor yet a bad rich man.' Socrates remarks
|
|
that Cephalus appears not to care about riches, a quality which he
|
|
ascribes to his having inherited, not acquired them, and would like
|
|
to know what he considers to be the chief advantage of them. Cephalus
|
|
answers that when you are old the belief in the world below grows upon
|
|
you, and then to have done justice and never to have been compelled to
|
|
do injustice through poverty, and never to have deceived anyone, are
|
|
felt to be unspeakable blessings. Socrates, who is evidently preparing
|
|
for an argument, next asks, What is the meaning of the word justice? To
|
|
tell the truth and pay your debts? No more than this? Or must we admit
|
|
exceptions? Ought I, for example, to put back into the hands of my
|
|
friend, who has gone mad, the sword which I borrowed of him when he
|
|
was in his right mind? 'There must be exceptions.' 'And yet,' says
|
|
Polemarchus, 'the definition which has been given has the authority
|
|
of Simonides.' Here Cephalus retires to look after the sacrifices,
|
|
and bequeaths, as Socrates facetiously remarks, the possession of the
|
|
argument to his heir, Polemarchus...
|
|
|
|
The description of old age is finished, and Plato, as his manner is, has
|
|
touched the key-note of the whole work in asking for the definition of
|
|
justice, first suggesting the question which Glaucon afterwards pursues
|
|
respecting external goods, and preparing for the concluding mythus of
|
|
the world below in the slight allusion of Cephalus. The portrait of the
|
|
just man is a natural frontispiece or introduction to the long discourse
|
|
which follows, and may perhaps imply that in all our perplexity about
|
|
the nature of justice, there is no difficulty in discerning 'who is
|
|
a just man.' The first explanation has been supported by a saying of
|
|
Simonides; and now Socrates has a mind to show that the resolution of
|
|
justice into two unconnected precepts, which have no common principle,
|
|
fails to satisfy the demands of dialectic.
|
|
|
|
...He proceeds: What did Simonides mean by this saying of his? Did he
|
|
mean that I was to give back arms to a madman? 'No, not in that case,
|
|
not if the parties are friends, and evil would result. He meant that you
|
|
were to do what was proper, good to friends and harm to enemies.' Every
|
|
act does something to somebody; and following this analogy, Socrates
|
|
asks, What is this due and proper thing which justice does, and to whom?
|
|
He is answered that justice does good to friends and harm to enemies.
|
|
But in what way good or harm? 'In making alliances with the one, and
|
|
going to war with the other.' Then in time of peace what is the good
|
|
of justice? The answer is that justice is of use in contracts, and
|
|
contracts are money partnerships. Yes; but how in such partnerships
|
|
is the just man of more use than any other man? 'When you want to have
|
|
money safely kept and not used.' Then justice will be useful when money
|
|
is useless. And there is another difficulty: justice, like the art of
|
|
war or any other art, must be of opposites, good at attack as well as
|
|
at defence, at stealing as well as at guarding. But then justice is a
|
|
thief, though a hero notwithstanding, like Autolycus, the Homeric hero,
|
|
who was 'excellent above all men in theft and perjury'--to such a pass
|
|
have you and Homer and Simonides brought us; though I do not forget that
|
|
the thieving must be for the good of friends and the harm of enemies.
|
|
And still there arises another question: Are friends to be interpreted
|
|
as real or seeming; enemies as real or seeming? And are our friends to
|
|
be only the good, and our enemies to be the evil? The answer is, that
|
|
we must do good to our seeming and real good friends, and evil to our
|
|
seeming and real evil enemies--good to the good, evil to the evil. But
|
|
ought we to render evil for evil at all, when to do so will only make
|
|
men more evil? Can justice produce injustice any more than the art of
|
|
horsemanship can make bad horsemen, or heat produce cold? The final
|
|
conclusion is, that no sage or poet ever said that the just return
|
|
evil for evil; this was a maxim of some rich and mighty man, Periander,
|
|
Perdiccas, or Ismenias the Theban (about B.C. 398-381)...
|
|
|
|
Thus the first stage of aphoristic or unconscious morality is shown to
|
|
be inadequate to the wants of the age; the authority of the poets is set
|
|
aside, and through the winding mazes of dialectic we make an approach
|
|
to the Christian precept of forgiveness of injuries. Similar words
|
|
are applied by the Persian mystic poet to the Divine being when the
|
|
questioning spirit is stirred within him:--'If because I do evil, Thou
|
|
punishest me by evil, what is the difference between Thee and me?' In
|
|
this both Plato and Kheyam rise above the level of many Christian (?)
|
|
theologians. The first definition of justice easily passes into the
|
|
second; for the simple words 'to speak the truth and pay your debts' is
|
|
substituted the more abstract 'to do good to your friends and harm to
|
|
your enemies.' Either of these explanations gives a sufficient rule
|
|
of life for plain men, but they both fall short of the precision of
|
|
philosophy. We may note in passing the antiquity of casuistry, which not
|
|
only arises out of the conflict of established principles in particular
|
|
cases, but also out of the effort to attain them, and is prior as well
|
|
as posterior to our fundamental notions of morality. The 'interrogation'
|
|
of moral ideas; the appeal to the authority of Homer; the conclusion
|
|
that the maxim, 'Do good to your friends and harm to your enemies,'
|
|
being erroneous, could not have been the word of any great man, are all
|
|
of them very characteristic of the Platonic Socrates.
|
|
|
|
...Here Thrasymachus, who has made several attempts to interrupt, but
|
|
has hitherto been kept in order by the company, takes advantage of a
|
|
pause and rushes into the arena, beginning, like a savage animal, with a
|
|
roar. 'Socrates,' he says, 'what folly is this?--Why do you agree to be
|
|
vanquished by one another in a pretended argument?' He then prohibits
|
|
all the ordinary definitions of justice; to which Socrates replies that
|
|
he cannot tell how many twelve is, if he is forbidden to say 2 x 6, or
|
|
3 x 4, or 6 x 2, or 4 x 3. At first Thrasymachus is reluctant to argue;
|
|
but at length, with a promise of payment on the part of the company and
|
|
of praise from Socrates, he is induced to open the game. 'Listen,' he
|
|
says, 'my answer is that might is right, justice the interest of the
|
|
stronger: now praise me.' Let me understand you first. Do you mean that
|
|
because Polydamas the wrestler, who is stronger than we are, finds the
|
|
eating of beef for his interest, the eating of beef is also for our
|
|
interest, who are not so strong? Thrasymachus is indignant at the
|
|
illustration, and in pompous words, apparently intended to restore
|
|
dignity to the argument, he explains his meaning to be that the rulers
|
|
make laws for their own interests. But suppose, says Socrates, that the
|
|
ruler or stronger makes a mistake--then the interest of the stronger is
|
|
not his interest. Thrasymachus is saved from this speedy downfall by his
|
|
disciple Cleitophon, who introduces the word 'thinks;'--not the actual
|
|
interest of the ruler, but what he thinks or what seems to be his
|
|
interest, is justice. The contradiction is escaped by the unmeaning
|
|
evasion: for though his real and apparent interests may differ, what the
|
|
ruler thinks to be his interest will always remain what he thinks to be
|
|
his interest.
|
|
|
|
Of course this was not the original assertion, nor is the new
|
|
interpretation accepted by Thrasymachus himself. But Socrates is not
|
|
disposed to quarrel about words, if, as he significantly insinuates,
|
|
his adversary has changed his mind. In what follows Thrasymachus does
|
|
in fact withdraw his admission that the ruler may make a mistake, for he
|
|
affirms that the ruler as a ruler is infallible. Socrates is quite ready
|
|
to accept the new position, which he equally turns against Thrasymachus
|
|
by the help of the analogy of the arts. Every art or science has an
|
|
interest, but this interest is to be distinguished from the accidental
|
|
interest of the artist, and is only concerned with the good of the
|
|
things or persons which come under the art. And justice has an interest
|
|
which is the interest not of the ruler or judge, but of those who come
|
|
under his sway.
|
|
|
|
Thrasymachus is on the brink of the inevitable conclusion, when he makes
|
|
a bold diversion. 'Tell me, Socrates,' he says, 'have you a nurse?' What
|
|
a question! Why do you ask? 'Because, if you have, she neglects you and
|
|
lets you go about drivelling, and has not even taught you to know the
|
|
shepherd from the sheep. For you fancy that shepherds and rulers never
|
|
think of their own interest, but only of their sheep or subjects,
|
|
whereas the truth is that they fatten them for their use, sheep and
|
|
subjects alike. And experience proves that in every relation of life
|
|
the just man is the loser and the unjust the gainer, especially where
|
|
injustice is on the grand scale, which is quite another thing from the
|
|
petty rogueries of swindlers and burglars and robbers of temples. The
|
|
language of men proves this--our 'gracious' and 'blessed' tyrant and the
|
|
like--all which tends to show (1) that justice is the interest of the
|
|
stronger; and (2) that injustice is more profitable and also stronger
|
|
than justice.'
|
|
|
|
Thrasymachus, who is better at a speech than at a close argument, having
|
|
deluged the company with words, has a mind to escape. But the others
|
|
will not let him go, and Socrates adds a humble but earnest request that
|
|
he will not desert them at such a crisis of their fate. 'And what can I
|
|
do more for you?' he says; 'would you have me put the words bodily
|
|
into your souls?' God forbid! replies Socrates; but we want you to be
|
|
consistent in the use of terms, and not to employ 'physician' in an
|
|
exact sense, and then again 'shepherd' or 'ruler' in an inexact,--if the
|
|
words are strictly taken, the ruler and the shepherd look only to the
|
|
good of their people or flocks and not to their own: whereas you insist
|
|
that rulers are solely actuated by love of office. 'No doubt about it,'
|
|
replies Thrasymachus. Then why are they paid? Is not the reason, that
|
|
their interest is not comprehended in their art, and is therefore the
|
|
concern of another art, the art of pay, which is common to the arts in
|
|
general, and therefore not identical with any one of them? Nor would any
|
|
man be a ruler unless he were induced by the hope of reward or the fear
|
|
of punishment;--the reward is money or honour, the punishment is the
|
|
necessity of being ruled by a man worse than himself. And if a State (or
|
|
Church) were composed entirely of good men, they would be affected by
|
|
the last motive only; and there would be as much 'nolo episcopari' as
|
|
there is at present of the opposite...
|
|
|
|
The satire on existing governments is heightened by the simple and
|
|
apparently incidental manner in which the last remark is introduced.
|
|
There is a similar irony in the argument that the governors of mankind
|
|
do not like being in office, and that therefore they demand pay.
|
|
|
|
...Enough of this: the other assertion of Thrasymachus is far more
|
|
important--that the unjust life is more gainful than the just. Now, as
|
|
you and I, Glaucon, are not convinced by him, we must reply to him; but
|
|
if we try to compare their respective gains we shall want a judge
|
|
to decide for us; we had better therefore proceed by making mutual
|
|
admissions of the truth to one another.
|
|
|
|
Thrasymachus had asserted that perfect injustice was more gainful than
|
|
perfect justice, and after a little hesitation he is induced by Socrates
|
|
to admit the still greater paradox that injustice is virtue and justice
|
|
vice. Socrates praises his frankness, and assumes the attitude of one
|
|
whose only wish is to understand the meaning of his opponents. At the
|
|
same time he is weaving a net in which Thrasymachus is finally enclosed.
|
|
The admission is elicited from him that the just man seeks to gain an
|
|
advantage over the unjust only, but not over the just, while the unjust
|
|
would gain an advantage over either. Socrates, in order to test this
|
|
statement, employs once more the favourite analogy of the arts. The
|
|
musician, doctor, skilled artist of any sort, does not seek to gain more
|
|
than the skilled, but only more than the unskilled (that is to say, he
|
|
works up to a rule, standard, law, and does not exceed it), whereas the
|
|
unskilled makes random efforts at excess. Thus the skilled falls on the
|
|
side of the good, and the unskilled on the side of the evil, and the
|
|
just is the skilled, and the unjust is the unskilled.
|
|
|
|
There was great difficulty in bringing Thrasymachus to the point; the
|
|
day was hot and he was streaming with perspiration, and for the first
|
|
time in his life he was seen to blush. But his other thesis that
|
|
injustice was stronger than justice has not yet been refuted, and
|
|
Socrates now proceeds to the consideration of this, which, with the
|
|
assistance of Thrasymachus, he hopes to clear up; the latter is at first
|
|
churlish, but in the judicious hands of Socrates is soon restored to
|
|
good-humour: Is there not honour among thieves? Is not the strength of
|
|
injustice only a remnant of justice? Is not absolute injustice absolute
|
|
weakness also? A house that is divided against itself cannot stand; two
|
|
men who quarrel detract from one another's strength, and he who is at
|
|
war with himself is the enemy of himself and the gods. Not wickedness
|
|
therefore, but semi-wickedness flourishes in states,--a remnant of
|
|
good is needed in order to make union in action possible,--there is no
|
|
kingdom of evil in this world.
|
|
|
|
Another question has not been answered: Is the just or the unjust the
|
|
happier? To this we reply, that every art has an end and an excellence
|
|
or virtue by which the end is accomplished. And is not the end of
|
|
the soul happiness, and justice the excellence of the soul by which
|
|
happiness is attained? Justice and happiness being thus shown to be
|
|
inseparable, the question whether the just or the unjust is the happier
|
|
has disappeared.
|
|
|
|
Thrasymachus replies: 'Let this be your entertainment, Socrates, at the
|
|
festival of Bendis.' Yes; and a very good entertainment with which your
|
|
kindness has supplied me, now that you have left off scolding. And yet
|
|
not a good entertainment--but that was my own fault, for I tasted of too
|
|
many things. First of all the nature of justice was the subject of our
|
|
enquiry, and then whether justice is virtue and wisdom, or evil and
|
|
folly; and then the comparative advantages of just and unjust: and the
|
|
sum of all is that I know not what justice is; how then shall I know
|
|
whether the just is happy or not?...
|
|
|
|
Thus the sophistical fabric has been demolished, chiefly by appealing
|
|
to the analogy of the arts. 'Justice is like the arts (1) in having no
|
|
external interest, and (2) in not aiming at excess, and (3) justice is
|
|
to happiness what the implement of the workman is to his work.' At this
|
|
the modern reader is apt to stumble, because he forgets that Plato is
|
|
writing in an age when the arts and the virtues, like the moral
|
|
and intellectual faculties, were still undistinguished. Among early
|
|
enquirers into the nature of human action the arts helped to fill up
|
|
the void of speculation; and at first the comparison of the arts and the
|
|
virtues was not perceived by them to be fallacious. They only saw the
|
|
points of agreement in them and not the points of difference. Virtue,
|
|
like art, must take means to an end; good manners are both an art and
|
|
a virtue; character is naturally described under the image of a statue;
|
|
and there are many other figures of speech which are readily transferred
|
|
from art to morals. The next generation cleared up these perplexities;
|
|
or at least supplied after ages with a further analysis of them. The
|
|
contemporaries of Plato were in a state of transition, and had not yet
|
|
fully realized the common-sense distinction of Aristotle, that 'virtue
|
|
is concerned with action, art with production' (Nic. Eth.), or that
|
|
'virtue implies intention and constancy of purpose,' whereas 'art
|
|
requires knowledge only'. And yet in the absurdities which follow from
|
|
some uses of the analogy, there seems to be an intimation conveyed that
|
|
virtue is more than art. This is implied in the reductio ad absurdum
|
|
that 'justice is a thief,' and in the dissatisfaction which Socrates
|
|
expresses at the final result.
|
|
|
|
The expression 'an art of pay' which is described as 'common to all the
|
|
arts' is not in accordance with the ordinary use of language. Nor is it
|
|
employed elsewhere either by Plato or by any other Greek writer. It is
|
|
suggested by the argument, and seems to extend the conception of art to
|
|
doing as well as making. Another flaw or inaccuracy of language may be
|
|
noted in the words 'men who are injured are made more unjust.' For
|
|
those who are injured are not necessarily made worse, but only harmed or
|
|
ill-treated.
|
|
|
|
The second of the three arguments, 'that the just does not aim at
|
|
excess,' has a real meaning, though wrapped up in an enigmatical form.
|
|
That the good is of the nature of the finite is a peculiarly Hellenic
|
|
sentiment, which may be compared with the language of those modern
|
|
writers who speak of virtue as fitness, and of freedom as obedience to
|
|
law. The mathematical or logical notion of limit easily passes into an
|
|
ethical one, and even finds a mythological expression in the conception
|
|
of envy (Greek). Ideas of measure, equality, order, unity, proportion,
|
|
still linger in the writings of moralists; and the true spirit of the
|
|
fine arts is better conveyed by such terms than by superlatives.
|
|
|
|
'When workmen strive to do better than well,
|
|
They do confound their skill in covetousness.' (King John.)
|
|
|
|
The harmony of the soul and body, and of the parts of the soul with
|
|
one another, a harmony 'fairer than that of musical notes,' is the true
|
|
Hellenic mode of conceiving the perfection of human nature.
|
|
|
|
In what may be called the epilogue of the discussion with Thrasymachus,
|
|
Plato argues that evil is not a principle of strength, but of discord
|
|
and dissolution, just touching the question which has been often treated
|
|
in modern times by theologians and philosophers, of the negative nature
|
|
of evil. In the last argument we trace the germ of the Aristotelian
|
|
doctrine of an end and a virtue directed towards the end, which again is
|
|
suggested by the arts. The final reconcilement of justice and happiness
|
|
and the identity of the individual and the State are also intimated.
|
|
Socrates reassumes the character of a 'know-nothing;' at the same time
|
|
he appears to be not wholly satisfied with the manner in which the
|
|
argument has been conducted. Nothing is concluded; but the tendency of
|
|
the dialectical process, here as always, is to enlarge our conception of
|
|
ideas, and to widen their application to human life.
|
|
|
|
BOOK II. Thrasymachus is pacified, but the intrepid Glaucon insists on
|
|
continuing the argument. He is not satisfied with the indirect manner
|
|
in which, at the end of the last book, Socrates had disposed of the
|
|
question 'Whether the just or the unjust is the happier.' He begins
|
|
by dividing goods into three classes:--first, goods desirable in
|
|
themselves; secondly, goods desirable in themselves and for their
|
|
results; thirdly, goods desirable for their results only. He then asks
|
|
Socrates in which of the three classes he would place justice. In the
|
|
second class, replies Socrates, among goods desirable for themselves and
|
|
also for their results. 'Then the world in general are of another mind,
|
|
for they say that justice belongs to the troublesome class of goods
|
|
which are desirable for their results only. Socrates answers that this
|
|
is the doctrine of Thrasymachus which he rejects. Glaucon thinks that
|
|
Thrasymachus was too ready to listen to the voice of the charmer, and
|
|
proposes to consider the nature of justice and injustice in themselves
|
|
and apart from the results and rewards of them which the world is always
|
|
dinning in his ears. He will first of all speak of the nature and origin
|
|
of justice; secondly, of the manner in which men view justice as a
|
|
necessity and not a good; and thirdly, he will prove the reasonableness
|
|
of this view.
|
|
|
|
'To do injustice is said to be a good; to suffer injustice an evil. As
|
|
the evil is discovered by experience to be greater than the good, the
|
|
sufferers, who cannot also be doers, make a compact that they will have
|
|
neither, and this compact or mean is called justice, but is really the
|
|
impossibility of doing injustice. No one would observe such a compact
|
|
if he were not obliged. Let us suppose that the just and unjust have
|
|
two rings, like that of Gyges in the well-known story, which make them
|
|
invisible, and then no difference will appear in them, for every one
|
|
will do evil if he can. And he who abstains will be regarded by the
|
|
world as a fool for his pains. Men may praise him in public out of
|
|
fear for themselves, but they will laugh at him in their hearts (Cp.
|
|
Gorgias.)
|
|
|
|
'And now let us frame an ideal of the just and unjust. Imagine the
|
|
unjust man to be master of his craft, seldom making mistakes and easily
|
|
correcting them; having gifts of money, speech, strength--the greatest
|
|
villain bearing the highest character: and at his side let us place the
|
|
just in his nobleness and simplicity--being, not seeming--without name
|
|
or reward--clothed in his justice only--the best of men who is thought
|
|
to be the worst, and let him die as he has lived. I might add (but
|
|
I would rather put the rest into the mouth of the panegyrists of
|
|
injustice--they will tell you) that the just man will be scourged,
|
|
racked, bound, will have his eyes put out, and will at last be crucified
|
|
(literally impaled)--and all this because he ought to have preferred
|
|
seeming to being. How different is the case of the unjust who clings to
|
|
appearance as the true reality! His high character makes him a ruler;
|
|
he can marry where he likes, trade where he likes, help his friends and
|
|
hurt his enemies; having got rich by dishonesty he can worship the gods
|
|
better, and will therefore be more loved by them than the just.'
|
|
|
|
I was thinking what to answer, when Adeimantus joined in the already
|
|
unequal fray. He considered that the most important point of all had
|
|
been omitted:--'Men are taught to be just for the sake of rewards;
|
|
parents and guardians make reputation the incentive to virtue. And other
|
|
advantages are promised by them of a more solid kind, such as wealthy
|
|
marriages and high offices. There are the pictures in Homer and Hesiod
|
|
of fat sheep and heavy fleeces, rich corn-fields and trees toppling with
|
|
fruit, which the gods provide in this life for the just. And the Orphic
|
|
poets add a similar picture of another. The heroes of Musaeus and
|
|
Eumolpus lie on couches at a festival, with garlands on their heads,
|
|
enjoying as the meed of virtue a paradise of immortal drunkenness.
|
|
Some go further, and speak of a fair posterity in the third and fourth
|
|
generation. But the wicked they bury in a slough and make them carry
|
|
water in a sieve: and in this life they attribute to them the infamy
|
|
which Glaucon was assuming to be the lot of the just who are supposed to
|
|
be unjust.
|
|
|
|
'Take another kind of argument which is found both in poetry and
|
|
prose:--"Virtue," as Hesiod says, "is honourable but difficult, vice is
|
|
easy and profitable." You may often see the wicked in great prosperity
|
|
and the righteous afflicted by the will of heaven. And mendicant
|
|
prophets knock at rich men's doors, promising to atone for the sins
|
|
of themselves or their fathers in an easy fashion with sacrifices and
|
|
festive games, or with charms and invocations to get rid of an enemy
|
|
good or bad by divine help and at a small charge;--they appeal to books
|
|
professing to be written by Musaeus and Orpheus, and carry away the
|
|
minds of whole cities, and promise to "get souls out of purgatory;" and
|
|
if we refuse to listen to them, no one knows what will happen to us.
|
|
|
|
'When a lively-minded ingenuous youth hears all this, what will be his
|
|
conclusion? "Will he," in the language of Pindar, "make justice his high
|
|
tower, or fortify himself with crooked deceit?" Justice, he reflects,
|
|
without the appearance of justice, is misery and ruin; injustice has the
|
|
promise of a glorious life. Appearance is master of truth and lord of
|
|
happiness. To appearance then I will turn,--I will put on the show
|
|
of virtue and trail behind me the fox of Archilochus. I hear some one
|
|
saying that "wickedness is not easily concealed," to which I reply that
|
|
"nothing great is easy." Union and force and rhetoric will do much; and
|
|
if men say that they cannot prevail over the gods, still how do we know
|
|
that there are gods? Only from the poets, who acknowledge that they may
|
|
be appeased by sacrifices. Then why not sin and pay for indulgences out
|
|
of your sin? For if the righteous are only unpunished, still they have
|
|
no further reward, while the wicked may be unpunished and have the
|
|
pleasure of sinning too. But what of the world below? Nay, says the
|
|
argument, there are atoning powers who will set that matter right, as
|
|
the poets, who are the sons of the gods, tell us; and this is confirmed
|
|
by the authority of the State.
|
|
|
|
'How can we resist such arguments in favour of injustice? Add good
|
|
manners, and, as the wise tell us, we shall make the best of both
|
|
worlds. Who that is not a miserable caitiff will refrain from smiling at
|
|
the praises of justice? Even if a man knows the better part he will not
|
|
be angry with others; for he knows also that more than human virtue is
|
|
needed to save a man, and that he only praises justice who is incapable
|
|
of injustice.
|
|
|
|
'The origin of the evil is that all men from the beginning, heroes,
|
|
poets, instructors of youth, have always asserted "the temporal
|
|
dispensation," the honours and profits of justice. Had we been taught in
|
|
early youth the power of justice and injustice inherent in the soul, and
|
|
unseen by any human or divine eye, we should not have needed others to
|
|
be our guardians, but every one would have been the guardian of himself.
|
|
This is what I want you to show, Socrates;--other men use arguments
|
|
which rather tend to strengthen the position of Thrasymachus that "might
|
|
is right;" but from you I expect better things. And please, as Glaucon
|
|
said, to exclude reputation; let the just be thought unjust and the
|
|
unjust just, and do you still prove to us the superiority of justice'...
|
|
|
|
The thesis, which for the sake of argument has been maintained by
|
|
Glaucon, is the converse of that of Thrasymachus--not right is the
|
|
interest of the stronger, but right is the necessity of the weaker.
|
|
Starting from the same premises he carries the analysis of society a
|
|
step further back;--might is still right, but the might is the weakness
|
|
of the many combined against the strength of the few.
|
|
|
|
There have been theories in modern as well as in ancient times which
|
|
have a family likeness to the speculations of Glaucon; e.g. that power
|
|
is the foundation of right; or that a monarch has a divine right to
|
|
govern well or ill; or that virtue is self-love or the love of power; or
|
|
that war is the natural state of man; or that private vices are public
|
|
benefits. All such theories have a kind of plausibility from their
|
|
partial agreement with experience. For human nature oscillates between
|
|
good and evil, and the motives of actions and the origin of institutions
|
|
may be explained to a certain extent on either hypothesis according to
|
|
the character or point of view of a particular thinker. The obligation
|
|
of maintaining authority under all circumstances and sometimes by rather
|
|
questionable means is felt strongly and has become a sort of instinct
|
|
among civilized men. The divine right of kings, or more generally of
|
|
governments, is one of the forms under which this natural feeling is
|
|
expressed. Nor again is there any evil which has not some accompaniment
|
|
of good or pleasure; nor any good which is free from some alloy of evil;
|
|
nor any noble or generous thought which may not be attended by a shadow
|
|
or the ghost of a shadow of self-interest or of self-love. We know that
|
|
all human actions are imperfect; but we do not therefore attribute
|
|
them to the worse rather than to the better motive or principle. Such
|
|
a philosophy is both foolish and false, like that opinion of the clever
|
|
rogue who assumes all other men to be like himself. And theories of this
|
|
sort do not represent the real nature of the State, which is based on a
|
|
vague sense of right gradually corrected and enlarged by custom and law
|
|
(although capable also of perversion), any more than they describe the
|
|
origin of society, which is to be sought in the family and in the
|
|
social and religious feelings of man. Nor do they represent the average
|
|
character of individuals, which cannot be explained simply on a theory
|
|
of evil, but has always a counteracting element of good. And as men
|
|
become better such theories appear more and more untruthful to them,
|
|
because they are more conscious of their own disinterestedness. A little
|
|
experience may make a man a cynic; a great deal will bring him back to
|
|
a truer and kindlier view of the mixed nature of himself and his fellow
|
|
men.
|
|
|
|
The two brothers ask Socrates to prove to them that the just is happy
|
|
when they have taken from him all that in which happiness is ordinarily
|
|
supposed to consist. Not that there is (1) any absurdity in the attempt
|
|
to frame a notion of justice apart from circumstances. For the ideal
|
|
must always be a paradox when compared with the ordinary conditions of
|
|
human life. Neither the Stoical ideal nor the Christian ideal is true as
|
|
a fact, but they may serve as a basis of education, and may exercise an
|
|
ennobling influence. An ideal is none the worse because 'some one has
|
|
made the discovery' that no such ideal was ever realized. And in a
|
|
few exceptional individuals who are raised above the ordinary level of
|
|
humanity, the ideal of happiness may be realized in death and misery.
|
|
This may be the state which the reason deliberately approves, and which
|
|
the utilitarian as well as every other moralist may be bound in certain
|
|
cases to prefer.
|
|
|
|
Nor again, (2) must we forget that Plato, though he agrees generally
|
|
with the view implied in the argument of the two brothers, is not
|
|
expressing his own final conclusion, but rather seeking to dramatize one
|
|
of the aspects of ethical truth. He is developing his idea gradually in
|
|
a series of positions or situations. He is exhibiting Socrates for the
|
|
first time undergoing the Socratic interrogation. Lastly, (3) the word
|
|
'happiness' involves some degree of confusion because associated in the
|
|
language of modern philosophy with conscious pleasure or satisfaction,
|
|
which was not equally present to his mind.
|
|
|
|
Glaucon has been drawing a picture of the misery of the just and the
|
|
happiness of the unjust, to which the misery of the tyrant in Book IX is
|
|
the answer and parallel. And still the unjust must appear just; that is
|
|
'the homage which vice pays to virtue.' But now Adeimantus, taking up
|
|
the hint which had been already given by Glaucon, proceeds to show
|
|
that in the opinion of mankind justice is regarded only for the sake of
|
|
rewards and reputation, and points out the advantage which is given to
|
|
such arguments as those of Thrasymachus and Glaucon by the conventional
|
|
morality of mankind. He seems to feel the difficulty of 'justifying the
|
|
ways of God to man.' Both the brothers touch upon the question, whether
|
|
the morality of actions is determined by their consequences; and both
|
|
of them go beyond the position of Socrates, that justice belongs to
|
|
the class of goods not desirable for themselves only, but desirable for
|
|
themselves and for their results, to which he recalls them. In
|
|
their attempt to view justice as an internal principle, and in their
|
|
condemnation of the poets, they anticipate him. The common life of
|
|
Greece is not enough for them; they must penetrate deeper into the
|
|
nature of things.
|
|
|
|
It has been objected that justice is honesty in the sense of Glaucon and
|
|
Adeimantus, but is taken by Socrates to mean all virtue. May we not
|
|
more truly say that the old-fashioned notion of justice is enlarged by
|
|
Socrates, and becomes equivalent to universal order or well-being, first
|
|
in the State, and secondly in the individual? He has found a new answer
|
|
to his old question (Protag.), 'whether the virtues are one or many,'
|
|
viz. that one is the ordering principle of the three others. In seeking
|
|
to establish the purely internal nature of justice, he is met by the
|
|
fact that man is a social being, and he tries to harmonise the two
|
|
opposite theses as well as he can. There is no more inconsistency in
|
|
this than was inevitable in his age and country; there is no use in
|
|
turning upon him the cross lights of modern philosophy, which, from some
|
|
other point of view, would appear equally inconsistent. Plato does not
|
|
give the final solution of philosophical questions for us; nor can he be
|
|
judged of by our standard.
|
|
|
|
The remainder of the Republic is developed out of the question of
|
|
the sons of Ariston. Three points are deserving of remark in what
|
|
immediately follows:--First, that the answer of Socrates is altogether
|
|
indirect. He does not say that happiness consists in the contemplation
|
|
of the idea of justice, and still less will he be tempted to affirm the
|
|
Stoical paradox that the just man can be happy on the rack. But first he
|
|
dwells on the difficulty of the problem and insists on restoring man to
|
|
his natural condition, before he will answer the question at all. He
|
|
too will frame an ideal, but his ideal comprehends not only abstract
|
|
justice, but the whole relations of man. Under the fanciful illustration
|
|
of the large letters he implies that he will only look for justice in
|
|
society, and that from the State he will proceed to the individual. His
|
|
answer in substance amounts to this,--that under favourable conditions,
|
|
i.e. in the perfect State, justice and happiness will coincide, and that
|
|
when justice has been once found, happiness may be left to take care
|
|
of itself. That he falls into some degree of inconsistency, when in
|
|
the tenth book he claims to have got rid of the rewards and honours
|
|
of justice, may be admitted; for he has left those which exist in the
|
|
perfect State. And the philosopher 'who retires under the shelter of a
|
|
wall' can hardly have been esteemed happy by him, at least not in this
|
|
world. Still he maintains the true attitude of moral action. Let a man
|
|
do his duty first, without asking whether he will be happy or not, and
|
|
happiness will be the inseparable accident which attends him. 'Seek ye
|
|
first the kingdom of God and his righteousness, and all these things
|
|
shall be added unto you.'
|
|
|
|
Secondly, it may be remarked that Plato preserves the genuine character
|
|
of Greek thought in beginning with the State and in going on to the
|
|
individual. First ethics, then politics--this is the order of ideas to
|
|
us; the reverse is the order of history. Only after many struggles of
|
|
thought does the individual assert his right as a moral being. In early
|
|
ages he is not ONE, but one of many, the citizen of a State which is
|
|
prior to him; and he has no notion of good or evil apart from the law
|
|
of his country or the creed of his church. And to this type he is
|
|
constantly tending to revert, whenever the influence of custom, or of
|
|
party spirit, or the recollection of the past becomes too strong for
|
|
him.
|
|
|
|
Thirdly, we may observe the confusion or identification of the
|
|
individual and the State, of ethics and politics, which pervades early
|
|
Greek speculation, and even in modern times retains a certain degree of
|
|
influence. The subtle difference between the collective and individual
|
|
action of mankind seems to have escaped early thinkers, and we too are
|
|
sometimes in danger of forgetting the conditions of united human action,
|
|
whenever we either elevate politics into ethics, or lower ethics to the
|
|
standard of politics. The good man and the good citizen only coincide in
|
|
the perfect State; and this perfection cannot be attained by legislation
|
|
acting upon them from without, but, if at all, by education fashioning
|
|
them from within.
|
|
|
|
...Socrates praises the sons of Ariston, 'inspired offspring of
|
|
the renowned hero,' as the elegiac poet terms them; but he does not
|
|
understand how they can argue so eloquently on behalf of injustice while
|
|
their character shows that they are uninfluenced by their own arguments.
|
|
He knows not how to answer them, although he is afraid of deserting
|
|
justice in the hour of need. He therefore makes a condition, that having
|
|
weak eyes he shall be allowed to read the large letters first and then
|
|
go on to the smaller, that is, he must look for justice in the State
|
|
first, and will then proceed to the individual. Accordingly he begins to
|
|
construct the State.
|
|
|
|
Society arises out of the wants of man. His first want is food; his
|
|
second a house; his third a coat. The sense of these needs and the
|
|
possibility of satisfying them by exchange, draw individuals together on
|
|
the same spot; and this is the beginning of a State, which we take the
|
|
liberty to invent, although necessity is the real inventor. There must
|
|
be first a husbandman, secondly a builder, thirdly a weaver, to which
|
|
may be added a cobbler. Four or five citizens at least are required to
|
|
make a city. Now men have different natures, and one man will do one
|
|
thing better than many; and business waits for no man. Hence there must
|
|
be a division of labour into different employments; into wholesale
|
|
and retail trade; into workers, and makers of workmen's tools; into
|
|
shepherds and husbandmen. A city which includes all this will have far
|
|
exceeded the limit of four or five, and yet not be very large. But then
|
|
again imports will be required, and imports necessitate exports,
|
|
and this implies variety of produce in order to attract the taste of
|
|
purchasers; also merchants and ships. In the city too we must have a
|
|
market and money and retail trades; otherwise buyers and sellers will
|
|
never meet, and the valuable time of the producers will be wasted in
|
|
vain efforts at exchange. If we add hired servants the State will be
|
|
complete. And we may guess that somewhere in the intercourse of the
|
|
citizens with one another justice and injustice will appear.
|
|
|
|
Here follows a rustic picture of their way of life. They spend their
|
|
days in houses which they have built for themselves; they make their
|
|
own clothes and produce their own corn and wine. Their principal food is
|
|
meal and flour, and they drink in moderation. They live on the best
|
|
of terms with each other, and take care not to have too many children.
|
|
'But,' said Glaucon, interposing, 'are they not to have a relish?'
|
|
Certainly; they will have salt and olives and cheese, vegetables and
|
|
fruits, and chestnuts to roast at the fire. ''Tis a city of pigs,
|
|
Socrates.' Why, I replied, what do you want more? 'Only the comforts of
|
|
life,--sofas and tables, also sauces and sweets.' I see; you want not
|
|
only a State, but a luxurious State; and possibly in the more complex
|
|
frame we may sooner find justice and injustice. Then the fine arts must
|
|
go to work--every conceivable instrument and ornament of luxury will be
|
|
wanted. There will be dancers, painters, sculptors, musicians, cooks,
|
|
barbers, tire-women, nurses, artists; swineherds and neatherds too for
|
|
the animals, and physicians to cure the disorders of which luxury is the
|
|
source. To feed all these superfluous mouths we shall need a part of
|
|
our neighbour's land, and they will want a part of ours. And this is the
|
|
origin of war, which may be traced to the same causes as other political
|
|
evils. Our city will now require the slight addition of a camp, and
|
|
the citizen will be converted into a soldier. But then again our old
|
|
doctrine of the division of labour must not be forgotten. The art of
|
|
war cannot be learned in a day, and there must be a natural aptitude
|
|
for military duties. There will be some warlike natures who have this
|
|
aptitude--dogs keen of scent, swift of foot to pursue, and strong of
|
|
limb to fight. And as spirit is the foundation of courage, such natures,
|
|
whether of men or animals, will be full of spirit. But these spirited
|
|
natures are apt to bite and devour one another; the union of
|
|
gentleness to friends and fierceness against enemies appears to be an
|
|
impossibility, and the guardian of a State requires both qualities. Who
|
|
then can be a guardian? The image of the dog suggests an answer. For
|
|
dogs are gentle to friends and fierce to strangers. Your dog is a
|
|
philosopher who judges by the rule of knowing or not knowing; and
|
|
philosophy, whether in man or beast, is the parent of gentleness. The
|
|
human watchdogs must be philosophers or lovers of learning which will
|
|
make them gentle. And how are they to be learned without education?
|
|
|
|
But what shall their education be? Is any better than the old-fashioned
|
|
sort which is comprehended under the name of music and gymnastic? Music
|
|
includes literature, and literature is of two kinds, true and false.
|
|
'What do you mean?' he said. I mean that children hear stories before
|
|
they learn gymnastics, and that the stories are either untrue, or have
|
|
at most one or two grains of truth in a bushel of falsehood. Now early
|
|
life is very impressible, and children ought not to learn what they will
|
|
have to unlearn when they grow up; we must therefore have a censorship
|
|
of nursery tales, banishing some and keeping others. Some of them are
|
|
very improper, as we may see in the great instances of Homer and Hesiod,
|
|
who not only tell lies but bad lies; stories about Uranus and Saturn,
|
|
which are immoral as well as false, and which should never be spoken of
|
|
to young persons, or indeed at all; or, if at all, then in a mystery,
|
|
after the sacrifice, not of an Eleusinian pig, but of some unprocurable
|
|
animal. Shall our youth be encouraged to beat their fathers by the
|
|
example of Zeus, or our citizens be incited to quarrel by hearing or
|
|
seeing representations of strife among the gods? Shall they listen to
|
|
the narrative of Hephaestus binding his mother, and of Zeus sending him
|
|
flying for helping her when she was beaten? Such tales may possibly have
|
|
a mystical interpretation, but the young are incapable of understanding
|
|
allegory. If any one asks what tales are to be allowed, we will answer
|
|
that we are legislators and not book-makers; we only lay down the
|
|
principles according to which books are to be written; to write them is
|
|
the duty of others.
|
|
|
|
And our first principle is, that God must be represented as he is; not
|
|
as the author of all things, but of good only. We will not suffer the
|
|
poets to say that he is the steward of good and evil, or that he has two
|
|
casks full of destinies;--or that Athene and Zeus incited Pandarus to
|
|
break the treaty; or that God caused the sufferings of Niobe, or of
|
|
Pelops, or the Trojan war; or that he makes men sin when he wishes to
|
|
destroy them. Either these were not the actions of the gods, or God was
|
|
just, and men were the better for being punished. But that the deed was
|
|
evil, and God the author, is a wicked, suicidal fiction which we will
|
|
allow no one, old or young, to utter. This is our first and great
|
|
principle--God is the author of good only.
|
|
|
|
And the second principle is like unto it:--With God is no variableness
|
|
or change of form. Reason teaches us this; for if we suppose a change
|
|
in God, he must be changed either by another or by himself. By
|
|
another?--but the best works of nature and art and the noblest qualities
|
|
of mind are least liable to be changed by any external force. By
|
|
himself?--but he cannot change for the better; he will hardly change
|
|
for the worse. He remains for ever fairest and best in his own image.
|
|
Therefore we refuse to listen to the poets who tell us of Here begging
|
|
in the likeness of a priestess or of other deities who prowl about at
|
|
night in strange disguises; all that blasphemous nonsense with which
|
|
mothers fool the manhood out of their children must be suppressed. But
|
|
some one will say that God, who is himself unchangeable, may take a form
|
|
in relation to us. Why should he? For gods as well as men hate the lie
|
|
in the soul, or principle of falsehood; and as for any other form of
|
|
lying which is used for a purpose and is regarded as innocent in certain
|
|
exceptional cases--what need have the gods of this? For they are not
|
|
ignorant of antiquity like the poets, nor are they afraid of their
|
|
enemies, nor is any madman a friend of theirs. God then is true, he is
|
|
absolutely true; he changes not, he deceives not, by day or night, by
|
|
word or sign. This is our second great principle--God is true. Away
|
|
with the lying dream of Agamemnon in Homer, and the accusation of Thetis
|
|
against Apollo in Aeschylus...
|
|
|
|
In order to give clearness to his conception of the State, Plato
|
|
proceeds to trace the first principles of mutual need and of division
|
|
of labour in an imaginary community of four or five citizens. Gradually
|
|
this community increases; the division of labour extends to countries;
|
|
imports necessitate exports; a medium of exchange is required, and
|
|
retailers sit in the market-place to save the time of the producers.
|
|
These are the steps by which Plato constructs the first or primitive
|
|
State, introducing the elements of political economy by the way. As
|
|
he is going to frame a second or civilized State, the simple naturally
|
|
comes before the complex. He indulges, like Rousseau, in a picture of
|
|
primitive life--an idea which has indeed often had a powerful influence
|
|
on the imagination of mankind, but he does not seriously mean to say
|
|
that one is better than the other (Politicus); nor can any inference
|
|
be drawn from the description of the first state taken apart from the
|
|
second, such as Aristotle appears to draw in the Politics. We should not
|
|
interpret a Platonic dialogue any more than a poem or a parable in too
|
|
literal or matter-of-fact a style. On the other hand, when we compare
|
|
the lively fancy of Plato with the dried-up abstractions of modern
|
|
treatises on philosophy, we are compelled to say with Protagoras, that
|
|
the 'mythus is more interesting' (Protag.)
|
|
|
|
Several interesting remarks which in modern times would have a place in
|
|
a treatise on Political Economy are scattered up and down the writings
|
|
of Plato: especially Laws, Population; Free Trade; Adulteration; Wills
|
|
and Bequests; Begging; Eryxias, (though not Plato's), Value and Demand;
|
|
Republic, Division of Labour. The last subject, and also the origin of
|
|
Retail Trade, is treated with admirable lucidity in the second book of
|
|
the Republic. But Plato never combined his economic ideas into a system,
|
|
and never seems to have recognized that Trade is one of the great motive
|
|
powers of the State and of the world. He would make retail traders
|
|
only of the inferior sort of citizens (Rep., Laws), though he remarks,
|
|
quaintly enough (Laws), that 'if only the best men and the best women
|
|
everywhere were compelled to keep taverns for a time or to carry on
|
|
retail trade, etc., then we should knew how pleasant and agreeable all
|
|
these things are.'
|
|
|
|
The disappointment of Glaucon at the 'city of pigs,' the ludicrous
|
|
description of the ministers of luxury in the more refined State, and
|
|
the afterthought of the necessity of doctors, the illustration of the
|
|
nature of the guardian taken from the dog, the desirableness of
|
|
offering some almost unprocurable victim when impure mysteries are to be
|
|
celebrated, the behaviour of Zeus to his father and of Hephaestus to
|
|
his mother, are touches of humour which have also a serious meaning. In
|
|
speaking of education Plato rather startles us by affirming that a child
|
|
must be trained in falsehood first and in truth afterwards. Yet this is
|
|
not very different from saying that children must be taught through
|
|
the medium of imagination as well as reason; that their minds can only
|
|
develope gradually, and that there is much which they must learn without
|
|
understanding. This is also the substance of Plato's view, though he
|
|
must be acknowledged to have drawn the line somewhat differently from
|
|
modern ethical writers, respecting truth and falsehood. To us, economies
|
|
or accommodations would not be allowable unless they were required by
|
|
the human faculties or necessary for the communication of knowledge to
|
|
the simple and ignorant. We should insist that the word was inseparable
|
|
from the intention, and that we must not be 'falsely true,' i.e. speak
|
|
or act falsely in support of what was right or true. But Plato would
|
|
limit the use of fictions only by requiring that they should have a good
|
|
moral effect, and that such a dangerous weapon as falsehood should be
|
|
employed by the rulers alone and for great objects.
|
|
|
|
A Greek in the age of Plato attached no importance to the question
|
|
whether his religion was an historical fact. He was just beginning to be
|
|
conscious that the past had a history; but he could see nothing beyond
|
|
Homer and Hesiod. Whether their narratives were true or false did not
|
|
seriously affect the political or social life of Hellas. Men only began
|
|
to suspect that they were fictions when they recognised them to be
|
|
immoral. And so in all religions: the consideration of their morality
|
|
comes first, afterwards the truth of the documents in which they are
|
|
recorded, or of the events natural or supernatural which are told of
|
|
them. But in modern times, and in Protestant countries perhaps more than
|
|
in Catholic, we have been too much inclined to identify the historical
|
|
with the moral; and some have refused to believe in religion at all,
|
|
unless a superhuman accuracy was discernible in every part of the
|
|
record. The facts of an ancient or religious history are amongst the
|
|
most important of all facts; but they are frequently uncertain, and we
|
|
only learn the true lesson which is to be gathered from them when we
|
|
place ourselves above them. These reflections tend to show that the
|
|
difference between Plato and ourselves, though not unimportant, is not
|
|
so great as might at first sight appear. For we should agree with him
|
|
in placing the moral before the historical truth of religion; and,
|
|
generally, in disregarding those errors or misstatements of fact which
|
|
necessarily occur in the early stages of all religions. We know also
|
|
that changes in the traditions of a country cannot be made in a day; and
|
|
are therefore tolerant of many things which science and criticism would
|
|
condemn.
|
|
|
|
We note in passing that the allegorical interpretation of mythology,
|
|
said to have been first introduced as early as the sixth century before
|
|
Christ by Theagenes of Rhegium, was well established in the age of
|
|
Plato, and here, as in the Phaedrus, though for a different reason, was
|
|
rejected by him. That anachronisms whether of religion or law, when
|
|
men have reached another stage of civilization, should be got rid of by
|
|
fictions is in accordance with universal experience. Great is the art of
|
|
interpretation; and by a natural process, which when once discovered was
|
|
always going on, what could not be altered was explained away. And so
|
|
without any palpable inconsistency there existed side by side two forms
|
|
of religion, the tradition inherited or invented by the poets and
|
|
the customary worship of the temple; on the other hand, there was the
|
|
religion of the philosopher, who was dwelling in the heaven of ideas,
|
|
but did not therefore refuse to offer a cock to Aesculapius, or to
|
|
be seen saying his prayers at the rising of the sun. At length the
|
|
antagonism between the popular and philosophical religion, never so
|
|
great among the Greeks as in our own age, disappeared, and was only felt
|
|
like the difference between the religion of the educated and uneducated
|
|
among ourselves. The Zeus of Homer and Hesiod easily passed into
|
|
the 'royal mind' of Plato (Philebus); the giant Heracles became the
|
|
knight-errant and benefactor of mankind. These and still more wonderful
|
|
transformations were readily effected by the ingenuity of Stoics and
|
|
neo-Platonists in the two or three centuries before and after Christ.
|
|
The Greek and Roman religions were gradually permeated by the spirit of
|
|
philosophy; having lost their ancient meaning, they were resolved into
|
|
poetry and morality; and probably were never purer than at the time of
|
|
their decay, when their influence over the world was waning.
|
|
|
|
A singular conception which occurs towards the end of the book is
|
|
the lie in the soul; this is connected with the Platonic and Socratic
|
|
doctrine that involuntary ignorance is worse than voluntary. The lie
|
|
in the soul is a true lie, the corruption of the highest truth, the
|
|
deception of the highest part of the soul, from which he who is deceived
|
|
has no power of delivering himself. For example, to represent God
|
|
as false or immoral, or, according to Plato, as deluding men with
|
|
appearances or as the author of evil; or again, to affirm with
|
|
Protagoras that 'knowledge is sensation,' or that 'being is becoming,'
|
|
or with Thrasymachus 'that might is right,' would have been regarded by
|
|
Plato as a lie of this hateful sort. The greatest unconsciousness of the
|
|
greatest untruth, e.g. if, in the language of the Gospels (John), 'he
|
|
who was blind' were to say 'I see,' is another aspect of the state
|
|
of mind which Plato is describing. The lie in the soul may be further
|
|
compared with the sin against the Holy Ghost (Luke), allowing for the
|
|
difference between Greek and Christian modes of speaking. To this is
|
|
opposed the lie in words, which is only such a deception as may occur
|
|
in a play or poem, or allegory or figure of speech, or in any sort of
|
|
accommodation,--which though useless to the gods may be useful to men
|
|
in certain cases. Socrates is here answering the question which he had
|
|
himself raised about the propriety of deceiving a madman; and he is also
|
|
contrasting the nature of God and man. For God is Truth, but mankind can
|
|
only be true by appearing sometimes to be partial, or false. Reserving
|
|
for another place the greater questions of religion or education, we
|
|
may note further, (1) the approval of the old traditional education
|
|
of Greece; (2) the preparation which Plato is making for the attack on
|
|
Homer and the poets; (3) the preparation which he is also making for the
|
|
use of economies in the State; (4) the contemptuous and at the same time
|
|
euphemistic manner in which here as below he alludes to the 'Chronique
|
|
Scandaleuse' of the gods.
|
|
|
|
BOOK III. There is another motive in purifying religion, which is to
|
|
banish fear; for no man can be courageous who is afraid of death, or who
|
|
believes the tales which are repeated by the poets concerning the world
|
|
below. They must be gently requested not to abuse hell; they may be
|
|
reminded that their stories are both untrue and discouraging. Nor must
|
|
they be angry if we expunge obnoxious passages, such as the depressing
|
|
words of Achilles--'I would rather be a serving-man than rule over
|
|
all the dead;' and the verses which tell of the squalid mansions, the
|
|
senseless shadows, the flitting soul mourning over lost strength and
|
|
youth, the soul with a gibber going beneath the earth like smoke, or
|
|
the souls of the suitors which flutter about like bats. The terrors and
|
|
horrors of Cocytus and Styx, ghosts and sapless shades, and the rest
|
|
of their Tartarean nomenclature, must vanish. Such tales may have their
|
|
use; but they are not the proper food for soldiers. As little can we
|
|
admit the sorrows and sympathies of the Homeric heroes:--Achilles, the
|
|
son of Thetis, in tears, throwing ashes on his head, or pacing up and
|
|
down the sea-shore in distraction; or Priam, the cousin of the gods,
|
|
crying aloud, rolling in the mire. A good man is not prostrated at
|
|
the loss of children or fortune. Neither is death terrible to him; and
|
|
therefore lamentations over the dead should not be practised by men of
|
|
note; they should be the concern of inferior persons only, whether women
|
|
or men. Still worse is the attribution of such weakness to the gods; as
|
|
when the goddesses say, 'Alas! my travail!' and worst of all, when the
|
|
king of heaven himself laments his inability to save Hector, or sorrows
|
|
over the impending doom of his dear Sarpedon. Such a character of God,
|
|
if not ridiculed by our young men, is likely to be imitated by them.
|
|
Nor should our citizens be given to excess of laughter--'Such violent
|
|
delights' are followed by a violent re-action. The description in the
|
|
Iliad of the gods shaking their sides at the clumsiness of Hephaestus
|
|
will not be admitted by us. 'Certainly not.'
|
|
|
|
Truth should have a high place among the virtues, for falsehood, as
|
|
we were saying, is useless to the gods, and only useful to men as a
|
|
medicine. But this employment of falsehood must remain a privilege of
|
|
state; the common man must not in return tell a lie to the ruler; any
|
|
more than the patient would tell a lie to his physician, or the sailor
|
|
to his captain.
|
|
|
|
In the next place our youth must be temperate, and temperance consists
|
|
in self-control and obedience to authority. That is a lesson which Homer
|
|
teaches in some places: 'The Achaeans marched on breathing prowess, in
|
|
silent awe of their leaders;'--but a very different one in other places:
|
|
'O heavy with wine, who hast the eyes of a dog, but the heart of a
|
|
stag.' Language of the latter kind will not impress self-control on the
|
|
minds of youth. The same may be said about his praises of eating and
|
|
drinking and his dread of starvation; also about the verses in which he
|
|
tells of the rapturous loves of Zeus and Here, or of how Hephaestus once
|
|
detained Ares and Aphrodite in a net on a similar occasion. There is a
|
|
nobler strain heard in the words:--'Endure, my soul, thou hast endured
|
|
worse.' Nor must we allow our citizens to receive bribes, or to say,
|
|
'Gifts persuade the gods, gifts reverend kings;' or to applaud the
|
|
ignoble advice of Phoenix to Achilles that he should get money out of
|
|
the Greeks before he assisted them; or the meanness of Achilles himself
|
|
in taking gifts from Agamemnon; or his requiring a ransom for the body
|
|
of Hector; or his cursing of Apollo; or his insolence to the river-god
|
|
Scamander; or his dedication to the dead Patroclus of his own hair which
|
|
had been already dedicated to the other river-god Spercheius; or his
|
|
cruelty in dragging the body of Hector round the walls, and slaying
|
|
the captives at the pyre: such a combination of meanness and cruelty in
|
|
Cheiron's pupil is inconceivable. The amatory exploits of Peirithous and
|
|
Theseus are equally unworthy. Either these so-called sons of gods were
|
|
not the sons of gods, or they were not such as the poets imagine them,
|
|
any more than the gods themselves are the authors of evil. The youth who
|
|
believes that such things are done by those who have the blood of heaven
|
|
flowing in their veins will be too ready to imitate their example.
|
|
|
|
Enough of gods and heroes;--what shall we say about men? What the poets
|
|
and story-tellers say--that the wicked prosper and the righteous are
|
|
afflicted, or that justice is another's gain? Such misrepresentations
|
|
cannot be allowed by us. But in this we are anticipating the definition
|
|
of justice, and had therefore better defer the enquiry.
|
|
|
|
The subjects of poetry have been sufficiently treated; next follows
|
|
style. Now all poetry is a narrative of events past, present, or to
|
|
come; and narrative is of three kinds, the simple, the imitative, and
|
|
a composition of the two. An instance will make my meaning clear.
|
|
The first scene in Homer is of the last or mixed kind, being partly
|
|
description and partly dialogue. But if you throw the dialogue into the
|
|
'oratio obliqua,' the passage will run thus: The priest came and prayed
|
|
Apollo that the Achaeans might take Troy and have a safe return if
|
|
Agamemnon would only give him back his daughter; and the other Greeks
|
|
assented, but Agamemnon was wroth, and so on--The whole then becomes
|
|
descriptive, and the poet is the only speaker left; or, if you omit the
|
|
narrative, the whole becomes dialogue. These are the three styles--which
|
|
of them is to be admitted into our State? 'Do you ask whether tragedy
|
|
and comedy are to be admitted?' Yes, but also something more--Is it not
|
|
doubtful whether our guardians are to be imitators at all? Or rather,
|
|
has not the question been already answered, for we have decided that one
|
|
man cannot in his life play many parts, any more than he can act both
|
|
tragedy and comedy, or be rhapsodist and actor at once? Human nature
|
|
is coined into very small pieces, and as our guardians have their own
|
|
business already, which is the care of freedom, they will have enough
|
|
to do without imitating. If they imitate they should imitate, not any
|
|
meanness or baseness, but the good only; for the mask which the actor
|
|
wears is apt to become his face. We cannot allow men to play the parts
|
|
of women, quarrelling, weeping, scolding, or boasting against the
|
|
gods,--least of all when making love or in labour. They must not
|
|
represent slaves, or bullies, or cowards, drunkards, or madmen, or
|
|
blacksmiths, or neighing horses, or bellowing bulls, or sounding rivers,
|
|
or a raging sea. A good or wise man will be willing to perform good and
|
|
wise actions, but he will be ashamed to play an inferior part which he
|
|
has never practised; and he will prefer to employ the descriptive style
|
|
with as little imitation as possible. The man who has no self-respect,
|
|
on the contrary, will imitate anybody and anything; sounds of nature
|
|
and cries of animals alike; his whole performance will be imitation of
|
|
gesture and voice. Now in the descriptive style there are few changes,
|
|
but in the dramatic there are a great many. Poets and musicians use
|
|
either, or a compound of both, and this compound is very attractive
|
|
to youth and their teachers as well as to the vulgar. But our State in
|
|
which one man plays one part only is not adapted for complexity. And
|
|
when one of these polyphonous pantomimic gentlemen offers to exhibit
|
|
himself and his poetry we will show him every observance of respect,
|
|
but at the same time tell him that there is no room for his kind in our
|
|
State; we prefer the rough, honest poet, and will not depart from our
|
|
original models (Laws).
|
|
|
|
Next as to the music. A song or ode has three parts,--the subject, the
|
|
harmony, and the rhythm; of which the two last are dependent upon the
|
|
first. As we banished strains of lamentation, so we may now banish the
|
|
mixed Lydian harmonies, which are the harmonies of lamentation; and
|
|
as our citizens are to be temperate, we may also banish convivial
|
|
harmonies, such as the Ionian and pure Lydian. Two remain--the
|
|
Dorian and Phrygian, the first for war, the second for peace; the
|
|
one expressive of courage, the other of obedience or instruction or
|
|
religious feeling. And as we reject varieties of harmony, we shall
|
|
also reject the many-stringed, variously-shaped instruments which give
|
|
utterance to them, and in particular the flute, which is more complex
|
|
than any of them. The lyre and the harp may be permitted in the town,
|
|
and the Pan's-pipe in the fields. Thus we have made a purgation of
|
|
music, and will now make a purgation of metres. These should be like the
|
|
harmonies, simple and suitable to the occasion. There are four notes
|
|
of the tetrachord, and there are three ratios of metre, 3/2, 2/2,
|
|
2/1, which have all their characteristics, and the feet have different
|
|
characteristics as well as the rhythms. But about this you and I must
|
|
ask Damon, the great musician, who speaks, if I remember rightly, of a
|
|
martial measure as well as of dactylic, trochaic, and iambic rhythms,
|
|
which he arranges so as to equalize the syllables with one another,
|
|
assigning to each the proper quantity. We only venture to affirm the
|
|
general principle that the style is to conform to the subject and the
|
|
metre to the style; and that the simplicity and harmony of the soul
|
|
should be reflected in them all. This principle of simplicity has to
|
|
be learnt by every one in the days of his youth, and may be gathered
|
|
anywhere, from the creative and constructive arts, as well as from the
|
|
forms of plants and animals.
|
|
|
|
Other artists as well as poets should be warned against meanness or
|
|
unseemliness. Sculpture and painting equally with music must conform to
|
|
the law of simplicity. He who violates it cannot be allowed to work in
|
|
our city, and to corrupt the taste of our citizens. For our guardians
|
|
must grow up, not amid images of deformity which will gradually poison
|
|
and corrupt their souls, but in a land of health and beauty where they
|
|
will drink in from every object sweet and harmonious influences. And of
|
|
all these influences the greatest is the education given by music,
|
|
which finds a way into the innermost soul and imparts to it the sense
|
|
of beauty and of deformity. At first the effect is unconscious; but when
|
|
reason arrives, then he who has been thus trained welcomes her as the
|
|
friend whom he always knew. As in learning to read, first we acquire the
|
|
elements or letters separately, and afterwards their combinations,
|
|
and cannot recognize reflections of them until we know the letters
|
|
themselves;--in like manner we must first attain the elements or
|
|
essential forms of the virtues, and then trace their combinations in
|
|
life and experience. There is a music of the soul which answers to the
|
|
harmony of the world; and the fairest object of a musical soul is the
|
|
fair mind in the fair body. Some defect in the latter may be excused,
|
|
but not in the former. True love is the daughter of temperance, and
|
|
temperance is utterly opposed to the madness of bodily pleasure. Enough
|
|
has been said of music, which makes a fair ending with love.
|
|
|
|
Next we pass on to gymnastics; about which I would remark, that the
|
|
soul is related to the body as a cause to an effect, and therefore if we
|
|
educate the mind we may leave the education of the body in her charge,
|
|
and need only give a general outline of the course to be pursued. In
|
|
the first place the guardians must abstain from strong drink, for they
|
|
should be the last persons to lose their wits. Whether the habits of
|
|
the palaestra are suitable to them is more doubtful, for the ordinary
|
|
gymnastic is a sleepy sort of thing, and if left off suddenly is apt to
|
|
endanger health. But our warrior athletes must be wide-awake dogs, and
|
|
must also be inured to all changes of food and climate. Hence they will
|
|
require a simpler kind of gymnastic, akin to their simple music; and for
|
|
their diet a rule may be found in Homer, who feeds his heroes on roast
|
|
meat only, and gives them no fish although they are living at the
|
|
sea-side, nor boiled meats which involve an apparatus of pots and pans;
|
|
and, if I am not mistaken, he nowhere mentions sweet sauces. Sicilian
|
|
cookery and Attic confections and Corinthian courtezans, which are
|
|
to gymnastic what Lydian and Ionian melodies are to music, must be
|
|
forbidden. Where gluttony and intemperance prevail the town quickly
|
|
fills with doctors and pleaders; and law and medicine give themselves
|
|
airs as soon as the freemen of a State take an interest in them. But
|
|
what can show a more disgraceful state of education than to have to go
|
|
abroad for justice because you have none of your own at home? And yet
|
|
there IS a worse stage of the same disease--when men have learned
|
|
to take a pleasure and pride in the twists and turns of the law; not
|
|
considering how much better it would be for them so to order their lives
|
|
as to have no need of a nodding justice. And there is a like disgrace in
|
|
employing a physician, not for the cure of wounds or epidemic disorders,
|
|
but because a man has by laziness and luxury contracted diseases
|
|
which were unknown in the days of Asclepius. How simple is the Homeric
|
|
practice of medicine. Eurypylus after he has been wounded drinks a
|
|
posset of Pramnian wine, which is of a heating nature; and yet the
|
|
sons of Asclepius blame neither the damsel who gives him the drink, nor
|
|
Patroclus who is attending on him. The truth is that this modern system
|
|
of nursing diseases was introduced by Herodicus the trainer; who,
|
|
being of a sickly constitution, by a compound of training and medicine
|
|
tortured first himself and then a good many other people, and lived
|
|
a great deal longer than he had any right. But Asclepius would not
|
|
practise this art, because he knew that the citizens of a well-ordered
|
|
State have no leisure to be ill, and therefore he adopted the 'kill
|
|
or cure' method, which artisans and labourers employ. 'They must be
|
|
at their business,' they say, 'and have no time for coddling: if they
|
|
recover, well; if they don't, there is an end of them.' Whereas the rich
|
|
man is supposed to be a gentleman who can afford to be ill. Do you know
|
|
a maxim of Phocylides--that 'when a man begins to be rich' (or, perhaps,
|
|
a little sooner) 'he should practise virtue'? But how can excessive
|
|
care of health be inconsistent with an ordinary occupation, and yet
|
|
consistent with that practice of virtue which Phocylides inculcates?
|
|
When a student imagines that philosophy gives him a headache, he never
|
|
does anything; he is always unwell. This was the reason why Asclepius
|
|
and his sons practised no such art. They were acting in the interest of
|
|
the public, and did not wish to preserve useless lives, or raise up a
|
|
puny offspring to wretched sires. Honest diseases they honestly cured;
|
|
and if a man was wounded, they applied the proper remedies, and then let
|
|
him eat and drink what he liked. But they declined to treat intemperate
|
|
and worthless subjects, even though they might have made large fortunes
|
|
out of them. As to the story of Pindar, that Asclepius was slain by a
|
|
thunderbolt for restoring a rich man to life, that is a lie--following
|
|
our old rule we must say either that he did not take bribes, or that he
|
|
was not the son of a god.
|
|
|
|
Glaucon then asks Socrates whether the best physicians and the best
|
|
judges will not be those who have had severally the greatest experience
|
|
of diseases and of crimes. Socrates draws a distinction between the two
|
|
professions. The physician should have had experience of disease in
|
|
his own body, for he cures with his mind and not with his body. But
|
|
the judge controls mind by mind; and therefore his mind should not be
|
|
corrupted by crime. Where then is he to gain experience? How is he to be
|
|
wise and also innocent? When young a good man is apt to be deceived by
|
|
evil-doers, because he has no pattern of evil in himself; and therefore
|
|
the judge should be of a certain age; his youth should have been
|
|
innocent, and he should have acquired insight into evil not by the
|
|
practice of it, but by the observation of it in others. This is
|
|
the ideal of a judge; the criminal turned detective is wonderfully
|
|
suspicious, but when in company with good men who have experience, he is
|
|
at fault, for he foolishly imagines that every one is as bad as himself.
|
|
Vice may be known of virtue, but cannot know virtue. This is the sort of
|
|
medicine and this the sort of law which will prevail in our State; they
|
|
will be healing arts to better natures; but the evil body will be left
|
|
to die by the one, and the evil soul will be put to death by the other.
|
|
And the need of either will be greatly diminished by good music which
|
|
will give harmony to the soul, and good gymnastic which will give
|
|
health to the body. Not that this division of music and gymnastic really
|
|
corresponds to soul and body; for they are both equally concerned with
|
|
the soul, which is tamed by the one and aroused and sustained by the
|
|
other. The two together supply our guardians with their twofold nature.
|
|
The passionate disposition when it has too much gymnastic is hardened
|
|
and brutalized, the gentle or philosophic temper which has too much
|
|
music becomes enervated. While a man is allowing music to pour like
|
|
water through the funnel of his ears, the edge of his soul gradually
|
|
wears away, and the passionate or spirited element is melted out of
|
|
him. Too little spirit is easily exhausted; too much quickly passes into
|
|
nervous irritability. So, again, the athlete by feeding and training has
|
|
his courage doubled, but he soon grows stupid; he is like a wild beast,
|
|
ready to do everything by blows and nothing by counsel or policy. There
|
|
are two principles in man, reason and passion, and to these, not to the
|
|
soul and body, the two arts of music and gymnastic correspond. He who
|
|
mingles them in harmonious concord is the true musician,--he shall be
|
|
the presiding genius of our State.
|
|
|
|
The next question is, Who are to be our rulers? First, the elder must
|
|
rule the younger; and the best of the elders will be the best guardians.
|
|
Now they will be the best who love their subjects most, and think that
|
|
they have a common interest with them in the welfare of the state. These
|
|
we must select; but they must be watched at every epoch of life to see
|
|
whether they have retained the same opinions and held out against force
|
|
and enchantment. For time and persuasion and the love of pleasure may
|
|
enchant a man into a change of purpose, and the force of grief and pain
|
|
may compel him. And therefore our guardians must be men who have been
|
|
tried by many tests, like gold in the refiner's fire, and have been
|
|
passed first through danger, then through pleasure, and at every age
|
|
have come out of such trials victorious and without stain, in full
|
|
command of themselves and their principles; having all their faculties
|
|
in harmonious exercise for their country's good. These shall receive the
|
|
highest honours both in life and death. (It would perhaps be better to
|
|
confine the term 'guardians' to this select class: the younger men may
|
|
be called 'auxiliaries.')
|
|
|
|
And now for one magnificent lie, in the belief of which, Oh that we
|
|
could train our rulers!--at any rate let us make the attempt with the
|
|
rest of the world. What I am going to tell is only another version of
|
|
the legend of Cadmus; but our unbelieving generation will be slow to
|
|
accept such a story. The tale must be imparted, first to the rulers,
|
|
then to the soldiers, lastly to the people. We will inform them that
|
|
their youth was a dream, and that during the time when they seemed to
|
|
be undergoing their education they were really being fashioned in the
|
|
earth, who sent them up when they were ready; and that they must protect
|
|
and cherish her whose children they are, and regard each other as
|
|
brothers and sisters. 'I do not wonder at your being ashamed to propound
|
|
such a fiction.' There is more behind. These brothers and sisters
|
|
have different natures, and some of them God framed to rule, whom he
|
|
fashioned of gold; others he made of silver, to be auxiliaries; others
|
|
again to be husbandmen and craftsmen, and these were formed by him of
|
|
brass and iron. But as they are all sprung from a common stock, a golden
|
|
parent may have a silver son, or a silver parent a golden son, and then
|
|
there must be a change of rank; the son of the rich must descend, and
|
|
the child of the artisan rise, in the social scale; for an oracle says
|
|
'that the State will come to an end if governed by a man of brass or
|
|
iron.' Will our citizens ever believe all this? 'Not in the present
|
|
generation, but in the next, perhaps, Yes.'
|
|
|
|
Now let the earthborn men go forth under the command of their rulers,
|
|
and look about and pitch their camp in a high place, which will be safe
|
|
against enemies from without, and likewise against insurrections from
|
|
within. There let them sacrifice and set up their tents; for soldiers
|
|
they are to be and not shopkeepers, the watchdogs and guardians of the
|
|
sheep; and luxury and avarice will turn them into wolves and tyrants.
|
|
Their habits and their dwellings should correspond to their education.
|
|
They should have no property; their pay should only meet their expenses;
|
|
and they should have common meals. Gold and silver we will tell them
|
|
that they have from God, and this divine gift in their souls they must
|
|
not alloy with that earthly dross which passes under the name of gold.
|
|
They only of the citizens may not touch it, or be under the same roof
|
|
with it, or drink from it; it is the accursed thing. Should they
|
|
ever acquire houses or lands or money of their own, they will become
|
|
householders and tradesmen instead of guardians, enemies and tyrants
|
|
instead of helpers, and the hour of ruin, both to themselves and the
|
|
rest of the State, will be at hand.
|
|
|
|
The religious and ethical aspect of Plato's education will hereafter
|
|
be considered under a separate head. Some lesser points may be more
|
|
conveniently noticed in this place.
|
|
|
|
1. The constant appeal to the authority of Homer, whom, with grave
|
|
irony, Plato, after the manner of his age, summons as a witness about
|
|
ethics and psychology, as well as about diet and medicine; attempting
|
|
to distinguish the better lesson from the worse, sometimes altering
|
|
the text from design; more than once quoting or alluding to Homer
|
|
inaccurately, after the manner of the early logographers turning the
|
|
Iliad into prose, and delighting to draw far-fetched inferences from
|
|
his words, or to make ludicrous applications of them. He does not, like
|
|
Heracleitus, get into a rage with Homer and Archilochus (Heracl.), but
|
|
uses their words and expressions as vehicles of a higher truth; not on
|
|
a system like Theagenes of Rhegium or Metrodorus, or in later times the
|
|
Stoics, but as fancy may dictate. And the conclusions drawn from them
|
|
are sound, although the premises are fictitious. These fanciful appeals
|
|
to Homer add a charm to Plato's style, and at the same time they have
|
|
the effect of a satire on the follies of Homeric interpretation. To us
|
|
(and probably to himself), although they take the form of arguments,
|
|
they are really figures of speech. They may be compared with modern
|
|
citations from Scripture, which have often a great rhetorical power even
|
|
when the original meaning of the words is entirely lost sight of. The
|
|
real, like the Platonic Socrates, as we gather from the Memorabilia of
|
|
Xenophon, was fond of making similar adaptations. Great in all ages and
|
|
countries, in religion as well as in law and literature, has been the
|
|
art of interpretation.
|
|
|
|
2. 'The style is to conform to the subject and the metre to the style.'
|
|
Notwithstanding the fascination which the word 'classical' exercises
|
|
over us, we can hardly maintain that this rule is observed in all the
|
|
Greek poetry which has come down to us. We cannot deny that the thought
|
|
often exceeds the power of lucid expression in Aeschylus and Pindar;
|
|
or that rhetoric gets the better of the thought in the Sophist-poet
|
|
Euripides. Only perhaps in Sophocles is there a perfect harmony of the
|
|
two; in him alone do we find a grace of language like the beauty of a
|
|
Greek statue, in which there is nothing to add or to take away; at
|
|
least this is true of single plays or of large portions of them. The
|
|
connection in the Tragic Choruses and in the Greek lyric poets is not
|
|
unfrequently a tangled thread which in an age before logic the poet was
|
|
unable to draw out. Many thoughts and feelings mingled in his mind, and
|
|
he had no power of disengaging or arranging them. For there is a subtle
|
|
influence of logic which requires to be transferred from prose to
|
|
poetry, just as the music and perfection of language are infused by
|
|
poetry into prose. In all ages the poet has been a bad judge of his
|
|
own meaning (Apol.); for he does not see that the word which is full
|
|
of associations to his own mind is difficult and unmeaning to that of
|
|
another; or that the sequence which is clear to himself is puzzling to
|
|
others. There are many passages in some of our greatest modern poets
|
|
which are far too obscure; in which there is no proportion between style
|
|
and subject, in which any half-expressed figure, any harsh construction,
|
|
any distorted collocation of words, any remote sequence of ideas is
|
|
admitted; and there is no voice 'coming sweetly from nature,' or music
|
|
adding the expression of feeling to thought. As if there could be poetry
|
|
without beauty, or beauty without ease and clearness. The obscurities
|
|
of early Greek poets arose necessarily out of the state of language and
|
|
logic which existed in their age. They are not examples to be followed
|
|
by us; for the use of language ought in every generation to become
|
|
clearer and clearer. Like Shakespere, they were great in spite, not
|
|
in consequence, of their imperfections of expression. But there is no
|
|
reason for returning to the necessary obscurity which prevailed in
|
|
the infancy of literature. The English poets of the last century were
|
|
certainly not obscure; and we have no excuse for losing what they had
|
|
gained, or for going back to the earlier or transitional age which
|
|
preceded them. The thought of our own times has not out-stripped
|
|
language; a want of Plato's 'art of measuring' is the rule cause of the
|
|
disproportion between them.
|
|
|
|
3. In the third book of the Republic a nearer approach is made to a
|
|
theory of art than anywhere else in Plato. His views may be summed up
|
|
as follows:--True art is not fanciful and imitative, but simple and
|
|
ideal,--the expression of the highest moral energy, whether in action or
|
|
repose. To live among works of plastic art which are of this noble
|
|
and simple character, or to listen to such strains, is the best of
|
|
influences,--the true Greek atmosphere, in which youth should be brought
|
|
up. That is the way to create in them a natural good taste, which will
|
|
have a feeling of truth and beauty in all things. For though the
|
|
poets are to be expelled, still art is recognized as another aspect of
|
|
reason--like love in the Symposium, extending over the same sphere, but
|
|
confined to the preliminary education, and acting through the power of
|
|
habit; and this conception of art is not limited to strains of music or
|
|
the forms of plastic art, but pervades all nature and has a wide kindred
|
|
in the world. The Republic of Plato, like the Athens of Pericles, has an
|
|
artistic as well as a political side.
|
|
|
|
There is hardly any mention in Plato of the creative arts; only in two
|
|
or three passages does he even allude to them (Rep.; Soph.). He is
|
|
not lost in rapture at the great works of Phidias, the Parthenon, the
|
|
Propylea, the statues of Zeus or Athene. He would probably have regarded
|
|
any abstract truth of number or figure as higher than the greatest of
|
|
them. Yet it is hard to suppose that some influence, such as he hopes to
|
|
inspire in youth, did not pass into his own mind from the works of art
|
|
which he saw around him. We are living upon the fragments of them, and
|
|
find in a few broken stones the standard of truth and beauty. But in
|
|
Plato this feeling has no expression; he nowhere says that beauty is the
|
|
object of art; he seems to deny that wisdom can take an external form
|
|
(Phaedrus); he does not distinguish the fine from the mechanical arts.
|
|
Whether or no, like some writers, he felt more than he expressed, it
|
|
is at any rate remarkable that the greatest perfection of the fine arts
|
|
should coincide with an almost entire silence about them. In one very
|
|
striking passage he tells us that a work of art, like the State, is a
|
|
whole; and this conception of a whole and the love of the newly-born
|
|
mathematical sciences may be regarded, if not as the inspiring, at any
|
|
rate as the regulating principles of Greek art (Xen. Mem.; and Sophist).
|
|
|
|
4. Plato makes the true and subtle remark that the physician had better
|
|
not be in robust health; and should have known what illness is in his
|
|
own person. But the judge ought to have had no similar experience of
|
|
evil; he is to be a good man who, having passed his youth in innocence,
|
|
became acquainted late in life with the vices of others. And therefore,
|
|
according to Plato, a judge should not be young, just as a young man
|
|
according to Aristotle is not fit to be a hearer of moral philosophy.
|
|
The bad, on the other hand, have a knowledge of vice, but no knowledge
|
|
of virtue. It may be doubted, however, whether this train of reflection
|
|
is well founded. In a remarkable passage of the Laws it is acknowledged
|
|
that the evil may form a correct estimate of the good. The union of
|
|
gentleness and courage in Book ii. at first seemed to be a paradox,
|
|
yet was afterwards ascertained to be a truth. And Plato might also have
|
|
found that the intuition of evil may be consistent with the abhorrence
|
|
of it. There is a directness of aim in virtue which gives an insight
|
|
into vice. And the knowledge of character is in some degree a natural
|
|
sense independent of any special experience of good or evil.
|
|
|
|
5. One of the most remarkable conceptions of Plato, because un-Greek and
|
|
also very different from anything which existed at all in his age of
|
|
the world, is the transposition of ranks. In the Spartan state there had
|
|
been enfranchisement of Helots and degradation of citizens under
|
|
special circumstances. And in the ancient Greek aristocracies, merit
|
|
was certainly recognized as one of the elements on which government was
|
|
based. The founders of states were supposed to be their benefactors, who
|
|
were raised by their great actions above the ordinary level of humanity;
|
|
at a later period, the services of warriors and legislators were held to
|
|
entitle them and their descendants to the privileges of citizenship and
|
|
to the first rank in the state. And although the existence of an ideal
|
|
aristocracy is slenderly proven from the remains of early Greek history,
|
|
and we have a difficulty in ascribing such a character, however the idea
|
|
may be defined, to any actual Hellenic state--or indeed to any state
|
|
which has ever existed in the world--still the rule of the best was
|
|
certainly the aspiration of philosophers, who probably accommodated a
|
|
good deal their views of primitive history to their own notions of good
|
|
government. Plato further insists on applying to the guardians of his
|
|
state a series of tests by which all those who fell short of a fixed
|
|
standard were either removed from the governing body, or not admitted
|
|
to it; and this 'academic' discipline did to a certain extent prevail in
|
|
Greek states, especially in Sparta. He also indicates that the system of
|
|
caste, which existed in a great part of the ancient, and is by no means
|
|
extinct in the modern European world, should be set aside from time
|
|
to time in favour of merit. He is aware how deeply the greater part of
|
|
mankind resent any interference with the order of society, and therefore
|
|
he proposes his novel idea in the form of what he himself calls a
|
|
'monstrous fiction.' (Compare the ceremony of preparation for the two
|
|
'great waves' in Book v.) Two principles are indicated by him: first,
|
|
that there is a distinction of ranks dependent on circumstances prior to
|
|
the individual: second, that this distinction is and ought to be broken
|
|
through by personal qualities. He adapts mythology like the Homeric
|
|
poems to the wants of the state, making 'the Phoenician tale' the
|
|
vehicle of his ideas. Every Greek state had a myth respecting its own
|
|
origin; the Platonic republic may also have a tale of earthborn men. The
|
|
gravity and verisimilitude with which the tale is told, and the analogy
|
|
of Greek tradition, are a sufficient verification of the 'monstrous
|
|
falsehood.' Ancient poetry had spoken of a gold and silver and brass and
|
|
iron age succeeding one another, but Plato supposes these differences
|
|
in the natures of men to exist together in a single state. Mythology
|
|
supplies a figure under which the lesson may be taught (as Protagoras
|
|
says, 'the myth is more interesting'), and also enables Plato to touch
|
|
lightly on new principles without going into details. In this passage he
|
|
shadows forth a general truth, but he does not tell us by what steps the
|
|
transposition of ranks is to be effected. Indeed throughout the Republic
|
|
he allows the lower ranks to fade into the distance. We do not know
|
|
whether they are to carry arms, and whether in the fifth book they are
|
|
or are not included in the communistic regulations respecting property
|
|
and marriage. Nor is there any use in arguing strictly either from a
|
|
few chance words, or from the silence of Plato, or in drawing inferences
|
|
which were beyond his vision. Aristotle, in his criticism on the
|
|
position of the lower classes, does not perceive that the poetical
|
|
creation is 'like the air, invulnerable,' and cannot be penetrated by
|
|
the shafts of his logic (Pol.).
|
|
|
|
6. Two paradoxes which strike the modern reader as in the highest degree
|
|
fanciful and ideal, and which suggest to him many reflections, are to
|
|
be found in the third book of the Republic: first, the great power of
|
|
music, so much beyond any influence which is experienced by us in modern
|
|
times, when the art or science has been far more developed, and has
|
|
found the secret of harmony, as well as of melody; secondly, the
|
|
indefinite and almost absolute control which the soul is supposed to
|
|
exercise over the body.
|
|
|
|
In the first we suspect some degree of exaggeration, such as we may
|
|
also observe among certain masters of the art, not unknown to us, at the
|
|
present day. With this natural enthusiasm, which is felt by a few only,
|
|
there seems to mingle in Plato a sort of Pythagorean reverence for
|
|
numbers and numerical proportion to which Aristotle is a stranger.
|
|
Intervals of sound and number are to him sacred things which have a law
|
|
of their own, not dependent on the variations of sense. They rise above
|
|
sense, and become a connecting link with the world of ideas. But it is
|
|
evident that Plato is describing what to him appears to be also a fact.
|
|
The power of a simple and characteristic melody on the impressible
|
|
mind of the Greek is more than we can easily appreciate. The effect of
|
|
national airs may bear some comparison with it. And, besides all this,
|
|
there is a confusion between the harmony of musical notes and the
|
|
harmony of soul and body, which is so potently inspired by them.
|
|
|
|
The second paradox leads up to some curious and interesting
|
|
questions--How far can the mind control the body? Is the relation
|
|
between them one of mutual antagonism or of mutual harmony? Are they
|
|
two or one, and is either of them the cause of the other? May we not at
|
|
times drop the opposition between them, and the mode of describing them,
|
|
which is so familiar to us, and yet hardly conveys any precise meaning,
|
|
and try to view this composite creature, man, in a more simple manner?
|
|
Must we not at any rate admit that there is in human nature a higher
|
|
and a lower principle, divided by no distinct line, which at times
|
|
break asunder and take up arms against one another? Or again, they are
|
|
reconciled and move together, either unconsciously in the ordinary work
|
|
of life, or consciously in the pursuit of some noble aim, to be attained
|
|
not without an effort, and for which every thought and nerve are
|
|
strained. And then the body becomes the good friend or ally, or servant
|
|
or instrument of the mind. And the mind has often a wonderful and almost
|
|
superhuman power of banishing disease and weakness and calling out a
|
|
hidden strength. Reason and the desires, the intellect and the senses
|
|
are brought into harmony and obedience so as to form a single human
|
|
being. They are ever parting, ever meeting; and the identity or
|
|
diversity of their tendencies or operations is for the most part
|
|
unnoticed by us. When the mind touches the body through the appetites,
|
|
we acknowledge the responsibility of the one to the other. There is a
|
|
tendency in us which says 'Drink.' There is another which says, 'Do
|
|
not drink; it is not good for you.' And we all of us know which is the
|
|
rightful superior. We are also responsible for our health, although into
|
|
this sphere there enter some elements of necessity which may be beyond
|
|
our control. Still even in the management of health, care and thought,
|
|
continued over many years, may make us almost free agents, if we do
|
|
not exact too much of ourselves, and if we acknowledge that all human
|
|
freedom is limited by the laws of nature and of mind.
|
|
|
|
We are disappointed to find that Plato, in the general condemnation
|
|
which he passes on the practice of medicine prevailing in his own day,
|
|
depreciates the effects of diet. He would like to have diseases of a
|
|
definite character and capable of receiving a definite treatment. He is
|
|
afraid of invalidism interfering with the business of life. He does
|
|
not recognize that time is the great healer both of mental and bodily
|
|
disorders; and that remedies which are gradual and proceed little by
|
|
little are safer than those which produce a sudden catastrophe. Neither
|
|
does he see that there is no way in which the mind can more surely
|
|
influence the body than by the control of eating and drinking; or any
|
|
other action or occasion of human life on which the higher freedom of
|
|
the will can be more simple or truly asserted.
|
|
|
|
7. Lesser matters of style may be remarked.
|
|
|
|
(1) The affected ignorance of music, which is Plato's way of expressing
|
|
that he is passing lightly over the subject.
|
|
|
|
(2) The tentative manner in which here, as in the second book, he
|
|
proceeds with the construction of the State.
|
|
|
|
(3) The description of the State sometimes as a reality, and then again
|
|
as a work of imagination only; these are the arts by which he sustains
|
|
the reader's interest.
|
|
|
|
(4) Connecting links, or the preparation for the entire expulsion of the
|
|
poets in Book X.
|
|
|
|
(5) The companion pictures of the lover of litigation and the
|
|
valetudinarian, the satirical jest about the maxim of Phocylides, the
|
|
manner in which the image of the gold and silver citizens is taken
|
|
up into the subject, and the argument from the practice of Asclepius,
|
|
should not escape notice.
|
|
|
|
BOOK IV. Adeimantus said: 'Suppose a person to argue, Socrates, that you
|
|
make your citizens miserable, and this by their own free-will; they are
|
|
the lords of the city, and yet instead of having, like other men, lands
|
|
and houses and money of their own, they live as mercenaries and are
|
|
always mounting guard.' You may add, I replied, that they receive no
|
|
pay but only their food, and have no money to spend on a journey or a
|
|
mistress. 'Well, and what answer do you give?' My answer is, that
|
|
our guardians may or may not be the happiest of men,--I should not be
|
|
surprised to find in the long-run that they were,--but this is not the
|
|
aim of our constitution, which was designed for the good of the whole
|
|
and not of any one part. If I went to a sculptor and blamed him for
|
|
having painted the eye, which is the noblest feature of the face, not
|
|
purple but black, he would reply: 'The eye must be an eye, and you
|
|
should look at the statue as a whole.' 'Now I can well imagine a fool's
|
|
paradise, in which everybody is eating and drinking, clothed in purple
|
|
and fine linen, and potters lie on sofas and have their wheel at hand,
|
|
that they may work a little when they please; and cobblers and all the
|
|
other classes of a State lose their distinctive character. And a State
|
|
may get on without cobblers; but when the guardians degenerate into boon
|
|
companions, then the ruin is complete. Remember that we are not talking
|
|
of peasants keeping holiday, but of a State in which every man is
|
|
expected to do his own work. The happiness resides not in this or that
|
|
class, but in the State as a whole. I have another remark to make:--A
|
|
middle condition is best for artisans; they should have money enough to
|
|
buy tools, and not enough to be independent of business. And will not
|
|
the same condition be best for our citizens? If they are poor, they will
|
|
be mean; if rich, luxurious and lazy; and in neither case contented.
|
|
'But then how will our poor city be able to go to war against an enemy
|
|
who has money?' There may be a difficulty in fighting against one enemy;
|
|
against two there will be none. In the first place, the contest will be
|
|
carried on by trained warriors against well-to-do citizens: and is not a
|
|
regular athlete an easy match for two stout opponents at least? Suppose
|
|
also, that before engaging we send ambassadors to one of the two cities,
|
|
saying, 'Silver and gold we have not; do you help us and take our share
|
|
of the spoil;'--who would fight against the lean, wiry dogs, when they
|
|
might join with them in preying upon the fatted sheep? 'But if many
|
|
states join their resources, shall we not be in danger?' I am amused
|
|
to hear you use the word 'state' of any but our own State. They are
|
|
'states,' but not 'a state'--many in one. For in every state there are
|
|
two hostile nations, rich and poor, which you may set one against the
|
|
other. But our State, while she remains true to her principles, will be
|
|
in very deed the mightiest of Hellenic states.
|
|
|
|
To the size of the state there is no limit but the necessity of unity;
|
|
it must be neither too large nor too small to be one. This is a matter
|
|
of secondary importance, like the principle of transposition which was
|
|
intimated in the parable of the earthborn men. The meaning there implied
|
|
was that every man should do that for which he was fitted, and be at
|
|
one with himself, and then the whole city would be united. But all these
|
|
things are secondary, if education, which is the great matter, be duly
|
|
regarded. When the wheel has once been set in motion, the speed is
|
|
always increasing; and each generation improves upon the preceding, both
|
|
in physical and moral qualities. The care of the governors should be
|
|
directed to preserve music and gymnastic from innovation; alter the
|
|
songs of a country, Damon says, and you will soon end by altering its
|
|
laws. The change appears innocent at first, and begins in play; but
|
|
the evil soon becomes serious, working secretly upon the characters of
|
|
individuals, then upon social and commercial relations, and lastly upon
|
|
the institutions of a state; and there is ruin and confusion everywhere.
|
|
But if education remains in the established form, there will be no
|
|
danger. A restorative process will be always going on; the spirit of law
|
|
and order will raise up what has fallen down. Nor will any regulations
|
|
be needed for the lesser matters of life--rules of deportment or
|
|
fashions of dress. Like invites like for good or for evil. Education
|
|
will correct deficiencies and supply the power of self-government. Far
|
|
be it from us to enter into the particulars of legislation; let the
|
|
guardians take care of education, and education will take care of all
|
|
other things.
|
|
|
|
But without education they may patch and mend as they please; they will
|
|
make no progress, any more than a patient who thinks to cure himself by
|
|
some favourite remedy and will not give up his luxurious mode of living.
|
|
If you tell such persons that they must first alter their habits, then
|
|
they grow angry; they are charming people. 'Charming,--nay, the very
|
|
reverse.' Evidently these gentlemen are not in your good graces, nor the
|
|
state which is like them. And such states there are which first ordain
|
|
under penalty of death that no one shall alter the constitution, and
|
|
then suffer themselves to be flattered into and out of anything; and
|
|
he who indulges them and fawns upon them, is their leader and saviour.
|
|
'Yes, the men are as bad as the states.' But do you not admire their
|
|
cleverness? 'Nay, some of them are stupid enough to believe what the
|
|
people tell them.' And when all the world is telling a man that he is
|
|
six feet high, and he has no measure, how can he believe anything
|
|
else? But don't get into a passion: to see our statesmen trying their
|
|
nostrums, and fancying that they can cut off at a blow the Hydra-like
|
|
rogueries of mankind, is as good as a play. Minute enactments are
|
|
superfluous in good states, and are useless in bad ones.
|
|
|
|
And now what remains of the work of legislation? Nothing for us; but to
|
|
Apollo the god of Delphi we leave the ordering of the greatest of all
|
|
things--that is to say, religion. Only our ancestral deity sitting upon
|
|
the centre and navel of the earth will be trusted by us if we have any
|
|
sense, in an affair of such magnitude. No foreign god shall be supreme
|
|
in our realms...
|
|
|
|
Here, as Socrates would say, let us 'reflect on' (Greek) what has
|
|
preceded: thus far we have spoken not of the happiness of the citizens,
|
|
but only of the well-being of the State. They may be the happiest of
|
|
men, but our principal aim in founding the State was not to make them
|
|
happy. They were to be guardians, not holiday-makers. In this pleasant
|
|
manner is presented to us the famous question both of ancient and modern
|
|
philosophy, touching the relation of duty to happiness, of right to
|
|
utility.
|
|
|
|
First duty, then happiness, is the natural order of our moral ideas. The
|
|
utilitarian principle is valuable as a corrective of error, and shows
|
|
to us a side of ethics which is apt to be neglected. It may be admitted
|
|
further that right and utility are co-extensive, and that he who makes
|
|
the happiness of mankind his object has one of the highest and noblest
|
|
motives of human action. But utility is not the historical basis of
|
|
morality; nor the aspect in which moral and religious ideas commonly
|
|
occur to the mind. The greatest happiness of all is, as we believe, the
|
|
far-off result of the divine government of the universe. The greatest
|
|
happiness of the individual is certainly to be found in a life of virtue
|
|
and goodness. But we seem to be more assured of a law of right than we
|
|
can be of a divine purpose, that 'all mankind should be saved;' and
|
|
we infer the one from the other. And the greatest happiness of the
|
|
individual may be the reverse of the greatest happiness in the ordinary
|
|
sense of the term, and may be realised in a life of pain, or in a
|
|
voluntary death. Further, the word 'happiness' has several ambiguities;
|
|
it may mean either pleasure or an ideal life, happiness subjective or
|
|
objective, in this world or in another, of ourselves only or of
|
|
our neighbours and of all men everywhere. By the modern founder of
|
|
Utilitarianism the self-regarding and disinterested motives of action
|
|
are included under the same term, although they are commonly opposed
|
|
by us as benevolence and self-love. The word happiness has not the
|
|
definiteness or the sacredness of 'truth' and 'right'; it does
|
|
not equally appeal to our higher nature, and has not sunk into the
|
|
conscience of mankind. It is associated too much with the comforts and
|
|
conveniences of life; too little with 'the goods of the soul which we
|
|
desire for their own sake.' In a great trial, or danger, or temptation,
|
|
or in any great and heroic action, it is scarcely thought of. For these
|
|
reasons 'the greatest happiness' principle is not the true foundation of
|
|
ethics. But though not the first principle, it is the second, which is
|
|
like unto it, and is often of easier application. For the larger part of
|
|
human actions are neither right nor wrong, except in so far as they tend
|
|
to the happiness of mankind (Introd. to Gorgias and Philebus).
|
|
|
|
The same question reappears in politics, where the useful or expedient
|
|
seems to claim a larger sphere and to have a greater authority. For
|
|
concerning political measures, we chiefly ask: How will they affect
|
|
the happiness of mankind? Yet here too we may observe that what we term
|
|
expediency is merely the law of right limited by the conditions of human
|
|
society. Right and truth are the highest aims of government as well as
|
|
of individuals; and we ought not to lose sight of them because we cannot
|
|
directly enforce them. They appeal to the better mind of nations; and
|
|
sometimes they are too much for merely temporal interests to resist.
|
|
They are the watchwords which all men use in matters of public policy,
|
|
as well as in their private dealings; the peace of Europe may be said
|
|
to depend upon them. In the most commercial and utilitarian states
|
|
of society the power of ideas remains. And all the higher class of
|
|
statesmen have in them something of that idealism which Pericles is said
|
|
to have gathered from the teaching of Anaxagoras. They recognise that
|
|
the true leader of men must be above the motives of ambition, and
|
|
that national character is of greater value than material comfort and
|
|
prosperity. And this is the order of thought in Plato; first, he expects
|
|
his citizens to do their duty, and then under favourable circumstances,
|
|
that is to say, in a well-ordered State, their happiness is assured.
|
|
That he was far from excluding the modern principle of utility in
|
|
politics is sufficiently evident from other passages; in which 'the most
|
|
beneficial is affirmed to be the most honourable', and also 'the most
|
|
sacred'.
|
|
|
|
We may note
|
|
|
|
(1) The manner in which the objection of Adeimantus here, is designed to
|
|
draw out and deepen the argument of Socrates.
|
|
|
|
(2) The conception of a whole as lying at the foundation both of
|
|
politics and of art, in the latter supplying the only principle of
|
|
criticism, which, under the various names of harmony, symmetry, measure,
|
|
proportion, unity, the Greek seems to have applied to works of art.
|
|
|
|
(3) The requirement that the State should be limited in size, after the
|
|
traditional model of a Greek state; as in the Politics of Aristotle, the
|
|
fact that the cities of Hellas were small is converted into a principle.
|
|
|
|
(4) The humorous pictures of the lean dogs and the fatted sheep, of
|
|
the light active boxer upsetting two stout gentlemen at least, of the
|
|
'charming' patients who are always making themselves worse; or again,
|
|
the playful assumption that there is no State but our own; or the grave
|
|
irony with which the statesman is excused who believes that he is six
|
|
feet high because he is told so, and having nothing to measure with
|
|
is to be pardoned for his ignorance--he is too amusing for us to be
|
|
seriously angry with him.
|
|
|
|
(5) The light and superficial manner in which religion is passed over
|
|
when provision has been made for two great principles,--first, that
|
|
religion shall be based on the highest conception of the gods, secondly,
|
|
that the true national or Hellenic type shall be maintained...
|
|
|
|
Socrates proceeds: But where amid all this is justice? Son of Ariston,
|
|
tell me where. Light a candle and search the city, and get your brother
|
|
and the rest of our friends to help in seeking for her. 'That won't do,'
|
|
replied Glaucon, 'you yourself promised to make the search and talked
|
|
about the impiety of deserting justice.' Well, I said, I will lead the
|
|
way, but do you follow. My notion is, that our State being perfect will
|
|
contain all the four virtues--wisdom, courage, temperance, justice. If
|
|
we eliminate the three first, the unknown remainder will be justice.
|
|
|
|
First then, of wisdom: the State which we have called into being will be
|
|
wise because politic. And policy is one among many kinds of skill,--not
|
|
the skill of the carpenter, or of the worker in metal, or of the
|
|
husbandman, but the skill of him who advises about the interests of the
|
|
whole State. Of such a kind is the skill of the guardians, who are a
|
|
small class in number, far smaller than the blacksmiths; but in them
|
|
is concentrated the wisdom of the State. And if this small ruling class
|
|
have wisdom, then the whole State will be wise.
|
|
|
|
Our second virtue is courage, which we have no difficulty in finding
|
|
in another class--that of soldiers. Courage may be defined as a sort
|
|
of salvation--the never-failing salvation of the opinions which law and
|
|
education have prescribed concerning dangers. You know the way in which
|
|
dyers first prepare the white ground and then lay on the dye of purple
|
|
or of any other colour. Colours dyed in this way become fixed, and no
|
|
soap or lye will ever wash them out. Now the ground is education, and
|
|
the laws are the colours; and if the ground is properly laid, neither
|
|
the soap of pleasure nor the lye of pain or fear will ever wash them
|
|
out. This power which preserves right opinion about danger I would ask
|
|
you to call 'courage,' adding the epithet 'political' or 'civilized'
|
|
in order to distinguish it from mere animal courage and from a higher
|
|
courage which may hereafter be discussed.
|
|
|
|
Two virtues remain; temperance and justice. More than the preceding
|
|
virtues temperance suggests the idea of harmony. Some light is thrown
|
|
upon the nature of this virtue by the popular description of a man as
|
|
'master of himself'--which has an absurd sound, because the master is
|
|
also the servant. The expression really means that the better principle
|
|
in a man masters the worse. There are in cities whole classes--women,
|
|
slaves and the like--who correspond to the worse, and a few only to the
|
|
better; and in our State the former class are held under control by the
|
|
latter. Now to which of these classes does temperance belong? 'To both
|
|
of them.' And our State if any will be the abode of temperance; and
|
|
we were right in describing this virtue as a harmony which is diffused
|
|
through the whole, making the dwellers in the city to be of one mind,
|
|
and attuning the upper and middle and lower classes like the strings of
|
|
an instrument, whether you suppose them to differ in wisdom, strength or
|
|
wealth.
|
|
|
|
And now we are near the spot; let us draw in and surround the cover and
|
|
watch with all our eyes, lest justice should slip away and escape. Tell
|
|
me, if you see the thicket move first. 'Nay, I would have you lead.'
|
|
Well then, offer up a prayer and follow. The way is dark and difficult;
|
|
but we must push on. I begin to see a track. 'Good news.' Why, Glaucon,
|
|
our dulness of scent is quite ludicrous! While we are straining our eyes
|
|
into the distance, justice is tumbling out at our feet. We are as bad
|
|
as people looking for a thing which they have in their hands. Have you
|
|
forgotten our old principle of the division of labour, or of every man
|
|
doing his own business, concerning which we spoke at the foundation
|
|
of the State--what but this was justice? Is there any other virtue
|
|
remaining which can compete with wisdom and temperance and courage in
|
|
the scale of political virtue? For 'every one having his own' is the
|
|
great object of government; and the great object of trade is that
|
|
every man should do his own business. Not that there is much harm in a
|
|
carpenter trying to be a cobbler, or a cobbler transforming himself into
|
|
a carpenter; but great evil may arise from the cobbler leaving his last
|
|
and turning into a guardian or legislator, or when a single individual
|
|
is trainer, warrior, legislator, all in one. And this evil is injustice,
|
|
or every man doing another's business. I do not say that as yet we are
|
|
in a condition to arrive at a final conclusion. For the definition
|
|
which we believe to hold good in states has still to be tested by the
|
|
individual. Having read the large letters we will now come back to the
|
|
small. From the two together a brilliant light may be struck out...
|
|
|
|
Socrates proceeds to discover the nature of justice by a method of
|
|
residues. Each of the first three virtues corresponds to one of the
|
|
three parts of the soul and one of the three classes in the State,
|
|
although the third, temperance, has more of the nature of a harmony than
|
|
the first two. If there be a fourth virtue, that can only be sought for
|
|
in the relation of the three parts in the soul or classes in the State
|
|
to one another. It is obvious and simple, and for that very reason has
|
|
not been found out. The modern logician will be inclined to object that
|
|
ideas cannot be separated like chemical substances, but that they run
|
|
into one another and may be only different aspects or names of the
|
|
same thing, and such in this instance appears to be the case. For the
|
|
definition here given of justice is verbally the same as one of the
|
|
definitions of temperance given by Socrates in the Charmides, which
|
|
however is only provisional, and is afterwards rejected. And so far
|
|
from justice remaining over when the other virtues are eliminated,
|
|
the justice and temperance of the Republic can with difficulty be
|
|
distinguished. Temperance appears to be the virtue of a part only, and
|
|
one of three, whereas justice is a universal virtue of the whole soul.
|
|
Yet on the other hand temperance is also described as a sort of harmony,
|
|
and in this respect is akin to justice. Justice seems to differ from
|
|
temperance in degree rather than in kind; whereas temperance is the
|
|
harmony of discordant elements, justice is the perfect order by which
|
|
all natures and classes do their own business, the right man in the
|
|
right place, the division and co-operation of all the citizens. Justice,
|
|
again, is a more abstract notion than the other virtues, and therefore,
|
|
from Plato's point of view, the foundation of them, to which they
|
|
are referred and which in idea precedes them. The proposal to omit
|
|
temperance is a mere trick of style intended to avoid monotony.
|
|
|
|
There is a famous question discussed in one of the earlier Dialogues of
|
|
Plato (Protagoras; Arist. Nic. Ethics), 'Whether the virtues are one
|
|
or many?' This receives an answer which is to the effect that there
|
|
are four cardinal virtues (now for the first time brought together in
|
|
ethical philosophy), and one supreme over the rest, which is not like
|
|
Aristotle's conception of universal justice, virtue relative to others,
|
|
but the whole of virtue relative to the parts. To this universal
|
|
conception of justice or order in the first education and in the moral
|
|
nature of man, the still more universal conception of the good in the
|
|
second education and in the sphere of speculative knowledge seems to
|
|
succeed. Both might be equally described by the terms 'law,' 'order,'
|
|
'harmony;' but while the idea of good embraces 'all time and all
|
|
existence,' the conception of justice is not extended beyond man.
|
|
|
|
...Socrates is now going to identify the individual and the State. But
|
|
first he must prove that there are three parts of the individual soul.
|
|
His argument is as follows:--Quantity makes no difference in quality.
|
|
The word 'just,' whether applied to the individual or to the State, has
|
|
the same meaning. And the term 'justice' implied that the same three
|
|
principles in the State and in the individual were doing their own
|
|
business. But are they really three or one? The question is difficult,
|
|
and one which can hardly be solved by the methods which we are now
|
|
using; but the truer and longer way would take up too much of our time.
|
|
'The shorter will satisfy me.' Well then, you would admit that the
|
|
qualities of states mean the qualities of the individuals who compose
|
|
them? The Scythians and Thracians are passionate, our own race
|
|
intellectual, and the Egyptians and Phoenicians covetous, because
|
|
the individual members of each have such and such a character; the
|
|
difficulty is to determine whether the several principles are one or
|
|
three; whether, that is to say, we reason with one part of our nature,
|
|
desire with another, are angry with another, or whether the whole soul
|
|
comes into play in each sort of action. This enquiry, however, requires
|
|
a very exact definition of terms. The same thing in the same relation
|
|
cannot be affected in two opposite ways. But there is no impossibility
|
|
in a man standing still, yet moving his arms, or in a top which is fixed
|
|
on one spot going round upon its axis. There is no necessity to mention
|
|
all the possible exceptions; let us provisionally assume that opposites
|
|
cannot do or be or suffer opposites in the same relation. And to the
|
|
class of opposites belong assent and dissent, desire and avoidance.
|
|
And one form of desire is thirst and hunger: and here arises a new
|
|
point--thirst is thirst of drink, hunger is hunger of food; not of warm
|
|
drink or of a particular kind of food, with the single exception of
|
|
course that the very fact of our desiring anything implies that it is
|
|
good. When relative terms have no attributes, their correlatives have
|
|
no attributes; when they have attributes, their correlatives also have
|
|
them. For example, the term 'greater' is simply relative to 'less,' and
|
|
knowledge refers to a subject of knowledge. But on the other hand, a
|
|
particular knowledge is of a particular subject. Again, every science
|
|
has a distinct character, which is defined by an object; medicine, for
|
|
example, is the science of health, although not to be confounded with
|
|
health. Having cleared our ideas thus far, let us return to the original
|
|
instance of thirst, which has a definite object--drink. Now the thirsty
|
|
soul may feel two distinct impulses; the animal one saying 'Drink;'
|
|
the rational one, which says 'Do not drink.' The two impulses are
|
|
contradictory; and therefore we may assume that they spring from
|
|
distinct principles in the soul. But is passion a third principle, or
|
|
akin to desire? There is a story of a certain Leontius which throws some
|
|
light on this question. He was coming up from the Piraeus outside the
|
|
north wall, and he passed a spot where there were dead bodies lying
|
|
by the executioner. He felt a longing desire to see them and also an
|
|
abhorrence of them; at first he turned away and shut his eyes, then,
|
|
suddenly tearing them open, he said,--'Take your fill, ye wretches, of
|
|
the fair sight.' Now is there not here a third principle which is often
|
|
found to come to the assistance of reason against desire, but never
|
|
of desire against reason? This is passion or spirit, of the separate
|
|
existence of which we may further convince ourselves by putting the
|
|
following case:--When a man suffers justly, if he be of a generous
|
|
nature he is not indignant at the hardships which he undergoes: but when
|
|
he suffers unjustly, his indignation is his great support; hunger and
|
|
thirst cannot tame him; the spirit within him must do or die, until the
|
|
voice of the shepherd, that is, of reason, bidding his dog bark no
|
|
more, is heard within. This shows that passion is the ally of reason. Is
|
|
passion then the same with reason? No, for the former exists in children
|
|
and brutes; and Homer affords a proof of the distinction between them
|
|
when he says, 'He smote his breast, and thus rebuked his soul.'
|
|
|
|
And now, at last, we have reached firm ground, and are able to infer
|
|
that the virtues of the State and of the individual are the same. For
|
|
wisdom and courage and justice in the State are severally the wisdom and
|
|
courage and justice in the individuals who form the State. Each of the
|
|
three classes will do the work of its own class in the State, and each
|
|
part in the individual soul; reason, the superior, and passion, the
|
|
inferior, will be harmonized by the influence of music and gymnastic.
|
|
The counsellor and the warrior, the head and the arm, will act together
|
|
in the town of Mansoul, and keep the desires in proper subjection. The
|
|
courage of the warrior is that quality which preserves a right opinion
|
|
about dangers in spite of pleasures and pains. The wisdom of the
|
|
counsellor is that small part of the soul which has authority and
|
|
reason. The virtue of temperance is the friendship of the ruling and the
|
|
subject principles, both in the State and in the individual. Of justice
|
|
we have already spoken; and the notion already given of it may
|
|
be confirmed by common instances. Will the just state or the just
|
|
individual steal, lie, commit adultery, or be guilty of impiety to
|
|
gods and men? 'No.' And is not the reason of this that the several
|
|
principles, whether in the state or in the individual, do their own
|
|
business? And justice is the quality which makes just men and just
|
|
states. Moreover, our old division of labour, which required that there
|
|
should be one man for one use, was a dream or anticipation of what was
|
|
to follow; and that dream has now been realized in justice, which
|
|
begins by binding together the three chords of the soul, and then acts
|
|
harmoniously in every relation of life. And injustice, which is the
|
|
insubordination and disobedience of the inferior elements in the soul,
|
|
is the opposite of justice, and is inharmonious and unnatural, being to
|
|
the soul what disease is to the body; for in the soul as well as in the
|
|
body, good or bad actions produce good or bad habits. And virtue is the
|
|
health and beauty and well-being of the soul, and vice is the disease
|
|
and weakness and deformity of the soul.
|
|
|
|
Again the old question returns upon us: Is justice or injustice the
|
|
more profitable? The question has become ridiculous. For injustice, like
|
|
mortal disease, makes life not worth having. Come up with me to the hill
|
|
which overhangs the city and look down upon the single form of virtue,
|
|
and the infinite forms of vice, among which are four special ones,
|
|
characteristic both of states and of individuals. And the state which
|
|
corresponds to the single form of virtue is that which we have been
|
|
describing, wherein reason rules under one of two names--monarchy and
|
|
aristocracy. Thus there are five forms in all, both of states and of
|
|
souls...
|
|
|
|
In attempting to prove that the soul has three separate faculties, Plato
|
|
takes occasion to discuss what makes difference of faculties. And
|
|
the criterion which he proposes is difference in the working of the
|
|
faculties. The same faculty cannot produce contradictory effects. But
|
|
the path of early reasoners is beset by thorny entanglements, and he
|
|
will not proceed a step without first clearing the ground. This leads
|
|
him into a tiresome digression, which is intended to explain the nature
|
|
of contradiction. First, the contradiction must be at the same time and
|
|
in the same relation. Secondly, no extraneous word must be introduced
|
|
into either of the terms in which the contradictory proposition is
|
|
expressed: for example, thirst is of drink, not of warm drink. He
|
|
implies, what he does not say, that if, by the advice of reason, or by
|
|
the impulse of anger, a man is restrained from drinking, this proves
|
|
that thirst, or desire under which thirst is included, is distinct
|
|
from anger and reason. But suppose that we allow the term 'thirst' or
|
|
'desire' to be modified, and say an 'angry thirst,' or a 'revengeful
|
|
desire,' then the two spheres of desire and anger overlap and become
|
|
confused. This case therefore has to be excluded. And still there
|
|
remains an exception to the rule in the use of the term 'good,' which is
|
|
always implied in the object of desire. These are the discussions of
|
|
an age before logic; and any one who is wearied by them should remember
|
|
that they are necessary to the clearing up of ideas in the first
|
|
development of the human faculties.
|
|
|
|
The psychology of Plato extends no further than the division of the soul
|
|
into the rational, irascible, and concupiscent elements, which, as far
|
|
as we know, was first made by him, and has been retained by Aristotle
|
|
and succeeding ethical writers. The chief difficulty in this early
|
|
analysis of the mind is to define exactly the place of the irascible
|
|
faculty (Greek), which may be variously described under the terms
|
|
righteous indignation, spirit, passion. It is the foundation of courage,
|
|
which includes in Plato moral courage, the courage of enduring pain, and
|
|
of surmounting intellectual difficulties, as well as of meeting dangers
|
|
in war. Though irrational, it inclines to side with the rational: it
|
|
cannot be aroused by punishment when justly inflicted: it sometimes
|
|
takes the form of an enthusiasm which sustains a man in the performance
|
|
of great actions. It is the 'lion heart' with which the reason makes
|
|
a treaty. On the other hand it is negative rather than positive; it
|
|
is indignant at wrong or falsehood, but does not, like Love in the
|
|
Symposium and Phaedrus, aspire to the vision of Truth or Good. It is the
|
|
peremptory military spirit which prevails in the government of honour.
|
|
It differs from anger (Greek), this latter term having no accessory
|
|
notion of righteous indignation. Although Aristotle has retained the
|
|
word, yet we may observe that 'passion' (Greek) has with him lost its
|
|
affinity to the rational and has become indistinguishable from 'anger'
|
|
(Greek). And to this vernacular use Plato himself in the Laws seems to
|
|
revert, though not always. By modern philosophy too, as well as in our
|
|
ordinary conversation, the words anger or passion are employed almost
|
|
exclusively in a bad sense; there is no connotation of a just or
|
|
reasonable cause by which they are aroused. The feeling of 'righteous
|
|
indignation' is too partial and accidental to admit of our regarding
|
|
it as a separate virtue or habit. We are tempted also to doubt whether
|
|
Plato is right in supposing that an offender, however justly condemned,
|
|
could be expected to acknowledge the justice of his sentence; this is
|
|
the spirit of a philosopher or martyr rather than of a criminal.
|
|
|
|
We may observe how nearly Plato approaches Aristotle's famous thesis,
|
|
that 'good actions produce good habits.' The words 'as healthy practices
|
|
(Greek) produce health, so do just practices produce justice,' have
|
|
a sound very like the Nicomachean Ethics. But we note also that an
|
|
incidental remark in Plato has become a far-reaching principle in
|
|
Aristotle, and an inseparable part of a great Ethical system.
|
|
|
|
There is a difficulty in understanding what Plato meant by 'the longer
|
|
way': he seems to intimate some metaphysic of the future which will not
|
|
be satisfied with arguing from the principle of contradiction. In the
|
|
sixth and seventh books (compare Sophist and Parmenides) he has given
|
|
us a sketch of such a metaphysic; but when Glaucon asks for the final
|
|
revelation of the idea of good, he is put off with the declaration
|
|
that he has not yet studied the preliminary sciences. How he would have
|
|
filled up the sketch, or argued about such questions from a higher point
|
|
of view, we can only conjecture. Perhaps he hoped to find some a priori
|
|
method of developing the parts out of the whole; or he might have asked
|
|
which of the ideas contains the other ideas, and possibly have stumbled
|
|
on the Hegelian identity of the 'ego' and the 'universal.' Or he may
|
|
have imagined that ideas might be constructed in some manner analogous
|
|
to the construction of figures and numbers in the mathematical sciences.
|
|
The most certain and necessary truth was to Plato the universal; and to
|
|
this he was always seeking to refer all knowledge or opinion, just as in
|
|
modern times we seek to rest them on the opposite pole of induction and
|
|
experience. The aspirations of metaphysicians have always tended to
|
|
pass beyond the limits of human thought and language: they seem to have
|
|
reached a height at which they are 'moving about in worlds unrealized,'
|
|
and their conceptions, although profoundly affecting their own minds,
|
|
become invisible or unintelligible to others. We are not therefore
|
|
surprized to find that Plato himself has nowhere clearly explained his
|
|
doctrine of ideas; or that his school in a later generation, like his
|
|
contemporaries Glaucon and Adeimantus, were unable to follow him in
|
|
this region of speculation. In the Sophist, where he is refuting the
|
|
scepticism which maintained either that there was no such thing as
|
|
predication, or that all might be predicated of all, he arrives at the
|
|
conclusion that some ideas combine with some, but not all with all. But
|
|
he makes only one or two steps forward on this path; he nowhere attains
|
|
to any connected system of ideas, or even to a knowledge of the most
|
|
elementary relations of the sciences to one another.
|
|
|
|
BOOK V. I was going to enumerate the four forms of vice or decline in
|
|
states, when Polemarchus--he was sitting a little farther from me
|
|
than Adeimantus--taking him by the coat and leaning towards him, said
|
|
something in an undertone, of which I only caught the words, 'Shall we
|
|
let him off?' 'Certainly not,' said Adeimantus, raising his voice. Whom,
|
|
I said, are you not going to let off? 'You,' he said. Why? 'Because
|
|
we think that you are not dealing fairly with us in omitting women and
|
|
children, of whom you have slily disposed under the general formula
|
|
that friends have all things in common.' And was I not right? 'Yes,'
|
|
he replied, 'but there are many sorts of communism or community, and
|
|
we want to know which of them is right. The company, as you have just
|
|
heard, are resolved to have a further explanation.' Thrasymachus said,
|
|
'Do you think that we have come hither to dig for gold, or to hear you
|
|
discourse?' Yes, I said; but the discourse should be of a reasonable
|
|
length. Glaucon added, 'Yes, Socrates, and there is reason in spending
|
|
the whole of life in such discussions; but pray, without more ado, tell
|
|
us how this community is to be carried out, and how the interval between
|
|
birth and education is to be filled up.' Well, I said, the subject has
|
|
several difficulties--What is possible? is the first question. What is
|
|
desirable? is the second. 'Fear not,' he replied, 'for you are speaking
|
|
among friends.' That, I replied, is a sorry consolation; I shall
|
|
destroy my friends as well as myself. Not that I mind a little innocent
|
|
laughter; but he who kills the truth is a murderer. 'Then,' said
|
|
Glaucon, laughing, 'in case you should murder us we will acquit you
|
|
beforehand, and you shall be held free from the guilt of deceiving us.'
|
|
|
|
Socrates proceeds:--The guardians of our state are to be watch-dogs, as
|
|
we have already said. Now dogs are not divided into hes and shes--we do
|
|
not take the masculine gender out to hunt and leave the females at home
|
|
to look after their puppies. They have the same employments--the only
|
|
difference between them is that the one sex is stronger and the other
|
|
weaker. But if women are to have the same employments as men, they must
|
|
have the same education--they must be taught music and gymnastics, and
|
|
the art of war. I know that a great joke will be made of their riding
|
|
on horseback and carrying weapons; the sight of the naked old wrinkled
|
|
women showing their agility in the palaestra will certainly not be a
|
|
vision of beauty, and may be expected to become a famous jest. But we
|
|
must not mind the wits; there was a time when they might have laughed at
|
|
our present gymnastics. All is habit: people have at last found out that
|
|
the exposure is better than the concealment of the person, and now they
|
|
laugh no more. Evil only should be the subject of ridicule.
|
|
|
|
The first question is, whether women are able either wholly or partially
|
|
to share in the employments of men. And here we may be charged with
|
|
inconsistency in making the proposal at all. For we started originally
|
|
with the division of labour; and the diversity of employments was based
|
|
on the difference of natures. But is there no difference between men
|
|
and women? Nay, are they not wholly different? THERE was the difficulty,
|
|
Glaucon, which made me unwilling to speak of family relations. However,
|
|
when a man is out of his depth, whether in a pool or in an ocean, he can
|
|
only swim for his life; and we must try to find a way of escape, if we
|
|
can.
|
|
|
|
The argument is, that different natures have different uses, and the
|
|
natures of men and women are said to differ. But this is only a verbal
|
|
opposition. We do not consider that the difference may be purely nominal
|
|
and accidental; for example, a bald man and a hairy man are opposed in a
|
|
single point of view, but you cannot infer that because a bald man is
|
|
a cobbler a hairy man ought not to be a cobbler. Now why is such an
|
|
inference erroneous? Simply because the opposition between them is
|
|
partial only, like the difference between a male physician and a female
|
|
physician, not running through the whole nature, like the difference
|
|
between a physician and a carpenter. And if the difference of the sexes
|
|
is only that the one beget and the other bear children, this does not
|
|
prove that they ought to have distinct educations. Admitting that women
|
|
differ from men in capacity, do not men equally differ from one another?
|
|
Has not nature scattered all the qualities which our citizens require
|
|
indifferently up and down among the two sexes? and even in their
|
|
peculiar pursuits, are not women often, though in some cases superior to
|
|
men, ridiculously enough surpassed by them? Women are the same in kind
|
|
as men, and have the same aptitude or want of aptitude for medicine
|
|
or gymnastic or war, but in a less degree. One woman will be a good
|
|
guardian, another not; and the good must be chosen to be the colleagues
|
|
of our guardians. If however their natures are the same, the inference
|
|
is that their education must also be the same; there is no longer
|
|
anything unnatural or impossible in a woman learning music and
|
|
gymnastic. And the education which we give them will be the very best,
|
|
far superior to that of cobblers, and will train up the very best women,
|
|
and nothing can be more advantageous to the State than this. Therefore
|
|
let them strip, clothed in their chastity, and share in the toils of war
|
|
and in the defence of their country; he who laughs at them is a fool for
|
|
his pains.
|
|
|
|
The first wave is past, and the argument is compelled to admit that men
|
|
and women have common duties and pursuits. A second and greater wave is
|
|
rolling in--community of wives and children; is this either expedient
|
|
or possible? The expediency I do not doubt; I am not so sure of the
|
|
possibility. 'Nay, I think that a considerable doubt will be entertained
|
|
on both points.' I meant to have escaped the trouble of proving the
|
|
first, but as you have detected the little stratagem I must even submit.
|
|
Only allow me to feed my fancy like the solitary in his walks, with a
|
|
dream of what might be, and then I will return to the question of what
|
|
can be.
|
|
|
|
In the first place our rulers will enforce the laws and make new ones
|
|
where they are wanted, and their allies or ministers will obey. You, as
|
|
legislator, have already selected the men; and now you shall select
|
|
the women. After the selection has been made, they will dwell in common
|
|
houses and have their meals in common, and will be brought together by
|
|
a necessity more certain than that of mathematics. But they cannot be
|
|
allowed to live in licentiousness; that is an unholy thing, which
|
|
the rulers are determined to prevent. For the avoidance of this, holy
|
|
marriage festivals will be instituted, and their holiness will be in
|
|
proportion to their usefulness. And here, Glaucon, I should like to ask
|
|
(as I know that you are a breeder of birds and animals), Do you not take
|
|
the greatest care in the mating? 'Certainly.' And there is no reason to
|
|
suppose that less care is required in the marriage of human beings. But
|
|
then our rulers must be skilful physicians of the State, for they will
|
|
often need a strong dose of falsehood in order to bring about desirable
|
|
unions between their subjects. The good must be paired with the good,
|
|
and the bad with the bad, and the offspring of the one must be reared,
|
|
and of the other destroyed; in this way the flock will be preserved in
|
|
prime condition. Hymeneal festivals will be celebrated at times fixed
|
|
with an eye to population, and the brides and bridegrooms will meet at
|
|
them; and by an ingenious system of lots the rulers will contrive that
|
|
the brave and the fair come together, and that those of inferior breed
|
|
are paired with inferiors--the latter will ascribe to chance what is
|
|
really the invention of the rulers. And when children are born, the
|
|
offspring of the brave and fair will be carried to an enclosure in a
|
|
certain part of the city, and there attended by suitable nurses; the
|
|
rest will be hurried away to places unknown. The mothers will be brought
|
|
to the fold and will suckle the children; care however must be taken
|
|
that none of them recognise their own offspring; and if necessary other
|
|
nurses may also be hired. The trouble of watching and getting up
|
|
at night will be transferred to attendants. 'Then the wives of our
|
|
guardians will have a fine easy time when they are having children.' And
|
|
quite right too, I said, that they should.
|
|
|
|
The parents ought to be in the prime of life, which for a man may be
|
|
reckoned at thirty years--from twenty-five, when he has 'passed the
|
|
point at which the speed of life is greatest,' to fifty-five; and at
|
|
twenty years for a woman--from twenty to forty. Any one above or below
|
|
those ages who partakes in the hymeneals shall be guilty of impiety;
|
|
also every one who forms a marriage connexion at other times without the
|
|
consent of the rulers. This latter regulation applies to those who are
|
|
within the specified ages, after which they may range at will, provided
|
|
they avoid the prohibited degrees of parents and children, or
|
|
of brothers and sisters, which last, however, are not absolutely
|
|
prohibited, if a dispensation be procured. 'But how shall we know the
|
|
degrees of affinity, when all things are common?' The answer is, that
|
|
brothers and sisters are all such as are born seven or nine months after
|
|
the espousals, and their parents those who are then espoused, and every
|
|
one will have many children and every child many parents.
|
|
|
|
Socrates proceeds: I have now to prove that this scheme is advantageous
|
|
and also consistent with our entire polity. The greatest good of a State
|
|
is unity; the greatest evil, discord and distraction. And there will be
|
|
unity where there are no private pleasures or pains or interests--where
|
|
if one member suffers all the members suffer, if one citizen is touched
|
|
all are quickly sensitive; and the least hurt to the little finger of
|
|
the State runs through the whole body and vibrates to the soul. For the
|
|
true State, like an individual, is injured as a whole when any part is
|
|
affected. Every State has subjects and rulers, who in a democracy are
|
|
called rulers, and in other States masters: but in our State they are
|
|
called saviours and allies; and the subjects who in other States are
|
|
termed slaves, are by us termed nurturers and paymasters, and those who
|
|
are termed comrades and colleagues in other places, are by us called
|
|
fathers and brothers. And whereas in other States members of the same
|
|
government regard one of their colleagues as a friend and another as an
|
|
enemy, in our State no man is a stranger to another; for every citizen
|
|
is connected with every other by ties of blood, and these names and
|
|
this way of speaking will have a corresponding reality--brother, father,
|
|
sister, mother, repeated from infancy in the ears of children, will not
|
|
be mere words. Then again the citizens will have all things in common,
|
|
in having common property they will have common pleasures and pains.
|
|
|
|
Can there be strife and contention among those who are of one mind; or
|
|
lawsuits about property when men have nothing but their bodies which
|
|
they call their own; or suits about violence when every one is bound
|
|
to defend himself? The permission to strike when insulted will be an
|
|
'antidote' to the knife and will prevent disturbances in the State. But
|
|
no younger man will strike an elder; reverence will prevent him from
|
|
laying hands on his kindred, and he will fear that the rest of the
|
|
family may retaliate. Moreover, our citizens will be rid of the
|
|
lesser evils of life; there will be no flattery of the rich, no sordid
|
|
household cares, no borrowing and not paying. Compared with the
|
|
citizens of other States, ours will be Olympic victors, and crowned
|
|
with blessings greater still--they and their children having a better
|
|
maintenance during life, and after death an honourable burial. Nor has
|
|
the happiness of the individual been sacrificed to the happiness of the
|
|
State; our Olympic victor has not been turned into a cobbler, but he
|
|
has a happiness beyond that of any cobbler. At the same time, if any
|
|
conceited youth begins to dream of appropriating the State to himself,
|
|
he must be reminded that 'half is better than the whole.' 'I should
|
|
certainly advise him to stay where he is when he has the promise of such
|
|
a brave life.'
|
|
|
|
But is such a community possible?--as among the animals, so also among
|
|
men; and if possible, in what way possible? About war there is no
|
|
difficulty; the principle of communism is adapted to military service.
|
|
Parents will take their children to look on at a battle, just as
|
|
potters' boys are trained to the business by looking on at the wheel.
|
|
And to the parents themselves, as to other animals, the sight of their
|
|
young ones will prove a great incentive to bravery. Young warriors must
|
|
learn, but they must not run into danger, although a certain degree of
|
|
risk is worth incurring when the benefit is great. The young creatures
|
|
should be placed under the care of experienced veterans, and they should
|
|
have wings--that is to say, swift and tractable steeds on which they may
|
|
fly away and escape. One of the first things to be done is to teach a
|
|
youth to ride.
|
|
|
|
Cowards and deserters shall be degraded to the class of husbandmen;
|
|
gentlemen who allow themselves to be taken prisoners, may be presented
|
|
to the enemy. But what shall be done to the hero? First of all he shall
|
|
be crowned by all the youths in the army; secondly, he shall receive the
|
|
right hand of fellowship; and thirdly, do you think that there is any
|
|
harm in his being kissed? We have already determined that he shall have
|
|
more wives than others, in order that he may have as many children
|
|
as possible. And at a feast he shall have more to eat; we have the
|
|
authority of Homer for honouring brave men with 'long chines,' which is
|
|
an appropriate compliment, because meat is a very strengthening thing.
|
|
Fill the bowl then, and give the best seats and meats to the brave--may
|
|
they do them good! And he who dies in battle will be at once declared to
|
|
be of the golden race, and will, as we believe, become one of Hesiod's
|
|
guardian angels. He shall be worshipped after death in the manner
|
|
prescribed by the oracle; and not only he, but all other benefactors
|
|
of the State who die in any other way, shall be admitted to the same
|
|
honours.
|
|
|
|
The next question is, How shall we treat our enemies? Shall Hellenes be
|
|
enslaved? No; for there is too great a risk of the whole race passing
|
|
under the yoke of the barbarians. Or shall the dead be despoiled?
|
|
Certainly not; for that sort of thing is an excuse for skulking, and has
|
|
been the ruin of many an army. There is meanness and feminine malice in
|
|
making an enemy of the dead body, when the soul which was the owner has
|
|
fled--like a dog who cannot reach his assailants, and quarrels with
|
|
the stones which are thrown at him instead. Again, the arms of Hellenes
|
|
should not be offered up in the temples of the Gods; they are a
|
|
pollution, for they are taken from brethren. And on similar grounds
|
|
there should be a limit to the devastation of Hellenic territory--the
|
|
houses should not be burnt, nor more than the annual produce carried
|
|
off. For war is of two kinds, civil and foreign; the first of which is
|
|
properly termed 'discord,' and only the second 'war;' and war between
|
|
Hellenes is in reality civil war--a quarrel in a family, which is ever
|
|
to be regarded as unpatriotic and unnatural, and ought to be prosecuted
|
|
with a view to reconciliation in a true phil-Hellenic spirit, as of
|
|
those who would chasten but not utterly enslave. The war is not against
|
|
a whole nation who are a friendly multitude of men, women, and children,
|
|
but only against a few guilty persons; when they are punished peace will
|
|
be restored. That is the way in which Hellenes should war against one
|
|
another--and against barbarians, as they war against one another now.
|
|
|
|
'But, my dear Socrates, you are forgetting the main question: Is such a
|
|
State possible? I grant all and more than you say about the blessedness
|
|
of being one family--fathers, brothers, mothers, daughters, going out
|
|
to war together; but I want to ascertain the possibility of this ideal
|
|
State.' You are too unmerciful. The first wave and the second wave I
|
|
have hardly escaped, and now you will certainly drown me with the third.
|
|
When you see the towering crest of the wave, I expect you to take pity.
|
|
'Not a whit.'
|
|
|
|
Well, then, we were led to form our ideal polity in the search after
|
|
justice, and the just man answered to the just State. Is this ideal at
|
|
all the worse for being impracticable? Would the picture of a perfectly
|
|
beautiful man be any the worse because no such man ever lived? Can any
|
|
reality come up to the idea? Nature will not allow words to be fully
|
|
realized; but if I am to try and realize the ideal of the State in a
|
|
measure, I think that an approach may be made to the perfection of which
|
|
I dream by one or two, I do not say slight, but possible changes in the
|
|
present constitution of States. I would reduce them to a single one--the
|
|
great wave, as I call it. Until, then, kings are philosophers, or
|
|
philosophers are kings, cities will never cease from ill: no, nor the
|
|
human race; nor will our ideal polity ever come into being. I know that
|
|
this is a hard saying, which few will be able to receive. 'Socrates,
|
|
all the world will take off his coat and rush upon you with sticks and
|
|
stones, and therefore I would advise you to prepare an answer.' You got
|
|
me into the scrape, I said. 'And I was right,' he replied; 'however, I
|
|
will stand by you as a sort of do-nothing, well-meaning ally.' Having
|
|
the help of such a champion, I will do my best to maintain my position.
|
|
And first, I must explain of whom I speak and what sort of natures these
|
|
are who are to be philosophers and rulers. As you are a man of pleasure,
|
|
you will not have forgotten how indiscriminate lovers are in their
|
|
attachments; they love all, and turn blemishes into beauties. The
|
|
snub-nosed youth is said to have a winning grace; the beak of another
|
|
has a royal look; the featureless are faultless; the dark are manly, the
|
|
fair angels; the sickly have a new term of endearment invented expressly
|
|
for them, which is 'honey-pale.' Lovers of wine and lovers of ambition
|
|
also desire the objects of their affection in every form. Now here comes
|
|
the point:--The philosopher too is a lover of knowledge in every form;
|
|
he has an insatiable curiosity. 'But will curiosity make a philosopher?
|
|
Are the lovers of sights and sounds, who let out their ears to every
|
|
chorus at the Dionysiac festivals, to be called philosophers?' They
|
|
are not true philosophers, but only an imitation. 'Then how are we to
|
|
describe the true?'
|
|
|
|
You would acknowledge the existence of abstract ideas, such as justice,
|
|
beauty, good, evil, which are severally one, yet in their various
|
|
combinations appear to be many. Those who recognize these realities are
|
|
philosophers; whereas the other class hear sounds and see colours,
|
|
and understand their use in the arts, but cannot attain to the true or
|
|
waking vision of absolute justice or beauty or truth; they have not the
|
|
light of knowledge, but of opinion, and what they see is a dream only.
|
|
Perhaps he of whom we say the last will be angry with us; can we pacify
|
|
him without revealing the disorder of his mind? Suppose we say that,
|
|
if he has knowledge we rejoice to hear it, but knowledge must be of
|
|
something which is, as ignorance is of something which is not; and there
|
|
is a third thing, which both is and is not, and is matter of opinion
|
|
only. Opinion and knowledge, then, having distinct objects, must also
|
|
be distinct faculties. And by faculties I mean powers unseen and
|
|
distinguishable only by the difference in their objects, as opinion
|
|
and knowledge differ, since the one is liable to err, but the other
|
|
is unerring and is the mightiest of all our faculties. If being is
|
|
the object of knowledge, and not-being of ignorance, and these are the
|
|
extremes, opinion must lie between them, and may be called darker than
|
|
the one and brighter than the other. This intermediate or contingent
|
|
matter is and is not at the same time, and partakes both of existence
|
|
and of non-existence. Now I would ask my good friend, who denies
|
|
abstract beauty and justice, and affirms a many beautiful and a
|
|
many just, whether everything he sees is not in some point of view
|
|
different--the beautiful ugly, the pious impious, the just unjust? Is
|
|
not the double also the half, and are not heavy and light relative terms
|
|
which pass into one another? Everything is and is not, as in the old
|
|
riddle--'A man and not a man shot and did not shoot a bird and not a
|
|
bird with a stone and not a stone.' The mind cannot be fixed on either
|
|
alternative; and these ambiguous, intermediate, erring, half-lighted
|
|
objects, which have a disorderly movement in the region between being
|
|
and not-being, are the proper matter of opinion, as the immutable
|
|
objects are the proper matter of knowledge. And he who grovels in the
|
|
world of sense, and has only this uncertain perception of things, is not
|
|
a philosopher, but a lover of opinion only...
|
|
|
|
The fifth book is the new beginning of the Republic, in which the
|
|
community of property and of family are first maintained, and the
|
|
transition is made to the kingdom of philosophers. For both of these
|
|
Plato, after his manner, has been preparing in some chance words of Book
|
|
IV, which fall unperceived on the reader's mind, as they are supposed
|
|
at first to have fallen on the ear of Glaucon and Adeimantus. The
|
|
'paradoxes,' as Morgenstern terms them, of this book of the Republic
|
|
will be reserved for another place; a few remarks on the style, and some
|
|
explanations of difficulties, may be briefly added.
|
|
|
|
First, there is the image of the waves, which serves for a sort of
|
|
scheme or plan of the book. The first wave, the second wave, the third
|
|
and greatest wave come rolling in, and we hear the roar of them. All
|
|
that can be said of the extravagance of Plato's proposals is anticipated
|
|
by himself. Nothing is more admirable than the hesitation with which he
|
|
proposes the solemn text, 'Until kings are philosophers,' etc.; or the
|
|
reaction from the sublime to the ridiculous, when Glaucon describes the
|
|
manner in which the new truth will be received by mankind.
|
|
|
|
Some defects and difficulties may be noted in the execution of the
|
|
communistic plan. Nothing is told us of the application of communism
|
|
to the lower classes; nor is the table of prohibited degrees capable of
|
|
being made out. It is quite possible that a child born at one hymeneal
|
|
festival may marry one of its own brothers or sisters, or even one of
|
|
its parents, at another. Plato is afraid of incestuous unions, but at
|
|
the same time he does not wish to bring before us the fact that the city
|
|
would be divided into families of those born seven and nine months after
|
|
each hymeneal festival. If it were worth while to argue seriously about
|
|
such fancies, we might remark that while all the old affinities are
|
|
abolished, the newly prohibited affinity rests not on any natural or
|
|
rational principle, but only upon the accident of children having been
|
|
born in the same month and year. Nor does he explain how the lots could
|
|
be so manipulated by the legislature as to bring together the fairest
|
|
and best. The singular expression which is employed to describe the age
|
|
of five-and-twenty may perhaps be taken from some poet.
|
|
|
|
In the delineation of the philosopher, the illustrations of the nature
|
|
of philosophy derived from love are more suited to the apprehension
|
|
of Glaucon, the Athenian man of pleasure, than to modern tastes or
|
|
feelings. They are partly facetious, but also contain a germ of truth.
|
|
That science is a whole, remains a true principle of inductive as well
|
|
as of metaphysical philosophy; and the love of universal knowledge is
|
|
still the characteristic of the philosopher in modern as well as in
|
|
ancient times.
|
|
|
|
At the end of the fifth book Plato introduces the figment of contingent
|
|
matter, which has exercised so great an influence both on the Ethics and
|
|
Theology of the modern world, and which occurs here for the first time
|
|
in the history of philosophy. He did not remark that the degrees of
|
|
knowledge in the subject have nothing corresponding to them in the
|
|
object. With him a word must answer to an idea; and he could not
|
|
conceive of an opinion which was an opinion about nothing. The influence
|
|
of analogy led him to invent 'parallels and conjugates' and to overlook
|
|
facts. To us some of his difficulties are puzzling only from their
|
|
simplicity: we do not perceive that the answer to them 'is tumbling out
|
|
at our feet.' To the mind of early thinkers, the conception of not-being
|
|
was dark and mysterious; they did not see that this terrible apparition
|
|
which threatened destruction to all knowledge was only a logical
|
|
determination. The common term under which, through the accidental use
|
|
of language, two entirely different ideas were included was another
|
|
source of confusion. Thus through the ambiguity of (Greek) Plato,
|
|
attempting to introduce order into the first chaos of human thought,
|
|
seems to have confused perception and opinion, and to have failed to
|
|
distinguish the contingent from the relative. In the Theaetetus the
|
|
first of these difficulties begins to clear up; in the Sophist the
|
|
second; and for this, as well as for other reasons, both these dialogues
|
|
are probably to be regarded as later than the Republic.
|
|
|
|
BOOK VI. Having determined that the many have no knowledge of true
|
|
being, and have no clear patterns in their minds of justice, beauty,
|
|
truth, and that philosophers have such patterns, we have now to ask
|
|
whether they or the many shall be rulers in our State. But who can doubt
|
|
that philosophers should be chosen, if they have the other qualities
|
|
which are required in a ruler? For they are lovers of the knowledge of
|
|
the eternal and of all truth; they are haters of falsehood; their meaner
|
|
desires are absorbed in the interests of knowledge; they are spectators
|
|
of all time and all existence; and in the magnificence of their
|
|
contemplation the life of man is as nothing to them, nor is death
|
|
fearful. Also they are of a social, gracious disposition, equally free
|
|
from cowardice and arrogance. They learn and remember easily; they have
|
|
harmonious, well-regulated minds; truth flows to them sweetly by nature.
|
|
Can the god of Jealousy himself find any fault with such an assemblage
|
|
of good qualities?
|
|
|
|
Here Adeimantus interposes:--'No man can answer you, Socrates; but every
|
|
man feels that this is owing to his own deficiency in argument. He is
|
|
driven from one position to another, until he has nothing more to say,
|
|
just as an unskilful player at draughts is reduced to his last move by
|
|
a more skilled opponent. And yet all the time he may be right. He may
|
|
know, in this very instance, that those who make philosophy the business
|
|
of their lives, generally turn out rogues if they are bad men, and fools
|
|
if they are good. What do you say?' I should say that he is quite right.
|
|
'Then how is such an admission reconcileable with the doctrine that
|
|
philosophers should be kings?'
|
|
|
|
I shall answer you in a parable which will also let you see how poor a
|
|
hand I am at the invention of allegories. The relation of good men to
|
|
their governments is so peculiar, that in order to defend them I must
|
|
take an illustration from the world of fiction. Conceive the captain
|
|
of a ship, taller by a head and shoulders than any of the crew, yet a
|
|
little deaf, a little blind, and rather ignorant of the seaman's art.
|
|
The sailors want to steer, although they know nothing of the art; and
|
|
they have a theory that it cannot be learned. If the helm is refused
|
|
them, they drug the captain's posset, bind him hand and foot, and take
|
|
possession of the ship. He who joins in the mutiny is termed a good
|
|
pilot and what not; they have no conception that the true pilot must
|
|
observe the winds and the stars, and must be their master, whether
|
|
they like it or not;--such an one would be called by them fool, prater,
|
|
star-gazer. This is my parable; which I will beg you to interpret for
|
|
me to those gentlemen who ask why the philosopher has such an evil name,
|
|
and to explain to them that not he, but those who will not use him, are
|
|
to blame for his uselessness. The philosopher should not beg of mankind
|
|
to be put in authority over them. The wise man should not seek the rich,
|
|
as the proverb bids, but every man, whether rich or poor, must knock at
|
|
the door of the physician when he has need of him. Now the pilot is
|
|
the philosopher--he whom in the parable they call star-gazer, and the
|
|
mutinous sailors are the mob of politicians by whom he is rendered
|
|
useless. Not that these are the worst enemies of philosophy, who is far
|
|
more dishonoured by her own professing sons when they are corrupted by
|
|
the world. Need I recall the original image of the philosopher? Did we
|
|
not say of him just now, that he loved truth and hated falsehood, and
|
|
that he could not rest in the multiplicity of phenomena, but was led by
|
|
a sympathy in his own nature to the contemplation of the absolute? All
|
|
the virtues as well as truth, who is the leader of them, took up their
|
|
abode in his soul. But as you were observing, if we turn aside to view
|
|
the reality, we see that the persons who were thus described, with the
|
|
exception of a small and useless class, are utter rogues.
|
|
|
|
The point which has to be considered, is the origin of this corruption
|
|
in nature. Every one will admit that the philosopher, in our description
|
|
of him, is a rare being. But what numberless causes tend to destroy
|
|
these rare beings! There is no good thing which may not be a cause of
|
|
evil--health, wealth, strength, rank, and the virtues themselves,
|
|
when placed under unfavourable circumstances. For as in the animal or
|
|
vegetable world the strongest seeds most need the accompaniment of good
|
|
air and soil, so the best of human characters turn out the worst when
|
|
they fall upon an unsuitable soil; whereas weak natures hardly ever
|
|
do any considerable good or harm; they are not the stuff out of which
|
|
either great criminals or great heroes are made. The philosopher follows
|
|
the same analogy: he is either the best or the worst of all men. Some
|
|
persons say that the Sophists are the corrupters of youth; but is not
|
|
public opinion the real Sophist who is everywhere present--in those very
|
|
persons, in the assembly, in the courts, in the camp, in the applauses
|
|
and hisses of the theatre re-echoed by the surrounding hills? Will not
|
|
a young man's heart leap amid these discordant sounds? and will any
|
|
education save him from being carried away by the torrent? Nor is this
|
|
all. For if he will not yield to opinion, there follows the gentle
|
|
compulsion of exile or death. What principle of rival Sophists or
|
|
anybody else can overcome in such an unequal contest? Characters there
|
|
may be more than human, who are exceptions--God may save a man, but not
|
|
his own strength. Further, I would have you consider that the hireling
|
|
Sophist only gives back to the world their own opinions; he is the
|
|
keeper of the monster, who knows how to flatter or anger him, and
|
|
observes the meaning of his inarticulate grunts. Good is what pleases
|
|
him, evil what he dislikes; truth and beauty are determined only by
|
|
the taste of the brute. Such is the Sophist's wisdom, and such is the
|
|
condition of those who make public opinion the test of truth, whether in
|
|
art or in morals. The curse is laid upon them of being and doing what
|
|
it approves, and when they attempt first principles the failure is
|
|
ludicrous. Think of all this and ask yourself whether the world is more
|
|
likely to be a believer in the unity of the idea, or in the multiplicity
|
|
of phenomena. And the world if not a believer in the idea cannot be a
|
|
philosopher, and must therefore be a persecutor of philosophers. There
|
|
is another evil:--the world does not like to lose the gifted nature, and
|
|
so they flatter the young (Alcibiades) into a magnificent opinion of his
|
|
own capacity; the tall, proper youth begins to expand, and is dreaming
|
|
of kingdoms and empires. If at this instant a friend whispers to
|
|
him, 'Now the gods lighten thee; thou art a great fool' and must be
|
|
educated--do you think that he will listen? Or suppose a better sort of
|
|
man who is attracted towards philosophy, will they not make Herculean
|
|
efforts to spoil and corrupt him? Are we not right in saying that the
|
|
love of knowledge, no less than riches, may divert him? Men of this
|
|
class (Critias) often become politicians--they are the authors of
|
|
great mischief in states, and sometimes also of great good. And thus
|
|
philosophy is deserted by her natural protectors, and others enter in
|
|
and dishonour her. Vulgar little minds see the land open and rush from
|
|
the prisons of the arts into her temple. A clever mechanic having a
|
|
soul coarse as his body, thinks that he will gain caste by becoming her
|
|
suitor. For philosophy, even in her fallen estate, has a dignity of her
|
|
own--and he, like a bald little blacksmith's apprentice as he is, having
|
|
made some money and got out of durance, washes and dresses himself as a
|
|
bridegroom and marries his master's daughter. What will be the issue of
|
|
such marriages? Will they not be vile and bastard, devoid of truth
|
|
and nature? 'They will.' Small, then, is the remnant of genuine
|
|
philosophers; there may be a few who are citizens of small states, in
|
|
which politics are not worth thinking of, or who have been detained by
|
|
Theages' bridle of ill health; for my own case of the oracular sign is
|
|
almost unique, and too rare to be worth mentioning. And these few when
|
|
they have tasted the pleasures of philosophy, and have taken a look at
|
|
that den of thieves and place of wild beasts, which is human life,
|
|
will stand aside from the storm under the shelter of a wall, and try to
|
|
preserve their own innocence and to depart in peace. 'A great work, too,
|
|
will have been accomplished by them.' Great, yes, but not the greatest;
|
|
for man is a social being, and can only attain his highest development
|
|
in the society which is best suited to him.
|
|
|
|
Enough, then, of the causes why philosophy has such an evil name.
|
|
Another question is, Which of existing states is suited to her? Not one
|
|
of them; at present she is like some exotic seed which degenerates in
|
|
a strange soil; only in her proper state will she be shown to be of
|
|
heavenly growth. 'And is her proper state ours or some other?' Ours in
|
|
all points but one, which was left undetermined. You may remember our
|
|
saying that some living mind or witness of the legislator was needed in
|
|
states. But we were afraid to enter upon a subject of such difficulty,
|
|
and now the question recurs and has not grown easier:--How may
|
|
philosophy be safely studied? Let us bring her into the light of day,
|
|
and make an end of the inquiry.
|
|
|
|
In the first place, I say boldly that nothing can be worse than the
|
|
present mode of study. Persons usually pick up a little philosophy in
|
|
early youth, and in the intervals of business, but they never master the
|
|
real difficulty, which is dialectic. Later, perhaps, they occasionally
|
|
go to a lecture on philosophy. Years advance, and the sun of philosophy,
|
|
unlike that of Heracleitus, sets never to rise again. This order of
|
|
education should be reversed; it should begin with gymnastics in youth,
|
|
and as the man strengthens, he should increase the gymnastics of
|
|
his soul. Then, when active life is over, let him finally return to
|
|
philosophy. 'You are in earnest, Socrates, but the world will be equally
|
|
earnest in withstanding you--no more than Thrasymachus.' Do not make a
|
|
quarrel between Thrasymachus and me, who were never enemies and are
|
|
now good friends enough. And I shall do my best to convince him and
|
|
all mankind of the truth of my words, or at any rate to prepare for
|
|
the future when, in another life, we may again take part in similar
|
|
discussions. 'That will be a long time hence.' Not long in comparison
|
|
with eternity. The many will probably remain incredulous, for they
|
|
have never seen the natural unity of ideas, but only artificial
|
|
juxtapositions; not free and generous thoughts, but tricks of
|
|
controversy and quips of law;--a perfect man ruling in a perfect state,
|
|
even a single one they have not known. And we foresaw that there was no
|
|
chance of perfection either in states or individuals until a necessity
|
|
was laid upon philosophers--not the rogues, but those whom we called
|
|
the useless class--of holding office; or until the sons of kings were
|
|
inspired with a true love of philosophy. Whether in the infinity of
|
|
past time there has been, or is in some distant land, or ever will be
|
|
hereafter, an ideal such as we have described, we stoutly maintain
|
|
that there has been, is, and will be such a state whenever the Muse of
|
|
philosophy rules. Will you say that the world is of another mind? O, my
|
|
friend, do not revile the world! They will soon change their opinion
|
|
if they are gently entreated, and are taught the true nature of the
|
|
philosopher. Who can hate a man who loves him? Or be jealous of one who
|
|
has no jealousy? Consider, again, that the many hate not the true but
|
|
the false philosophers--the pretenders who force their way in without
|
|
invitation, and are always speaking of persons and not of principles,
|
|
which is unlike the spirit of philosophy. For the true philosopher
|
|
despises earthly strife; his eye is fixed on the eternal order in
|
|
accordance with which he moulds himself into the Divine image (and not
|
|
himself only, but other men), and is the creator of the virtues private
|
|
as well as public. When mankind see that the happiness of states is only
|
|
to be found in that image, will they be angry with us for attempting
|
|
to delineate it? 'Certainly not. But what will be the process of
|
|
delineation?' The artist will do nothing until he has made a tabula
|
|
rasa; on this he will inscribe the constitution of a state, glancing
|
|
often at the divine truth of nature, and from that deriving the godlike
|
|
among men, mingling the two elements, rubbing out and painting in,
|
|
until there is a perfect harmony or fusion of the divine and human. But
|
|
perhaps the world will doubt the existence of such an artist. What will
|
|
they doubt? That the philosopher is a lover of truth, having a nature
|
|
akin to the best?--and if they admit this will they still quarrel with
|
|
us for making philosophers our kings? 'They will be less disposed to
|
|
quarrel.' Let us assume then that they are pacified. Still, a person may
|
|
hesitate about the probability of the son of a king being a philosopher.
|
|
And we do not deny that they are very liable to be corrupted; but yet
|
|
surely in the course of ages there might be one exception--and one
|
|
is enough. If one son of a king were a philosopher, and had obedient
|
|
citizens, he might bring the ideal polity into being. Hence we conclude
|
|
that our laws are not only the best, but that they are also possible,
|
|
though not free from difficulty.
|
|
|
|
I gained nothing by evading the troublesome questions which arose
|
|
concerning women and children. I will be wiser now and acknowledge
|
|
that we must go to the bottom of another question: What is to be the
|
|
education of our guardians? It was agreed that they were to be lovers of
|
|
their country, and were to be tested in the refiner's fire of pleasures
|
|
and pains, and those who came forth pure and remained fixed in their
|
|
principles were to have honours and rewards in life and after death.
|
|
But at this point, the argument put on her veil and turned into another
|
|
path. I hesitated to make the assertion which I now hazard,--that our
|
|
guardians must be philosophers. You remember all the contradictory
|
|
elements, which met in the philosopher--how difficult to find them all
|
|
in a single person! Intelligence and spirit are not often combined with
|
|
steadiness; the stolid, fearless, nature is averse to intellectual toil.
|
|
And yet these opposite elements are all necessary, and therefore, as
|
|
we were saying before, the aspirant must be tested in pleasures and
|
|
dangers; and also, as we must now further add, in the highest branches
|
|
of knowledge. You will remember, that when we spoke of the virtues
|
|
mention was made of a longer road, which you were satisfied to leave
|
|
unexplored. 'Enough seemed to have been said.' Enough, my friend; but
|
|
what is enough while anything remains wanting? Of all men the guardian
|
|
must not faint in the search after truth; he must be prepared to take
|
|
the longer road, or he will never reach that higher region which is
|
|
above the four virtues; and of the virtues too he must not only get an
|
|
outline, but a clear and distinct vision. (Strange that we should be so
|
|
precise about trifles, so careless about the highest truths!) 'And what
|
|
are the highest?' You to pretend unconsciousness, when you have so often
|
|
heard me speak of the idea of good, about which we know so little, and
|
|
without which though a man gain the world he has no profit of it! Some
|
|
people imagine that the good is wisdom; but this involves a circle,--the
|
|
good, they say, is wisdom, wisdom has to do with the good. According to
|
|
others the good is pleasure; but then comes the absurdity that good is
|
|
bad, for there are bad pleasures as well as good. Again, the good must
|
|
have reality; a man may desire the appearance of virtue, but he will not
|
|
desire the appearance of good. Ought our guardians then to be ignorant
|
|
of this supreme principle, of which every man has a presentiment, and
|
|
without which no man has any real knowledge of anything? 'But, Socrates,
|
|
what is this supreme principle, knowledge or pleasure, or what? You may
|
|
think me troublesome, but I say that you have no business to be always
|
|
repeating the doctrines of others instead of giving us your own.' Can
|
|
I say what I do not know? 'You may offer an opinion.' And will the
|
|
blindness and crookedness of opinion content you when you might have
|
|
the light and certainty of science? 'I will only ask you to give such
|
|
an explanation of the good as you have given already of temperance and
|
|
justice.' I wish that I could, but in my present mood I cannot reach to
|
|
the height of the knowledge of the good. To the parent or principal I
|
|
cannot introduce you, but to the child begotten in his image, which
|
|
I may compare with the interest on the principal, I will. (Audit the
|
|
account, and do not let me give you a false statement of the debt.)
|
|
You remember our old distinction of the many beautiful and the one
|
|
beautiful, the particular and the universal, the objects of sight and
|
|
the objects of thought? Did you ever consider that the objects of sight
|
|
imply a faculty of sight which is the most complex and costly of our
|
|
senses, requiring not only objects of sense, but also a medium, which is
|
|
light; without which the sight will not distinguish between colours and
|
|
all will be a blank? For light is the noble bond between the perceiving
|
|
faculty and the thing perceived, and the god who gives us light is the
|
|
sun, who is the eye of the day, but is not to be confounded with the eye
|
|
of man. This eye of the day or sun is what I call the child of the good,
|
|
standing in the same relation to the visible world as the good to the
|
|
intellectual. When the sun shines the eye sees, and in the intellectual
|
|
world where truth is, there is sight and light. Now that which is the
|
|
sun of intelligent natures, is the idea of good, the cause of knowledge
|
|
and truth, yet other and fairer than they are, and standing in the
|
|
same relation to them in which the sun stands to light. O inconceivable
|
|
height of beauty, which is above knowledge and above truth! ('You cannot
|
|
surely mean pleasure,' he said. Peace, I replied.) And this idea of
|
|
good, like the sun, is also the cause of growth, and the author not of
|
|
knowledge only, but of being, yet greater far than either in dignity
|
|
and power. 'That is a reach of thought more than human; but, pray, go
|
|
on with the image, for I suspect that there is more behind.' There is,
|
|
I said; and bearing in mind our two suns or principles, imagine further
|
|
their corresponding worlds--one of the visible, the other of the
|
|
intelligible; you may assist your fancy by figuring the distinction
|
|
under the image of a line divided into two unequal parts, and may again
|
|
subdivide each part into two lesser segments representative of the
|
|
stages of knowledge in either sphere. The lower portion of the lower or
|
|
visible sphere will consist of shadows and reflections, and its upper
|
|
and smaller portion will contain real objects in the world of nature
|
|
or of art. The sphere of the intelligible will also have two
|
|
divisions,--one of mathematics, in which there is no ascent but all is
|
|
descent; no inquiring into premises, but only drawing of inferences.
|
|
In this division the mind works with figures and numbers, the images of
|
|
which are taken not from the shadows, but from the objects, although
|
|
the truth of them is seen only with the mind's eye; and they are used as
|
|
hypotheses without being analysed. Whereas in the other division reason
|
|
uses the hypotheses as stages or steps in the ascent to the idea of
|
|
good, to which she fastens them, and then again descends, walking firmly
|
|
in the region of ideas, and of ideas only, in her ascent as well as
|
|
descent, and finally resting in them. 'I partly understand,' he replied;
|
|
'you mean that the ideas of science are superior to the hypothetical,
|
|
metaphorical conceptions of geometry and the other arts or sciences,
|
|
whichever is to be the name of them; and the latter conceptions you
|
|
refuse to make subjects of pure intellect, because they have no first
|
|
principle, although when resting on a first principle, they pass into
|
|
the higher sphere.' You understand me very well, I said. And now to
|
|
those four divisions of knowledge you may assign four corresponding
|
|
faculties--pure intelligence to the highest sphere; active intelligence
|
|
to the second; to the third, faith; to the fourth, the perception of
|
|
shadows--and the clearness of the several faculties will be in the same
|
|
ratio as the truth of the objects to which they are related...
|
|
|
|
Like Socrates, we may recapitulate the virtues of the philosopher.
|
|
In language which seems to reach beyond the horizon of that age
|
|
and country, he is described as 'the spectator of all time and all
|
|
existence.' He has the noblest gifts of nature, and makes the highest
|
|
use of them. All his desires are absorbed in the love of wisdom, which
|
|
is the love of truth. None of the graces of a beautiful soul are wanting
|
|
in him; neither can he fear death, or think much of human life. The
|
|
ideal of modern times hardly retains the simplicity of the antique;
|
|
there is not the same originality either in truth or error which
|
|
characterized the Greeks. The philosopher is no longer living in the
|
|
unseen, nor is he sent by an oracle to convince mankind of ignorance;
|
|
nor does he regard knowledge as a system of ideas leading upwards by
|
|
regular stages to the idea of good. The eagerness of the pursuit has
|
|
abated; there is more division of labour and less of comprehensive
|
|
reflection upon nature and human life as a whole; more of exact
|
|
observation and less of anticipation and inspiration. Still, in the
|
|
altered conditions of knowledge, the parallel is not wholly lost; and
|
|
there may be a use in translating the conception of Plato into the
|
|
language of our own age. The philosopher in modern times is one who
|
|
fixes his mind on the laws of nature in their sequence and connexion,
|
|
not on fragments or pictures of nature; on history, not on controversy;
|
|
on the truths which are acknowledged by the few, not on the opinions
|
|
of the many. He is aware of the importance of 'classifying according to
|
|
nature,' and will try to 'separate the limbs of science without breaking
|
|
them' (Phaedr.). There is no part of truth, whether great or small,
|
|
which he will dishonour; and in the least things he will discern the
|
|
greatest (Parmen.). Like the ancient philosopher he sees the world
|
|
pervaded by analogies, but he can also tell 'why in some cases a single
|
|
instance is sufficient for an induction' (Mill's Logic), while in
|
|
other cases a thousand examples would prove nothing. He inquires into
|
|
a portion of knowledge only, because the whole has grown too vast to be
|
|
embraced by a single mind or life. He has a clearer conception of the
|
|
divisions of science and of their relation to the mind of man than was
|
|
possible to the ancients. Like Plato, he has a vision of the unity of
|
|
knowledge, not as the beginning of philosophy to be attained by a study
|
|
of elementary mathematics, but as the far-off result of the working
|
|
of many minds in many ages. He is aware that mathematical studies are
|
|
preliminary to almost every other; at the same time, he will not reduce
|
|
all varieties of knowledge to the type of mathematics. He too must have
|
|
a nobility of character, without which genius loses the better half
|
|
of greatness. Regarding the world as a point in immensity, and each
|
|
individual as a link in a never-ending chain of existence, he will not
|
|
think much of his own life, or be greatly afraid of death.
|
|
|
|
Adeimantus objects first of all to the form of the Socratic reasoning,
|
|
thus showing that Plato is aware of the imperfection of his own method.
|
|
He brings the accusation against himself which might be brought against
|
|
him by a modern logician--that he extracts the answer because he knows
|
|
how to put the question. In a long argument words are apt to change
|
|
their meaning slightly, or premises may be assumed or conclusions
|
|
inferred with rather too much certainty or universality; the variation
|
|
at each step may be unobserved, and yet at last the divergence becomes
|
|
considerable. Hence the failure of attempts to apply arithmetical or
|
|
algebraic formulae to logic. The imperfection, or rather the higher
|
|
and more elastic nature of language, does not allow words to have the
|
|
precision of numbers or of symbols. And this quality in language impairs
|
|
the force of an argument which has many steps.
|
|
|
|
The objection, though fairly met by Socrates in this particular
|
|
instance, may be regarded as implying a reflection upon the Socratic
|
|
mode of reasoning. And here, as elsewhere, Plato seems to intimate that
|
|
the time had come when the negative and interrogative method of Socrates
|
|
must be superseded by a positive and constructive one, of which examples
|
|
are given in some of the later dialogues. Adeimantus further argues
|
|
that the ideal is wholly at variance with facts; for experience proves
|
|
philosophers to be either useless or rogues. Contrary to all expectation
|
|
Socrates has no hesitation in admitting the truth of this, and explains
|
|
the anomaly in an allegory, first characteristically depreciating his
|
|
own inventive powers. In this allegory the people are distinguished from
|
|
the professional politicians, and, as elsewhere, are spoken of in a tone
|
|
of pity rather than of censure under the image of 'the noble captain who
|
|
is not very quick in his perceptions.'
|
|
|
|
The uselessness of philosophers is explained by the circumstance that
|
|
mankind will not use them. The world in all ages has been divided
|
|
between contempt and fear of those who employ the power of ideas and
|
|
know no other weapons. Concerning the false philosopher, Socrates argues
|
|
that the best is most liable to corruption; and that the finer nature is
|
|
more likely to suffer from alien conditions. We too observe that there
|
|
are some kinds of excellence which spring from a peculiar delicacy
|
|
of constitution; as is evidently true of the poetical and imaginative
|
|
temperament, which often seems to depend on impressions, and hence can
|
|
only breathe or live in a certain atmosphere. The man of genius
|
|
has greater pains and greater pleasures, greater powers and greater
|
|
weaknesses, and often a greater play of character than is to be found in
|
|
ordinary men. He can assume the disguise of virtue or disinterestedness
|
|
without having them, or veil personal enmity in the language of
|
|
patriotism and philosophy,--he can say the word which all men are
|
|
thinking, he has an insight which is terrible into the follies and
|
|
weaknesses of his fellow-men. An Alcibiades, a Mirabeau, or a Napoleon
|
|
the First, are born either to be the authors of great evils in states,
|
|
or 'of great good, when they are drawn in that direction.'
|
|
|
|
Yet the thesis, 'corruptio optimi pessima,' cannot be maintained
|
|
generally or without regard to the kind of excellence which is
|
|
corrupted. The alien conditions which are corrupting to one nature, may
|
|
be the elements of culture to another. In general a man can only receive
|
|
his highest development in a congenial state or family, among friends
|
|
or fellow-workers. But also he may sometimes be stirred by adverse
|
|
circumstances to such a degree that he rises up against them and reforms
|
|
them. And while weaker or coarser characters will extract good out of
|
|
evil, say in a corrupt state of the church or of society, and live on
|
|
happily, allowing the evil to remain, the finer or stronger natures may
|
|
be crushed or spoiled by surrounding influences--may become misanthrope
|
|
and philanthrope by turns; or in a few instances, like the founders
|
|
of the monastic orders, or the Reformers, owing to some peculiarity in
|
|
themselves or in their age, may break away entirely from the world and
|
|
from the church, sometimes into great good, sometimes into great evil,
|
|
sometimes into both. And the same holds in the lesser sphere of a
|
|
convent, a school, a family.
|
|
|
|
Plato would have us consider how easily the best natures are overpowered
|
|
by public opinion, and what efforts the rest of mankind will make to
|
|
get possession of them. The world, the church, their own profession, any
|
|
political or party organization, are always carrying them off their legs
|
|
and teaching them to apply high and holy names to their own prejudices
|
|
and interests. The 'monster' corporation to which they belong judges
|
|
right and truth to be the pleasure of the community. The individual
|
|
becomes one with his order; or, if he resists, the world is too much for
|
|
him, and will sooner or later be revenged on him. This is, perhaps, a
|
|
one-sided but not wholly untrue picture of the maxims and practice of
|
|
mankind when they 'sit down together at an assembly,' either in ancient
|
|
or modern times.
|
|
|
|
When the higher natures are corrupted by politics, the lower take
|
|
possession of the vacant place of philosophy. This is described in one
|
|
of those continuous images in which the argument, to use a Platonic
|
|
expression, 'veils herself,' and which is dropped and reappears at
|
|
intervals. The question is asked,--Why are the citizens of states so
|
|
hostile to philosophy? The answer is, that they do not know her. And yet
|
|
there is also a better mind of the many; they would believe if they were
|
|
taught. But hitherto they have only known a conventional imitation of
|
|
philosophy, words without thoughts, systems which have no life in them;
|
|
a (divine) person uttering the words of beauty and freedom, the friend
|
|
of man holding communion with the Eternal, and seeking to frame the
|
|
state in that image, they have never known. The same double feeling
|
|
respecting the mass of mankind has always existed among men. The first
|
|
thought is that the people are the enemies of truth and right; the
|
|
second, that this only arises out of an accidental error and confusion,
|
|
and that they do not really hate those who love them, if they could be
|
|
educated to know them.
|
|
|
|
In the latter part of the sixth book, three questions have to be
|
|
considered: 1st, the nature of the longer and more circuitous way, which
|
|
is contrasted with the shorter and more imperfect method of Book IV;
|
|
2nd, the heavenly pattern or idea of the state; 3rd, the relation of the
|
|
divisions of knowledge to one another and to the corresponding faculties
|
|
of the soul:
|
|
|
|
1. Of the higher method of knowledge in Plato we have only a glimpse.
|
|
Neither here nor in the Phaedrus or Symposium, nor yet in the Philebus
|
|
or Sophist, does he give any clear explanation of his meaning. He would
|
|
probably have described his method as proceeding by regular steps to a
|
|
system of universal knowledge, which inferred the parts from the whole
|
|
rather than the whole from the parts. This ideal logic is not practised
|
|
by him in the search after justice, or in the analysis of the parts of
|
|
the soul; there, like Aristotle in the Nicomachean Ethics, he argues
|
|
from experience and the common use of language. But at the end of the
|
|
sixth book he conceives another and more perfect method, in which
|
|
all ideas are only steps or grades or moments of thought, forming a
|
|
connected whole which is self-supporting, and in which consistency is
|
|
the test of truth. He does not explain to us in detail the nature of the
|
|
process. Like many other thinkers both in ancient and modern times
|
|
his mind seems to be filled with a vacant form which he is unable to
|
|
realize. He supposes the sciences to have a natural order and connexion
|
|
in an age when they can hardly be said to exist. He is hastening on to
|
|
the 'end of the intellectual world' without even making a beginning of
|
|
them.
|
|
|
|
In modern times we hardly need to be reminded that the process of
|
|
acquiring knowledge is here confused with the contemplation of absolute
|
|
knowledge. In all science a priori and a posteriori truths mingle in
|
|
various proportions. The a priori part is that which is derived from the
|
|
most universal experience of men, or is universally accepted by
|
|
them; the a posteriori is that which grows up around the more
|
|
general principles and becomes imperceptibly one with them. But Plato
|
|
erroneously imagines that the synthesis is separable from the analysis,
|
|
and that the method of science can anticipate science. In entertaining
|
|
such a vision of a priori knowledge he is sufficiently justified, or at
|
|
least his meaning may be sufficiently explained by the similar attempts
|
|
of Descartes, Kant, Hegel, and even of Bacon himself, in modern
|
|
philosophy. Anticipations or divinations, or prophetic glimpses of
|
|
truths whether concerning man or nature, seem to stand in the same
|
|
relation to ancient philosophy which hypotheses bear to modern inductive
|
|
science. These 'guesses at truth' were not made at random; they arose
|
|
from a superficial impression of uniformities and first principles
|
|
in nature which the genius of the Greek, contemplating the expanse of
|
|
heaven and earth, seemed to recognize in the distance. Nor can we deny
|
|
that in ancient times knowledge must have stood still, and the human
|
|
mind been deprived of the very instruments of thought, if philosophy had
|
|
been strictly confined to the results of experience.
|
|
|
|
2. Plato supposes that when the tablet has been made blank the artist
|
|
will fill in the lineaments of the ideal state. Is this a pattern laid
|
|
up in heaven, or mere vacancy on which he is supposed to gaze with
|
|
wondering eye? The answer is, that such ideals are framed partly by the
|
|
omission of particulars, partly by imagination perfecting the form which
|
|
experience supplies (Phaedo). Plato represents these ideals in a
|
|
figure as belonging to another world; and in modern times the idea will
|
|
sometimes seem to precede, at other times to co-operate with the hand
|
|
of the artist. As in science, so also in creative art, there is a
|
|
synthetical as well as an analytical method. One man will have the whole
|
|
in his mind before he begins; to another the processes of mind and hand
|
|
will be simultaneous.
|
|
|
|
3. There is no difficulty in seeing that Plato's divisions of knowledge
|
|
are based, first, on the fundamental antithesis of sensible and
|
|
intellectual which pervades the whole pre-Socratic philosophy; in which
|
|
is implied also the opposition of the permanent and transient, of the
|
|
universal and particular. But the age of philosophy in which he lived
|
|
seemed to require a further distinction;--numbers and figures were
|
|
beginning to separate from ideas. The world could no longer regard
|
|
justice as a cube, and was learning to see, though imperfectly, that
|
|
the abstractions of sense were distinct from the abstractions of mind.
|
|
Between the Eleatic being or essence and the shadows of phenomena, the
|
|
Pythagorean principle of number found a place, and was, as Aristotle
|
|
remarks, a conducting medium from one to the other. Hence Plato is led
|
|
to introduce a third term which had not hitherto entered into the scheme
|
|
of his philosophy. He had observed the use of mathematics in education;
|
|
they were the best preparation for higher studies. The subjective
|
|
relation between them further suggested an objective one; although
|
|
the passage from one to the other is really imaginary (Metaph.). For
|
|
metaphysical and moral philosophy has no connexion with mathematics;
|
|
number and figure are the abstractions of time and space, not the
|
|
expressions of purely intellectual conceptions. When divested of
|
|
metaphor, a straight line or a square has no more to do with right and
|
|
justice than a crooked line with vice. The figurative association was
|
|
mistaken for a real one; and thus the three latter divisions of the
|
|
Platonic proportion were constructed.
|
|
|
|
There is more difficulty in comprehending how he arrived at the
|
|
first term of the series, which is nowhere else mentioned, and has no
|
|
reference to any other part of his system. Nor indeed does the relation
|
|
of shadows to objects correspond to the relation of numbers to ideas.
|
|
Probably Plato has been led by the love of analogy (Timaeus) to make
|
|
four terms instead of three, although the objects perceived in both
|
|
divisions of the lower sphere are equally objects of sense. He is also
|
|
preparing the way, as his manner is, for the shadows of images at the
|
|
beginning of the seventh book, and the imitation of an imitation in the
|
|
tenth. The line may be regarded as reaching from unity to infinity, and
|
|
is divided into two unequal parts, and subdivided into two more;
|
|
each lower sphere is the multiplication of the preceding. Of the four
|
|
faculties, faith in the lower division has an intermediate position (cp.
|
|
for the use of the word faith or belief, (Greek), Timaeus), contrasting
|
|
equally with the vagueness of the perception of shadows (Greek) and the
|
|
higher certainty of understanding (Greek) and reason (Greek).
|
|
|
|
The difference between understanding and mind or reason (Greek) is
|
|
analogous to the difference between acquiring knowledge in the parts
|
|
and the contemplation of the whole. True knowledge is a whole, and is
|
|
at rest; consistency and universality are the tests of truth. To this
|
|
self-evidencing knowledge of the whole the faculty of mind is supposed
|
|
to correspond. But there is a knowledge of the understanding which
|
|
is incomplete and in motion always, because unable to rest in
|
|
the subordinate ideas. Those ideas are called both images and
|
|
hypotheses--images because they are clothed in sense, hypotheses because
|
|
they are assumptions only, until they are brought into connexion with
|
|
the idea of good.
|
|
|
|
The general meaning of the passage, 'Noble, then, is the bond which
|
|
links together sight...And of this kind I spoke as the intelligible...'
|
|
so far as the thought contained in it admits of being translated
|
|
into the terms of modern philosophy, may be described or explained as
|
|
follows:--There is a truth, one and self-existent, to which by the help
|
|
of a ladder let down from above, the human intelligence may ascend. This
|
|
unity is like the sun in the heavens, the light by which all things are
|
|
seen, the being by which they are created and sustained. It is the
|
|
IDEA of good. And the steps of the ladder leading up to this highest or
|
|
universal existence are the mathematical sciences, which also contain
|
|
in themselves an element of the universal. These, too, we see in a new
|
|
manner when we connect them with the idea of good. They then cease to
|
|
be hypotheses or pictures, and become essential parts of a higher truth
|
|
which is at once their first principle and their final cause.
|
|
|
|
We cannot give any more precise meaning to this remarkable passage, but
|
|
we may trace in it several rudiments or vestiges of thought which are
|
|
common to us and to Plato: such as (1) the unity and correlation of the
|
|
sciences, or rather of science, for in Plato's time they were not yet
|
|
parted off or distinguished; (2) the existence of a Divine Power,
|
|
or life or idea or cause or reason, not yet conceived or no longer
|
|
conceived as in the Timaeus and elsewhere under the form of a person;
|
|
(3) the recognition of the hypothetical and conditional character of the
|
|
mathematical sciences, and in a measure of every science when isolated
|
|
from the rest; (4) the conviction of a truth which is invisible, and of
|
|
a law, though hardly a law of nature, which permeates the intellectual
|
|
rather than the visible world.
|
|
|
|
The method of Socrates is hesitating and tentative, awaiting the fuller
|
|
explanation of the idea of good, and of the nature of dialectic in the
|
|
seventh book. The imperfect intelligence of Glaucon, and the reluctance
|
|
of Socrates to make a beginning, mark the difficulty of the subject.
|
|
The allusion to Theages' bridle, and to the internal oracle, or demonic
|
|
sign, of Socrates, which here, as always in Plato, is only prohibitory;
|
|
the remark that the salvation of any remnant of good in the present evil
|
|
state of the world is due to God only; the reference to a future state
|
|
of existence, which is unknown to Glaucon in the tenth book, and in
|
|
which the discussions of Socrates and his disciples would be resumed;
|
|
the surprise in the answers; the fanciful irony of Socrates, where
|
|
he pretends that he can only describe the strange position of the
|
|
philosopher in a figure of speech; the original observation that the
|
|
Sophists, after all, are only the representatives and not the leaders
|
|
of public opinion; the picture of the philosopher standing aside in the
|
|
shower of sleet under a wall; the figure of 'the great beast' followed
|
|
by the expression of good-will towards the common people who would not
|
|
have rejected the philosopher if they had known him; the 'right noble
|
|
thought' that the highest truths demand the greatest exactness; the
|
|
hesitation of Socrates in returning once more to his well-worn theme of
|
|
the idea of good; the ludicrous earnestness of Glaucon; the comparison
|
|
of philosophy to a deserted maiden who marries beneath her--are some of
|
|
the most interesting characteristics of the sixth book.
|
|
|
|
Yet a few more words may be added, on the old theme, which was so
|
|
oft discussed in the Socratic circle, of which we, like Glaucon and
|
|
Adeimantus, would fain, if possible, have a clearer notion. Like them,
|
|
we are dissatisfied when we are told that the idea of good can only be
|
|
revealed to a student of the mathematical sciences, and we are inclined
|
|
to think that neither we nor they could have been led along that path to
|
|
any satisfactory goal. For we have learned that differences of quantity
|
|
cannot pass into differences of quality, and that the mathematical
|
|
sciences can never rise above themselves into the sphere of our higher
|
|
thoughts, although they may sometimes furnish symbols and expressions
|
|
of them, and may train the mind in habits of abstraction and
|
|
self-concentration. The illusion which was natural to an ancient
|
|
philosopher has ceased to be an illusion to us. But if the process by
|
|
which we are supposed to arrive at the idea of good be really imaginary,
|
|
may not the idea itself be also a mere abstraction? We remark, first,
|
|
that in all ages, and especially in primitive philosophy, words such
|
|
as being, essence, unity, good, have exerted an extraordinary influence
|
|
over the minds of men. The meagreness or negativeness of their content
|
|
has been in an inverse ratio to their power. They have become the forms
|
|
under which all things were comprehended. There was a need or instinct
|
|
in the human soul which they satisfied; they were not ideas, but gods,
|
|
and to this new mythology the men of a later generation began to attach
|
|
the powers and associations of the elder deities.
|
|
|
|
The idea of good is one of those sacred words or forms of thought, which
|
|
were beginning to take the place of the old mythology. It meant unity,
|
|
in which all time and all existence were gathered up. It was the truth
|
|
of all things, and also the light in which they shone forth, and became
|
|
evident to intelligences human and divine. It was the cause of all
|
|
things, the power by which they were brought into being. It was the
|
|
universal reason divested of a human personality. It was the life
|
|
as well as the light of the world, all knowledge and all power were
|
|
comprehended in it. The way to it was through the mathematical sciences,
|
|
and these too were dependent on it. To ask whether God was the maker of
|
|
it, or made by it, would be like asking whether God could be conceived
|
|
apart from goodness, or goodness apart from God. The God of the Timaeus
|
|
is not really at variance with the idea of good; they are aspects of
|
|
the same, differing only as the personal from the impersonal, or the
|
|
masculine from the neuter, the one being the expression or language of
|
|
mythology, the other of philosophy.
|
|
|
|
This, or something like this, is the meaning of the idea of good as
|
|
conceived by Plato. Ideas of number, order, harmony, development may
|
|
also be said to enter into it. The paraphrase which has just been given
|
|
of it goes beyond the actual words of Plato. We have perhaps arrived at
|
|
the stage of philosophy which enables us to understand what he is aiming
|
|
at, better than he did himself. We are beginning to realize what he saw
|
|
darkly and at a distance. But if he could have been told that this, or
|
|
some conception of the same kind, but higher than this, was the truth
|
|
at which he was aiming, and the need which he sought to supply, he would
|
|
gladly have recognized that more was contained in his own thoughts
|
|
than he himself knew. As his words are few and his manner reticent
|
|
and tentative, so must the style of his interpreter be. We should not
|
|
approach his meaning more nearly by attempting to define it further. In
|
|
translating him into the language of modern thought, we might insensibly
|
|
lose the spirit of ancient philosophy. It is remarkable that although
|
|
Plato speaks of the idea of good as the first principle of truth and
|
|
being, it is nowhere mentioned in his writings except in this passage.
|
|
Nor did it retain any hold upon the minds of his disciples in a later
|
|
generation; it was probably unintelligible to them. Nor does the mention
|
|
of it in Aristotle appear to have any reference to this or any other
|
|
passage in his extant writings.
|
|
|
|
BOOK VII. And now I will describe in a figure the enlightenment or
|
|
unenlightenment of our nature:--Imagine human beings living in an
|
|
underground den which is open towards the light; they have been there
|
|
from childhood, having their necks and legs chained, and can only see
|
|
into the den. At a distance there is a fire, and between the fire and
|
|
the prisoners a raised way, and a low wall is built along the way, like
|
|
the screen over which marionette players show their puppets. Behind the
|
|
wall appear moving figures, who hold in their hands various works of
|
|
art, and among them images of men and animals, wood and stone, and some
|
|
of the passers-by are talking and others silent. 'A strange parable,'
|
|
he said, 'and strange captives.' They are ourselves, I replied; and they
|
|
see only the shadows of the images which the fire throws on the wall of
|
|
the den; to these they give names, and if we add an echo which returns
|
|
from the wall, the voices of the passengers will seem to proceed from
|
|
the shadows. Suppose now that you suddenly turn them round and make them
|
|
look with pain and grief to themselves at the real images; will they
|
|
believe them to be real? Will not their eyes be dazzled, and will they
|
|
not try to get away from the light to something which they are able to
|
|
behold without blinking? And suppose further, that they are dragged up
|
|
a steep and rugged ascent into the presence of the sun himself, will not
|
|
their sight be darkened with the excess of light? Some time will pass
|
|
before they get the habit of perceiving at all; and at first they will
|
|
be able to perceive only shadows and reflections in the water; then they
|
|
will recognize the moon and the stars, and will at length behold the sun
|
|
in his own proper place as he is. Last of all they will conclude:--This
|
|
is he who gives us the year and the seasons, and is the author of all
|
|
that we see. How will they rejoice in passing from darkness to light!
|
|
How worthless to them will seem the honours and glories of the den! But
|
|
now imagine further, that they descend into their old habitations;--in
|
|
that underground dwelling they will not see as well as their fellows,
|
|
and will not be able to compete with them in the measurement of the
|
|
shadows on the wall; there will be many jokes about the man who went on
|
|
a visit to the sun and lost his eyes, and if they find anybody trying to
|
|
set free and enlighten one of their number, they will put him to death,
|
|
if they can catch him. Now the cave or den is the world of sight, the
|
|
fire is the sun, the way upwards is the way to knowledge, and in the
|
|
world of knowledge the idea of good is last seen and with difficulty,
|
|
but when seen is inferred to be the author of good and right--parent of
|
|
the lord of light in this world, and of truth and understanding in the
|
|
other. He who attains to the beatific vision is always going upwards; he
|
|
is unwilling to descend into political assemblies and courts of law; for
|
|
his eyes are apt to blink at the images or shadows of images which they
|
|
behold in them--he cannot enter into the ideas of those who have never
|
|
in their lives understood the relation of the shadow to the substance.
|
|
But blindness is of two kinds, and may be caused either by passing out
|
|
of darkness into light or out of light into darkness, and a man of sense
|
|
will distinguish between them, and will not laugh equally at both of
|
|
them, but the blindness which arises from fulness of light he will deem
|
|
blessed, and pity the other; or if he laugh at the puzzled soul looking
|
|
at the sun, he will have more reason to laugh than the inhabitants
|
|
of the den at those who descend from above. There is a further lesson
|
|
taught by this parable of ours. Some persons fancy that instruction is
|
|
like giving eyes to the blind, but we say that the faculty of sight was
|
|
always there, and that the soul only requires to be turned round towards
|
|
the light. And this is conversion; other virtues are almost like bodily
|
|
habits, and may be acquired in the same manner, but intelligence has
|
|
a diviner life, and is indestructible, turning either to good or evil
|
|
according to the direction given. Did you never observe how the mind of
|
|
a clever rogue peers out of his eyes, and the more clearly he sees, the
|
|
more evil he does? Now if you take such an one, and cut away from him
|
|
those leaden weights of pleasure and desire which bind his soul to
|
|
earth, his intelligence will be turned round, and he will behold the
|
|
truth as clearly as he now discerns his meaner ends. And have we not
|
|
decided that our rulers must neither be so uneducated as to have no
|
|
fixed rule of life, nor so over-educated as to be unwilling to leave
|
|
their paradise for the business of the world? We must choose out
|
|
therefore the natures who are most likely to ascend to the light and
|
|
knowledge of the good; but we must not allow them to remain in the
|
|
region of light; they must be forced down again among the captives in
|
|
the den to partake of their labours and honours. 'Will they not think
|
|
this a hardship?' You should remember that our purpose in framing the
|
|
State was not that our citizens should do what they like, but that they
|
|
should serve the State for the common good of all. May we not fairly
|
|
say to our philosopher,--Friend, we do you no wrong; for in other States
|
|
philosophy grows wild, and a wild plant owes nothing to the gardener,
|
|
but you have been trained by us to be the rulers and kings of our hive,
|
|
and therefore we must insist on your descending into the den. You must,
|
|
each of you, take your turn, and become able to use your eyes in the
|
|
dark, and with a little practice you will see far better than those who
|
|
quarrel about the shadows, whose knowledge is a dream only, whilst yours
|
|
is a waking reality. It may be that the saint or philosopher who is best
|
|
fitted, may also be the least inclined to rule, but necessity is laid
|
|
upon him, and he must no longer live in the heaven of ideas. And this
|
|
will be the salvation of the State. For those who rule must not be those
|
|
who are desirous to rule; and, if you can offer to our citizens a better
|
|
life than that of rulers generally is, there will be a chance that the
|
|
rich, not only in this world's goods, but in virtue and wisdom, may
|
|
bear rule. And the only life which is better than the life of political
|
|
ambition is that of philosophy, which is also the best preparation for
|
|
the government of a State.
|
|
|
|
Then now comes the question,--How shall we create our rulers; what way
|
|
is there from darkness to light? The change is effected by philosophy;
|
|
it is not the turning over of an oyster-shell, but the conversion of a
|
|
soul from night to day, from becoming to being. And what training will
|
|
draw the soul upwards? Our former education had two branches, gymnastic,
|
|
which was occupied with the body, and music, the sister art, which
|
|
infused a natural harmony into mind and literature; but neither of these
|
|
sciences gave any promise of doing what we want. Nothing remains to us
|
|
but that universal or primary science of which all the arts and sciences
|
|
are partakers, I mean number or calculation. 'Very true.' Including the
|
|
art of war? 'Yes, certainly.' Then there is something ludicrous about
|
|
Palamedes in the tragedy, coming in and saying that he had invented
|
|
number, and had counted the ranks and set them in order. For if
|
|
Agamemnon could not count his feet (and without number how could he?)
|
|
he must have been a pretty sort of general indeed. No man should be a
|
|
soldier who cannot count, and indeed he is hardly to be called a man.
|
|
But I am not speaking of these practical applications of arithmetic, for
|
|
number, in my view, is rather to be regarded as a conductor to thought
|
|
and being. I will explain what I mean by the last expression:--Things
|
|
sensible are of two kinds; the one class invite or stimulate the mind,
|
|
while in the other the mind acquiesces. Now the stimulating class are
|
|
the things which suggest contrast and relation. For example, suppose
|
|
that I hold up to the eyes three fingers--a fore finger, a middle
|
|
finger, a little finger--the sight equally recognizes all three fingers,
|
|
but without number cannot further distinguish them. Or again, suppose
|
|
two objects to be relatively great and small, these ideas of greatness
|
|
and smallness are supplied not by the sense, but by the mind. And the
|
|
perception of their contrast or relation quickens and sets in motion
|
|
the mind, which is puzzled by the confused intimations of sense, and has
|
|
recourse to number in order to find out whether the things indicated are
|
|
one or more than one. Number replies that they are two and not one, and
|
|
are to be distinguished from one another. Again, the sight beholds
|
|
great and small, but only in a confused chaos, and not until they are
|
|
distinguished does the question arise of their respective natures; we
|
|
are thus led on to the distinction between the visible and intelligible.
|
|
That was what I meant when I spoke of stimulants to the intellect; I was
|
|
thinking of the contradictions which arise in perception. The idea
|
|
of unity, for example, like that of a finger, does not arouse thought
|
|
unless involving some conception of plurality; but when the one is also
|
|
the opposite of one, the contradiction gives rise to reflection; an
|
|
example of this is afforded by any object of sight. All number has also
|
|
an elevating effect; it raises the mind out of the foam and flux of
|
|
generation to the contemplation of being, having lesser military and
|
|
retail uses also. The retail use is not required by us; but as our
|
|
guardian is to be a soldier as well as a philosopher, the military one
|
|
may be retained. And to our higher purpose no science can be better
|
|
adapted; but it must be pursued in the spirit of a philosopher, not of a
|
|
shopkeeper. It is concerned, not with visible objects, but with abstract
|
|
truth; for numbers are pure abstractions--the true arithmetician
|
|
indignantly denies that his unit is capable of division. When you
|
|
divide, he insists that you are only multiplying; his 'one' is not
|
|
material or resolvable into fractions, but an unvarying and absolute
|
|
equality; and this proves the purely intellectual character of his
|
|
study. Note also the great power which arithmetic has of sharpening the
|
|
wits; no other discipline is equally severe, or an equal test of general
|
|
ability, or equally improving to a stupid person.
|
|
|
|
Let our second branch of education be geometry. 'I can easily see,'
|
|
replied Glaucon, 'that the skill of the general will be doubled by his
|
|
knowledge of geometry.' That is a small matter; the use of geometry, to
|
|
which I refer, is the assistance given by it in the contemplation of the
|
|
idea of good, and the compelling the mind to look at true being, and not
|
|
at generation only. Yet the present mode of pursuing these studies,
|
|
as any one who is the least of a mathematician is aware, is mean and
|
|
ridiculous; they are made to look downwards to the arts, and not upwards
|
|
to eternal existence. The geometer is always talking of squaring,
|
|
subtending, apposing, as if he had in view action; whereas knowledge is
|
|
the real object of the study. It should elevate the soul, and create
|
|
the mind of philosophy; it should raise up what has fallen down, not to
|
|
speak of lesser uses in war and military tactics, and in the improvement
|
|
of the faculties.
|
|
|
|
Shall we propose, as a third branch of our education, astronomy? 'Very
|
|
good,' replied Glaucon; 'the knowledge of the heavens is necessary at
|
|
once for husbandry, navigation, military tactics.' I like your way of
|
|
giving useful reasons for everything in order to make friends of the
|
|
world. And there is a difficulty in proving to mankind that education is
|
|
not only useful information but a purification of the eye of the soul,
|
|
which is better than the bodily eye, for by this alone is truth seen.
|
|
Now, will you appeal to mankind in general or to the philosopher? or
|
|
would you prefer to look to yourself only? 'Every man is his own best
|
|
friend.' Then take a step backward, for we are out of order, and insert
|
|
the third dimension which is of solids, after the second which is of
|
|
planes, and then you may proceed to solids in motion. But solid geometry
|
|
is not popular and has not the patronage of the State, nor is the use
|
|
of it fully recognized; the difficulty is great, and the votaries of the
|
|
study are conceited and impatient. Still the charm of the pursuit wins
|
|
upon men, and, if government would lend a little assistance, there
|
|
might be great progress made. 'Very true,' replied Glaucon; 'but do
|
|
I understand you now to begin with plane geometry, and to place next
|
|
geometry of solids, and thirdly, astronomy, or the motion of solids?'
|
|
Yes, I said; my hastiness has only hindered us.
|
|
|
|
'Very good, and now let us proceed to astronomy, about which I am
|
|
willing to speak in your lofty strain. No one can fail to see that the
|
|
contemplation of the heavens draws the soul upwards.' I am an exception,
|
|
then; astronomy as studied at present appears to me to draw the soul
|
|
not upwards, but downwards. Star-gazing is just looking up at the
|
|
ceiling--no better; a man may lie on his back on land or on water--he
|
|
may look up or look down, but there is no science in that. The vision of
|
|
knowledge of which I speak is seen not with the eyes, but with the mind.
|
|
All the magnificence of the heavens is but the embroidery of a copy
|
|
which falls far short of the divine Original, and teaches nothing about
|
|
the absolute harmonies or motions of things. Their beauty is like the
|
|
beauty of figures drawn by the hand of Daedalus or any other great
|
|
artist, which may be used for illustration, but no mathematician would
|
|
seek to obtain from them true conceptions of equality or numerical
|
|
relations. How ridiculous then to look for these in the map of the
|
|
heavens, in which the imperfection of matter comes in everywhere as a
|
|
disturbing element, marring the symmetry of day and night, of months and
|
|
years, of the sun and stars in their courses. Only by problems can we
|
|
place astronomy on a truly scientific basis. Let the heavens alone, and
|
|
exert the intellect.
|
|
|
|
Still, mathematics admit of other applications, as the Pythagoreans say,
|
|
and we agree. There is a sister science of harmonical motion, adapted to
|
|
the ear as astronomy is to the eye, and there may be other applications
|
|
also. Let us inquire of the Pythagoreans about them, not forgetting
|
|
that we have an aim higher than theirs, which is the relation of these
|
|
sciences to the idea of good. The error which pervades astronomy also
|
|
pervades harmonics. The musicians put their ears in the place of their
|
|
minds. 'Yes,' replied Glaucon, 'I like to see them laying their ears
|
|
alongside of their neighbours' faces--some saying, "That's a new note,"
|
|
others declaring that the two notes are the same.' Yes, I said; but you
|
|
mean the empirics who are always twisting and torturing the strings
|
|
of the lyre, and quarrelling about the tempers of the strings; I am
|
|
referring rather to the Pythagorean harmonists, who are almost equally
|
|
in error. For they investigate only the numbers of the consonances which
|
|
are heard, and ascend no higher,--of the true numerical harmony which
|
|
is unheard, and is only to be found in problems, they have not even a
|
|
conception. 'That last,' he said, 'must be a marvellous thing.' A thing,
|
|
I replied, which is only useful if pursued with a view to the good.
|
|
|
|
All these sciences are the prelude of the strain, and are profitable
|
|
if they are regarded in their natural relations to one another. 'I
|
|
dare say, Socrates,' said Glaucon; 'but such a study will be an endless
|
|
business.' What study do you mean--of the prelude, or what? For all
|
|
these things are only the prelude, and you surely do not suppose that a
|
|
mere mathematician is also a dialectician? 'Certainly not. I have hardly
|
|
ever known a mathematician who could reason.' And yet, Glaucon, is
|
|
not true reasoning that hymn of dialectic which is the music of the
|
|
intellectual world, and which was by us compared to the effort of sight,
|
|
when from beholding the shadows on the wall we arrived at last at
|
|
the images which gave the shadows? Even so the dialectical faculty
|
|
withdrawing from sense arrives by the pure intellect at the
|
|
contemplation of the idea of good, and never rests but at the very end
|
|
of the intellectual world. And the royal road out of the cave into
|
|
the light, and the blinking of the eyes at the sun and turning to
|
|
contemplate the shadows of reality, not the shadows of an image
|
|
only--this progress and gradual acquisition of a new faculty of sight by
|
|
the help of the mathematical sciences, is the elevation of the soul to
|
|
the contemplation of the highest ideal of being.
|
|
|
|
'So far, I agree with you. But now, leaving the prelude, let us proceed
|
|
to the hymn. What, then, is the nature of dialectic, and what are the
|
|
paths which lead thither?' Dear Glaucon, you cannot follow me here.
|
|
There can be no revelation of the absolute truth to one who has not been
|
|
disciplined in the previous sciences. But that there is a science of
|
|
absolute truth, which is attained in some way very different from
|
|
those now practised, I am confident. For all other arts or sciences are
|
|
relative to human needs and opinions; and the mathematical sciences are
|
|
but a dream or hypothesis of true being, and never analyse their own
|
|
principles. Dialectic alone rises to the principle which is above
|
|
hypotheses, converting and gently leading the eye of the soul out of the
|
|
barbarous slough of ignorance into the light of the upper world, with
|
|
the help of the sciences which we have been describing--sciences, as
|
|
they are often termed, although they require some other name, implying
|
|
greater clearness than opinion and less clearness than science, and this
|
|
in our previous sketch was understanding. And so we get four names--two
|
|
for intellect, and two for opinion,--reason or mind, understanding,
|
|
faith, perception of shadows--which make a proportion--
|
|
being:becoming::intellect:opinion--and science:belief::understanding:
|
|
perception of shadows. Dialectic may be further described as that
|
|
science which defines and explains the essence or being of each nature,
|
|
which distinguishes and abstracts the good, and is ready to do battle
|
|
against all opponents in the cause of good. To him who is not a
|
|
dialectician life is but a sleepy dream; and many a man is in his grave
|
|
before his is well waked up. And would you have the future rulers of
|
|
your ideal State intelligent beings, or stupid as posts? 'Certainly not
|
|
the latter.' Then you must train them in dialectic, which will teach
|
|
them to ask and answer questions, and is the coping-stone of the
|
|
sciences.
|
|
|
|
I dare say that you have not forgotten how our rulers were chosen; and
|
|
the process of selection may be carried a step further:--As before, they
|
|
must be constant and valiant, good-looking, and of noble manners, but
|
|
now they must also have natural ability which education will improve;
|
|
that is to say, they must be quick at learning, capable of mental toil,
|
|
retentive, solid, diligent natures, who combine intellectual with
|
|
moral virtues; not lame and one-sided, diligent in bodily exercise
|
|
and indolent in mind, or conversely; not a maimed soul, which hates
|
|
falsehood and yet unintentionally is always wallowing in the mire of
|
|
ignorance; not a bastard or feeble person, but sound in wind and limb,
|
|
and in perfect condition for the great gymnastic trial of the mind.
|
|
Justice herself can find no fault with natures such as these; and they
|
|
will be the saviours of our State; disciples of another sort would
|
|
only make philosophy more ridiculous than she is at present. Forgive
|
|
my enthusiasm; I am becoming excited; but when I see her trampled
|
|
underfoot, I am angry at the authors of her disgrace. 'I did not notice
|
|
that you were more excited than you ought to have been.' But I felt that
|
|
I was. Now do not let us forget another point in the selection of our
|
|
disciples--that they must be young and not old. For Solon is mistaken
|
|
in saying that an old man can be always learning; youth is the time of
|
|
study, and here we must remember that the mind is free and dainty, and,
|
|
unlike the body, must not be made to work against the grain. Learning
|
|
should be at first a sort of play, in which the natural bent is
|
|
detected. As in training them for war, the young dogs should at first
|
|
only taste blood; but when the necessary gymnastics are over which
|
|
during two or three years divide life between sleep and bodily exercise,
|
|
then the education of the soul will become a more serious matter. At
|
|
twenty years of age, a selection must be made of the more promising
|
|
disciples, with whom a new epoch of education will begin. The sciences
|
|
which they have hitherto learned in fragments will now be brought into
|
|
relation with each other and with true being; for the power of combining
|
|
them is the test of speculative and dialectical ability. And afterwards
|
|
at thirty a further selection shall be made of those who are able to
|
|
withdraw from the world of sense into the abstraction of ideas. But
|
|
at this point, judging from present experience, there is a danger that
|
|
dialectic may be the source of many evils. The danger may be illustrated
|
|
by a parallel case:--Imagine a person who has been brought up in wealth
|
|
and luxury amid a crowd of flatterers, and who is suddenly informed that
|
|
he is a supposititious son. He has hitherto honoured his reputed parents
|
|
and disregarded the flatterers, and now he does the reverse. This is
|
|
just what happens with a man's principles. There are certain doctrines
|
|
which he learnt at home and which exercised a parental authority
|
|
over him. Presently he finds that imputations are cast upon them; a
|
|
troublesome querist comes and asks, 'What is the just and good?'
|
|
or proves that virtue is vice and vice virtue, and his mind becomes
|
|
unsettled, and he ceases to love, honour, and obey them as he has
|
|
hitherto done. He is seduced into the life of pleasure, and becomes
|
|
a lawless person and a rogue. The case of such speculators is very
|
|
pitiable, and, in order that our thirty years' old pupils may not
|
|
require this pity, let us take every possible care that young persons do
|
|
not study philosophy too early. For a young man is a sort of puppy
|
|
who only plays with an argument; and is reasoned into and out of his
|
|
opinions every day; he soon begins to believe nothing, and brings
|
|
himself and philosophy into discredit. A man of thirty does not run
|
|
on in this way; he will argue and not merely contradict, and adds new
|
|
honour to philosophy by the sobriety of his conduct. What time shall we
|
|
allow for this second gymnastic training of the soul?--say, twice the
|
|
time required for the gymnastics of the body; six, or perhaps five
|
|
years, to commence at thirty, and then for fifteen years let the student
|
|
go down into the den, and command armies, and gain experience of life.
|
|
At fifty let him return to the end of all things, and have his eyes
|
|
uplifted to the idea of good, and order his life after that pattern; if
|
|
necessary, taking his turn at the helm of State, and training up others
|
|
to be his successors. When his time comes he shall depart in peace to
|
|
the islands of the blest. He shall be honoured with sacrifices, and
|
|
receive such worship as the Pythian oracle approves.
|
|
|
|
'You are a statuary, Socrates, and have made a perfect image of our
|
|
governors.' Yes, and of our governesses, for the women will share in
|
|
all things with the men. And you will admit that our State is not a
|
|
mere aspiration, but may really come into being when there shall arise
|
|
philosopher-kings, one or more, who will despise earthly vanities, and
|
|
will be the servants of justice only. 'And how will they begin their
|
|
work?' Their first act will be to send away into the country all those
|
|
who are more than ten years of age, and to proceed with those who are
|
|
left...
|
|
|
|
At the commencement of the sixth book, Plato anticipated his explanation
|
|
of the relation of the philosopher to the world in an allegory, in
|
|
this, as in other passages, following the order which he prescribes
|
|
in education, and proceeding from the concrete to the abstract. At the
|
|
commencement of Book VII, under the figure of a cave having an opening
|
|
towards a fire and a way upwards to the true light, he returns to view
|
|
the divisions of knowledge, exhibiting familiarly, as in a picture, the
|
|
result which had been hardly won by a great effort of thought in the
|
|
previous discussion; at the same time casting a glance onward at the
|
|
dialectical process, which is represented by the way leading from
|
|
darkness to light. The shadows, the images, the reflection of the
|
|
sun and stars in the water, the stars and sun themselves, severally
|
|
correspond,--the first, to the realm of fancy and poetry,--the second,
|
|
to the world of sense,--the third, to the abstractions or universals of
|
|
sense, of which the mathematical sciences furnish the type,--the fourth
|
|
and last to the same abstractions, when seen in the unity of the idea,
|
|
from which they derive a new meaning and power. The true dialectical
|
|
process begins with the contemplation of the real stars, and not mere
|
|
reflections of them, and ends with the recognition of the sun, or idea
|
|
of good, as the parent not only of light but of warmth and growth.
|
|
To the divisions of knowledge the stages of education partly
|
|
answer:--first, there is the early education of childhood and youth
|
|
in the fancies of the poets, and in the laws and customs of the
|
|
State;--then there is the training of the body to be a warrior athlete,
|
|
and a good servant of the mind;--and thirdly, after an interval follows
|
|
the education of later life, which begins with mathematics and proceeds
|
|
to philosophy in general.
|
|
|
|
There seem to be two great aims in the philosophy of Plato,--first, to
|
|
realize abstractions; secondly, to connect them. According to him, the
|
|
true education is that which draws men from becoming to being, and to
|
|
a comprehensive survey of all being. He desires to develop in the human
|
|
mind the faculty of seeing the universal in all things; until at last
|
|
the particulars of sense drop away and the universal alone remains. He
|
|
then seeks to combine the universals which he has disengaged from sense,
|
|
not perceiving that the correlation of them has no other basis but the
|
|
common use of language. He never understands that abstractions, as Hegel
|
|
says, are 'mere abstractions'--of use when employed in the arrangement
|
|
of facts, but adding nothing to the sum of knowledge when pursued apart
|
|
from them, or with reference to an imaginary idea of good. Still the
|
|
exercise of the faculty of abstraction apart from facts has enlarged the
|
|
mind, and played a great part in the education of the human race.
|
|
Plato appreciated the value of this faculty, and saw that it might be
|
|
quickened by the study of number and relation. All things in which
|
|
there is opposition or proportion are suggestive of reflection. The
|
|
mere impression of sense evokes no power of thought or of mind, but when
|
|
sensible objects ask to be compared and distinguished, then philosophy
|
|
begins. The science of arithmetic first suggests such distinctions. The
|
|
follow in order the other sciences of plain and solid geometry, and of
|
|
solids in motion, one branch of which is astronomy or the harmony of
|
|
the spheres,--to this is appended the sister science of the harmony
|
|
of sounds. Plato seems also to hint at the possibility of other
|
|
applications of arithmetical or mathematical proportions, such as we
|
|
employ in chemistry and natural philosophy, such as the Pythagoreans and
|
|
even Aristotle make use of in Ethics and Politics, e.g. his distinction
|
|
between arithmetical and geometrical proportion in the Ethics (Book V),
|
|
or between numerical and proportional equality in the Politics.
|
|
|
|
The modern mathematician will readily sympathise with Plato's delight
|
|
in the properties of pure mathematics. He will not be disinclined to say
|
|
with him:--Let alone the heavens, and study the beauties of number and
|
|
figure in themselves. He too will be apt to depreciate their application
|
|
to the arts. He will observe that Plato has a conception of geometry,
|
|
in which figures are to be dispensed with; thus in a distant and
|
|
shadowy way seeming to anticipate the possibility of working geometrical
|
|
problems by a more general mode of analysis. He will remark with
|
|
interest on the backward state of solid geometry, which, alas! was not
|
|
encouraged by the aid of the State in the age of Plato; and he will
|
|
recognize the grasp of Plato's mind in his ability to conceive of
|
|
one science of solids in motion including the earth as well as the
|
|
heavens,--not forgetting to notice the intimation to which allusion has
|
|
been already made, that besides astronomy and harmonics the science
|
|
of solids in motion may have other applications. Still more will he be
|
|
struck with the comprehensiveness of view which led Plato, at a time
|
|
when these sciences hardly existed, to say that they must be studied in
|
|
relation to one another, and to the idea of good, or common principle
|
|
of truth and being. But he will also see (and perhaps without surprise)
|
|
that in that stage of physical and mathematical knowledge, Plato has
|
|
fallen into the error of supposing that he can construct the heavens a
|
|
priori by mathematical problems, and determine the principles of harmony
|
|
irrespective of the adaptation of sounds to the human ear. The illusion
|
|
was a natural one in that age and country. The simplicity and certainty
|
|
of astronomy and harmonics seemed to contrast with the variation and
|
|
complexity of the world of sense; hence the circumstance that there was
|
|
some elementary basis of fact, some measurement of distance or time or
|
|
vibrations on which they must ultimately rest, was overlooked by him.
|
|
The modern predecessors of Newton fell into errors equally great; and
|
|
Plato can hardly be said to have been very far wrong, or may even claim
|
|
a sort of prophetic insight into the subject, when we consider that
|
|
the greater part of astronomy at the present day consists of abstract
|
|
dynamics, by the help of which most astronomical discoveries have been
|
|
made.
|
|
|
|
The metaphysical philosopher from his point of view recognizes
|
|
mathematics as an instrument of education,--which strengthens the
|
|
power of attention, developes the sense of order and the faculty of
|
|
construction, and enables the mind to grasp under simple formulae the
|
|
quantitative differences of physical phenomena. But while acknowledging
|
|
their value in education, he sees also that they have no connexion with
|
|
our higher moral and intellectual ideas. In the attempt which Plato
|
|
makes to connect them, we easily trace the influences of ancient
|
|
Pythagorean notions. There is no reason to suppose that he is speaking
|
|
of the ideal numbers; but he is describing numbers which are pure
|
|
abstractions, to which he assigns a real and separate existence, which,
|
|
as 'the teachers of the art' (meaning probably the Pythagoreans) would
|
|
have affirmed, repel all attempts at subdivision, and in which unity and
|
|
every other number are conceived of as absolute. The truth and certainty
|
|
of numbers, when thus disengaged from phenomena, gave them a kind of
|
|
sacredness in the eyes of an ancient philosopher. Nor is it easy to say
|
|
how far ideas of order and fixedness may have had a moral and elevating
|
|
influence on the minds of men, 'who,' in the words of the Timaeus,
|
|
'might learn to regulate their erring lives according to them.' It is
|
|
worthy of remark that the old Pythagorean ethical symbols still exist as
|
|
figures of speech among ourselves. And those who in modern times see the
|
|
world pervaded by universal law, may also see an anticipation of this
|
|
last word of modern philosophy in the Platonic idea of good, which
|
|
is the source and measure of all things, and yet only an abstraction
|
|
(Philebus).
|
|
|
|
Two passages seem to require more particular explanations. First, that
|
|
which relates to the analysis of vision. The difficulty in this passage
|
|
may be explained, like many others, from differences in the modes of
|
|
conception prevailing among ancient and modern thinkers. To us, the
|
|
perceptions of sense are inseparable from the act of the mind which
|
|
accompanies them. The consciousness of form, colour, distance, is
|
|
indistinguishable from the simple sensation, which is the medium of
|
|
them. Whereas to Plato sense is the Heraclitean flux of sense, not the
|
|
vision of objects in the order in which they actually present themselves
|
|
to the experienced sight, but as they may be imagined to appear confused
|
|
and blurred to the half-awakened eye of the infant. The first action of
|
|
the mind is aroused by the attempt to set in order this chaos, and
|
|
the reason is required to frame distinct conceptions under which
|
|
the confused impressions of sense may be arranged. Hence arises
|
|
the question, 'What is great, what is small?' and thus begins the
|
|
distinction of the visible and the intelligible.
|
|
|
|
The second difficulty relates to Plato's conception of harmonics.
|
|
Three classes of harmonists are distinguished by him:--first, the
|
|
Pythagoreans, whom he proposes to consult as in the previous discussion
|
|
on music he was to consult Damon--they are acknowledged to be masters
|
|
in the art, but are altogether deficient in the knowledge of its higher
|
|
import and relation to the good; secondly, the mere empirics, whom
|
|
Glaucon appears to confuse with them, and whom both he and Socrates
|
|
ludicrously describe as experimenting by mere auscultation on the
|
|
intervals of sounds. Both of these fall short in different degrees of
|
|
the Platonic idea of harmony, which must be studied in a purely
|
|
abstract way, first by the method of problems, and secondly as a part of
|
|
universal knowledge in relation to the idea of good.
|
|
|
|
The allegory has a political as well as a philosophical meaning. The
|
|
den or cave represents the narrow sphere of politics or law (compare the
|
|
description of the philosopher and lawyer in the Theaetetus), and
|
|
the light of the eternal ideas is supposed to exercise a disturbing
|
|
influence on the minds of those who return to this lower world. In other
|
|
words, their principles are too wide for practical application; they are
|
|
looking far away into the past and future, when their business is with
|
|
the present. The ideal is not easily reduced to the conditions of actual
|
|
life, and may often be at variance with them. And at first, those who
|
|
return are unable to compete with the inhabitants of the den in the
|
|
measurement of the shadows, and are derided and persecuted by them; but
|
|
after a while they see the things below in far truer proportions than
|
|
those who have never ascended into the upper world. The difference
|
|
between the politician turned into a philosopher and the philosopher
|
|
turned into a politician, is symbolized by the two kinds of disordered
|
|
eyesight, the one which is experienced by the captive who is transferred
|
|
from darkness to day, the other, of the heavenly messenger who
|
|
voluntarily for the good of his fellow-men descends into the den. In
|
|
what way the brighter light is to dawn on the inhabitants of the lower
|
|
world, or how the idea of good is to become the guiding principle of
|
|
politics, is left unexplained by Plato. Like the nature and divisions of
|
|
dialectic, of which Glaucon impatiently demands to be informed, perhaps
|
|
he would have said that the explanation could not be given except to a
|
|
disciple of the previous sciences. (Symposium.)
|
|
|
|
Many illustrations of this part of the Republic may be found in modern
|
|
Politics and in daily life. For among ourselves, too, there have
|
|
been two sorts of Politicians or Statesmen, whose eyesight has become
|
|
disordered in two different ways. First, there have been great men who,
|
|
in the language of Burke, 'have been too much given to general
|
|
maxims,' who, like J.S. Mill or Burke himself, have been theorists or
|
|
philosophers before they were politicians, or who, having been students
|
|
of history, have allowed some great historical parallel, such as the
|
|
English Revolution of 1688, or possibly Athenian democracy or Roman
|
|
Imperialism, to be the medium through which they viewed contemporary
|
|
events. Or perhaps the long projecting shadow of some existing
|
|
institution may have darkened their vision. The Church of the future,
|
|
the Commonwealth of the future, the Society of the future, have
|
|
so absorbed their minds, that they are unable to see in their true
|
|
proportions the Politics of to-day. They have been intoxicated with
|
|
great ideas, such as liberty, or equality, or the greatest happiness of
|
|
the greatest number, or the brotherhood of humanity, and they no
|
|
longer care to consider how these ideas must be limited in practice or
|
|
harmonized with the conditions of human life. They are full of light,
|
|
but the light to them has become only a sort of luminous mist or
|
|
blindness. Almost every one has known some enthusiastic half-educated
|
|
person, who sees everything at false distances, and in erroneous
|
|
proportions.
|
|
|
|
With this disorder of eyesight may be contrasted another--of those who
|
|
see not far into the distance, but what is near only; who have been
|
|
engaged all their lives in a trade or a profession; who are limited to
|
|
a set or sect of their own. Men of this kind have no universal except
|
|
their own interests or the interests of their class, no principle but
|
|
the opinion of persons like themselves, no knowledge of affairs beyond
|
|
what they pick up in the streets or at their club. Suppose them to be
|
|
sent into a larger world, to undertake some higher calling, from being
|
|
tradesmen to turn generals or politicians, from being schoolmasters to
|
|
become philosophers:--or imagine them on a sudden to receive an inward
|
|
light which reveals to them for the first time in their lives a higher
|
|
idea of God and the existence of a spiritual world, by this sudden
|
|
conversion or change is not their daily life likely to be upset; and on
|
|
the other hand will not many of their old prejudices and narrownesses
|
|
still adhere to them long after they have begun to take a more
|
|
comprehensive view of human things? From familiar examples like these we
|
|
may learn what Plato meant by the eyesight which is liable to two kinds
|
|
of disorders.
|
|
|
|
Nor have we any difficulty in drawing a parallel between the young
|
|
Athenian in the fifth century before Christ who became unsettled by new
|
|
ideas, and the student of a modern University who has been the subject
|
|
of a similar 'aufklarung.' We too observe that when young men begin to
|
|
criticise customary beliefs, or to analyse the constitution of human
|
|
nature, they are apt to lose hold of solid principle (Greek). They are
|
|
like trees which have been frequently transplanted. The earth about them
|
|
is loose, and they have no roots reaching far into the soil. They 'light
|
|
upon every flower,' following their own wayward wills, or because the
|
|
wind blows them. They catch opinions, as diseases are caught--when
|
|
they are in the air. Borne hither and thither, 'they speedily fall
|
|
into beliefs' the opposite of those in which they were brought up. They
|
|
hardly retain the distinction of right and wrong; they seem to think one
|
|
thing as good as another. They suppose themselves to be searching after
|
|
truth when they are playing the game of 'follow my leader.' They fall
|
|
in love 'at first sight' with paradoxes respecting morality, some fancy
|
|
about art, some novelty or eccentricity in religion, and like lovers
|
|
they are so absorbed for a time in their new notion that they can think
|
|
of nothing else. The resolution of some philosophical or theological
|
|
question seems to them more interesting and important than any
|
|
substantial knowledge of literature or science or even than a good life.
|
|
Like the youth in the Philebus, they are ready to discourse to any one
|
|
about a new philosophy. They are generally the disciples of some eminent
|
|
professor or sophist, whom they rather imitate than understand. They may
|
|
be counted happy if in later years they retain some of the simple truths
|
|
which they acquired in early education, and which they may, perhaps,
|
|
find to be worth all the rest. Such is the picture which Plato draws and
|
|
which we only reproduce, partly in his own words, of the dangers which
|
|
beset youth in times of transition, when old opinions are fading
|
|
away and the new are not yet firmly established. Their condition is
|
|
ingeniously compared by him to that of a supposititious son, who has
|
|
made the discovery that his reputed parents are not his real ones, and,
|
|
in consequence, they have lost their authority over him.
|
|
|
|
The distinction between the mathematician and the dialectician is
|
|
also noticeable. Plato is very well aware that the faculty of the
|
|
mathematician is quite distinct from the higher philosophical sense
|
|
which recognizes and combines first principles. The contempt which
|
|
he expresses for distinctions of words, the danger of involuntary
|
|
falsehood, the apology which Socrates makes for his earnestness of
|
|
speech, are highly characteristic of the Platonic style and mode of
|
|
thought. The quaint notion that if Palamedes was the inventor of number
|
|
Agamemnon could not have counted his feet; the art by which we are made
|
|
to believe that this State of ours is not a dream only; the gravity
|
|
with which the first step is taken in the actual creation of the State,
|
|
namely, the sending out of the city all who had arrived at ten years of
|
|
age, in order to expedite the business of education by a generation, are
|
|
also truly Platonic. (For the last, compare the passage at the end of
|
|
the third book, in which he expects the lie about the earthborn men to
|
|
be believed in the second generation.)
|
|
|
|
BOOK VIII. And so we have arrived at the conclusion, that in the perfect
|
|
State wives and children are to be in common; and the education and
|
|
pursuits of men and women, both in war and peace, are to be common, and
|
|
kings are to be philosophers and warriors, and the soldiers of the State
|
|
are to live together, having all things in common; and they are to be
|
|
warrior athletes, receiving no pay but only their food, from the other
|
|
citizens. Now let us return to the point at which we digressed. 'That is
|
|
easily done,' he replied: 'You were speaking of the State which you had
|
|
constructed, and of the individual who answered to this, both of whom
|
|
you affirmed to be good; and you said that of inferior States there were
|
|
four forms and four individuals corresponding to them, which although
|
|
deficient in various degrees, were all of them worth inspecting with
|
|
a view to determining the relative happiness or misery of the best or
|
|
worst man. Then Polemarchus and Adeimantus interrupted you, and this led
|
|
to another argument,--and so here we are.' Suppose that we put ourselves
|
|
again in the same position, and do you repeat your question. 'I should
|
|
like to know of what constitutions you were speaking?' Besides the
|
|
perfect State there are only four of any note in Hellas:--first, the
|
|
famous Lacedaemonian or Cretan commonwealth; secondly, oligarchy, a
|
|
State full of evils; thirdly, democracy, which follows next in order;
|
|
fourthly, tyranny, which is the disease or death of all government.
|
|
Now, States are not made of 'oak and rock,' but of flesh and blood; and
|
|
therefore as there are five States there must be five human natures in
|
|
individuals, which correspond to them. And first, there is the ambitious
|
|
nature, which answers to the Lacedaemonian State; secondly, the
|
|
oligarchical nature; thirdly, the democratical; and fourthly, the
|
|
tyrannical. This last will have to be compared with the perfectly just,
|
|
which is the fifth, that we may know which is the happier, and then we
|
|
shall be able to determine whether the argument of Thrasymachus or our
|
|
own is the more convincing. And as before we began with the State and
|
|
went on to the individual, so now, beginning with timocracy, let us
|
|
go on to the timocratical man, and then proceed to the other forms of
|
|
government, and the individuals who answer to them.
|
|
|
|
But how did timocracy arise out of the perfect State? Plainly, like
|
|
all changes of government, from division in the rulers. But whence came
|
|
division? 'Sing, heavenly Muses,' as Homer says;--let them condescend to
|
|
answer us, as if we were children, to whom they put on a solemn face
|
|
in jest. 'And what will they say?' They will say that human things are
|
|
fated to decay, and even the perfect State will not escape from this
|
|
law of destiny, when 'the wheel comes full circle' in a period short or
|
|
long. Plants or animals have times of fertility and sterility, which the
|
|
intelligence of rulers because alloyed by sense will not enable them to
|
|
ascertain, and children will be born out of season. For whereas divine
|
|
creations are in a perfect cycle or number, the human creation is in
|
|
a number which declines from perfection, and has four terms and three
|
|
intervals of numbers, increasing, waning, assimilating, dissimilating,
|
|
and yet perfectly commensurate with each other. The base of the number
|
|
with a fourth added (or which is 3:4), multiplied by five and cubed,
|
|
gives two harmonies:--the first a square number, which is a hundred
|
|
times the base (or a hundred times a hundred); the second, an oblong,
|
|
being a hundred squares of the rational diameter of a figure the side of
|
|
which is five, subtracting one from each square or two perfect squares
|
|
from all, and adding a hundred cubes of three. This entire number is
|
|
geometrical and contains the rule or law of generation. When this law is
|
|
neglected marriages will be unpropitious; the inferior offspring who are
|
|
then born will in time become the rulers; the State will decline, and
|
|
education fall into decay; gymnastic will be preferred to music, and
|
|
the gold and silver and brass and iron will form a chaotic mass--thus
|
|
division will arise. Such is the Muses' answer to our question. 'And a
|
|
true answer, of course:--but what more have they to say?' They say that
|
|
the two races, the iron and brass, and the silver and gold, will draw
|
|
the State different ways;--the one will take to trade and moneymaking,
|
|
and the others, having the true riches and not caring for money, will
|
|
resist them: the contest will end in a compromise; they will agree to
|
|
have private property, and will enslave their fellow-citizens who were
|
|
once their friends and nurturers. But they will retain their warlike
|
|
character, and will be chiefly occupied in fighting and exercising rule.
|
|
Thus arises timocracy, which is intermediate between aristocracy and
|
|
oligarchy.
|
|
|
|
The new form of government resembles the ideal in obedience to rulers
|
|
and contempt for trade, and having common meals, and in devotion
|
|
to warlike and gymnastic exercises. But corruption has crept into
|
|
philosophy, and simplicity of character, which was once her note, is now
|
|
looked for only in the military class. Arts of war begin to prevail over
|
|
arts of peace; the ruler is no longer a philosopher; as in oligarchies,
|
|
there springs up among them an extravagant love of gain--get another
|
|
man's and save your own, is their principle; and they have dark places
|
|
in which they hoard their gold and silver, for the use of their women
|
|
and others; they take their pleasures by stealth, like boys who are
|
|
running away from their father--the law; and their education is not
|
|
inspired by the Muse, but imposed by the strong arm of power. The
|
|
leading characteristic of this State is party spirit and ambition.
|
|
|
|
And what manner of man answers to such a State? 'In love of contention,'
|
|
replied Adeimantus, 'he will be like our friend Glaucon.' In that
|
|
respect, perhaps, but not in others. He is self-asserting and
|
|
ill-educated, yet fond of literature, although not himself a
|
|
speaker,--fierce with slaves, but obedient to rulers, a lover of power
|
|
and honour, which he hopes to gain by deeds of arms,--fond, too, of
|
|
gymnastics and of hunting. As he advances in years he grows avaricious,
|
|
for he has lost philosophy, which is the only saviour and guardian of
|
|
men. His origin is as follows:--His father is a good man dwelling in an
|
|
ill-ordered State, who has retired from politics in order that he may
|
|
lead a quiet life. His mother is angry at her loss of precedence among
|
|
other women; she is disgusted at her husband's selfishness, and she
|
|
expatiates to her son on the unmanliness and indolence of his father.
|
|
The old family servant takes up the tale, and says to the youth:--'When
|
|
you grow up you must be more of a man than your father.' All the world
|
|
are agreed that he who minds his own business is an idiot, while a
|
|
busybody is highly honoured and esteemed. The young man compares this
|
|
spirit with his father's words and ways, and as he is naturally well
|
|
disposed, although he has suffered from evil influences, he rests at a
|
|
middle point and becomes ambitious and a lover of honour.
|
|
|
|
And now let us set another city over against another man. The next form
|
|
of government is oligarchy, in which the rule is of the rich only; nor
|
|
is it difficult to see how such a State arises. The decline begins with
|
|
the possession of gold and silver; illegal modes of expenditure are
|
|
invented; one draws another on, and the multitude are infected; riches
|
|
outweigh virtue; lovers of money take the place of lovers of honour;
|
|
misers of politicians; and, in time, political privileges are confined
|
|
by law to the rich, who do not shrink from violence in order to effect
|
|
their purposes.
|
|
|
|
Thus much of the origin,--let us next consider the evils of oligarchy.
|
|
Would a man who wanted to be safe on a voyage take a bad pilot because
|
|
he was rich, or refuse a good one because he was poor? And does not the
|
|
analogy apply still more to the State? And there are yet greater evils:
|
|
two nations are struggling together in one--the rich and the poor; and
|
|
the rich dare not put arms into the hands of the poor, and are unwilling
|
|
to pay for defenders out of their own money. And have we not already
|
|
condemned that State in which the same persons are warriors as well
|
|
as shopkeepers? The greatest evil of all is that a man may sell his
|
|
property and have no place in the State; while there is one class which
|
|
has enormous wealth, the other is entirely destitute. But observe that
|
|
these destitutes had not really any more of the governing nature in them
|
|
when they were rich than now that they are poor; they were miserable
|
|
spendthrifts always. They are the drones of the hive; only whereas the
|
|
actual drone is unprovided by nature with a sting, the two-legged things
|
|
whom we call drones are some of them without stings and some of them
|
|
have dreadful stings; in other words, there are paupers and there are
|
|
rogues. These are never far apart; and in oligarchical cities, where
|
|
nearly everybody is a pauper who is not a ruler, you will find abundance
|
|
of both. And this evil state of society originates in bad education and
|
|
bad government.
|
|
|
|
Like State, like man,--the change in the latter begins with the
|
|
representative of timocracy; he walks at first in the ways of his
|
|
father, who may have been a statesman, or general, perhaps; and
|
|
presently he sees him 'fallen from his high estate,' the victim of
|
|
informers, dying in prison or exile, or by the hand of the executioner.
|
|
The lesson which he thus receives, makes him cautious; he leaves
|
|
politics, represses his pride, and saves pence. Avarice is enthroned as
|
|
his bosom's lord, and assumes the style of the Great King; the rational
|
|
and spirited elements sit humbly on the ground at either side, the one
|
|
immersed in calculation, the other absorbed in the admiration of
|
|
wealth. The love of honour turns to love of money; the conversion
|
|
is instantaneous. The man is mean, saving, toiling, the slave of one
|
|
passion which is the master of the rest: Is he not the very image of the
|
|
State? He has had no education, or he would never have allowed the blind
|
|
god of riches to lead the dance within him. And being uneducated he will
|
|
have many slavish desires, some beggarly, some knavish, breeding in his
|
|
soul. If he is the trustee of an orphan, and has the power to defraud,
|
|
he will soon prove that he is not without the will, and that his
|
|
passions are only restrained by fear and not by reason. Hence he leads a
|
|
divided existence; in which the better desires mostly prevail. But when
|
|
he is contending for prizes and other distinctions, he is afraid to
|
|
incur a loss which is to be repaid only by barren honour; in time of
|
|
war he fights with a small part of his resources, and usually keeps his
|
|
money and loses the victory.
|
|
|
|
Next comes democracy and the democratic man, out of oligarchy and
|
|
the oligarchical man. Insatiable avarice is the ruling passion of an
|
|
oligarchy; and they encourage expensive habits in order that they may
|
|
gain by the ruin of extravagant youth. Thus men of family often lose
|
|
their property or rights of citizenship; but they remain in the city,
|
|
full of hatred against the new owners of their estates and ripe for
|
|
revolution. The usurer with stooping walk pretends not to see them;
|
|
he passes by, and leaves his sting--that is, his money--in some other
|
|
victim; and many a man has to pay the parent or principal sum multiplied
|
|
into a family of children, and is reduced into a state of dronage by
|
|
him. The only way of diminishing the evil is either to limit a man in
|
|
his use of his property, or to insist that he shall lend at his own
|
|
risk. But the ruling class do not want remedies; they care only for
|
|
money, and are as careless of virtue as the poorest of the citizens.
|
|
Now there are occasions on which the governors and the governed meet
|
|
together,--at festivals, on a journey, voyaging or fighting. The sturdy
|
|
pauper finds that in the hour of danger he is not despised; he sees
|
|
the rich man puffing and panting, and draws the conclusion which he
|
|
privately imparts to his companions,--'that our people are not good for
|
|
much;' and as a sickly frame is made ill by a mere touch from without,
|
|
or sometimes without external impulse is ready to fall to pieces of
|
|
itself, so from the least cause, or with none at all, the city falls ill
|
|
and fights a battle for life or death. And democracy comes into power
|
|
when the poor are the victors, killing some and exiling some, and giving
|
|
equal shares in the government to all the rest.
|
|
|
|
The manner of life in such a State is that of democrats; there is
|
|
freedom and plainness of speech, and every man does what is right in
|
|
his own eyes, and has his own way of life. Hence arise the most various
|
|
developments of character; the State is like a piece of embroidery of
|
|
which the colours and figures are the manners of men, and there are many
|
|
who, like women and children, prefer this variety to real beauty and
|
|
excellence. The State is not one but many, like a bazaar at which you
|
|
can buy anything. The great charm is, that you may do as you like; you
|
|
may govern if you like, let it alone if you like; go to war and make
|
|
peace if you feel disposed, and all quite irrespective of anybody
|
|
else. When you condemn men to death they remain alive all the same; a
|
|
gentleman is desired to go into exile, and he stalks about the streets
|
|
like a hero; and nobody sees him or cares for him. Observe, too,
|
|
how grandly Democracy sets her foot upon all our fine theories of
|
|
education,--how little she cares for the training of her statesmen! The
|
|
only qualification which she demands is the profession of patriotism.
|
|
Such is democracy;--a pleasing, lawless, various sort of government,
|
|
distributing equality to equals and unequals alike.
|
|
|
|
Let us now inspect the individual democrat; and first, as in the case
|
|
of the State, we will trace his antecedents. He is the son of a miserly
|
|
oligarch, and has been taught by him to restrain the love of unnecessary
|
|
pleasures. Perhaps I ought to explain this latter term:--Necessary
|
|
pleasures are those which are good, and which we cannot do without;
|
|
unnecessary pleasures are those which do no good, and of which the
|
|
desire might be eradicated by early training. For example, the pleasures
|
|
of eating and drinking are necessary and healthy, up to a certain point;
|
|
beyond that point they are alike hurtful to body and mind, and the
|
|
excess may be avoided. When in excess, they may be rightly called
|
|
expensive pleasures, in opposition to the useful ones. And the drone, as
|
|
we called him, is the slave of these unnecessary pleasures and desires,
|
|
whereas the miserly oligarch is subject only to the necessary.
|
|
|
|
The oligarch changes into the democrat in the following manner:--The
|
|
youth who has had a miserly bringing up, gets a taste of the drone's
|
|
honey; he meets with wild companions, who introduce him to every new
|
|
pleasure. As in the State, so in the individual, there are allies on
|
|
both sides, temptations from without and passions from within; there is
|
|
reason also and external influences of parents and friends in alliance
|
|
with the oligarchical principle; and the two factions are in violent
|
|
conflict with one another. Sometimes the party of order prevails, but
|
|
then again new desires and new disorders arise, and the whole mob of
|
|
passions gets possession of the Acropolis, that is to say, the soul,
|
|
which they find void and unguarded by true words and works. Falsehoods
|
|
and illusions ascend to take their place; the prodigal goes back into
|
|
the country of the Lotophagi or drones, and openly dwells there. And if
|
|
any offer of alliance or parley of individual elders comes from home,
|
|
the false spirits shut the gates of the castle and permit no one to
|
|
enter,--there is a battle, and they gain the victory; and straightway
|
|
making alliance with the desires, they banish modesty, which they call
|
|
folly, and send temperance over the border. When the house has been
|
|
swept and garnished, they dress up the exiled vices, and, crowning them
|
|
with garlands, bring them back under new names. Insolence they call good
|
|
breeding, anarchy freedom, waste magnificence, impudence courage. Such
|
|
is the process by which the youth passes from the necessary pleasures to
|
|
the unnecessary. After a while he divides his time impartially between
|
|
them; and perhaps, when he gets older and the violence of passion
|
|
has abated, he restores some of the exiles and lives in a sort of
|
|
equilibrium, indulging first one pleasure and then another; and if
|
|
reason comes and tells him that some pleasures are good and honourable,
|
|
and others bad and vile, he shakes his head and says that he can make
|
|
no distinction between them. Thus he lives in the fancy of the hour;
|
|
sometimes he takes to drink, and then he turns abstainer; he practises
|
|
in the gymnasium or he does nothing at all; then again he would be a
|
|
philosopher or a politician; or again, he would be a warrior or a man of
|
|
business; he is
|
|
|
|
'Every thing by starts and nothing long.'
|
|
|
|
There remains still the finest and fairest of all men and all
|
|
States--tyranny and the tyrant. Tyranny springs from democracy much as
|
|
democracy springs from oligarchy. Both arise from excess; the one from
|
|
excess of wealth, the other from excess of freedom. 'The great natural
|
|
good of life,' says the democrat, 'is freedom.' And this exclusive love
|
|
of freedom and regardlessness of everything else, is the cause of the
|
|
change from democracy to tyranny. The State demands the strong wine of
|
|
freedom, and unless her rulers give her a plentiful draught, punishes
|
|
and insults them; equality and fraternity of governors and governed is
|
|
the approved principle. Anarchy is the law, not of the State only, but
|
|
of private houses, and extends even to the animals. Father and son,
|
|
citizen and foreigner, teacher and pupil, old and young, are all on a
|
|
level; fathers and teachers fear their sons and pupils, and the wisdom
|
|
of the young man is a match for the elder, and the old imitate the
|
|
jaunty manners of the young because they are afraid of being thought
|
|
morose. Slaves are on a level with their masters and mistresses, and
|
|
there is no difference between men and women. Nay, the very animals in
|
|
a democratic State have a freedom which is unknown in other places. The
|
|
she-dogs are as good as their she-mistresses, and horses and asses march
|
|
along with dignity and run their noses against anybody who comes in
|
|
their way. 'That has often been my experience.' At last the citizens
|
|
become so sensitive that they cannot endure the yoke of laws, written or
|
|
unwritten; they would have no man call himself their master. Such is the
|
|
glorious beginning of things out of which tyranny springs. 'Glorious,
|
|
indeed; but what is to follow?' The ruin of oligarchy is the ruin of
|
|
democracy; for there is a law of contraries; the excess of freedom
|
|
passes into the excess of slavery, and the greater the freedom the
|
|
greater the slavery. You will remember that in the oligarchy were found
|
|
two classes--rogues and paupers, whom we compared to drones with and
|
|
without stings. These two classes are to the State what phlegm and bile
|
|
are to the human body; and the State-physician, or legislator, must get
|
|
rid of them, just as the bee-master keeps the drones out of the hive.
|
|
Now in a democracy, too, there are drones, but they are more numerous
|
|
and more dangerous than in the oligarchy; there they are inert and
|
|
unpractised, here they are full of life and animation; and the keener
|
|
sort speak and act, while the others buzz about the bema and prevent
|
|
their opponents from being heard. And there is another class in
|
|
democratic States, of respectable, thriving individuals, who can be
|
|
squeezed when the drones have need of their possessions; there is
|
|
moreover a third class, who are the labourers and the artisans, and
|
|
they make up the mass of the people. When the people meet, they
|
|
are omnipotent, but they cannot be brought together unless they are
|
|
attracted by a little honey; and the rich are made to supply the honey,
|
|
of which the demagogues keep the greater part themselves, giving a taste
|
|
only to the mob. Their victims attempt to resist; they are driven mad
|
|
by the stings of the drones, and so become downright oligarchs in
|
|
self-defence. Then follow informations and convictions for treason. The
|
|
people have some protector whom they nurse into greatness, and from this
|
|
root the tree of tyranny springs. The nature of the change is indicated
|
|
in the old fable of the temple of Zeus Lycaeus, which tells how he who
|
|
tastes human flesh mixed up with the flesh of other victims will turn
|
|
into a wolf. Even so the protector, who tastes human blood, and slays
|
|
some and exiles others with or without law, who hints at abolition of
|
|
debts and division of lands, must either perish or become a wolf--that
|
|
is, a tyrant. Perhaps he is driven out, but he soon comes back from
|
|
exile; and then if his enemies cannot get rid of him by lawful means,
|
|
they plot his assassination. Thereupon the friend of the people makes
|
|
his well-known request to them for a body-guard, which they readily
|
|
grant, thinking only of his danger and not of their own. Now let the
|
|
rich man make to himself wings, for he will never run away again if he
|
|
does not do so then. And the Great Protector, having crushed all his
|
|
rivals, stands proudly erect in the chariot of State, a full-blown
|
|
tyrant: Let us enquire into the nature of his happiness.
|
|
|
|
In the early days of his tyranny he smiles and beams upon everybody; he
|
|
is not a 'dominus,' no, not he: he has only come to put an end to debt
|
|
and the monopoly of land. Having got rid of foreign enemies, he makes
|
|
himself necessary to the State by always going to war. He is thus
|
|
enabled to depress the poor by heavy taxes, and so keep them at work;
|
|
and he can get rid of bolder spirits by handing them over to the enemy.
|
|
Then comes unpopularity; some of his old associates have the courage to
|
|
oppose him. The consequence is, that he has to make a purgation of the
|
|
State; but, unlike the physician who purges away the bad, he must get
|
|
rid of the high-spirited, the wise and the wealthy; for he has no choice
|
|
between death and a life of shame and dishonour. And the more hated he
|
|
is, the more he will require trusty guards; but how will he obtain them?
|
|
'They will come flocking like birds--for pay.' Will he not rather obtain
|
|
them on the spot? He will take the slaves from their owners and make
|
|
them his body-guard; these are his trusted friends, who admire and
|
|
look up to him. Are not the tragic poets wise who magnify and exalt the
|
|
tyrant, and say that he is wise by association with the wise? And are
|
|
not their praises of tyranny alone a sufficient reason why we should
|
|
exclude them from our State? They may go to other cities, and gather the
|
|
mob about them with fine words, and change commonwealths into tyrannies
|
|
and democracies, receiving honours and rewards for their services; but
|
|
the higher they and their friends ascend constitution hill, the more
|
|
their honour will fail and become 'too asthmatic to mount.' To return to
|
|
the tyrant--How will he support that rare army of his? First, by robbing
|
|
the temples of their treasures, which will enable him to lighten the
|
|
taxes; then he will take all his father's property, and spend it on
|
|
his companions, male or female. Now his father is the demus, and if the
|
|
demus gets angry, and says that a great hulking son ought not to be a
|
|
burden on his parents, and bids him and his riotous crew begone, then
|
|
will the parent know what a monster he has been nurturing, and that the
|
|
son whom he would fain expel is too strong for him. 'You do not mean to
|
|
say that he will beat his father?' Yes, he will, after having taken away
|
|
his arms. 'Then he is a parricide and a cruel, unnatural son.' And the
|
|
people have jumped from the fear of slavery into slavery, out of the
|
|
smoke into the fire. Thus liberty, when out of all order and reason,
|
|
passes into the worst form of servitude...
|
|
|
|
In the previous books Plato has described the ideal State; now he
|
|
returns to the perverted or declining forms, on which he had lightly
|
|
touched at the end of Book IV. These he describes in a succession of
|
|
parallels between the individuals and the States, tracing the origin of
|
|
either in the State or individual which has preceded them. He begins
|
|
by asking the point at which he digressed; and is thus led shortly to
|
|
recapitulate the substance of the three former books, which also contain
|
|
a parallel of the philosopher and the State.
|
|
|
|
Of the first decline he gives no intelligible account; he would not have
|
|
liked to admit the most probable causes of the fall of his ideal State,
|
|
which to us would appear to be the impracticability of communism or the
|
|
natural antagonism of the ruling and subject classes. He throws a
|
|
veil of mystery over the origin of the decline, which he attributes to
|
|
ignorance of the law of population. Of this law the famous geometrical
|
|
figure or number is the expression. Like the ancients in general, he had
|
|
no idea of the gradual perfectibility of man or of the education of the
|
|
human race. His ideal was not to be attained in the course of ages, but
|
|
was to spring in full armour from the head of the legislator. When good
|
|
laws had been given, he thought only of the manner in which they were
|
|
likely to be corrupted, or of how they might be filled up in detail or
|
|
restored in accordance with their original spirit. He appears not to
|
|
have reflected upon the full meaning of his own words, 'In the brief
|
|
space of human life, nothing great can be accomplished'; or again, as he
|
|
afterwards says in the Laws, 'Infinite time is the maker of cities.' The
|
|
order of constitutions which is adopted by him represents an order of
|
|
thought rather than a succession of time, and may be considered as the
|
|
first attempt to frame a philosophy of history.
|
|
|
|
The first of these declining States is timocracy, or the government of
|
|
soldiers and lovers of honour, which answers to the Spartan State; this
|
|
is a government of force, in which education is not inspired by the
|
|
Muses, but imposed by the law, and in which all the finer elements of
|
|
organization have disappeared. The philosopher himself has lost the
|
|
love of truth, and the soldier, who is of a simpler and honester nature,
|
|
rules in his stead. The individual who answers to timocracy has some
|
|
noticeable qualities. He is described as ill educated, but, like the
|
|
Spartan, a lover of literature; and although he is a harsh master to his
|
|
servants he has no natural superiority over them. His character is
|
|
based upon a reaction against the circumstances of his father, who in
|
|
a troubled city has retired from politics; and his mother, who is
|
|
dissatisfied at her own position, is always urging him towards the life
|
|
of political ambition. Such a character may have had this origin, and
|
|
indeed Livy attributes the Licinian laws to a feminine jealousy of a
|
|
similar kind. But there is obviously no connection between the manner
|
|
in which the timocratic State springs out of the ideal, and the mere
|
|
accident by which the timocratic man is the son of a retired statesman.
|
|
|
|
The two next stages in the decline of constitutions have even less
|
|
historical foundation. For there is no trace in Greek history of a
|
|
polity like the Spartan or Cretan passing into an oligarchy of wealth,
|
|
or of the oligarchy of wealth passing into a democracy. The order of
|
|
history appears to be different; first, in the Homeric times there is
|
|
the royal or patriarchal form of government, which a century or two
|
|
later was succeeded by an oligarchy of birth rather than of wealth, and
|
|
in which wealth was only the accident of the hereditary possession of
|
|
land and power. Sometimes this oligarchical government gave way to a
|
|
government based upon a qualification of property, which, according to
|
|
Aristotle's mode of using words, would have been called a timocracy;
|
|
and this in some cities, as at Athens, became the conducting medium to
|
|
democracy. But such was not the necessary order of succession in States;
|
|
nor, indeed, can any order be discerned in the endless fluctuation of
|
|
Greek history (like the tides in the Euripus), except, perhaps, in the
|
|
almost uniform tendency from monarchy to aristocracy in the earliest
|
|
times. At first sight there appears to be a similar inversion in the
|
|
last step of the Platonic succession; for tyranny, instead of being the
|
|
natural end of democracy, in early Greek history appears rather as a
|
|
stage leading to democracy; the reign of Peisistratus and his sons is
|
|
an episode which comes between the legislation of Solon and the
|
|
constitution of Cleisthenes; and some secret cause common to them all
|
|
seems to have led the greater part of Hellas at her first appearance
|
|
in the dawn of history, e.g. Athens, Argos, Corinth, Sicyon, and nearly
|
|
every State with the exception of Sparta, through a similar stage of
|
|
tyranny which ended either in oligarchy or democracy. But then we must
|
|
remember that Plato is describing rather the contemporary governments
|
|
of the Sicilian States, which alternated between democracy and tyranny,
|
|
than the ancient history of Athens or Corinth.
|
|
|
|
The portrait of the tyrant himself is just such as the later Greek
|
|
delighted to draw of Phalaris and Dionysius, in which, as in the lives
|
|
of mediaeval saints or mythic heroes, the conduct and actions of one
|
|
were attributed to another in order to fill up the outline. There was
|
|
no enormity which the Greek was not today to believe of them; the tyrant
|
|
was the negation of government and law; his assassination was glorious;
|
|
there was no crime, however unnatural, which might not with probability
|
|
be attributed to him. In this, Plato was only following the common
|
|
thought of his countrymen, which he embellished and exaggerated with all
|
|
the power of his genius. There is no need to suppose that he drew
|
|
from life; or that his knowledge of tyrants is derived from a personal
|
|
acquaintance with Dionysius. The manner in which he speaks of them would
|
|
rather tend to render doubtful his ever having 'consorted' with them, or
|
|
entertained the schemes, which are attributed to him in the Epistles, of
|
|
regenerating Sicily by their help.
|
|
|
|
Plato in a hyperbolical and serio-comic vein exaggerates the follies of
|
|
democracy which he also sees reflected in social life. To him democracy
|
|
is a state of individualism or dissolution; in which every one is doing
|
|
what is right in his own eyes. Of a people animated by a common spirit
|
|
of liberty, rising as one man to repel the Persian host, which is the
|
|
leading idea of democracy in Herodotus and Thucydides, he never seems to
|
|
think. But if he is not a believer in liberty, still less is he a lover
|
|
of tyranny. His deeper and more serious condemnation is reserved for the
|
|
tyrant, who is the ideal of wickedness and also of weakness, and who
|
|
in his utter helplessness and suspiciousness is leading an almost
|
|
impossible existence, without that remnant of good which, in Plato's
|
|
opinion, was required to give power to evil (Book I). This ideal of
|
|
wickedness living in helpless misery, is the reverse of that other
|
|
portrait of perfect injustice ruling in happiness and splendour, which
|
|
first of all Thrasymachus, and afterwards the sons of Ariston had drawn,
|
|
and is also the reverse of the king whose rule of life is the good of
|
|
his subjects.
|
|
|
|
Each of these governments and individuals has a corresponding
|
|
ethical gradation: the ideal State is under the rule of reason, not
|
|
extinguishing but harmonizing the passions, and training them in virtue;
|
|
in the timocracy and the timocratic man the constitution, whether of the
|
|
State or of the individual, is based, first, upon courage, and secondly,
|
|
upon the love of honour; this latter virtue, which is hardly to be
|
|
esteemed a virtue, has superseded all the rest. In the second stage of
|
|
decline the virtues have altogether disappeared, and the love of gain
|
|
has succeeded to them; in the third stage, or democracy, the various
|
|
passions are allowed to have free play, and the virtues and vices are
|
|
impartially cultivated. But this freedom, which leads to many curious
|
|
extravagances of character, is in reality only a state of weakness and
|
|
dissipation. At last, one monster passion takes possession of the whole
|
|
nature of man--this is tyranny. In all of them excess--the excess first
|
|
of wealth and then of freedom, is the element of decay.
|
|
|
|
The eighth book of the Republic abounds in pictures of life and fanciful
|
|
allusions; the use of metaphorical language is carried to a greater
|
|
extent than anywhere else in Plato. We may remark,
|
|
|
|
(1), the description of the two nations in one, which become more and
|
|
more divided in the Greek Republics, as in feudal times, and perhaps
|
|
also in our own;
|
|
|
|
(2), the notion of democracy expressed in a sort of Pythagorean formula
|
|
as equality among unequals;
|
|
|
|
(3), the free and easy ways of men and animals, which are characteristic
|
|
of liberty, as foreign mercenaries and universal mistrust are of the
|
|
tyrant;
|
|
|
|
(4), the proposal that mere debts should not be recoverable by law is a
|
|
speculation which has often been entertained by reformers of the law
|
|
in modern times, and is in harmony with the tendencies of modern
|
|
legislation. Debt and land were the two great difficulties of the
|
|
ancient lawgiver: in modern times we may be said to have almost, if not
|
|
quite, solved the first of these difficulties, but hardly the second.
|
|
|
|
Still more remarkable are the corresponding portraits of individuals:
|
|
there is the family picture of the father and mother and the old servant
|
|
of the timocratical man, and the outward respectability and inherent
|
|
meanness of the oligarchical; the uncontrolled licence and freedom of
|
|
the democrat, in which the young Alcibiades seems to be depicted, doing
|
|
right or wrong as he pleases, and who at last, like the prodigal,
|
|
goes into a far country (note here the play of language by which the
|
|
democratic man is himself represented under the image of a State having
|
|
a citadel and receiving embassies); and there is the wild-beast nature,
|
|
which breaks loose in his successor. The hit about the tyrant being a
|
|
parricide; the representation of the tyrant's life as an obscene dream;
|
|
the rhetorical surprise of a more miserable than the most miserable of
|
|
men in Book IX; the hint to the poets that if they are the friends of
|
|
tyrants there is no place for them in a constitutional State, and that
|
|
they are too clever not to see the propriety of their own expulsion; the
|
|
continuous image of the drones who are of two kinds, swelling at last
|
|
into the monster drone having wings (Book IX),--are among Plato's
|
|
happiest touches.
|
|
|
|
There remains to be considered the great difficulty of this book of the
|
|
Republic, the so-called number of the State. This is a puzzle almost as
|
|
great as the Number of the Beast in the Book of Revelation, and though
|
|
apparently known to Aristotle, is referred to by Cicero as a proverb of
|
|
obscurity (Ep. ad Att.). And some have imagined that there is no answer
|
|
to the puzzle, and that Plato has been practising upon his readers.
|
|
But such a deception as this is inconsistent with the manner in which
|
|
Aristotle speaks of the number (Pol.), and would have been ridiculous to
|
|
any reader of the Republic who was acquainted with Greek mathematics.
|
|
As little reason is there for supposing that Plato intentionally used
|
|
obscure expressions; the obscurity arises from our want of familiarity
|
|
with the subject. On the other hand, Plato himself indicates that he is
|
|
not altogether serious, and in describing his number as a solemn jest of
|
|
the Muses, he appears to imply some degree of satire on the symbolical
|
|
use of number. (Compare Cratylus; Protag.)
|
|
|
|
Our hope of understanding the passage depends principally on an accurate
|
|
study of the words themselves; on which a faint light is thrown by the
|
|
parallel passage in the ninth book. Another help is the allusion in
|
|
Aristotle, who makes the important remark that the latter part of the
|
|
passage (Greek) describes a solid figure. (Pol.--'He only says that
|
|
nothing is abiding, but that all things change in a certain cycle; and
|
|
that the origin of the change is a base of numbers which are in the
|
|
ratio of 4:3; and this when combined with a figure of five gives two
|
|
harmonies; he means when the number of this figure becomes solid.')
|
|
Some further clue may be gathered from the appearance of the Pythagorean
|
|
triangle, which is denoted by the numbers 3, 4, 5, and in which, as in
|
|
every right-angled triangle, the squares of the two lesser sides equal
|
|
the square of the hypotenuse (9 + 16 = 25).
|
|
|
|
Plato begins by speaking of a perfect or cyclical number (Tim.), i.e.
|
|
a number in which the sum of the divisors equals the whole; this is the
|
|
divine or perfect number in which all lesser cycles or revolutions are
|
|
complete. He also speaks of a human or imperfect number, having four
|
|
terms and three intervals of numbers which are related to one another in
|
|
certain proportions; these he converts into figures, and finds in
|
|
them when they have been raised to the third power certain elements of
|
|
number, which give two 'harmonies,' the one square, the other oblong;
|
|
but he does not say that the square number answers to the divine, or the
|
|
oblong number to the human cycle; nor is any intimation given that the
|
|
first or divine number represents the period of the world, the second
|
|
the period of the state, or of the human race as Zeller supposes; nor
|
|
is the divine number afterwards mentioned (Arist.). The second is the
|
|
number of generations or births, and presides over them in the same
|
|
mysterious manner in which the stars preside over them, or in which,
|
|
according to the Pythagoreans, opportunity, justice, marriage, are
|
|
represented by some number or figure. This is probably the number 216.
|
|
|
|
The explanation given in the text supposes the two harmonies to make up
|
|
the number 8000. This explanation derives a certain plausibility from
|
|
the circumstance that 8000 is the ancient number of the Spartan citizens
|
|
(Herod.), and would be what Plato might have called 'a number which
|
|
nearly concerns the population of a city'; the mysterious disappearance
|
|
of the Spartan population may possibly have suggested to him the first
|
|
cause of his decline of States. The lesser or square 'harmony,' of 400,
|
|
might be a symbol of the guardians,--the larger or oblong 'harmony,'
|
|
of the people, and the numbers 3, 4, 5 might refer respectively to the
|
|
three orders in the State or parts of the soul, the four virtues, the
|
|
five forms of government. The harmony of the musical scale, which
|
|
is elsewhere used as a symbol of the harmony of the state, is also
|
|
indicated. For the numbers 3, 4, 5, which represent the sides of the
|
|
Pythagorean triangle, also denote the intervals of the scale.
|
|
|
|
The terms used in the statement of the problem may be explained as
|
|
follows. A perfect number (Greek), as already stated, is one which is
|
|
equal to the sum of its divisors. Thus 6, which is the first perfect or
|
|
cyclical number, = 1 + 2 + 3. The words (Greek), 'terms' or 'notes,' and
|
|
(Greek), 'intervals,' are applicable to music as well as to number and
|
|
figure. (Greek) is the 'base' on which the whole calculation depends,
|
|
or the 'lowest term' from which it can be worked out. The words (Greek)
|
|
have been variously translated--'squared and cubed' (Donaldson),
|
|
'equalling and equalled in power' (Weber), 'by involution and
|
|
evolution,' i.e. by raising the power and extracting the root (as in
|
|
the translation). Numbers are called 'like and unlike' (Greek) when the
|
|
factors or the sides of the planes and cubes which they represent are
|
|
or are not in the same ratio: e.g. 8 and 27 = 2 cubed and 3 cubed; and
|
|
conversely. 'Waxing' (Greek) numbers, called also 'increasing' (Greek),
|
|
are those which are exceeded by the sum of their divisors: e.g. 12
|
|
and 18 are less than 16 and 21. 'Waning' (Greek) numbers, called also
|
|
'decreasing' (Greek) are those which succeed the sum of their divisors:
|
|
e.g. 8 and 27 exceed 7 and 13. The words translated 'commensurable
|
|
and agreeable to one another' (Greek) seem to be different ways of
|
|
describing the same relation, with more or less precision. They are
|
|
equivalent to 'expressible in terms having the same relation to one
|
|
another,' like the series 8, 12, 18, 27, each of which numbers is in the
|
|
relation of (1 and 1/2) to the preceding. The 'base,' or 'fundamental
|
|
number, which has 1/3 added to it' (1 and 1/3) = 4/3 or a musical
|
|
fourth. (Greek) is a 'proportion' of numbers as of musical notes,
|
|
applied either to the parts or factors of a single number or to the
|
|
relation of one number to another. The first harmony is a 'square'
|
|
number (Greek); the second harmony is an 'oblong' number (Greek), i.e. a
|
|
number representing a figure of which the opposite sides only are
|
|
equal. (Greek) = 'numbers squared from' or 'upon diameters'; (Greek)
|
|
= 'rational,' i.e. omitting fractions, (Greek), 'irrational,' i.e.
|
|
including fractions; e.g. 49 is a square of the rational diameter of a
|
|
figure the side of which = 5: 50, of an irrational diameter of the same.
|
|
For several of the explanations here given and for a good deal besides
|
|
I am indebted to an excellent article on the Platonic Number by Dr.
|
|
Donaldson (Proc. of the Philol. Society).
|
|
|
|
The conclusions which he draws from these data are summed up by him as
|
|
follows. Having assumed that the number of the perfect or divine cycle
|
|
is the number of the world, and the number of the imperfect cycle the
|
|
number of the state, he proceeds: 'The period of the world is defined
|
|
by the perfect number 6, that of the state by the cube of that number
|
|
or 216, which is the product of the last pair of terms in the Platonic
|
|
Tetractys (a series of seven terms, 1, 2, 3, 4, 9, 8, 27); and if
|
|
we take this as the basis of our computation, we shall have two cube
|
|
numbers (Greek), viz. 8 and 27; and the mean proportionals between
|
|
these, viz. 12 and 18, will furnish three intervals and four terms,
|
|
and these terms and intervals stand related to one another in the
|
|
sesqui-altera ratio, i.e. each term is to the preceding as 3/2. Now if
|
|
we remember that the number 216 = 8 x 27 = 3 cubed + 4 cubed + 5 cubed,
|
|
and 3 squared + 4 squared = 5 squared, we must admit that this
|
|
number implies the numbers 3, 4, 5, to which musicians attach so much
|
|
importance. And if we combine the ratio 4/3 with the number 5, or
|
|
multiply the ratios of the sides by the hypotenuse, we shall by first
|
|
squaring and then cubing obtain two expressions, which denote the ratio
|
|
of the two last pairs of terms in the Platonic Tetractys, the former
|
|
multiplied by the square, the latter by the cube of the number 10, the
|
|
sum of the first four digits which constitute the Platonic Tetractys.'
|
|
The two (Greek) he elsewhere explains as follows: 'The first (Greek) is
|
|
(Greek), in other words (4/3 x 5) all squared = 100 x 2 squared over 3
|
|
squared. The second (Greek), a cube of the same root, is described
|
|
as 100 multiplied (alpha) by the rational diameter of 5 diminished
|
|
by unity, i.e., as shown above, 48: (beta) by two incommensurable
|
|
diameters, i.e. the two first irrationals, or 2 and 3: and (gamma) by
|
|
the cube of 3, or 27. Thus we have (48 + 5 + 27) 100 = 1000 x 2 cubed.
|
|
This second harmony is to be the cube of the number of which the former
|
|
harmony is the square, and therefore must be divided by the cube of
|
|
3. In other words, the whole expression will be: (1), for the first
|
|
harmony, 400/9: (2), for the second harmony, 8000/27.'
|
|
|
|
The reasons which have inclined me to agree with Dr. Donaldson and also
|
|
with Schleiermacher in supposing that 216 is the Platonic number of
|
|
births are: (1) that it coincides with the description of the number
|
|
given in the first part of the passage (Greek...): (2) that the
|
|
number 216 with its permutations would have been familiar to a Greek
|
|
mathematician, though unfamiliar to us: (3) that 216 is the cube of
|
|
6, and also the sum of 3 cubed, 4 cubed, 5 cubed, the numbers 3, 4, 5
|
|
representing the Pythagorean triangle, of which the sides when squared
|
|
equal the square of the hypotenuse (9 + 16 = 25): (4) that it is also
|
|
the period of the Pythagorean Metempsychosis: (5) the three ultimate
|
|
terms or bases (3, 4, 5) of which 216 is composed answer to the third,
|
|
fourth, fifth in the musical scale: (6) that the number 216 is the
|
|
product of the cubes of 2 and 3, which are the two last terms in
|
|
the Platonic Tetractys: (7) that the Pythagorean triangle is said by
|
|
Plutarch (de Is. et Osir.), Proclus (super prima Eucl.), and Quintilian
|
|
(de Musica) to be contained in this passage, so that the tradition
|
|
of the school seems to point in the same direction: (8) that the
|
|
Pythagorean triangle is called also the figure of marriage (Greek).
|
|
|
|
But though agreeing with Dr. Donaldson thus far, I see no reason for
|
|
supposing, as he does, that the first or perfect number is the world,
|
|
the human or imperfect number the state; nor has he given any proof that
|
|
the second harmony is a cube. Nor do I think that (Greek) can mean
|
|
'two incommensurables,' which he arbitrarily assumes to be 2 and 3,
|
|
but rather, as the preceding clause implies, (Greek), i.e. two square
|
|
numbers based upon irrational diameters of a figure the side of which is
|
|
5 = 50 x 2.
|
|
|
|
The greatest objection to the translation is the sense given to the
|
|
words (Greek), 'a base of three with a third added to it, multiplied
|
|
by 5.' In this somewhat forced manner Plato introduces once more the
|
|
numbers of the Pythagorean triangle. But the coincidences in the numbers
|
|
which follow are in favour of the explanation. The first harmony of 400,
|
|
as has been already remarked, probably represents the rulers; the second
|
|
and oblong harmony of 7600, the people.
|
|
|
|
And here we take leave of the difficulty. The discovery of the riddle
|
|
would be useless, and would throw no light on ancient mathematics. The
|
|
point of interest is that Plato should have used such a symbol, and
|
|
that so much of the Pythagorean spirit should have prevailed in him. His
|
|
general meaning is that divine creation is perfect, and is represented
|
|
or presided over by a perfect or cyclical number; human generation is
|
|
imperfect, and represented or presided over by an imperfect number or
|
|
series of numbers. The number 5040, which is the number of the citizens
|
|
in the Laws, is expressly based by him on utilitarian grounds, namely,
|
|
the convenience of the number for division; it is also made up of
|
|
the first seven digits multiplied by one another. The contrast of the
|
|
perfect and imperfect number may have been easily suggested by the
|
|
corrections of the cycle, which were made first by Meton and secondly
|
|
by Callippus; (the latter is said to have been a pupil of Plato). Of the
|
|
degree of importance or of exactness to be attributed to the problem,
|
|
the number of the tyrant in Book IX (729 = 365 x 2), and the slight
|
|
correction of the error in the number 5040/12 (Laws), may furnish a
|
|
criterion. There is nothing surprising in the circumstance that those
|
|
who were seeking for order in nature and had found order in number,
|
|
should have imagined one to give law to the other. Plato believes in
|
|
a power of number far beyond what he could see realized in the world
|
|
around him, and he knows the great influence which 'the little matter
|
|
of 1, 2, 3' exercises upon education. He may even be thought to have a
|
|
prophetic anticipation of the discoveries of Quetelet and others, that
|
|
numbers depend upon numbers; e.g.--in population, the numbers of births
|
|
and the respective numbers of children born of either sex, on the
|
|
respective ages of parents, i.e. on other numbers.
|
|
|
|
BOOK IX. Last of all comes the tyrannical man, about whom we have to
|
|
enquire, Whence is he, and how does he live--in happiness or in misery?
|
|
There is, however, a previous question of the nature and number of
|
|
the appetites, which I should like to consider first. Some of them
|
|
are unlawful, and yet admit of being chastened and weakened in various
|
|
degrees by the power of reason and law. 'What appetites do you mean?' I
|
|
mean those which are awake when the reasoning powers are asleep, which
|
|
get up and walk about naked without any self-respect or shame; and there
|
|
is no conceivable folly or crime, however cruel or unnatural, of which,
|
|
in imagination, they may not be guilty. 'True,' he said; 'very true.'
|
|
But when a man's pulse beats temperately; and he has supped on a feast
|
|
of reason and come to a knowledge of himself before going to rest, and
|
|
has satisfied his desires just enough to prevent their perturbing his
|
|
reason, which remains clear and luminous, and when he is free from
|
|
quarrel and heat,--the visions which he has on his bed are least
|
|
irregular and abnormal. Even in good men there is such an irregular
|
|
wild-beast nature, which peers out in sleep.
|
|
|
|
To return:--You remember what was said of the democrat; that he was the
|
|
son of a miserly father, who encouraged the saving desires and repressed
|
|
the ornamental and expensive ones; presently the youth got into fine
|
|
company, and began to entertain a dislike to his father's narrow ways;
|
|
and being a better man than the corrupters of his youth, he came to a
|
|
mean, and led a life, not of lawless or slavish passion, but of regular
|
|
and successive indulgence. Now imagine that the youth has become a
|
|
father, and has a son who is exposed to the same temptations, and has
|
|
companions who lead him into every sort of iniquity, and parents and
|
|
friends who try to keep him right. The counsellors of evil find that
|
|
their only chance of retaining him is to implant in his soul a monster
|
|
drone, or love; while other desires buzz around him and mystify him with
|
|
sweet sounds and scents, this monster love takes possession of him,
|
|
and puts an end to every true or modest thought or wish. Love, like
|
|
drunkenness and madness, is a tyranny; and the tyrannical man, whether
|
|
made by nature or habit, is just a drinking, lusting, furious sort of
|
|
animal.
|
|
|
|
And how does such an one live? 'Nay, that you must tell me.' Well then,
|
|
I fancy that he will live amid revelries and harlotries, and love will
|
|
be the lord and master of the house. Many desires require much money,
|
|
and so he spends all that he has and borrows more; and when he has
|
|
nothing the young ravens are still in the nest in which they were
|
|
hatched, crying for food. Love urges them on; and they must be gratified
|
|
by force or fraud, or if not, they become painful and troublesome;
|
|
and as the new pleasures succeed the old ones, so will the son take
|
|
possession of the goods of his parents; if they show signs of refusing,
|
|
he will defraud and deceive them; and if they openly resist, what then?
|
|
'I can only say, that I should not much like to be in their place.'
|
|
But, O heavens, Adeimantus, to think that for some new-fangled and
|
|
unnecessary love he will give up his old father and mother, best and
|
|
dearest of friends, or enslave them to the fancies of the hour! Truly a
|
|
tyrannical son is a blessing to his father and mother! When there is no
|
|
more to be got out of them, he turns burglar or pickpocket, or robs a
|
|
temple. Love overmasters the thoughts of his youth, and he becomes
|
|
in sober reality the monster that he was sometimes in sleep. He waxes
|
|
strong in all violence and lawlessness; and is ready for any deed of
|
|
daring that will supply the wants of his rabble-rout. In a well-ordered
|
|
State there are only a few such, and these in time of war go out and
|
|
become the mercenaries of a tyrant. But in time of peace they stay
|
|
at home and do mischief; they are the thieves, footpads, cut-purses,
|
|
man-stealers of the community; or if they are able to speak, they turn
|
|
false-witnesses and informers. 'No small catalogue of crimes truly,
|
|
even if the perpetrators are few.' Yes, I said; but small and great are
|
|
relative terms, and no crimes which are committed by them approach those
|
|
of the tyrant, whom this class, growing strong and numerous, create out
|
|
of themselves. If the people yield, well and good, but, if they resist,
|
|
then, as before he beat his father and mother, so now he beats his
|
|
fatherland and motherland, and places his mercenaries over them. Such
|
|
men in their early days live with flatterers, and they themselves
|
|
flatter others, in order to gain their ends; but they soon discard their
|
|
followers when they have no longer any need of them; they are always
|
|
either masters or servants,--the joys of friendship are unknown to them.
|
|
And they are utterly treacherous and unjust, if the nature of justice be
|
|
at all understood by us. They realize our dream; and he who is the most
|
|
of a tyrant by nature, and leads the life of a tyrant for the longest
|
|
time, will be the worst of them, and being the worst of them, will also
|
|
be the most miserable.
|
|
|
|
Like man, like State,--the tyrannical man will answer to tyranny, which
|
|
is the extreme opposite of the royal State; for one is the best and the
|
|
other the worst. But which is the happier? Great and terrible as the
|
|
tyrant may appear enthroned amid his satellites, let us not be afraid to
|
|
go in and ask; and the answer is, that the monarchical is the happiest,
|
|
and the tyrannical the most miserable of States. And may we not ask the
|
|
same question about the men themselves, requesting some one to look into
|
|
them who is able to penetrate the inner nature of man, and will not be
|
|
panic-struck by the vain pomp of tyranny? I will suppose that he is one
|
|
who has lived with him, and has seen him in family life, or perhaps in
|
|
the hour of trouble and danger.
|
|
|
|
Assuming that we ourselves are the impartial judge for whom we seek, let
|
|
us begin by comparing the individual and State, and ask first of all,
|
|
whether the State is likely to be free or enslaved--Will there not be
|
|
a little freedom and a great deal of slavery? And the freedom is of the
|
|
bad, and the slavery of the good; and this applies to the man as well
|
|
as to the State; for his soul is full of meanness and slavery, and the
|
|
better part is enslaved to the worse. He cannot do what he would, and
|
|
his mind is full of confusion; he is the very reverse of a freeman. The
|
|
State will be poor and full of misery and sorrow; and the man's soul
|
|
will also be poor and full of sorrows, and he will be the most miserable
|
|
of men. No, not the most miserable, for there is yet a more miserable.
|
|
'Who is that?' The tyrannical man who has the misfortune also to become
|
|
a public tyrant. 'There I suspect that you are right.' Say rather, 'I
|
|
am sure;' conjecture is out of place in an enquiry of this nature. He
|
|
is like a wealthy owner of slaves, only he has more of them than
|
|
any private individual. You will say, 'The owners of slaves are not
|
|
generally in any fear of them.' But why? Because the whole city is in a
|
|
league which protects the individual. Suppose however that one of these
|
|
owners and his household is carried off by a god into a wilderness,
|
|
where there are no freemen to help him--will he not be in an agony of
|
|
terror?--will he not be compelled to flatter his slaves and to promise
|
|
them many things sore against his will? And suppose the same god who
|
|
carried him off were to surround him with neighbours who declare that no
|
|
man ought to have slaves, and that the owners of them should be punished
|
|
with death. 'Still worse and worse! He will be in the midst of his
|
|
enemies.' And is not our tyrant such a captive soul, who is tormented by
|
|
a swarm of passions which he cannot indulge; living indoors always like
|
|
a woman, and jealous of those who can go out and see the world?
|
|
|
|
Having so many evils, will not the most miserable of men be still more
|
|
miserable in a public station? Master of others when he is not master of
|
|
himself; like a sick man who is compelled to be an athlete; the meanest
|
|
of slaves and the most abject of flatterers; wanting all things, and
|
|
never able to satisfy his desires; always in fear and distraction,
|
|
like the State of which he is the representative. His jealous,
|
|
hateful, faithless temper grows worse with command; he is more and more
|
|
faithless, envious, unrighteous,--the most wretched of men, a misery
|
|
to himself and to others. And so let us have a final trial and
|
|
proclamation; need we hire a herald, or shall I proclaim the result?
|
|
'Made the proclamation yourself.' The son of Ariston (the best) is of
|
|
opinion that the best and justest of men is also the happiest, and that
|
|
this is he who is the most royal master of himself; and that the unjust
|
|
man is he who is the greatest tyrant of himself and of his State. And I
|
|
add further--'seen or unseen by gods or men.'
|
|
|
|
This is our first proof. The second is derived from the three kinds
|
|
of pleasure, which answer to the three elements of the soul--reason,
|
|
passion, desire; under which last is comprehended avarice as well as
|
|
sensual appetite, while passion includes ambition, party-feeling, love
|
|
of reputation. Reason, again, is solely directed to the attainment of
|
|
truth, and careless of money and reputation. In accordance with the
|
|
difference of men's natures, one of these three principles is in the
|
|
ascendant, and they have their several pleasures corresponding to them.
|
|
Interrogate now the three natures, and each one will be found praising
|
|
his own pleasures and depreciating those of others. The money-maker will
|
|
contrast the vanity of knowledge with the solid advantages of wealth.
|
|
The ambitious man will despise knowledge which brings no honour; whereas
|
|
the philosopher will regard only the fruition of truth, and will call
|
|
other pleasures necessary rather than good. Now, how shall we decide
|
|
between them? Is there any better criterion than experience and
|
|
knowledge? And which of the three has the truest knowledge and the
|
|
widest experience? The experience of youth makes the philosopher
|
|
acquainted with the two kinds of desire, but the avaricious and the
|
|
ambitious man never taste the pleasures of truth and wisdom. Honour he
|
|
has equally with them; they are 'judged of him,' but he is 'not judged
|
|
of them,' for they never attain to the knowledge of true being. And his
|
|
instrument is reason, whereas their standard is only wealth and honour;
|
|
and if by reason we are to judge, his good will be the truest. And so we
|
|
arrive at the result that the pleasure of the rational part of the soul,
|
|
and a life passed in such pleasure is the pleasantest. He who has a
|
|
right to judge judges thus. Next comes the life of ambition, and, in the
|
|
third place, that of money-making.
|
|
|
|
Twice has the just man overthrown the unjust--once more, as in an
|
|
Olympian contest, first offering up a prayer to the saviour Zeus, let
|
|
him try a fall. A wise man whispers to me that the pleasures of the wise
|
|
are true and pure; all others are a shadow only. Let us examine this:
|
|
Is not pleasure opposed to pain, and is there not a mean state which
|
|
is neither? When a man is sick, nothing is more pleasant to him than
|
|
health. But this he never found out while he was well. In pain he
|
|
desires only to cease from pain; on the other hand, when he is in an
|
|
ecstasy of pleasure, rest is painful to him. Thus rest or cessation
|
|
is both pleasure and pain. But can that which is neither become both?
|
|
Again, pleasure and pain are motions, and the absence of them is rest;
|
|
but if so, how can the absence of either of them be the other? Thus
|
|
we are led to infer that the contradiction is an appearance only, and
|
|
witchery of the senses. And these are not the only pleasures, for there
|
|
are others which have no preceding pains. Pure pleasure then is not the
|
|
absence of pain, nor pure pain the absence of pleasure; although most of
|
|
the pleasures which reach the mind through the body are reliefs of
|
|
pain, and have not only their reactions when they depart, but their
|
|
anticipations before they come. They can be best described in a simile.
|
|
There is in nature an upper, lower, and middle region, and he who passes
|
|
from the lower to the middle imagines that he is going up and is already
|
|
in the upper world; and if he were taken back again would think,
|
|
and truly think, that he was descending. All this arises out of his
|
|
ignorance of the true upper, middle, and lower regions. And a like
|
|
confusion happens with pleasure and pain, and with many other things.
|
|
The man who compares grey with black, calls grey white; and the man who
|
|
compares absence of pain with pain, calls the absence of pain pleasure.
|
|
Again, hunger and thirst are inanitions of the body, ignorance and folly
|
|
of the soul; and food is the satisfaction of the one, knowledge of the
|
|
other. Now which is the purer satisfaction--that of eating and drinking,
|
|
or that of knowledge? Consider the matter thus: The satisfaction of
|
|
that which has more existence is truer than of that which has less. The
|
|
invariable and immortal has a more real existence than the variable
|
|
and mortal, and has a corresponding measure of knowledge and truth. The
|
|
soul, again, has more existence and truth and knowledge than the body,
|
|
and is therefore more really satisfied and has a more natural pleasure.
|
|
Those who feast only on earthly food, are always going at random up
|
|
to the middle and down again; but they never pass into the true upper
|
|
world, or have a taste of true pleasure. They are like fatted beasts,
|
|
full of gluttony and sensuality, and ready to kill one another by reason
|
|
of their insatiable lust; for they are not filled with true being, and
|
|
their vessel is leaky (Gorgias). Their pleasures are mere shadows of
|
|
pleasure, mixed with pain, coloured and intensified by contrast,
|
|
and therefore intensely desired; and men go fighting about them, as
|
|
Stesichorus says that the Greeks fought about the shadow of Helen at
|
|
Troy, because they know not the truth.
|
|
|
|
The same may be said of the passionate element:--the desires of
|
|
the ambitious soul, as well as of the covetous, have an inferior
|
|
satisfaction. Only when under the guidance of reason do either of the
|
|
other principles do their own business or attain the pleasure which is
|
|
natural to them. When not attaining, they compel the other parts of the
|
|
soul to pursue a shadow of pleasure which is not theirs. And the more
|
|
distant they are from philosophy and reason, the more distant they will
|
|
be from law and order, and the more illusive will be their pleasures.
|
|
The desires of love and tyranny are the farthest from law, and those
|
|
of the king are nearest to it. There is one genuine pleasure, and two
|
|
spurious ones: the tyrant goes beyond even the latter; he has run away
|
|
altogether from law and reason. Nor can the measure of his inferiority
|
|
be told, except in a figure. The tyrant is the third removed from the
|
|
oligarch, and has therefore, not a shadow of his pleasure, but the
|
|
shadow of a shadow only. The oligarch, again, is thrice removed from
|
|
the king, and thus we get the formula 3 x 3, which is the number of a
|
|
surface, representing the shadow which is the tyrant's pleasure, and
|
|
if you like to cube this 'number of the beast,' you will find that the
|
|
measure of the difference amounts to 729; the king is 729 times more
|
|
happy than the tyrant. And this extraordinary number is NEARLY equal
|
|
to the number of days and nights in a year (365 x 2 = 730); and is
|
|
therefore concerned with human life. This is the interval between a good
|
|
and bad man in happiness only: what must be the difference between them
|
|
in comeliness of life and virtue!
|
|
|
|
Perhaps you may remember some one saying at the beginning of our
|
|
discussion that the unjust man was profited if he had the reputation of
|
|
justice. Now that we know the nature of justice and injustice, let us
|
|
make an image of the soul, which will personify his words. First of all,
|
|
fashion a multitudinous beast, having a ring of heads of all manner of
|
|
animals, tame and wild, and able to produce and change them at pleasure.
|
|
Suppose now another form of a lion, and another of a man; the second
|
|
smaller than the first, the third than the second; join them together
|
|
and cover them with a human skin, in which they are completely
|
|
concealed. When this has been done, let us tell the supporter of
|
|
injustice that he is feeding up the beasts and starving the man. The
|
|
maintainer of justice, on the other hand, is trying to strengthen the
|
|
man; he is nourishing the gentle principle within him, and making an
|
|
alliance with the lion heart, in order that he may be able to keep down
|
|
the many-headed hydra, and bring all into unity with each other and
|
|
with themselves. Thus in every point of view, whether in relation to
|
|
pleasure, honour, or advantage, the just man is right, and the unjust
|
|
wrong.
|
|
|
|
But now, let us reason with the unjust, who is not intentionally in
|
|
error. Is not the noble that which subjects the beast to the man, or
|
|
rather to the God in man; the ignoble, that which subjects the man to
|
|
the beast? And if so, who would receive gold on condition that he was to
|
|
degrade the noblest part of himself under the worst?--who would sell his
|
|
son or daughter into the hands of brutal and evil men, for any amount
|
|
of money? And will he sell his own fairer and diviner part without any
|
|
compunction to the most godless and foul? Would he not be worse than
|
|
Eriphyle, who sold her husband's life for a necklace? And intemperance
|
|
is the letting loose of the multiform monster, and pride and sullenness
|
|
are the growth and increase of the lion and serpent element, while
|
|
luxury and effeminacy are caused by a too great relaxation of spirit.
|
|
Flattery and meanness again arise when the spirited element is subjected
|
|
to avarice, and the lion is habituated to become a monkey. The real
|
|
disgrace of handicraft arts is, that those who are engaged in them have
|
|
to flatter, instead of mastering their desires; therefore we say that
|
|
they should be placed under the control of the better principle in
|
|
another because they have none in themselves; not, as Thrasymachus
|
|
imagined, to the injury of the subjects, but for their good. And our
|
|
intention in educating the young, is to give them self-control; the
|
|
law desires to nurse up in them a higher principle, and when they have
|
|
acquired this, they may go their ways.
|
|
|
|
'What, then, shall a man profit, if he gain the whole world' and become
|
|
more and more wicked? Or what shall he profit by escaping discovery, if
|
|
the concealment of evil prevents the cure? If he had been punished,
|
|
the brute within him would have been silenced, and the gentler element
|
|
liberated; and he would have united temperance, justice, and wisdom in
|
|
his soul--a union better far than any combination of bodily gifts. The
|
|
man of understanding will honour knowledge above all; in the next
|
|
place he will keep under his body, not only for the sake of health and
|
|
strength, but in order to attain the most perfect harmony of body
|
|
and soul. In the acquisition of riches, too, he will aim at order and
|
|
harmony; he will not desire to heap up wealth without measure, but he
|
|
will fear that the increase of wealth will disturb the constitution of
|
|
his own soul. For the same reason he will only accept such honours as
|
|
will make him a better man; any others he will decline. 'In that case,'
|
|
said he, 'he will never be a politician.' Yes, but he will, in his own
|
|
city; though probably not in his native country, unless by some divine
|
|
accident. 'You mean that he will be a citizen of the ideal city, which
|
|
has no place upon earth.' But in heaven, I replied, there is a pattern
|
|
of such a city, and he who wishes may order his life after that image.
|
|
Whether such a state is or ever will be matters not; he will act
|
|
according to that pattern and no other...
|
|
|
|
The most noticeable points in the 9th Book of the Republic are:--(1) the
|
|
account of pleasure; (2) the number of the interval which divides the
|
|
king from the tyrant; (3) the pattern which is in heaven.
|
|
|
|
1. Plato's account of pleasure is remarkable for moderation, and in
|
|
this respect contrasts with the later Platonists and the views which are
|
|
attributed to them by Aristotle. He is not, like the Cynics, opposed
|
|
to all pleasure, but rather desires that the several parts of the
|
|
soul shall have their natural satisfaction; he even agrees with the
|
|
Epicureans in describing pleasure as something more than the absence of
|
|
pain. This is proved by the circumstance that there are pleasures which
|
|
have no antecedent pains (as he also remarks in the Philebus), such as
|
|
the pleasures of smell, and also the pleasures of hope and anticipation.
|
|
In the previous book he had made the distinction between necessary
|
|
and unnecessary pleasure, which is repeated by Aristotle, and he now
|
|
observes that there are a further class of 'wild beast' pleasures,
|
|
corresponding to Aristotle's (Greek). He dwells upon the relative and
|
|
unreal character of sensual pleasures and the illusion which arises out
|
|
of the contrast of pleasure and pain, pointing out the superiority of
|
|
the pleasures of reason, which are at rest, over the fleeting pleasures
|
|
of sense and emotion. The pre-eminence of royal pleasure is shown by
|
|
the fact that reason is able to form a judgment of the lower pleasures,
|
|
while the two lower parts of the soul are incapable of judging the
|
|
pleasures of reason. Thus, in his treatment of pleasure, as in many
|
|
other subjects, the philosophy of Plato is 'sawn up into quantities' by
|
|
Aristotle; the analysis which was originally made by him became in the
|
|
next generation the foundation of further technical distinctions. Both
|
|
in Plato and Aristotle we note the illusion under which the ancients
|
|
fell of regarding the transience of pleasure as a proof of its
|
|
unreality, and of confounding the permanence of the intellectual
|
|
pleasures with the unchangeableness of the knowledge from which they are
|
|
derived. Neither do we like to admit that the pleasures of knowledge,
|
|
though more elevating, are not more lasting than other pleasures,
|
|
and are almost equally dependent on the accidents of our bodily state
|
|
(Introduction to Philebus).
|
|
|
|
2. The number of the interval which separates the king from the tyrant,
|
|
and royal from tyrannical pleasures, is 729, the cube of 9. Which Plato
|
|
characteristically designates as a number concerned with human life,
|
|
because NEARLY equivalent to the number of days and nights in the
|
|
year. He is desirous of proclaiming that the interval between them is
|
|
immeasurable, and invents a formula to give expression to his idea.
|
|
Those who spoke of justice as a cube, of virtue as an art of measuring
|
|
(Prot.), saw no inappropriateness in conceiving the soul under the
|
|
figure of a line, or the pleasure of the tyrant as separated from the
|
|
pleasure of the king by the numerical interval of 729. And in modern
|
|
times we sometimes use metaphorically what Plato employed as a
|
|
philosophical formula. 'It is not easy to estimate the loss of the
|
|
tyrant, except perhaps in this way,' says Plato. So we might say, that
|
|
although the life of a good man is not to be compared to that of a bad
|
|
man, yet you may measure the difference between them by valuing one
|
|
minute of the one at an hour of the other ('One day in thy courts is
|
|
better than a thousand'), or you might say that 'there is an infinite
|
|
difference.' But this is not so much as saying, in homely phrase, 'They
|
|
are a thousand miles asunder.' And accordingly Plato finds the natural
|
|
vehicle of his thoughts in a progression of numbers; this arithmetical
|
|
formula he draws out with the utmost seriousness, and both here and in
|
|
the number of generation seems to find an additional proof of the truth
|
|
of his speculation in forming the number into a geometrical figure; just
|
|
as persons in our own day are apt to fancy that a statement is verified
|
|
when it has been only thrown into an abstract form. In speaking of the
|
|
number 729 as proper to human life, he probably intended to intimate
|
|
that one year of the tyrannical = 12 hours of the royal life.
|
|
|
|
The simple observation that the comparison of two similar solids
|
|
is effected by the comparison of the cubes of their sides, is the
|
|
mathematical groundwork of this fanciful expression. There is some
|
|
difficulty in explaining the steps by which the number 729 is obtained;
|
|
the oligarch is removed in the third degree from the royal and
|
|
aristocratical, and the tyrant in the third degree from the
|
|
oligarchical; but we have to arrange the terms as the sides of a square
|
|
and to count the oligarch twice over, thus reckoning them not as = 5 but
|
|
as = 9. The square of 9 is passed lightly over as only a step towards
|
|
the cube.
|
|
|
|
3. Towards the close of the Republic, Plato seems to be more and more
|
|
convinced of the ideal character of his own speculations. At the end of
|
|
the 9th Book the pattern which is in heaven takes the place of the
|
|
city of philosophers on earth. The vision which has received form and
|
|
substance at his hands, is now discovered to be at a distance. And yet
|
|
this distant kingdom is also the rule of man's life. ('Say not lo! here,
|
|
or lo! there, for the kingdom of God is within you.') Thus a note
|
|
is struck which prepares for the revelation of a future life in the
|
|
following Book. But the future life is present still; the ideal of
|
|
politics is to be realized in the individual.
|
|
|
|
BOOK X. Many things pleased me in the order of our State, but there
|
|
was nothing which I liked better than the regulation about poetry. The
|
|
division of the soul throws a new light on our exclusion of imitation.
|
|
I do not mind telling you in confidence that all poetry is an outrage on
|
|
the understanding, unless the hearers have that balm of knowledge which
|
|
heals error. I have loved Homer ever since I was a boy, and even now
|
|
he appears to me to be the great master of tragic poetry. But much as
|
|
I love the man, I love truth more, and therefore I must speak out: and
|
|
first of all, will you explain what is imitation, for really I do not
|
|
understand? 'How likely then that I should understand!' That might very
|
|
well be, for the duller often sees better than the keener eye. 'True,
|
|
but in your presence I can hardly venture to say what I think.'
|
|
Then suppose that we begin in our old fashion, with the doctrine of
|
|
universals. Let us assume the existence of beds and tables. There is one
|
|
idea of a bed, or of a table, which the maker of each had in his mind
|
|
when making them; he did not make the ideas of beds and tables, but he
|
|
made beds and tables according to the ideas. And is there not a maker
|
|
of the works of all workmen, who makes not only vessels but plants and
|
|
animals, himself, the earth and heaven, and things in heaven and under
|
|
the earth? He makes the Gods also. 'He must be a wizard indeed!' But do
|
|
you not see that there is a sense in which you could do the same? You
|
|
have only to take a mirror, and catch the reflection of the sun, and the
|
|
earth, or anything else--there now you have made them. 'Yes, but only
|
|
in appearance.' Exactly so; and the painter is such a creator as you are
|
|
with the mirror, and he is even more unreal than the carpenter; although
|
|
neither the carpenter nor any other artist can be supposed to make the
|
|
absolute bed. 'Not if philosophers may be believed.' Nor need we wonder
|
|
that his bed has but an imperfect relation to the truth. Reflect:--Here
|
|
are three beds; one in nature, which is made by God; another, which is
|
|
made by the carpenter; and the third, by the painter. God only made one,
|
|
nor could he have made more than one; for if there had been two, there
|
|
would always have been a third--more absolute and abstract than either,
|
|
under which they would have been included. We may therefore conceive God
|
|
to be the natural maker of the bed, and in a lower sense the carpenter
|
|
is also the maker; but the painter is rather the imitator of what the
|
|
other two make; he has to do with a creation which is thrice removed
|
|
from reality. And the tragic poet is an imitator, and, like every
|
|
other imitator, is thrice removed from the king and from the truth.
|
|
The painter imitates not the original bed, but the bed made by the
|
|
carpenter. And this, without being really different, appears to be
|
|
different, and has many points of view, of which only one is caught by
|
|
the painter, who represents everything because he represents a piece of
|
|
everything, and that piece an image. And he can paint any other artist,
|
|
although he knows nothing of their arts; and this with sufficient skill
|
|
to deceive children or simple people. Suppose now that somebody came to
|
|
us and told us, how he had met a man who knew all that everybody knows,
|
|
and better than anybody:--should we not infer him to be a simpleton who,
|
|
having no discernment of truth and falsehood, had met with a wizard
|
|
or enchanter, whom he fancied to be all-wise? And when we hear persons
|
|
saying that Homer and the tragedians know all the arts and all the
|
|
virtues, must we not infer that they are under a similar delusion? they
|
|
do not see that the poets are imitators, and that their creations are
|
|
only imitations. 'Very true.' But if a person could create as well as
|
|
imitate, he would rather leave some permanent work and not an imitation
|
|
only; he would rather be the receiver than the giver of praise? 'Yes,
|
|
for then he would have more honour and advantage.'
|
|
|
|
Let us now interrogate Homer and the poets. Friend Homer, say I to him,
|
|
I am not going to ask you about medicine, or any art to which your
|
|
poems incidentally refer, but about their main subjects--war, military
|
|
tactics, politics. If you are only twice and not thrice removed from the
|
|
truth--not an imitator or an image-maker, please to inform us what good
|
|
you have ever done to mankind? Is there any city which professes to have
|
|
received laws from you, as Sicily and Italy have from Charondas, Sparta
|
|
from Lycurgus, Athens from Solon? Or was any war ever carried on by your
|
|
counsels? or is any invention attributed to you, as there is to Thales
|
|
and Anacharsis? Or is there any Homeric way of life, such as the
|
|
Pythagorean was, in which you instructed men, and which is called after
|
|
you? 'No, indeed; and Creophylus (Flesh-child) was even more unfortunate
|
|
in his breeding than he was in his name, if, as tradition says, Homer in
|
|
his lifetime was allowed by him and his other friends to starve.' Yes,
|
|
but could this ever have happened if Homer had really been the educator
|
|
of Hellas? Would he not have had many devoted followers? If Protagoras
|
|
and Prodicus can persuade their contemporaries that no one can manage
|
|
house or State without them, is it likely that Homer and Hesiod would
|
|
have been allowed to go about as beggars--I mean if they had really been
|
|
able to do the world any good?--would not men have compelled them
|
|
to stay where they were, or have followed them about in order to get
|
|
education? But they did not; and therefore we may infer that Homer and
|
|
all the poets are only imitators, who do but imitate the appearances of
|
|
things. For as a painter by a knowledge of figure and colour can paint a
|
|
cobbler without any practice in cobbling, so the poet can delineate
|
|
any art in the colours of language, and give harmony and rhythm to the
|
|
cobbler and also to the general; and you know how mere narration, when
|
|
deprived of the ornaments of metre, is like a face which has lost the
|
|
beauty of youth and never had any other. Once more, the imitator has no
|
|
knowledge of reality, but only of appearance. The painter paints, and
|
|
the artificer makes a bridle and reins, but neither understands the use
|
|
of them--the knowledge of this is confined to the horseman; and so of
|
|
other things. Thus we have three arts: one of use, another of invention,
|
|
a third of imitation; and the user furnishes the rule to the two others.
|
|
The flute-player will know the good and bad flute, and the maker
|
|
will put faith in him; but the imitator will neither know nor have
|
|
faith--neither science nor true opinion can be ascribed to him.
|
|
Imitation, then, is devoid of knowledge, being only a kind of play
|
|
or sport, and the tragic and epic poets are imitators in the highest
|
|
degree.
|
|
|
|
And now let us enquire, what is the faculty in man which answers to
|
|
imitation. Allow me to explain my meaning: Objects are differently seen
|
|
when in the water and when out of the water, when near and when at a
|
|
distance; and the painter or juggler makes use of this variation to
|
|
impose upon us. And the art of measuring and weighing and calculating
|
|
comes in to save our bewildered minds from the power of appearance; for,
|
|
as we were saying, two contrary opinions of the same about the same and
|
|
at the same time, cannot both of them be true. But which of them is
|
|
true is determined by the art of calculation; and this is allied to the
|
|
better faculty in the soul, as the arts of imitation are to the worse.
|
|
And the same holds of the ear as well as of the eye, of poetry as well
|
|
as painting. The imitation is of actions voluntary or involuntary,
|
|
in which there is an expectation of a good or bad result, and present
|
|
experience of pleasure and pain. But is a man in harmony with himself
|
|
when he is the subject of these conflicting influences? Is there not
|
|
rather a contradiction in him? Let me further ask, whether he is more
|
|
likely to control sorrow when he is alone or when he is in company.
|
|
'In the latter case.' Feeling would lead him to indulge his sorrow, but
|
|
reason and law control him and enjoin patience; since he cannot know
|
|
whether his affliction is good or evil, and no human thing is of
|
|
any great consequence, while sorrow is certainly a hindrance to good
|
|
counsel. For when we stumble, we should not, like children, make an
|
|
uproar; we should take the measures which reason prescribes, not raising
|
|
a lament, but finding a cure. And the better part of us is ready to
|
|
follow reason, while the irrational principle is full of sorrow and
|
|
distraction at the recollection of our troubles. Unfortunately, however,
|
|
this latter furnishes the chief materials of the imitative arts. Whereas
|
|
reason is ever in repose and cannot easily be displayed, especially to a
|
|
mixed multitude who have no experience of her. Thus the poet is like the
|
|
painter in two ways: first he paints an inferior degree of truth, and
|
|
secondly, he is concerned with an inferior part of the soul. He indulges
|
|
the feelings, while he enfeebles the reason; and we refuse to allow him
|
|
to have authority over the mind of man; for he has no measure of greater
|
|
and less, and is a maker of images and very far gone from truth.
|
|
|
|
But we have not yet mentioned the heaviest count in the indictment--the
|
|
power which poetry has of injuriously exciting the feelings. When we
|
|
hear some passage in which a hero laments his sufferings at tedious
|
|
length, you know that we sympathize with him and praise the poet; and
|
|
yet in our own sorrows such an exhibition of feeling is regarded as
|
|
effeminate and unmanly (Ion). Now, ought a man to feel pleasure in
|
|
seeing another do what he hates and abominates in himself? Is he not
|
|
giving way to a sentiment which in his own case he would control?--he is
|
|
off his guard because the sorrow is another's; and he thinks that he
|
|
may indulge his feelings without disgrace, and will be the gainer by
|
|
the pleasure. But the inevitable consequence is that he who begins by
|
|
weeping at the sorrows of others, will end by weeping at his own. The
|
|
same is true of comedy,--you may often laugh at buffoonery which you
|
|
would be ashamed to utter, and the love of coarse merriment on the stage
|
|
will at last turn you into a buffoon at home. Poetry feeds and waters
|
|
the passions and desires; she lets them rule instead of ruling them. And
|
|
therefore, when we hear the encomiasts of Homer affirming that he is
|
|
the educator of Hellas, and that all life should be regulated by his
|
|
precepts, we may allow the excellence of their intentions, and agree
|
|
with them in thinking Homer a great poet and tragedian. But we shall
|
|
continue to prohibit all poetry which goes beyond hymns to the Gods and
|
|
praises of famous men. Not pleasure and pain, but law and reason shall
|
|
rule in our State.
|
|
|
|
These are our grounds for expelling poetry; but lest she should charge
|
|
us with discourtesy, let us also make an apology to her. We will remind
|
|
her that there is an ancient quarrel between poetry and philosophy, of
|
|
which there are many traces in the writings of the poets, such as the
|
|
saying of 'the she-dog, yelping at her mistress,' and 'the philosophers
|
|
who are ready to circumvent Zeus,' and 'the philosophers who are
|
|
paupers.' Nevertheless we bear her no ill-will, and will gladly allow
|
|
her to return upon condition that she makes a defence of herself in
|
|
verse; and her supporters who are not poets may speak in prose. We
|
|
confess her charms; but if she cannot show that she is useful as well
|
|
as delightful, like rational lovers, we must renounce our love,
|
|
though endeared to us by early associations. Having come to years of
|
|
discretion, we know that poetry is not truth, and that a man should be
|
|
careful how he introduces her to that state or constitution which he
|
|
himself is; for there is a mighty issue at stake--no less than the good
|
|
or evil of a human soul. And it is not worth while to forsake justice
|
|
and virtue for the attractions of poetry, any more than for the sake of
|
|
honour or wealth. 'I agree with you.'
|
|
|
|
And yet the rewards of virtue are greater far than I have described.
|
|
'And can we conceive things greater still?' Not, perhaps, in this brief
|
|
span of life: but should an immortal being care about anything short of
|
|
eternity? 'I do not understand what you mean?' Do you not know that the
|
|
soul is immortal? 'Surely you are not prepared to prove that?' Indeed I
|
|
am. 'Then let me hear this argument, of which you make so light.'
|
|
|
|
You would admit that everything has an element of good and of evil. In
|
|
all things there is an inherent corruption; and if this cannot destroy
|
|
them, nothing else will. The soul too has her own corrupting principles,
|
|
which are injustice, intemperance, cowardice, and the like. But none of
|
|
these destroy the soul in the same sense that disease destroys the body.
|
|
The soul may be full of all iniquities, but is not, by reason of them,
|
|
brought any nearer to death. Nothing which was not destroyed from within
|
|
ever perished by external affection of evil. The body, which is one
|
|
thing, cannot be destroyed by food, which is another, unless the badness
|
|
of the food is communicated to the body. Neither can the soul, which
|
|
is one thing, be corrupted by the body, which is another, unless she
|
|
herself is infected. And as no bodily evil can infect the soul, neither
|
|
can any bodily evil, whether disease or violence, or any other destroy
|
|
the soul, unless it can be shown to render her unholy and unjust. But no
|
|
one will ever prove that the souls of men become more unjust when
|
|
they die. If a person has the audacity to say the contrary, the answer
|
|
is--Then why do criminals require the hand of the executioner, and
|
|
not die of themselves? 'Truly,' he said, 'injustice would not be very
|
|
terrible if it brought a cessation of evil; but I rather believe that
|
|
the injustice which murders others may tend to quicken and stimulate
|
|
the life of the unjust.' You are quite right. If sin which is her own
|
|
natural and inherent evil cannot destroy the soul, hardly will anything
|
|
else destroy her. But the soul which cannot be destroyed either by
|
|
internal or external evil must be immortal and everlasting. And if
|
|
this be true, souls will always exist in the same number. They cannot
|
|
diminish, because they cannot be destroyed; nor yet increase, for the
|
|
increase of the immortal must come from something mortal, and so all
|
|
would end in immortality. Neither is the soul variable and diverse; for
|
|
that which is immortal must be of the fairest and simplest composition.
|
|
If we would conceive her truly, and so behold justice and injustice in
|
|
their own nature, she must be viewed by the light of reason pure as at
|
|
birth, or as she is reflected in philosophy when holding converse with
|
|
the divine and immortal and eternal. In her present condition we see her
|
|
only like the sea-god Glaucus, bruised and maimed in the sea which is
|
|
the world, and covered with shells and stones which are incrusted upon
|
|
her from the entertainments of earth.
|
|
|
|
Thus far, as the argument required, we have said nothing of the rewards
|
|
and honours which the poets attribute to justice; we have contented
|
|
ourselves with showing that justice in herself is best for the soul in
|
|
herself, even if a man should put on a Gyges' ring and have the helmet
|
|
of Hades too. And now you shall repay me what you borrowed; and I will
|
|
enumerate the rewards of justice in life and after death. I granted,
|
|
for the sake of argument, as you will remember, that evil might
|
|
perhaps escape the knowledge of Gods and men, although this was really
|
|
impossible. And since I have shown that justice has reality, you must
|
|
grant me also that she has the palm of appearance. In the first place,
|
|
the just man is known to the Gods, and he is therefore the friend of the
|
|
Gods, and he will receive at their hands every good, always excepting
|
|
such evil as is the necessary consequence of former sins. All things end
|
|
in good to him, either in life or after death, even what appears to
|
|
be evil; for the Gods have a care of him who desires to be in their
|
|
likeness. And what shall we say of men? Is not honesty the best policy?
|
|
The clever rogue makes a great start at first, but breaks down before he
|
|
reaches the goal, and slinks away in dishonour; whereas the true runner
|
|
perseveres to the end, and receives the prize. And you must allow me
|
|
to repeat all the blessings which you attributed to the fortunate
|
|
unjust--they bear rule in the city, they marry and give in marriage to
|
|
whom they will; and the evils which you attributed to the unfortunate
|
|
just, do really fall in the end on the unjust, although, as you implied,
|
|
their sufferings are better veiled in silence.
|
|
|
|
But all the blessings of this present life are as nothing when compared
|
|
with those which await good men after death. 'I should like to hear
|
|
about them.' Come, then, and I will tell you the story of Er, the son of
|
|
Armenius, a valiant man. He was supposed to have died in battle, but ten
|
|
days afterwards his body was found untouched by corruption and sent home
|
|
for burial. On the twelfth day he was placed on the funeral pyre and
|
|
there he came to life again, and told what he had seen in the world
|
|
below. He said that his soul went with a great company to a place, in
|
|
which there were two chasms near together in the earth beneath, and two
|
|
corresponding chasms in the heaven above. And there were judges sitting
|
|
in the intermediate space, bidding the just ascend by the heavenly
|
|
way on the right hand, having the seal of their judgment set upon them
|
|
before, while the unjust, having the seal behind, were bidden to descend
|
|
by the way on the left hand. Him they told to look and listen, as he was
|
|
to be their messenger to men from the world below. And he beheld and saw
|
|
the souls departing after judgment at either chasm; some who came from
|
|
earth, were worn and travel-stained; others, who came from heaven,
|
|
were clean and bright. They seemed glad to meet and rest awhile in the
|
|
meadow; here they discoursed with one another of what they had seen in
|
|
the other world. Those who came from earth wept at the remembrance of
|
|
their sorrows, but the spirits from above spoke of glorious sights and
|
|
heavenly bliss. He said that for every evil deed they were punished
|
|
tenfold--now the journey was of a thousand years' duration, because the
|
|
life of man was reckoned as a hundred years--and the rewards of virtue
|
|
were in the same proportion. He added something hardly worth repeating
|
|
about infants dying almost as soon as they were born. Of parricides and
|
|
other murderers he had tortures still more terrible to narrate. He was
|
|
present when one of the spirits asked--Where is Ardiaeus the Great?
|
|
(This Ardiaeus was a cruel tyrant, who had murdered his father, and his
|
|
elder brother, a thousand years before.) Another spirit answered,
|
|
'He comes not hither, and will never come. And I myself,' he added,
|
|
'actually saw this terrible sight. At the entrance of the chasm, as we
|
|
were about to reascend, Ardiaeus appeared, and some other sinners--most
|
|
of whom had been tyrants, but not all--and just as they fancied that
|
|
they were returning to life, the chasm gave a roar, and then wild,
|
|
fiery-looking men who knew the meaning of the sound, seized him and
|
|
several others, and bound them hand and foot and threw them down, and
|
|
dragged them along at the side of the road, lacerating them and carding
|
|
them like wool, and explaining to the passers-by, that they were going
|
|
to be cast into hell.' The greatest terror of the pilgrims ascending was
|
|
lest they should hear the voice, and when there was silence one by one
|
|
they passed up with joy. To these sufferings there were corresponding
|
|
delights.
|
|
|
|
On the eighth day the souls of the pilgrims resumed their journey,
|
|
and in four days came to a spot whence they looked down upon a line of
|
|
light, in colour like a rainbow, only brighter and clearer. One day
|
|
more brought them to the place, and they saw that this was the column
|
|
of light which binds together the whole universe. The ends of the column
|
|
were fastened to heaven, and from them hung the distaff of Necessity,
|
|
on which all the heavenly bodies turned--the hook and spindle were of
|
|
adamant, and the whorl of a mixed substance. The whorl was in form
|
|
like a number of boxes fitting into one another with their edges
|
|
turned upwards, making together a single whorl which was pierced by the
|
|
spindle. The outermost had the rim broadest, and the inner whorls were
|
|
smaller and smaller, and had their rims narrower. The largest (the fixed
|
|
stars) was spangled--the seventh (the sun) was brightest--the eighth
|
|
(the moon) shone by the light of the seventh--the second and fifth
|
|
(Saturn and Mercury) were most like one another and yellower than the
|
|
eighth--the third (Jupiter) had the whitest light--the fourth (Mars)
|
|
was red--the sixth (Venus) was in whiteness second. The whole had one
|
|
motion, but while this was revolving in one direction the seven inner
|
|
circles were moving in the opposite, with various degrees of swiftness
|
|
and slowness. The spindle turned on the knees of Necessity, and a Siren
|
|
stood hymning upon each circle, while Lachesis, Clotho, and Atropos, the
|
|
daughters of Necessity, sat on thrones at equal intervals, singing of
|
|
past, present, and future, responsive to the music of the Sirens; Clotho
|
|
from time to time guiding the outer circle with a touch of her right
|
|
hand; Atropos with her left hand touching and guiding the inner circles;
|
|
Lachesis in turn putting forth her hand from time to time to guide both
|
|
of them. On their arrival the pilgrims went to Lachesis, and there was
|
|
an interpreter who arranged them, and taking from her knees lots, and
|
|
samples of lives, got up into a pulpit and said: 'Mortal souls, hear
|
|
the words of Lachesis, the daughter of Necessity. A new period of
|
|
mortal life has begun, and you may choose what divinity you please;
|
|
the responsibility of choosing is with you--God is blameless.' After
|
|
speaking thus, he cast the lots among them and each one took up the
|
|
lot which fell near him. He then placed on the ground before them the
|
|
samples of lives, many more than the souls present; and there were all
|
|
sorts of lives, of men and of animals. There were tyrannies ending in
|
|
misery and exile, and lives of men and women famous for their different
|
|
qualities; and also mixed lives, made up of wealth and poverty,
|
|
sickness and health. Here, Glaucon, is the great risk of human life, and
|
|
therefore the whole of education should be directed to the acquisition
|
|
of such a knowledge as will teach a man to refuse the evil and choose
|
|
the good. He should know all the combinations which occur in life--of
|
|
beauty with poverty or with wealth,--of knowledge with external
|
|
goods,--and at last choose with reference to the nature of the soul,
|
|
regarding that only as the better life which makes men better, and
|
|
leaving the rest. And a man must take with him an iron sense of truth
|
|
and right into the world below, that there too he may remain undazzled
|
|
by wealth or the allurements of evil, and be determined to avoid the
|
|
extremes and choose the mean. For this, as the messenger reported the
|
|
interpreter to have said, is the true happiness of man; and any one, as
|
|
he proclaimed, may, if he choose with understanding, have a good lot,
|
|
even though he come last. 'Let not the first be careless in his choice,
|
|
nor the last despair.' He spoke; and when he had spoken, he who had
|
|
drawn the first lot chose a tyranny: he did not see that he was fated to
|
|
devour his own children--and when he discovered his mistake, he wept
|
|
and beat his breast, blaming chance and the Gods and anybody rather
|
|
than himself. He was one of those who had come from heaven, and in his
|
|
previous life had been a citizen of a well-ordered State, but he had
|
|
only habit and no philosophy. Like many another, he made a bad choice,
|
|
because he had no experience of life; whereas those who came from earth
|
|
and had seen trouble were not in such a hurry to choose. But if a
|
|
man had followed philosophy while upon earth, and had been moderately
|
|
fortunate in his lot, he might not only be happy here, but his
|
|
pilgrimage both from and to this world would be smooth and heavenly.
|
|
Nothing was more curious than the spectacle of the choice, at once sad
|
|
and laughable and wonderful; most of the souls only seeking to avoid
|
|
their own condition in a previous life. He saw the soul of Orpheus
|
|
changing into a swan because he would not be born of a woman; there was
|
|
Thamyras becoming a nightingale; musical birds, like the swan, choosing
|
|
to be men; the twentieth soul, which was that of Ajax, preferring the
|
|
life of a lion to that of a man, in remembrance of the injustice which
|
|
was done to him in the judgment of the arms; and Agamemnon, from a like
|
|
enmity to human nature, passing into an eagle. About the middle was the
|
|
soul of Atalanta choosing the honours of an athlete, and next to her
|
|
Epeus taking the nature of a workwoman; among the last was Thersites,
|
|
who was changing himself into a monkey. Thither, the last of all, came
|
|
Odysseus, and sought the lot of a private man, which lay neglected and
|
|
despised, and when he found it he went away rejoicing, and said that if
|
|
he had been first instead of last, his choice would have been the same.
|
|
Men, too, were seen passing into animals, and wild and tame animals
|
|
changing into one another.
|
|
|
|
When all the souls had chosen they went to Lachesis, who sent with each
|
|
of them their genius or attendant to fulfil their lot. He first of
|
|
all brought them under the hand of Clotho, and drew them within the
|
|
revolution of the spindle impelled by her hand; from her they were
|
|
carried to Atropos, who made the threads irreversible; whence, without
|
|
turning round, they passed beneath the throne of Necessity; and when
|
|
they had all passed, they moved on in scorching heat to the plain of
|
|
Forgetfulness and rested at evening by the river Unmindful, whose water
|
|
could not be retained in any vessel; of this they had all to drink a
|
|
certain quantity--some of them drank more than was required, and he who
|
|
drank forgot all things. Er himself was prevented from drinking.
|
|
When they had gone to rest, about the middle of the night there were
|
|
thunderstorms and earthquakes, and suddenly they were all driven divers
|
|
ways, shooting like stars to their birth. Concerning his return to the
|
|
body, he only knew that awaking suddenly in the morning he found himself
|
|
lying on the pyre.
|
|
|
|
Thus, Glaucon, the tale has been saved, and will be our salvation, if we
|
|
believe that the soul is immortal, and hold fast to the heavenly way
|
|
of Justice and Knowledge. So shall we pass undefiled over the river
|
|
of Forgetfulness, and be dear to ourselves and to the Gods, and have
|
|
a crown of reward and happiness both in this world and also in the
|
|
millennial pilgrimage of the other.
|
|
|
|
The Tenth Book of the Republic of Plato falls into two divisions: first,
|
|
resuming an old thread which has been interrupted, Socrates assails the
|
|
poets, who, now that the nature of the soul has been analyzed, are
|
|
seen to be very far gone from the truth; and secondly, having shown the
|
|
reality of the happiness of the just, he demands that appearance shall
|
|
be restored to him, and then proceeds to prove the immortality of the
|
|
soul. The argument, as in the Phaedo and Gorgias, is supplemented by the
|
|
vision of a future life.
|
|
|
|
Why Plato, who was himself a poet, and whose dialogues are poems and
|
|
dramas, should have been hostile to the poets as a class, and especially
|
|
to the dramatic poets; why he should not have seen that truth may
|
|
be embodied in verse as well as in prose, and that there are some
|
|
indefinable lights and shadows of human life which can only be expressed
|
|
in poetry--some elements of imagination which always entwine with
|
|
reason; why he should have supposed epic verse to be inseparably
|
|
associated with the impurities of the old Hellenic mythology; why
|
|
he should try Homer and Hesiod by the unfair and prosaic test of
|
|
utility,--are questions which have always been debated amongst students
|
|
of Plato. Though unable to give a complete answer to them, we may
|
|
show--first, that his views arose naturally out of the circumstances
|
|
of his age; and secondly, we may elicit the truth as well as the error
|
|
which is contained in them.
|
|
|
|
He is the enemy of the poets because poetry was declining in his own
|
|
lifetime, and a theatrocracy, as he says in the Laws, had taken the
|
|
place of an intellectual aristocracy. Euripides exhibited the last phase
|
|
of the tragic drama, and in him Plato saw the friend and apologist of
|
|
tyrants, and the Sophist of tragedy. The old comedy was almost extinct;
|
|
the new had not yet arisen. Dramatic and lyric poetry, like every other
|
|
branch of Greek literature, was falling under the power of rhetoric.
|
|
There was no 'second or third' to Aeschylus and Sophocles in the
|
|
generation which followed them. Aristophanes, in one of his later
|
|
comedies (Frogs), speaks of 'thousands of tragedy-making prattlers,'
|
|
whose attempts at poetry he compares to the chirping of swallows; 'their
|
|
garrulity went far beyond Euripides,'--'they appeared once upon the
|
|
stage, and there was an end of them.' To a man of genius who had a
|
|
real appreciation of the godlike Aeschylus and the noble and gentle
|
|
Sophocles, though disagreeing with some parts of their 'theology'
|
|
(Rep.), these 'minor poets' must have been contemptible and intolerable.
|
|
There is no feeling stronger in the dialogues of Plato than a sense of
|
|
the decline and decay both in literature and in politics which marked
|
|
his own age. Nor can he have been expected to look with favour on the
|
|
licence of Aristophanes, now at the end of his career, who had begun by
|
|
satirizing Socrates in the Clouds, and in a similar spirit forty years
|
|
afterwards had satirized the founders of ideal commonwealths in his
|
|
Eccleziazusae, or Female Parliament (Laws).
|
|
|
|
There were other reasons for the antagonism of Plato to poetry. The
|
|
profession of an actor was regarded by him as a degradation of human
|
|
nature, for 'one man in his life' cannot 'play many parts;' the
|
|
characters which the actor performs seem to destroy his own character,
|
|
and to leave nothing which can be truly called himself. Neither can any
|
|
man live his life and act it. The actor is the slave of his art, not the
|
|
master of it. Taking this view Plato is more decided in his expulsion of
|
|
the dramatic than of the epic poets, though he must have known that
|
|
the Greek tragedians afforded noble lessons and examples of virtue
|
|
and patriotism, to which nothing in Homer can be compared. But great
|
|
dramatic or even great rhetorical power is hardly consistent with
|
|
firmness or strength of mind, and dramatic talent is often incidentally
|
|
associated with a weak or dissolute character.
|
|
|
|
In the Tenth Book Plato introduces a new series of objections. First,
|
|
he says that the poet or painter is an imitator, and in the third
|
|
degree removed from the truth. His creations are not tested by rule and
|
|
measure; they are only appearances. In modern times we should say that
|
|
art is not merely imitation, but rather the expression of the ideal in
|
|
forms of sense. Even adopting the humble image of Plato, from which
|
|
his argument derives a colour, we should maintain that the artist may
|
|
ennoble the bed which he paints by the folds of the drapery, or by the
|
|
feeling of home which he introduces; and there have been modern
|
|
painters who have imparted such an ideal interest to a blacksmith's or
|
|
a carpenter's shop. The eye or mind which feels as well as sees can give
|
|
dignity and pathos to a ruined mill, or a straw-built shed (Rembrandt),
|
|
to the hull of a vessel 'going to its last home' (Turner). Still more
|
|
would this apply to the greatest works of art, which seem to be the
|
|
visible embodiment of the divine. Had Plato been asked whether the Zeus
|
|
or Athene of Pheidias was the imitation of an imitation only, would he
|
|
not have been compelled to admit that something more was to be found in
|
|
them than in the form of any mortal; and that the rule of proportion
|
|
to which they conformed was 'higher far than any geometry or arithmetic
|
|
could express?' (Statesman.)
|
|
|
|
Again, Plato objects to the imitative arts that they express the
|
|
emotional rather than the rational part of human nature. He does not
|
|
admit Aristotle's theory, that tragedy or other serious imitations are
|
|
a purgation of the passions by pity and fear; to him they appear only to
|
|
afford the opportunity of indulging them. Yet we must acknowledge that
|
|
we may sometimes cure disordered emotions by giving expression to them;
|
|
and that they often gain strength when pent up within our own breast.
|
|
It is not every indulgence of the feelings which is to be condemned.
|
|
For there may be a gratification of the higher as well as of the
|
|
lower--thoughts which are too deep or too sad to be expressed by
|
|
ourselves, may find an utterance in the words of poets. Every one would
|
|
acknowledge that there have been times when they were consoled and
|
|
elevated by beautiful music or by the sublimity of architecture or by
|
|
the peacefulness of nature. Plato has himself admitted, in the earlier
|
|
part of the Republic, that the arts might have the effect of harmonizing
|
|
as well as of enervating the mind; but in the Tenth Book he regards them
|
|
through a Stoic or Puritan medium. He asks only 'What good have they
|
|
done?' and is not satisfied with the reply, that 'They have given
|
|
innocent pleasure to mankind.'
|
|
|
|
He tells us that he rejoices in the banishment of the poets, since he
|
|
has found by the analysis of the soul that they are concerned with the
|
|
inferior faculties. He means to say that the higher faculties have to do
|
|
with universals, the lower with particulars of sense. The poets are on
|
|
a level with their own age, but not on a level with Socrates and Plato;
|
|
and he was well aware that Homer and Hesiod could not be made a rule of
|
|
life by any process of legitimate interpretation; his ironical use of
|
|
them is in fact a denial of their authority; he saw, too, that the
|
|
poets were not critics--as he says in the Apology, 'Any one was a better
|
|
interpreter of their writings than they were themselves. He himself
|
|
ceased to be a poet when he became a disciple of Socrates; though, as he
|
|
tells us of Solon, 'he might have been one of the greatest of them, if
|
|
he had not been deterred by other pursuits' (Tim.) Thus from many points
|
|
of view there is an antagonism between Plato and the poets, which was
|
|
foreshadowed to him in the old quarrel between philosophy and poetry.
|
|
The poets, as he says in the Protagoras, were the Sophists of their day;
|
|
and his dislike of the one class is reflected on the other. He regards
|
|
them both as the enemies of reasoning and abstraction, though in the
|
|
case of Euripides more with reference to his immoral sentiments about
|
|
tyrants and the like. For Plato is the prophet who 'came into the world
|
|
to convince men'--first of the fallibility of sense and opinion, and
|
|
secondly of the reality of abstract ideas. Whatever strangeness there
|
|
may be in modern times in opposing philosophy to poetry, which to us
|
|
seem to have so many elements in common, the strangeness will disappear
|
|
if we conceive of poetry as allied to sense, and of philosophy as
|
|
equivalent to thought and abstraction. Unfortunately the very word
|
|
'idea,' which to Plato is expressive of the most real of all things, is
|
|
associated in our minds with an element of subjectiveness and unreality.
|
|
We may note also how he differs from Aristotle who declares poetry to
|
|
be truer than history, for the opposite reason, because it is concerned
|
|
with universals, not like history, with particulars (Poet).
|
|
|
|
The things which are seen are opposed in Scripture to the things which
|
|
are unseen--they are equally opposed in Plato to universals and ideas.
|
|
To him all particulars appear to be floating about in a world of sense;
|
|
they have a taint of error or even of evil. There is no difficulty in
|
|
seeing that this is an illusion; for there is no more error or variation
|
|
in an individual man, horse, bed, etc., than in the class man, horse,
|
|
bed, etc.; nor is the truth which is displayed in individual instances
|
|
less certain than that which is conveyed through the medium of
|
|
ideas. But Plato, who is deeply impressed with the real importance of
|
|
universals as instruments of thought, attributes to them an essential
|
|
truth which is imaginary and unreal; for universals may be often false
|
|
and particulars true. Had he attained to any clear conception of the
|
|
individual, which is the synthesis of the universal and the particular;
|
|
or had he been able to distinguish between opinion and sensation, which
|
|
the ambiguity of the words (Greek) and the like, tended to confuse, he
|
|
would not have denied truth to the particulars of sense.
|
|
|
|
But the poets are also the representatives of falsehood and feigning
|
|
in all departments of life and knowledge, like the sophists and
|
|
rhetoricians of the Gorgias and Phaedrus; they are the false priests,
|
|
false prophets, lying spirits, enchanters of the world. There is another
|
|
count put into the indictment against them by Plato, that they are
|
|
the friends of the tyrant, and bask in the sunshine of his patronage.
|
|
Despotism in all ages has had an apparatus of false ideas and false
|
|
teachers at its service--in the history of Modern Europe as well as of
|
|
Greece and Rome. For no government of men depends solely upon force;
|
|
without some corruption of literature and morals--some appeal to the
|
|
imagination of the masses--some pretence to the favour of heaven--some
|
|
element of good giving power to evil, tyranny, even for a short time,
|
|
cannot be maintained. The Greek tyrants were not insensible to the
|
|
importance of awakening in their cause a Pseudo-Hellenic feeling; they
|
|
were proud of successes at the Olympic games; they were not devoid of
|
|
the love of literature and art. Plato is thinking in the first instance
|
|
of Greek poets who had graced the courts of Dionysius or Archelaus: and
|
|
the old spirit of freedom is roused within him at their prostitution of
|
|
the Tragic Muse in the praises of tyranny. But his prophetic eye extends
|
|
beyond them to the false teachers of other ages who are the creatures of
|
|
the government under which they live. He compares the corruption of his
|
|
contemporaries with the idea of a perfect society, and gathers up
|
|
into one mass of evil the evils and errors of mankind; to him they are
|
|
personified in the rhetoricians, sophists, poets, rulers who deceive and
|
|
govern the world.
|
|
|
|
A further objection which Plato makes to poetry and the imitative
|
|
arts is that they excite the emotions. Here the modern reader will be
|
|
disposed to introduce a distinction which appears to have escaped him.
|
|
For the emotions are neither bad nor good in themselves, and are not
|
|
most likely to be controlled by the attempt to eradicate them, but by
|
|
the moderate indulgence of them. And the vocation of art is to present
|
|
thought in the form of feeling, to enlist the feelings on the side of
|
|
reason, to inspire even for a moment courage or resignation; perhaps to
|
|
suggest a sense of infinity and eternity in a way which mere language is
|
|
incapable of attaining. True, the same power which in the purer age of
|
|
art embodies gods and heroes only, may be made to express the voluptuous
|
|
image of a Corinthian courtezan. But this only shows that art, like
|
|
other outward things, may be turned to good and also to evil, and is not
|
|
more closely connected with the higher than with the lower part of the
|
|
soul. All imitative art is subject to certain limitations, and therefore
|
|
necessarily partakes of the nature of a compromise. Something of ideal
|
|
truth is sacrificed for the sake of the representation, and something in
|
|
the exactness of the representation is sacrificed to the ideal. Still,
|
|
works of art have a permanent element; they idealize and detain the
|
|
passing thought, and are the intermediates between sense and ideas.
|
|
|
|
In the present stage of the human mind, poetry and other forms of
|
|
fiction may certainly be regarded as a good. But we can also imagine the
|
|
existence of an age in which a severer conception of truth has either
|
|
banished or transformed them. At any rate we must admit that they hold
|
|
a different place at different periods of the world's history. In the
|
|
infancy of mankind, poetry, with the exception of proverbs, is the
|
|
whole of literature, and the only instrument of intellectual culture; in
|
|
modern times she is the shadow or echo of her former self, and appears
|
|
to have a precarious existence. Milton in his day doubted whether an
|
|
epic poem was any longer possible. At the same time we must remember,
|
|
that what Plato would have called the charms of poetry have been partly
|
|
transferred to prose; he himself (Statesman) admits rhetoric to be the
|
|
handmaiden of Politics, and proposes to find in the strain of law (Laws)
|
|
a substitute for the old poets. Among ourselves the creative power seems
|
|
often to be growing weaker, and scientific fact to be more engrossing
|
|
and overpowering to the mind than formerly. The illusion of the feelings
|
|
commonly called love, has hitherto been the inspiring influence of
|
|
modern poetry and romance, and has exercised a humanizing if not a
|
|
strengthening influence on the world. But may not the stimulus which
|
|
love has given to fancy be some day exhausted? The modern English novel
|
|
which is the most popular of all forms of reading is not more than a
|
|
century or two old: will the tale of love a hundred years hence, after
|
|
so many thousand variations of the same theme, be still received with
|
|
unabated interest?
|
|
|
|
Art cannot claim to be on a level with philosophy or religion, and may
|
|
often corrupt them. It is possible to conceive a mental state in which
|
|
all artistic representations are regarded as a false and imperfect
|
|
expression, either of the religious ideal or of the philosophical ideal.
|
|
The fairest forms may be revolting in certain moods of mind, as is
|
|
proved by the fact that the Mahometans, and many sects of Christians,
|
|
have renounced the use of pictures and images. The beginning of a great
|
|
religion, whether Christian or Gentile, has not been 'wood or stone,'
|
|
but a spirit moving in the hearts of men. The disciples have met in a
|
|
large upper room or in 'holes and caves of the earth'; in the second or
|
|
third generation, they have had mosques, temples, churches, monasteries.
|
|
And the revival or reform of religions, like the first revelation
|
|
of them, has come from within and has generally disregarded external
|
|
ceremonies and accompaniments.
|
|
|
|
But poetry and art may also be the expression of the highest truth and
|
|
the purest sentiment. Plato himself seems to waver between two opposite
|
|
views--when, as in the third Book, he insists that youth should be
|
|
brought up amid wholesome imagery; and again in Book X, when he banishes
|
|
the poets from his Republic. Admitting that the arts, which some of us
|
|
almost deify, have fallen short of their higher aim, we must admit on
|
|
the other hand that to banish imagination wholly would be suicidal as
|
|
well as impossible. For nature too is a form of art; and a breath of
|
|
the fresh air or a single glance at the varying landscape would in an
|
|
instant revive and reillumine the extinguished spark of poetry in the
|
|
human breast. In the lower stages of civilization imagination more than
|
|
reason distinguishes man from the animals; and to banish art would be
|
|
to banish thought, to banish language, to banish the expression of
|
|
all truth. No religion is wholly devoid of external forms; even the
|
|
Mahometan who renounces the use of pictures and images has a temple in
|
|
which he worships the Most High, as solemn and beautiful as any Greek or
|
|
Christian building. Feeling too and thought are not really opposed; for
|
|
he who thinks must feel before he can execute. And the highest thoughts,
|
|
when they become familiarized to us, are always tending to pass into the
|
|
form of feeling.
|
|
|
|
Plato does not seriously intend to expel poets from life and society.
|
|
But he feels strongly the unreality of their writings; he is protesting
|
|
against the degeneracy of poetry in his own day as we might protest
|
|
against the want of serious purpose in modern fiction, against the
|
|
unseemliness or extravagance of some of our poets or novelists,
|
|
against the time-serving of preachers or public writers, against the
|
|
regardlessness of truth which to the eye of the philosopher seems to
|
|
characterize the greater part of the world. For we too have reason to
|
|
complain that our poets and novelists 'paint inferior truth' and 'are
|
|
concerned with the inferior part of the soul'; that the readers of them
|
|
become what they read and are injuriously affected by them. And we look
|
|
in vain for that healthy atmosphere of which Plato speaks,--'the beauty
|
|
which meets the sense like a breeze and imperceptibly draws the soul,
|
|
even in childhood, into harmony with the beauty of reason.'
|
|
|
|
For there might be a poetry which would be the hymn of divine
|
|
perfection, the harmony of goodness and truth among men: a strain which
|
|
should renew the youth of the world, and bring back the ages in which
|
|
the poet was man's only teacher and best friend,--which would find
|
|
materials in the living present as well as in the romance of the
|
|
past, and might subdue to the fairest forms of speech and verse the
|
|
intractable materials of modern civilisation,--which might elicit the
|
|
simple principles, or, as Plato would have called them, the essential
|
|
forms, of truth and justice out of the variety of opinion and the
|
|
complexity of modern society,--which would preserve all the good of each
|
|
generation and leave the bad unsung,--which should be based not on vain
|
|
longings or faint imaginings, but on a clear insight into the nature of
|
|
man. Then the tale of love might begin again in poetry or prose, two in
|
|
one, united in the pursuit of knowledge, or the service of God and man;
|
|
and feelings of love might still be the incentive to great thoughts
|
|
and heroic deeds as in the days of Dante or Petrarch; and many types
|
|
of manly and womanly beauty might appear among us, rising above the
|
|
ordinary level of humanity, and many lives which were like poems (Laws),
|
|
be not only written, but lived by us. A few such strains have been
|
|
heard among men in the tragedies of Aeschylus and Sophocles, whom Plato
|
|
quotes, not, as Homer is quoted by him, in irony, but with deep and
|
|
serious approval,--in the poetry of Milton and Wordsworth, and in
|
|
passages of other English poets,--first and above all in the Hebrew
|
|
prophets and psalmists. Shakespeare has taught us how great men should
|
|
speak and act; he has drawn characters of a wonderful purity and depth;
|
|
he has ennobled the human mind, but, like Homer (Rep.), he 'has left
|
|
no way of life.' The next greatest poet of modern times, Goethe, is
|
|
concerned with 'a lower degree of truth'; he paints the world as a stage
|
|
on which 'all the men and women are merely players'; he cultivates life
|
|
as an art, but he furnishes no ideals of truth and action. The poet may
|
|
rebel against any attempt to set limits to his fancy; and he may
|
|
argue truly that moralizing in verse is not poetry. Possibly, like
|
|
Mephistopheles in Faust, he may retaliate on his adversaries. But the
|
|
philosopher will still be justified in asking, 'How may the heavenly
|
|
gift of poesy be devoted to the good of mankind?'
|
|
|
|
Returning to Plato, we may observe that a similar mixture of truth
|
|
and error appears in other parts of the argument. He is aware of the
|
|
absurdity of mankind framing their whole lives according to Homer; just
|
|
as in the Phaedrus he intimates the absurdity of interpreting mythology
|
|
upon rational principles; both these were the modern tendencies of his
|
|
own age, which he deservedly ridicules. On the other hand, his argument
|
|
that Homer, if he had been able to teach mankind anything worth knowing,
|
|
would not have been allowed by them to go about begging as a rhapsodist,
|
|
is both false and contrary to the spirit of Plato (Rep.). It may be
|
|
compared with those other paradoxes of the Gorgias, that 'No statesman
|
|
was ever unjustly put to death by the city of which he was the head';
|
|
and that 'No Sophist was ever defrauded by his pupils' (Gorg.)...
|
|
|
|
The argument for immortality seems to rest on the absolute dualism of
|
|
soul and body. Admitting the existence of the soul, we know of no force
|
|
which is able to put an end to her. Vice is her own proper evil; and if
|
|
she cannot be destroyed by that, she cannot be destroyed by any other.
|
|
Yet Plato has acknowledged that the soul may be so overgrown by the
|
|
incrustations of earth as to lose her original form; and in the Timaeus
|
|
he recognizes more strongly than in the Republic the influence which the
|
|
body has over the mind, denying even the voluntariness of human actions,
|
|
on the ground that they proceed from physical states (Tim.). In the
|
|
Republic, as elsewhere, he wavers between the original soul which has
|
|
to be restored, and the character which is developed by training and
|
|
education...
|
|
|
|
The vision of another world is ascribed to Er, the son of Armenius, who
|
|
is said by Clement of Alexandria to have been Zoroaster. The tale
|
|
has certainly an oriental character, and may be compared with the
|
|
pilgrimages of the soul in the Zend Avesta (Haug, Avesta). But no trace
|
|
of acquaintance with Zoroaster is found elsewhere in Plato's writings,
|
|
and there is no reason for giving him the name of Er the Pamphylian. The
|
|
philosophy of Heracleitus cannot be shown to be borrowed from Zoroaster,
|
|
and still less the myths of Plato.
|
|
|
|
The local arrangement of the vision is less distinct than that of the
|
|
Phaedrus and Phaedo. Astronomy is mingled with symbolism and mythology;
|
|
the great sphere of heaven is represented under the symbol of a cylinder
|
|
or box, containing the seven orbits of the planets and the fixed stars;
|
|
this is suspended from an axis or spindle which turns on the knees of
|
|
Necessity; the revolutions of the seven orbits contained in the cylinder
|
|
are guided by the fates, and their harmonious motion produces the music
|
|
of the spheres. Through the innermost or eighth of these, which is the
|
|
moon, is passed the spindle; but it is doubtful whether this is the
|
|
continuation of the column of light, from which the pilgrims contemplate
|
|
the heavens; the words of Plato imply that they are connected, but
|
|
not the same. The column itself is clearly not of adamant. The spindle
|
|
(which is of adamant) is fastened to the ends of the chains which
|
|
extend to the middle of the column of light--this column is said to hold
|
|
together the heaven; but whether it hangs from the spindle, or is at
|
|
right angles to it, is not explained. The cylinder containing the orbits
|
|
of the stars is almost as much a symbol as the figure of Necessity
|
|
turning the spindle;--for the outermost rim is the sphere of the fixed
|
|
stars, and nothing is said about the intervals of space which divide the
|
|
paths of the stars in the heavens. The description is both a picture and
|
|
an orrery, and therefore is necessarily inconsistent with itself. The
|
|
column of light is not the Milky Way--which is neither straight, nor
|
|
like a rainbow--but the imaginary axis of the earth. This is compared
|
|
to the rainbow in respect not of form but of colour, and not to the
|
|
undergirders of a trireme, but to the straight rope running from prow to
|
|
stern in which the undergirders meet.
|
|
|
|
The orrery or picture of the heavens given in the Republic differs in
|
|
its mode of representation from the circles of the same and of the
|
|
other in the Timaeus. In both the fixed stars are distinguished from the
|
|
planets, and they move in orbits without them, although in an opposite
|
|
direction: in the Republic as in the Timaeus they are all moving round
|
|
the axis of the world. But we are not certain that in the former they
|
|
are moving round the earth. No distinct mention is made in the Republic
|
|
of the circles of the same and other; although both in the Timaeus and
|
|
in the Republic the motion of the fixed stars is supposed to coincide
|
|
with the motion of the whole. The relative thickness of the rims is
|
|
perhaps designed to express the relative distances of the planets.
|
|
Plato probably intended to represent the earth, from which Er and his
|
|
companions are viewing the heavens, as stationary in place; but whether
|
|
or not herself revolving, unless this is implied in the revolution of
|
|
the axis, is uncertain (Timaeus). The spectator may be supposed to look
|
|
at the heavenly bodies, either from above or below. The earth is a sort
|
|
of earth and heaven in one, like the heaven of the Phaedrus, on the back
|
|
of which the spectator goes out to take a peep at the stars and is borne
|
|
round in the revolution. There is no distinction between the equator and
|
|
the ecliptic. But Plato is no doubt led to imagine that the planets have
|
|
an opposite motion to that of the fixed stars, in order to account for
|
|
their appearances in the heavens. In the description of the meadow, and
|
|
the retribution of the good and evil after death, there are traces of
|
|
Homer.
|
|
|
|
The description of the axis as a spindle, and of the heavenly bodies as
|
|
forming a whole, partly arises out of the attempt to connect the motions
|
|
of the heavenly bodies with the mythological image of the web, or
|
|
weaving of the Fates. The giving of the lots, the weaving of them,
|
|
and the making of them irreversible, which are ascribed to the three
|
|
Fates--Lachesis, Clotho, Atropos, are obviously derived from their
|
|
names. The element of chance in human life is indicated by the order of
|
|
the lots. But chance, however adverse, may be overcome by the wisdom
|
|
of man, if he knows how to choose aright; there is a worse enemy to man
|
|
than chance; this enemy is himself. He who was moderately fortunate in
|
|
the number of the lot--even the very last comer--might have a good life
|
|
if he chose with wisdom. And as Plato does not like to make an assertion
|
|
which is unproven, he more than confirms this statement a few sentences
|
|
afterwards by the example of Odysseus, who chose last. But the virtue
|
|
which is founded on habit is not sufficient to enable a man to choose;
|
|
he must add to virtue knowledge, if he is to act rightly when placed
|
|
in new circumstances. The routine of good actions and good habits is
|
|
an inferior sort of goodness; and, as Coleridge says, 'Common sense
|
|
is intolerable which is not based on metaphysics,' so Plato would have
|
|
said, 'Habit is worthless which is not based upon philosophy.'
|
|
|
|
The freedom of the will to refuse the evil and to choose the good is
|
|
distinctly asserted. 'Virtue is free, and as a man honours or dishonours
|
|
her he will have more or less of her.' The life of man is 'rounded'
|
|
by necessity; there are circumstances prior to birth which affect him
|
|
(Pol.). But within the walls of necessity there is an open space in
|
|
which he is his own master, and can study for himself the effects which
|
|
the variously compounded gifts of nature or fortune have upon the soul,
|
|
and act accordingly. All men cannot have the first choice in everything.
|
|
But the lot of all men is good enough, if they choose wisely and will
|
|
live diligently.
|
|
|
|
The verisimilitude which is given to the pilgrimage of a thousand years,
|
|
by the intimation that Ardiaeus had lived a thousand years before;
|
|
the coincidence of Er coming to life on the twelfth day after he was
|
|
supposed to have been dead with the seven days which the pilgrims passed
|
|
in the meadow, and the four days during which they journeyed to the
|
|
column of light; the precision with which the soul is mentioned who
|
|
chose the twentieth lot; the passing remarks that there was no definite
|
|
character among the souls, and that the souls which had chosen ill
|
|
blamed any one rather than themselves; or that some of the souls drank
|
|
more than was necessary of the waters of Forgetfulness, while Er himself
|
|
was hindered from drinking; the desire of Odysseus to rest at last,
|
|
unlike the conception of him in Dante and Tennyson; the feigned
|
|
ignorance of how Er returned to the body, when the other souls went
|
|
shooting like stars to their birth,--add greatly to the probability of
|
|
the narrative. They are such touches of nature as the art of Defoe
|
|
might have introduced when he wished to win credibility for marvels and
|
|
apparitions.
|
|
|
|
*****
|
|
|
|
There still remain to be considered some points which have been
|
|
intentionally reserved to the end: (1) the Janus-like character of the
|
|
Republic, which presents two faces--one an Hellenic state, the other a
|
|
kingdom of philosophers. Connected with the latter of the two aspects
|
|
are (2) the paradoxes of the Republic, as they have been termed by
|
|
Morgenstern: (a) the community of property; (b) of families; (c) the
|
|
rule of philosophers; (d) the analogy of the individual and the State,
|
|
which, like some other analogies in the Republic, is carried too far. We
|
|
may then proceed to consider (3) the subject of education as conceived
|
|
by Plato, bringing together in a general view the education of youth
|
|
and the education of after-life; (4) we may note further some essential
|
|
differences between ancient and modern politics which are suggested by
|
|
the Republic; (5) we may compare the Politicus and the Laws; (6) we may
|
|
observe the influence exercised by Plato on his imitators; and (7)
|
|
take occasion to consider the nature and value of political, and (8) of
|
|
religious ideals.
|
|
|
|
1. Plato expressly says that he is intending to found an Hellenic State
|
|
(Book V). Many of his regulations are characteristically Spartan; such
|
|
as the prohibition of gold and silver, the common meals of the men, the
|
|
military training of the youth, the gymnastic exercises of the women.
|
|
The life of Sparta was the life of a camp (Laws), enforced even more
|
|
rigidly in time of peace than in war; the citizens of Sparta, like
|
|
Plato's, were forbidden to trade--they were to be soldiers and not
|
|
shopkeepers. Nowhere else in Greece was the individual so completely
|
|
subjected to the State; the time when he was to marry, the education of
|
|
his children, the clothes which he was to wear, the food which he was
|
|
to eat, were all prescribed by law. Some of the best enactments in the
|
|
Republic, such as the reverence to be paid to parents and elders,
|
|
and some of the worst, such as the exposure of deformed children, are
|
|
borrowed from the practice of Sparta. The encouragement of friendships
|
|
between men and youths, or of men with one another, as affording
|
|
incentives to bravery, is also Spartan; in Sparta too a nearer approach
|
|
was made than in any other Greek State to equality of the sexes, and
|
|
to community of property; and while there was probably less of
|
|
licentiousness in the sense of immorality, the tie of marriage was
|
|
regarded more lightly than in the rest of Greece. The 'suprema lex'
|
|
was the preservation of the family, and the interest of the State. The
|
|
coarse strength of a military government was not favourable to purity
|
|
and refinement; and the excessive strictness of some regulations seems
|
|
to have produced a reaction. Of all Hellenes the Spartans were most
|
|
accessible to bribery; several of the greatest of them might be
|
|
described in the words of Plato as having a 'fierce secret longing
|
|
after gold and silver.' Though not in the strict sense communists, the
|
|
principle of communism was maintained among them in their division of
|
|
lands, in their common meals, in their slaves, and in the free use of
|
|
one another's goods. Marriage was a public institution: and the women
|
|
were educated by the State, and sang and danced in public with the men.
|
|
|
|
Many traditions were preserved at Sparta of the severity with which the
|
|
magistrates had maintained the primitive rule of music and poetry; as in
|
|
the Republic of Plato, the new-fangled poet was to be expelled. Hymns
|
|
to the Gods, which are the only kind of music admitted into the ideal
|
|
State, were the only kind which was permitted at Sparta. The Spartans,
|
|
though an unpoetical race, were nevertheless lovers of poetry; they had
|
|
been stirred by the Elegiac strains of Tyrtaeus, they had crowded around
|
|
Hippias to hear his recitals of Homer; but in this they resembled the
|
|
citizens of the timocratic rather than of the ideal State. The council
|
|
of elder men also corresponds to the Spartan gerousia; and the freedom
|
|
with which they are permitted to judge about matters of detail agrees
|
|
with what we are told of that institution. Once more, the military rule
|
|
of not spoiling the dead or offering arms at the temples; the moderation
|
|
in the pursuit of enemies; the importance attached to the physical
|
|
well-being of the citizens; the use of warfare for the sake of defence
|
|
rather than of aggression--are features probably suggested by the spirit
|
|
and practice of Sparta.
|
|
|
|
To the Spartan type the ideal State reverts in the first decline; and
|
|
the character of the individual timocrat is borrowed from the Spartan
|
|
citizen. The love of Lacedaemon not only affected Plato and Xenophon,
|
|
but was shared by many undistinguished Athenians; there they seemed to
|
|
find a principle which was wanting in their own democracy. The (Greek)
|
|
of the Spartans attracted them, that is to say, not the goodness
|
|
of their laws, but the spirit of order and loyalty which prevailed.
|
|
Fascinated by the idea, citizens of Athens would imitate the
|
|
Lacedaemonians in their dress and manners; they were known to the
|
|
contemporaries of Plato as 'the persons who had their ears bruised,'
|
|
like the Roundheads of the Commonwealth. The love of another church
|
|
or country when seen at a distance only, the longing for an imaginary
|
|
simplicity in civilized times, the fond desire of a past which never has
|
|
been, or of a future which never will be,--these are aspirations of the
|
|
human mind which are often felt among ourselves. Such feelings meet with
|
|
a response in the Republic of Plato.
|
|
|
|
But there are other features of the Platonic Republic, as, for example,
|
|
the literary and philosophical education, and the grace and beauty
|
|
of life, which are the reverse of Spartan. Plato wishes to give his
|
|
citizens a taste of Athenian freedom as well as of Lacedaemonian
|
|
discipline. His individual genius is purely Athenian, although in theory
|
|
he is a lover of Sparta; and he is something more than either--he has
|
|
also a true Hellenic feeling. He is desirous of humanizing the wars of
|
|
Hellenes against one another; he acknowledges that the Delphian God is
|
|
the grand hereditary interpreter of all Hellas. The spirit of harmony
|
|
and the Dorian mode are to prevail, and the whole State is to have an
|
|
external beauty which is the reflex of the harmony within. But he
|
|
has not yet found out the truth which he afterwards enunciated in the
|
|
Laws--that he was a better legislator who made men to be of one mind,
|
|
than he who trained them for war. The citizens, as in other Hellenic
|
|
States, democratic as well as aristocratic, are really an upper class;
|
|
for, although no mention is made of slaves, the lower classes are
|
|
allowed to fade away into the distance, and are represented in the
|
|
individual by the passions. Plato has no idea either of a social State
|
|
in which all classes are harmonized, or of a federation of Hellas or
|
|
the world in which different nations or States have a place. His city
|
|
is equipped for war rather than for peace, and this would seem to be
|
|
justified by the ordinary condition of Hellenic States. The myth of the
|
|
earth-born men is an embodiment of the orthodox tradition of Hellas,
|
|
and the allusion to the four ages of the world is also sanctioned by
|
|
the authority of Hesiod and the poets. Thus we see that the Republic is
|
|
partly founded on the ideal of the old Greek polis, partly on the actual
|
|
circumstances of Hellas in that age. Plato, like the old painters,
|
|
retains the traditional form, and like them he has also a vision of a
|
|
city in the clouds.
|
|
|
|
There is yet another thread which is interwoven in the texture of the
|
|
work; for the Republic is not only a Dorian State, but a Pythagorean
|
|
league. The 'way of life' which was connected with the name of
|
|
Pythagoras, like the Catholic monastic orders, showed the power which
|
|
the mind of an individual might exercise over his contemporaries, and
|
|
may have naturally suggested to Plato the possibility of reviving such
|
|
'mediaeval institutions.' The Pythagoreans, like Plato, enforced a rule
|
|
of life and a moral and intellectual training. The influence ascribed to
|
|
music, which to us seems exaggerated, is also a Pythagorean feature; it
|
|
is not to be regarded as representing the real influence of music in
|
|
the Greek world. More nearly than any other government of Hellas, the
|
|
Pythagorean league of three hundred was an aristocracy of virtue. For
|
|
once in the history of mankind the philosophy of order or (Greek),
|
|
expressing and consequently enlisting on its side the combined
|
|
endeavours of the better part of the people, obtained the management of
|
|
public affairs and held possession of it for a considerable time (until
|
|
about B.C. 500). Probably only in States prepared by Dorian institutions
|
|
would such a league have been possible. The rulers, like Plato's
|
|
(Greek), were required to submit to a severe training in order to
|
|
prepare the way for the education of the other members of the community.
|
|
Long after the dissolution of the Order, eminent Pythagoreans, such as
|
|
Archytas of Tarentum, retained their political influence over the cities
|
|
of Magna Graecia. There was much here that was suggestive to the kindred
|
|
spirit of Plato, who had doubtless meditated deeply on the 'way of life
|
|
of Pythagoras' (Rep.) and his followers. Slight traces of Pythagoreanism
|
|
are to be found in the mystical number of the State, in the number which
|
|
expresses the interval between the king and the tyrant, in the doctrine
|
|
of transmigration, in the music of the spheres, as well as in the great
|
|
though secondary importance ascribed to mathematics in education.
|
|
|
|
But as in his philosophy, so also in the form of his State, he goes far
|
|
beyond the old Pythagoreans. He attempts a task really impossible, which
|
|
is to unite the past of Greek history with the future of philosophy,
|
|
analogous to that other impossibility, which has often been the dream
|
|
of Christendom, the attempt to unite the past history of Europe with
|
|
the kingdom of Christ. Nothing actually existing in the world at all
|
|
resembles Plato's ideal State; nor does he himself imagine that such
|
|
a State is possible. This he repeats again and again; e.g. in the
|
|
Republic, or in the Laws where, casting a glance back on the Republic,
|
|
he admits that the perfect state of communism and philosophy was
|
|
impossible in his own age, though still to be retained as a pattern.
|
|
The same doubt is implied in the earnestness with which he argues in the
|
|
Republic that ideals are none the worse because they cannot be realized
|
|
in fact, and in the chorus of laughter, which like a breaking wave will,
|
|
as he anticipates, greet the mention of his proposals; though like
|
|
other writers of fiction, he uses all his art to give reality to his
|
|
inventions. When asked how the ideal polity can come into being, he
|
|
answers ironically, 'When one son of a king becomes a philosopher'; he
|
|
designates the fiction of the earth-born men as 'a noble lie'; and when
|
|
the structure is finally complete, he fairly tells you that his Republic
|
|
is a vision only, which in some sense may have reality, but not in the
|
|
vulgar one of a reign of philosophers upon earth. It has been said that
|
|
Plato flies as well as walks, but this falls short of the truth; for he
|
|
flies and walks at the same time, and is in the air and on firm ground
|
|
in successive instants.
|
|
|
|
Niebuhr has asked a trifling question, which may be briefly noticed in
|
|
this place--Was Plato a good citizen? If by this is meant, Was he loyal
|
|
to Athenian institutions?--he can hardly be said to be the friend of
|
|
democracy: but neither is he the friend of any other existing form of
|
|
government; all of them he regarded as 'states of faction' (Laws); none
|
|
attained to his ideal of a voluntary rule over voluntary subjects, which
|
|
seems indeed more nearly to describe democracy than any other; and the
|
|
worst of them is tyranny. The truth is, that the question has hardly any
|
|
meaning when applied to a great philosopher whose writings are not meant
|
|
for a particular age and country, but for all time and all mankind. The
|
|
decline of Athenian politics was probably the motive which led Plato to
|
|
frame an ideal State, and the Republic may be regarded as reflecting the
|
|
departing glory of Hellas. As well might we complain of St. Augustine,
|
|
whose great work 'The City of God' originated in a similar motive, for
|
|
not being loyal to the Roman Empire. Even a nearer parallel might be
|
|
afforded by the first Christians, who cannot fairly be charged with
|
|
being bad citizens because, though 'subject to the higher powers,' they
|
|
were looking forward to a city which is in heaven.
|
|
|
|
2. The idea of the perfect State is full of paradox when judged of
|
|
according to the ordinary notions of mankind. The paradoxes of one age
|
|
have been said to become the commonplaces of the next; but the
|
|
paradoxes of Plato are at least as paradoxical to us as they were to his
|
|
contemporaries. The modern world has either sneered at them as absurd,
|
|
or denounced them as unnatural and immoral; men have been pleased to
|
|
find in Aristotle's criticisms of them the anticipation of their own
|
|
good sense. The wealthy and cultivated classes have disliked and also
|
|
dreaded them; they have pointed with satisfaction to the failure of
|
|
efforts to realize them in practice. Yet since they are the thoughts of
|
|
one of the greatest of human intelligences, and of one who had done
|
|
most to elevate morality and religion, they seem to deserve a better
|
|
treatment at our hands. We may have to address the public, as Plato does
|
|
poetry, and assure them that we mean no harm to existing institutions.
|
|
There are serious errors which have a side of truth and which therefore
|
|
may fairly demand a careful consideration: there are truths mixed with
|
|
error of which we may indeed say, 'The half is better than the whole.'
|
|
Yet 'the half' may be an important contribution to the study of human
|
|
nature.
|
|
|
|
(a) The first paradox is the community of goods, which is mentioned
|
|
slightly at the end of the third Book, and seemingly, as Aristotle
|
|
observes, is confined to the guardians; at least no mention is made of
|
|
the other classes. But the omission is not of any real significance, and
|
|
probably arises out of the plan of the work, which prevents the writer
|
|
from entering into details.
|
|
|
|
Aristotle censures the community of property much in the spirit of
|
|
modern political economy, as tending to repress industry, and as doing
|
|
away with the spirit of benevolence. Modern writers almost refuse to
|
|
consider the subject, which is supposed to have been long ago settled
|
|
by the common opinion of mankind. But it must be remembered that the
|
|
sacredness of property is a notion far more fixed in modern than
|
|
in ancient times. The world has grown older, and is therefore more
|
|
conservative. Primitive society offered many examples of land held in
|
|
common, either by a tribe or by a township, and such may probably
|
|
have been the original form of landed tenure. Ancient legislators had
|
|
invented various modes of dividing and preserving the divisions of land
|
|
among the citizens; according to Aristotle there were nations who held
|
|
the land in common and divided the produce, and there were others who
|
|
divided the land and stored the produce in common. The evils of debt and
|
|
the inequality of property were far greater in ancient than in modern
|
|
times, and the accidents to which property was subject from war, or
|
|
revolution, or taxation, or other legislative interference, were also
|
|
greater. All these circumstances gave property a less fixed and sacred
|
|
character. The early Christians are believed to have held their property
|
|
in common, and the principle is sanctioned by the words of Christ
|
|
himself, and has been maintained as a counsel of perfection in almost
|
|
all ages of the Church. Nor have there been wanting instances of modern
|
|
enthusiasts who have made a religion of communism; in every age of
|
|
religious excitement notions like Wycliffe's 'inheritance of grace'
|
|
have tended to prevail. A like spirit, but fiercer and more violent,
|
|
has appeared in politics. 'The preparation of the Gospel of peace' soon
|
|
becomes the red flag of Republicanism.
|
|
|
|
We can hardly judge what effect Plato's views would have upon his
|
|
own contemporaries; they would perhaps have seemed to them only an
|
|
exaggeration of the Spartan commonwealth. Even modern writers would
|
|
acknowledge that the right of private property is based on expediency,
|
|
and may be interfered with in a variety of ways for the public good. Any
|
|
other mode of vesting property which was found to be more advantageous,
|
|
would in time acquire the same basis of right; 'the most useful,' in
|
|
Plato's words, 'would be the most sacred.' The lawyers and ecclesiastics
|
|
of former ages would have spoken of property as a sacred institution.
|
|
But they only meant by such language to oppose the greatest amount
|
|
of resistance to any invasion of the rights of individuals and of the
|
|
Church.
|
|
|
|
When we consider the question, without any fear of immediate application
|
|
to practice, in the spirit of Plato's Republic, are we quite sure that
|
|
the received notions of property are the best? Is the distribution of
|
|
wealth which is customary in civilized countries the most favourable
|
|
that can be conceived for the education and development of the mass
|
|
of mankind? Can 'the spectator of all time and all existence' be quite
|
|
convinced that one or two thousand years hence, great changes will not
|
|
have taken place in the rights of property, or even that the very notion
|
|
of property, beyond what is necessary for personal maintenance, may not
|
|
have disappeared? This was a distinction familiar to Aristotle, though
|
|
likely to be laughed at among ourselves. Such a change would not be
|
|
greater than some other changes through which the world has passed
|
|
in the transition from ancient to modern society, for example, the
|
|
emancipation of the serfs in Russia, or the abolition of slavery in
|
|
America and the West Indies; and not so great as the difference which
|
|
separates the Eastern village community from the Western world. To
|
|
accomplish such a revolution in the course of a few centuries, would
|
|
imply a rate of progress not more rapid than has actually taken place
|
|
during the last fifty or sixty years. The kingdom of Japan underwent
|
|
more change in five or six years than Europe in five or six hundred.
|
|
Many opinions and beliefs which have been cherished among ourselves
|
|
quite as strongly as the sacredness of property have passed away; and
|
|
the most untenable propositions respecting the right of bequests or
|
|
entail have been maintained with as much fervour as the most moderate.
|
|
Some one will be heard to ask whether a state of society can be final in
|
|
which the interests of thousands are perilled on the life or character
|
|
of a single person. And many will indulge the hope that our present
|
|
condition may, after all, be only transitional, and may conduct to a
|
|
higher, in which property, besides ministering to the enjoyment of the
|
|
few, may also furnish the means of the highest culture to all, and will
|
|
be a greater benefit to the public generally, and also more under the
|
|
control of public authority. There may come a time when the saying,
|
|
'Have I not a right to do what I will with my own?' will appear to be a
|
|
barbarous relic of individualism;--when the possession of a part may be
|
|
a greater blessing to each and all than the possession of the whole is
|
|
now to any one.
|
|
|
|
Such reflections appear visionary to the eye of the practical statesman,
|
|
but they are within the range of possibility to the philosopher. He can
|
|
imagine that in some distant age or clime, and through the influence of
|
|
some individual, the notion of common property may or might have sunk
|
|
as deep into the heart of a race, and have become as fixed to them, as
|
|
private property is to ourselves. He knows that this latter institution
|
|
is not more than four or five thousand years old: may not the end revert
|
|
to the beginning? In our own age even Utopias affect the spirit of
|
|
legislation, and an abstract idea may exercise a great influence on
|
|
practical politics.
|
|
|
|
The objections that would be generally urged against Plato's community
|
|
of property, are the old ones of Aristotle, that motives for exertion
|
|
would be taken away, and that disputes would arise when each was
|
|
dependent upon all. Every man would produce as little and consume as
|
|
much as he liked. The experience of civilized nations has hitherto been
|
|
adverse to Socialism. The effort is too great for human nature; men try
|
|
to live in common, but the personal feeling is always breaking in. On
|
|
the other hand it may be doubted whether our present notions of property
|
|
are not conventional, for they differ in different countries and in
|
|
different states of society. We boast of an individualism which is not
|
|
freedom, but rather an artificial result of the industrial state
|
|
of modern Europe. The individual is nominally free, but he is also
|
|
powerless in a world bound hand and foot in the chains of economic
|
|
necessity. Even if we cannot expect the mass of mankind to become
|
|
disinterested, at any rate we observe in them a power of organization
|
|
which fifty years ago would never have been suspected. The same forces
|
|
which have revolutionized the political system of Europe, may effect a
|
|
similar change in the social and industrial relations of mankind. And if
|
|
we suppose the influence of some good as well as neutral motives working
|
|
in the community, there will be no absurdity in expecting that the
|
|
mass of mankind having power, and becoming enlightened about the higher
|
|
possibilities of human life, when they learn how much more is attainable
|
|
for all than is at present the possession of a favoured few, may pursue
|
|
the common interest with an intelligence and persistency which mankind
|
|
have hitherto never seen.
|
|
|
|
Now that the world has once been set in motion, and is no longer held
|
|
fast under the tyranny of custom and ignorance; now that criticism has
|
|
pierced the veil of tradition and the past no longer overpowers the
|
|
present,--the progress of civilization may be expected to be far greater
|
|
and swifter than heretofore. Even at our present rate of speed the point
|
|
at which we may arrive in two or three generations is beyond the power
|
|
of imagination to foresee. There are forces in the world which work, not
|
|
in an arithmetical, but in a geometrical ratio of increase.
|
|
Education, to use the expression of Plato, moves like a wheel with
|
|
an ever-multiplying rapidity. Nor can we say how great may be its
|
|
influence, when it becomes universal,--when it has been inherited by
|
|
many generations,--when it is freed from the trammels of superstition
|
|
and rightly adapted to the wants and capacities of different classes
|
|
of men and women. Neither do we know how much more the co-operation of
|
|
minds or of hands may be capable of accomplishing, whether in labour or
|
|
in study. The resources of the natural sciences are not half-developed
|
|
as yet; the soil of the earth, instead of growing more barren, may
|
|
become many times more fertile than hitherto; the uses of machinery far
|
|
greater, and also more minute than at present. New secrets of physiology
|
|
may be revealed, deeply affecting human nature in its innermost
|
|
recesses. The standard of health may be raised and the lives of men
|
|
prolonged by sanitary and medical knowledge. There may be peace, there
|
|
may be leisure, there may be innocent refreshments of many kinds. The
|
|
ever-increasing power of locomotion may join the extremes of earth.
|
|
There may be mysterious workings of the human mind, such as occur only
|
|
at great crises of history. The East and the West may meet together, and
|
|
all nations may contribute their thoughts and their experience to the
|
|
common stock of humanity. Many other elements enter into a speculation
|
|
of this kind. But it is better to make an end of them. For such
|
|
reflections appear to the majority far-fetched, and to men of science,
|
|
commonplace.
|
|
|
|
(b) Neither to the mind of Plato nor of Aristotle did the doctrine of
|
|
community of property present at all the same difficulty, or appear to
|
|
be the same violation of the common Hellenic sentiment, as the community
|
|
of wives and children. This paradox he prefaces by another proposal,
|
|
that the occupations of men and women shall be the same, and that to
|
|
this end they shall have a common training and education. Male and
|
|
female animals have the same pursuits--why not also the two sexes of
|
|
man?
|
|
|
|
But have we not here fallen into a contradiction? for we were saying
|
|
that different natures should have different pursuits. How then can men
|
|
and women have the same? And is not the proposal inconsistent with our
|
|
notion of the division of labour?--These objections are no sooner raised
|
|
than answered; for, according to Plato, there is no organic difference
|
|
between men and women, but only the accidental one that men beget and
|
|
women bear children. Following the analogy of the other animals, he
|
|
contends that all natural gifts are scattered about indifferently among
|
|
both sexes, though there may be a superiority of degree on the part of
|
|
the men. The objection on the score of decency to their taking part
|
|
in the same gymnastic exercises, is met by Plato's assertion that the
|
|
existing feeling is a matter of habit.
|
|
|
|
That Plato should have emancipated himself from the ideas of his own
|
|
country and from the example of the East, shows a wonderful independence
|
|
of mind. He is conscious that women are half the human race, in some
|
|
respects the more important half (Laws); and for the sake both of men
|
|
and women he desires to raise the woman to a higher level of existence.
|
|
He brings, not sentiment, but philosophy to bear upon a question which
|
|
both in ancient and modern times has been chiefly regarded in the light
|
|
of custom or feeling. The Greeks had noble conceptions of womanhood
|
|
in the goddesses Athene and Artemis, and in the heroines Antigone and
|
|
Andromache. But these ideals had no counterpart in actual life. The
|
|
Athenian woman was in no way the equal of her husband; she was not the
|
|
entertainer of his guests or the mistress of his house, but only his
|
|
housekeeper and the mother of his children. She took no part in military
|
|
or political matters; nor is there any instance in the later ages of
|
|
Greece of a woman becoming famous in literature. 'Hers is the greatest
|
|
glory who has the least renown among men,' is the historian's conception
|
|
of feminine excellence. A very different ideal of womanhood is held up
|
|
by Plato to the world; she is to be the companion of the man, and to
|
|
share with him in the toils of war and in the cares of government. She
|
|
is to be similarly trained both in bodily and mental exercises. She
|
|
is to lose as far as possible the incidents of maternity and the
|
|
characteristics of the female sex.
|
|
|
|
The modern antagonist of the equality of the sexes would argue that the
|
|
differences between men and women are not confined to the single point
|
|
urged by Plato; that sensibility, gentleness, grace, are the qualities
|
|
of women, while energy, strength, higher intelligence, are to be looked
|
|
for in men. And the criticism is just: the differences affect the whole
|
|
nature, and are not, as Plato supposes, confined to a single point. But
|
|
neither can we say how far these differences are due to education and
|
|
the opinions of mankind, or physically inherited from the habits and
|
|
opinions of former generations. Women have been always taught, not
|
|
exactly that they are slaves, but that they are in an inferior position,
|
|
which is also supposed to have compensating advantages; and to this
|
|
position they have conformed. It is also true that the physical form may
|
|
easily change in the course of generations through the mode of life; and
|
|
the weakness or delicacy, which was once a matter of opinion, may become
|
|
a physical fact. The characteristics of sex vary greatly in different
|
|
countries and ranks of society, and at different ages in the same
|
|
individuals. Plato may have been right in denying that there was any
|
|
ultimate difference in the sexes of man other than that which exists in
|
|
animals, because all other differences may be conceived to disappear in
|
|
other states of society, or under different circumstances of life and
|
|
training.
|
|
|
|
The first wave having been passed, we proceed to the second--community
|
|
of wives and children. 'Is it possible? Is it desirable?' For as Glaucon
|
|
intimates, and as we far more strongly insist, 'Great doubts may
|
|
be entertained about both these points.' Any free discussion of the
|
|
question is impossible, and mankind are perhaps right in not allowing
|
|
the ultimate bases of social life to be examined. Few of us can safely
|
|
enquire into the things which nature hides, any more than we can
|
|
dissect our own bodies. Still, the manner in which Plato arrived at his
|
|
conclusions should be considered. For here, as Mr. Grote has remarked,
|
|
is a wonderful thing, that one of the wisest and best of men should have
|
|
entertained ideas of morality which are wholly at variance with our
|
|
own. And if we would do Plato justice, we must examine carefully the
|
|
character of his proposals. First, we may observe that the relations of
|
|
the sexes supposed by him are the reverse of licentious: he seems rather
|
|
to aim at an impossible strictness. Secondly, he conceives the family
|
|
to be the natural enemy of the state; and he entertains the serious
|
|
hope that an universal brotherhood may take the place of private
|
|
interests--an aspiration which, although not justified by experience,
|
|
has possessed many noble minds. On the other hand, there is no sentiment
|
|
or imagination in the connections which men and women are supposed by
|
|
him to form; human beings return to the level of the animals, neither
|
|
exalting to heaven, nor yet abusing the natural instincts. All that
|
|
world of poetry and fancy which the passion of love has called forth
|
|
in modern literature and romance would have been banished by Plato. The
|
|
arrangements of marriage in the Republic are directed to one object--the
|
|
improvement of the race. In successive generations a great development
|
|
both of bodily and mental qualities might be possible. The analogy of
|
|
animals tends to show that mankind can within certain limits receive a
|
|
change of nature. And as in animals we should commonly choose the best
|
|
for breeding, and destroy the others, so there must be a selection made
|
|
of the human beings whose lives are worthy to be preserved.
|
|
|
|
We start back horrified from this Platonic ideal, in the belief, first,
|
|
that the higher feelings of humanity are far too strong to be crushed
|
|
out; secondly, that if the plan could be carried into execution we
|
|
should be poorly recompensed by improvements in the breed for the loss
|
|
of the best things in life. The greatest regard for the weakest and
|
|
meanest of human beings--the infant, the criminal, the insane, the
|
|
idiot, truly seems to us one of the noblest results of Christianity. We
|
|
have learned, though as yet imperfectly, that the individual man has an
|
|
endless value in the sight of God, and that we honour Him when we honour
|
|
the darkened and disfigured image of Him (Laws). This is the lesson
|
|
which Christ taught in a parable when He said, 'Their angels do always
|
|
behold the face of My Father which is in heaven.' Such lessons are only
|
|
partially realized in any age; they were foreign to the age of Plato, as
|
|
they have very different degrees of strength in different countries or
|
|
ages of the Christian world. To the Greek the family was a religious and
|
|
customary institution binding the members together by a tie inferior
|
|
in strength to that of friendship, and having a less solemn and sacred
|
|
sound than that of country. The relationship which existed on the lower
|
|
level of custom, Plato imagined that he was raising to the higher level
|
|
of nature and reason; while from the modern and Christian point of view
|
|
we regard him as sanctioning murder and destroying the first principles
|
|
of morality.
|
|
|
|
The great error in these and similar speculations is that the difference
|
|
between man and the animals is forgotten in them. The human being
|
|
is regarded with the eye of a dog- or bird-fancier, or at best of a
|
|
slave-owner; the higher or human qualities are left out. The breeder
|
|
of animals aims chiefly at size or speed or strength; in a few cases at
|
|
courage or temper; most often the fitness of the animal for food is the
|
|
great desideratum. But mankind are not bred to be eaten, nor yet for
|
|
their superiority in fighting or in running or in drawing carts. Neither
|
|
does the improvement of the human race consist merely in the increase
|
|
of the bones and flesh, but in the growth and enlightenment of the mind.
|
|
Hence there must be 'a marriage of true minds' as well as of bodies, of
|
|
imagination and reason as well as of lusts and instincts. Men and women
|
|
without feeling or imagination are justly called brutes; yet Plato
|
|
takes away these qualities and puts nothing in their place, not even
|
|
the desire of a noble offspring, since parents are not to know their own
|
|
children. The most important transaction of social life, he who is the
|
|
idealist philosopher converts into the most brutal. For the pair are to
|
|
have no relation to one another, except at the hymeneal festival; their
|
|
children are not theirs, but the state's; nor is any tie of affection to
|
|
unite them. Yet here the analogy of the animals might have saved
|
|
Plato from a gigantic error, if he had 'not lost sight of his own
|
|
illustration.' For the 'nobler sort of birds and beasts' nourish and
|
|
protect their offspring and are faithful to one another.
|
|
|
|
An eminent physiologist thinks it worth while 'to try and place life
|
|
on a physical basis.' But should not life rest on the moral rather than
|
|
upon the physical? The higher comes first, then the lower, first the
|
|
human and rational, afterwards the animal. Yet they are not absolutely
|
|
divided; and in times of sickness or moments of self-indulgence they
|
|
seem to be only different aspects of a common human nature which
|
|
includes them both. Neither is the moral the limit of the physical,
|
|
but the expansion and enlargement of it,--the highest form which the
|
|
physical is capable of receiving. As Plato would say, the body does not
|
|
take care of the body, and still less of the mind, but the mind takes
|
|
care of both. In all human action not that which is common to man and
|
|
the animals is the characteristic element, but that which distinguishes
|
|
him from them. Even if we admit the physical basis, and resolve all
|
|
virtue into health of body 'la facon que notre sang circule,' still on
|
|
merely physical grounds we must come back to ideas. Mind and reason and
|
|
duty and conscience, under these or other names, are always reappearing.
|
|
There cannot be health of body without health of mind; nor health of
|
|
mind without the sense of duty and the love of truth (Charm).
|
|
|
|
That the greatest of ancient philosophers should in his regulations
|
|
about marriage have fallen into the error of separating body and mind,
|
|
does indeed appear surprising. Yet the wonder is not so much that Plato
|
|
should have entertained ideas of morality which to our own age are
|
|
revolting, but that he should have contradicted himself to an extent
|
|
which is hardly credible, falling in an instant from the heaven of
|
|
idealism into the crudest animalism. Rejoicing in the newly found gift
|
|
of reflection, he appears to have thought out a subject about which he
|
|
had better have followed the enlightened feeling of his own age. The
|
|
general sentiment of Hellas was opposed to his monstrous fancy. The old
|
|
poets, and in later time the tragedians, showed no want of respect for
|
|
the family, on which much of their religion was based. But the example
|
|
of Sparta, and perhaps in some degree the tendency to defy public
|
|
opinion, seems to have misled him. He will make one family out of all
|
|
the families of the state. He will select the finest specimens of men
|
|
and women and breed from these only.
|
|
|
|
Yet because the illusion is always returning (for the animal part of
|
|
human nature will from time to time assert itself in the disguise of
|
|
philosophy as well as of poetry), and also because any departure from
|
|
established morality, even where this is not intended, is apt to be
|
|
unsettling, it may be worth while to draw out a little more at length
|
|
the objections to the Platonic marriage. In the first place, history
|
|
shows that wherever polygamy has been largely allowed the race has
|
|
deteriorated. One man to one woman is the law of God and nature. Nearly
|
|
all the civilized peoples of the world at some period before the age of
|
|
written records, have become monogamists; and the step when once taken
|
|
has never been retraced. The exceptions occurring among Brahmins or
|
|
Mahometans or the ancient Persians, are of that sort which may be said
|
|
to prove the rule. The connexions formed between superior and
|
|
inferior races hardly ever produce a noble offspring, because they are
|
|
licentious; and because the children in such cases usually despise the
|
|
mother and are neglected by the father who is ashamed of them.
|
|
Barbarous nations when they are introduced by Europeans to vice die
|
|
out; polygamist peoples either import and adopt children from other
|
|
countries, or dwindle in numbers, or both. Dynasties and aristocracies
|
|
which have disregarded the laws of nature have decreased in numbers and
|
|
degenerated in stature; 'mariages de convenance' leave their enfeebling
|
|
stamp on the offspring of them (King Lear). The marriage of near
|
|
relations, or the marrying in and in of the same family tends constantly
|
|
to weakness or idiocy in the children, sometimes assuming the form as
|
|
they grow older of passionate licentiousness. The common prostitute
|
|
rarely has any offspring. By such unmistakable evidence is the authority
|
|
of morality asserted in the relations of the sexes: and so many more
|
|
elements enter into this 'mystery' than are dreamed of by Plato and some
|
|
other philosophers.
|
|
|
|
Recent enquirers have indeed arrived at the conclusion that among
|
|
primitive tribes there existed a community of wives as of property, and
|
|
that the captive taken by the spear was the only wife or slave whom any
|
|
man was permitted to call his own. The partial existence of such customs
|
|
among some of the lower races of man, and the survival of peculiar
|
|
ceremonies in the marriages of some civilized nations, are thought to
|
|
furnish a proof of similar institutions having been once universal.
|
|
There can be no question that the study of anthropology has considerably
|
|
changed our views respecting the first appearance of man upon the earth.
|
|
We know more about the aborigines of the world than formerly, but our
|
|
increasing knowledge shows above all things how little we know. With all
|
|
the helps which written monuments afford, we do but faintly realize the
|
|
condition of man two thousand or three thousand years ago. Of what his
|
|
condition was when removed to a distance 200,000 or 300,000 years, when
|
|
the majority of mankind were lower and nearer the animals than any tribe
|
|
now existing upon the earth, we cannot even entertain conjecture. Plato
|
|
(Laws) and Aristotle (Metaph.) may have been more right than we imagine
|
|
in supposing that some forms of civilisation were discovered and lost
|
|
several times over. If we cannot argue that all barbarism is a degraded
|
|
civilization, neither can we set any limits to the depth of degradation
|
|
to which the human race may sink through war, disease, or isolation.
|
|
And if we are to draw inferences about the origin of marriage from
|
|
the practice of barbarous nations, we should also consider the
|
|
remoter analogy of the animals. Many birds and animals, especially the
|
|
carnivorous, have only one mate, and the love and care of offspring
|
|
which seems to be natural is inconsistent with the primitive theory of
|
|
marriage. If we go back to an imaginary state in which men were almost
|
|
animals and the companions of them, we have as much right to argue from
|
|
what is animal to what is human as from the barbarous to the civilized
|
|
man. The record of animal life on the globe is fragmentary,--the
|
|
connecting links are wanting and cannot be supplied; the record of
|
|
social life is still more fragmentary and precarious. Even if we admit
|
|
that our first ancestors had no such institution as marriage, still
|
|
the stages by which men passed from outer barbarism to the comparative
|
|
civilization of China, Assyria, and Greece, or even of the ancient
|
|
Germans, are wholly unknown to us.
|
|
|
|
Such speculations are apt to be unsettling, because they seem to show
|
|
that an institution which was thought to be a revelation from heaven, is
|
|
only the growth of history and experience. We ask what is the origin of
|
|
marriage, and we are told that like the right of property, after many
|
|
wars and contests, it has gradually arisen out of the selfishness of
|
|
barbarians. We stand face to face with human nature in its primitive
|
|
nakedness. We are compelled to accept, not the highest, but the lowest
|
|
account of the origin of human society. But on the other hand we
|
|
may truly say that every step in human progress has been in the same
|
|
direction, and that in the course of ages the idea of marriage and of
|
|
the family has been more and more defined and consecrated. The civilized
|
|
East is immeasurably in advance of any savage tribes; the Greeks and
|
|
Romans have improved upon the East; the Christian nations have been
|
|
stricter in their views of the marriage relation than any of the
|
|
ancients. In this as in so many other things, instead of looking back
|
|
with regret to the past, we should look forward with hope to the future.
|
|
We must consecrate that which we believe to be the most holy, and that
|
|
'which is the most holy will be the most useful.' There is more reason
|
|
for maintaining the sacredness of the marriage tie, when we see the
|
|
benefit of it, than when we only felt a vague religious horror about
|
|
the violation of it. But in all times of transition, when established
|
|
beliefs are being undermined, there is a danger that in the passage from
|
|
the old to the new we may insensibly let go the moral principle, finding
|
|
an excuse for listening to the voice of passion in the uncertainty of
|
|
knowledge, or the fluctuations of opinion. And there are many persons
|
|
in our own day who, enlightened by the study of anthropology, and
|
|
fascinated by what is new and strange, some using the language of fear,
|
|
others of hope, are inclined to believe that a time will come when
|
|
through the self-assertion of women, or the rebellious spirit of
|
|
children, by the analysis of human relations, or by the force of outward
|
|
circumstances, the ties of family life may be broken or greatly relaxed.
|
|
They point to societies in America and elsewhere which tend to show that
|
|
the destruction of the family need not necessarily involve the overthrow
|
|
of all morality. Wherever we may think of such speculations, we can
|
|
hardly deny that they have been more rife in this generation than in any
|
|
other; and whither they are tending, who can predict?
|
|
|
|
To the doubts and queries raised by these 'social reformers' respecting
|
|
the relation of the sexes and the moral nature of man, there is a
|
|
sufficient answer, if any is needed. The difference about them and us is
|
|
really one of fact. They are speaking of man as they wish or fancy him
|
|
to be, but we are speaking of him as he is. They isolate the animal
|
|
part of his nature; we regard him as a creature having many sides, or
|
|
aspects, moving between good and evil, striving to rise above himself
|
|
and to become 'a little lower than the angels.' We also, to use
|
|
a Platonic formula, are not ignorant of the dissatisfactions and
|
|
incompatibilities of family life, of the meannesses of trade, of the
|
|
flatteries of one class of society by another, of the impediments which
|
|
the family throws in the way of lofty aims and aspirations. But we are
|
|
conscious that there are evils and dangers in the background greater
|
|
still, which are not appreciated, because they are either concealed
|
|
or suppressed. What a condition of man would that be, in which human
|
|
passions were controlled by no authority, divine or human, in which
|
|
there was no shame or decency, no higher affection overcoming or
|
|
sanctifying the natural instincts, but simply a rule of health! Is it
|
|
for this that we are asked to throw away the civilization which is the
|
|
growth of ages?
|
|
|
|
For strength and health are not the only qualities to be desired; there
|
|
are the more important considerations of mind and character and soul. We
|
|
know how human nature may be degraded; we do not know how by artificial
|
|
means any improvement in the breed can be effected. The problem is a
|
|
complex one, for if we go back only four steps (and these at least enter
|
|
into the composition of a child), there are commonly thirty progenitors
|
|
to be taken into account. Many curious facts, rarely admitting of proof,
|
|
are told us respecting the inheritance of disease or character from a
|
|
remote ancestor. We can trace the physical resemblances of parents and
|
|
children in the same family--
|
|
|
|
'Sic oculos, sic ille manus, sic ora ferebat';
|
|
|
|
but scarcely less often the differences which distinguish children both
|
|
from their parents and from one another. We are told of similar mental
|
|
peculiarities running in families, and again of a tendency, as in
|
|
the animals, to revert to a common or original stock. But we have a
|
|
difficulty in distinguishing what is a true inheritance of genius or
|
|
other qualities, and what is mere imitation or the result of similar
|
|
circumstances. Great men and great women have rarely had great fathers
|
|
and mothers. Nothing that we know of in the circumstances of their birth
|
|
or lineage will explain their appearance. Of the English poets of the
|
|
last and two preceding centuries scarcely a descendant remains,--none
|
|
have ever been distinguished. So deeply has nature hidden her secret,
|
|
and so ridiculous is the fancy which has been entertained by some that
|
|
we might in time by suitable marriage arrangements or, as Plato would
|
|
have said, 'by an ingenious system of lots,' produce a Shakespeare or
|
|
a Milton. Even supposing that we could breed men having the tenacity
|
|
of bulldogs, or, like the Spartans, 'lacking the wit to run away
|
|
in battle,' would the world be any the better? Many of the noblest
|
|
specimens of the human race have been among the weakest physically.
|
|
Tyrtaeus or Aesop, or our own Newton, would have been exposed at Sparta;
|
|
and some of the fairest and strongest men and women have been among the
|
|
wickedest and worst. Not by the Platonic device of uniting the strong
|
|
and fair with the strong and fair, regardless of sentiment and morality,
|
|
nor yet by his other device of combining dissimilar natures (Statesman),
|
|
have mankind gradually passed from the brutality and licentiousness of
|
|
primitive marriage to marriage Christian and civilized.
|
|
|
|
Few persons would deny that we bring into the world an inheritance of
|
|
mental and physical qualities derived first from our parents, or through
|
|
them from some remoter ancestor, secondly from our race, thirdly from
|
|
the general condition of mankind into which we are born. Nothing is
|
|
commoner than the remark, that 'So and so is like his father or his
|
|
uncle'; and an aged person may not unfrequently note a resemblance in
|
|
a youth to a long-forgotten ancestor, observing that 'Nature sometimes
|
|
skips a generation.' It may be true also, that if we knew more about
|
|
our ancestors, these similarities would be even more striking to us.
|
|
Admitting the facts which are thus described in a popular way, we may
|
|
however remark that there is no method of difference by which they can
|
|
be defined or estimated, and that they constitute only a small part of
|
|
each individual. The doctrine of heredity may seem to take out of our
|
|
hands the conduct of our own lives, but it is the idea, not the fact,
|
|
which is really terrible to us. For what we have received from our
|
|
ancestors is only a fraction of what we are, or may become. The
|
|
knowledge that drunkenness or insanity has been prevalent in a
|
|
family may be the best safeguard against their recurrence in a future
|
|
generation. The parent will be most awake to the vices or diseases in
|
|
his child of which he is most sensible within himself. The whole of life
|
|
may be directed to their prevention or cure. The traces of consumption
|
|
may become fainter, or be wholly effaced: the inherent tendency to vice
|
|
or crime may be eradicated. And so heredity, from being a curse, may
|
|
become a blessing. We acknowledge that in the matter of our birth, as in
|
|
our nature generally, there are previous circumstances which affect
|
|
us. But upon this platform of circumstances or within this wall of
|
|
necessity, we have still the power of creating a life for ourselves by
|
|
the informing energy of the human will.
|
|
|
|
There is another aspect of the marriage question to which Plato is a
|
|
stranger. All the children born in his state are foundlings. It never
|
|
occurred to him that the greater part of them, according to universal
|
|
experience, would have perished. For children can only be brought up in
|
|
families. There is a subtle sympathy between the mother and the child
|
|
which cannot be supplied by other mothers, or by 'strong nurses one or
|
|
more' (Laws). If Plato's 'pen' was as fatal as the Creches of Paris, or
|
|
the foundling hospital of Dublin, more than nine-tenths of his children
|
|
would have perished. There would have been no need to expose or put
|
|
out of the way the weaklier children, for they would have died of
|
|
themselves. So emphatically does nature protest against the destruction
|
|
of the family.
|
|
|
|
What Plato had heard or seen of Sparta was applied by him in a mistaken
|
|
way to his ideal commonwealth. He probably observed that both the
|
|
Spartan men and women were superior in form and strength to the other
|
|
Greeks; and this superiority he was disposed to attribute to the laws
|
|
and customs relating to marriage. He did not consider that the desire
|
|
of a noble offspring was a passion among the Spartans, or that their
|
|
physical superiority was to be attributed chiefly, not to their marriage
|
|
customs, but to their temperance and training. He did not reflect that
|
|
Sparta was great, not in consequence of the relaxation of morality, but
|
|
in spite of it, by virtue of a political principle stronger far than
|
|
existed in any other Grecian state. Least of all did he observe that
|
|
Sparta did not really produce the finest specimens of the Greek
|
|
race. The genius, the political inspiration of Athens, the love of
|
|
liberty--all that has made Greece famous with posterity, were wanting
|
|
among the Spartans. They had no Themistocles, or Pericles, or Aeschylus,
|
|
or Sophocles, or Socrates, or Plato. The individual was not allowed to
|
|
appear above the state; the laws were fixed, and he had no business to
|
|
alter or reform them. Yet whence has the progress of cities and nations
|
|
arisen, if not from remarkable individuals, coming into the world we
|
|
know not how, and from causes over which we have no control?
|
|
Something too much may have been said in modern times of the value of
|
|
individuality. But we can hardly condemn too strongly a system which,
|
|
instead of fostering the scattered seeds or sparks of genius and
|
|
character, tends to smother and extinguish them.
|
|
|
|
Still, while condemning Plato, we must acknowledge that neither
|
|
Christianity, nor any other form of religion and society, has hitherto
|
|
been able to cope with this most difficult of social problems, and that
|
|
the side from which Plato regarded it is that from which we turn away.
|
|
Population is the most untameable force in the political and social
|
|
world. Do we not find, especially in large cities, that the greatest
|
|
hindrance to the amelioration of the poor is their improvidence in
|
|
marriage?--a small fault truly, if not involving endless consequences.
|
|
There are whole countries too, such as India, or, nearer home, Ireland,
|
|
in which a right solution of the marriage question seems to lie at the
|
|
foundation of the happiness of the community. There are too many people
|
|
on a given space, or they marry too early and bring into the world a
|
|
sickly and half-developed offspring; or owing to the very conditions
|
|
of their existence, they become emaciated and hand on a similar life
|
|
to their descendants. But who can oppose the voice of prudence to the
|
|
'mightiest passions of mankind' (Laws), especially when they have
|
|
been licensed by custom and religion? In addition to the influences of
|
|
education, we seem to require some new principles of right and wrong in
|
|
these matters, some force of opinion, which may indeed be already heard
|
|
whispering in private, but has never affected the moral sentiments
|
|
of mankind in general. We unavoidably lose sight of the principle of
|
|
utility, just in that action of our lives in which we have the most need
|
|
of it. The influences which we can bring to bear upon this question
|
|
are chiefly indirect. In a generation or two, education, emigration,
|
|
improvements in agriculture and manufactures, may have provided the
|
|
solution. The state physician hardly likes to probe the wound: it is
|
|
beyond his art; a matter which he cannot safely let alone, but which he
|
|
dare not touch:
|
|
|
|
'We do but skin and film the ulcerous place.'
|
|
|
|
When again in private life we see a whole family one by one dropping
|
|
into the grave under the Ate of some inherited malady, and the parents
|
|
perhaps surviving them, do our minds ever go back silently to that day
|
|
twenty-five or thirty years before on which under the fairest auspices,
|
|
amid the rejoicings of friends and acquaintances, a bride and bridegroom
|
|
joined hands with one another? In making such a reflection we are not
|
|
opposing physical considerations to moral, but moral to physical; we are
|
|
seeking to make the voice of reason heard, which drives us back from the
|
|
extravagance of sentimentalism on common sense. The late Dr. Combe is
|
|
said by his biographer to have resisted the temptation to marriage,
|
|
because he knew that he was subject to hereditary consumption. One who
|
|
deserved to be called a man of genius, a friend of my youth, was in the
|
|
habit of wearing a black ribbon on his wrist, in order to remind him
|
|
that, being liable to outbreaks of insanity, he must not give way to the
|
|
natural impulses of affection: he died unmarried in a lunatic asylum.
|
|
These two little facts suggest the reflection that a very few persons
|
|
have done from a sense of duty what the rest of mankind ought to have
|
|
done under like circumstances, if they had allowed themselves to think
|
|
of all the misery which they were about to bring into the world. If
|
|
we could prevent such marriages without any violation of feeling or
|
|
propriety, we clearly ought; and the prohibition in the course of time
|
|
would be protected by a 'horror naturalis' similar to that which, in
|
|
all civilized ages and countries, has prevented the marriage of near
|
|
relations by blood. Mankind would have been the happier, if some things
|
|
which are now allowed had from the beginning been denied to them; if the
|
|
sanction of religion could have prohibited practices inimical to health;
|
|
if sanitary principles could in early ages have been invested with a
|
|
superstitious awe. But, living as we do far on in the world's history,
|
|
we are no longer able to stamp at once with the impress of religion a
|
|
new prohibition. A free agent cannot have his fancies regulated by law;
|
|
and the execution of the law would be rendered impossible, owing to the
|
|
uncertainty of the cases in which marriage was to be forbidden. Who
|
|
can weigh virtue, or even fortune against health, or moral and mental
|
|
qualities against bodily? Who can measure probabilities against
|
|
certainties? There has been some good as well as evil in the discipline
|
|
of suffering; and there are diseases, such as consumption, which have
|
|
exercised a refining and softening influence on the character. Youth is
|
|
too inexperienced to balance such nice considerations; parents do not
|
|
often think of them, or think of them too late. They are at a distance
|
|
and may probably be averted; change of place, a new state of life, the
|
|
interests of a home may be the cure of them. So persons vainly reason
|
|
when their minds are already made up and their fortunes irrevocably
|
|
linked together. Nor is there any ground for supposing that marriages
|
|
are to any great extent influenced by reflections of this sort, which
|
|
seem unable to make any head against the irresistible impulse of
|
|
individual attachment.
|
|
|
|
Lastly, no one can have observed the first rising flood of the passions
|
|
in youth, the difficulty of regulating them, and the effects on the
|
|
whole mind and nature which follow from them, the stimulus which
|
|
is given to them by the imagination, without feeling that there is
|
|
something unsatisfactory in our method of treating them. That the most
|
|
important influence on human life should be wholly left to chance or
|
|
shrouded in mystery, and instead of being disciplined or understood,
|
|
should be required to conform only to an external standard of
|
|
propriety--cannot be regarded by the philosopher as a safe or
|
|
satisfactory condition of human things. And still those who have the
|
|
charge of youth may find a way by watchfulness, by affection, by the
|
|
manliness and innocence of their own lives, by occasional hints, by
|
|
general admonitions which every one can apply for himself, to mitigate
|
|
this terrible evil which eats out the heart of individuals and corrupts
|
|
the moral sentiments of nations. In no duty towards others is there more
|
|
need of reticence and self-restraint. So great is the danger lest he who
|
|
would be the counsellor of another should reveal the secret prematurely,
|
|
lest he should get another too much into his power; or fix the passing
|
|
impression of evil by demanding the confession of it.
|
|
|
|
Nor is Plato wrong in asserting that family attachments may interfere
|
|
with higher aims. If there have been some who 'to party gave up what was
|
|
meant for mankind,' there have certainly been others who to family
|
|
gave up what was meant for mankind or for their country. The cares
|
|
of children, the necessity of procuring money for their support, the
|
|
flatteries of the rich by the poor, the exclusiveness of caste, the
|
|
pride of birth or wealth, the tendency of family life to divert men from
|
|
the pursuit of the ideal or the heroic, are as lowering in our own age
|
|
as in that of Plato. And if we prefer to look at the gentle influences
|
|
of home, the development of the affections, the amenities of society,
|
|
the devotion of one member of a family for the good of the others, which
|
|
form one side of the picture, we must not quarrel with him, or perhaps
|
|
ought rather to be grateful to him, for having presented to us the
|
|
reverse. Without attempting to defend Plato on grounds of morality, we
|
|
may allow that there is an aspect of the world which has not unnaturally
|
|
led him into error.
|
|
|
|
We hardly appreciate the power which the idea of the State, like all
|
|
other abstract ideas, exercised over the mind of Plato. To us the State
|
|
seems to be built up out of the family, or sometimes to be the framework
|
|
in which family and social life is contained. But to Plato in his
|
|
present mood of mind the family is only a disturbing influence which,
|
|
instead of filling up, tends to disarrange the higher unity of the
|
|
State. No organization is needed except a political, which,
|
|
regarded from another point of view, is a military one. The State is
|
|
all-sufficing for the wants of man, and, like the idea of the Church in
|
|
later ages, absorbs all other desires and affections. In time of war the
|
|
thousand citizens are to stand like a rampart impregnable against the
|
|
world or the Persian host; in time of peace the preparation for war and
|
|
their duties to the State, which are also their duties to one another,
|
|
take up their whole life and time. The only other interest which is
|
|
allowed to them besides that of war, is the interest of philosophy. When
|
|
they are too old to be soldiers they are to retire from active life
|
|
and to have a second novitiate of study and contemplation. There is an
|
|
element of monasticism even in Plato's communism. If he could have done
|
|
without children, he might have converted his Republic into a religious
|
|
order. Neither in the Laws, when the daylight of common sense breaks in
|
|
upon him, does he retract his error. In the state of which he would be
|
|
the founder, there is no marrying or giving in marriage: but because of
|
|
the infirmity of mankind, he condescends to allow the law of nature to
|
|
prevail.
|
|
|
|
(c) But Plato has an equal, or, in his own estimation, even greater
|
|
paradox in reserve, which is summed up in the famous text, 'Until kings
|
|
are philosophers or philosophers are kings, cities will never cease
|
|
from ill.' And by philosophers he explains himself to mean those who
|
|
are capable of apprehending ideas, especially the idea of good. To the
|
|
attainment of this higher knowledge the second education is directed.
|
|
Through a process of training which has already made them good citizens
|
|
they are now to be made good legislators. We find with some surprise
|
|
(not unlike the feeling which Aristotle in a well-known passage
|
|
describes the hearers of Plato's lectures as experiencing, when they
|
|
went to a discourse on the idea of good, expecting to be instructed in
|
|
moral truths, and received instead of them arithmetical and mathematical
|
|
formulae) that Plato does not propose for his future legislators any
|
|
study of finance or law or military tactics, but only of abstract
|
|
mathematics, as a preparation for the still more abstract conception of
|
|
good. We ask, with Aristotle, What is the use of a man knowing the idea
|
|
of good, if he does not know what is good for this individual, this
|
|
state, this condition of society? We cannot understand how Plato's
|
|
legislators or guardians are to be fitted for their work of statesmen by
|
|
the study of the five mathematical sciences. We vainly search in Plato's
|
|
own writings for any explanation of this seeming absurdity.
|
|
|
|
The discovery of a great metaphysical conception seems to ravish the
|
|
mind with a prophetic consciousness which takes away the power
|
|
of estimating its value. No metaphysical enquirer has ever fairly
|
|
criticised his own speculations; in his own judgment they have been
|
|
above criticism; nor has he understood that what to him seemed to be
|
|
absolute truth may reappear in the next generation as a form of logic
|
|
or an instrument of thought. And posterity have also sometimes equally
|
|
misapprehended the real value of his speculations. They appear to them
|
|
to have contributed nothing to the stock of human knowledge. The IDEA
|
|
of good is apt to be regarded by the modern thinker as an unmeaning
|
|
abstraction; but he forgets that this abstraction is waiting ready for
|
|
use, and will hereafter be filled up by the divisions of knowledge.
|
|
When mankind do not as yet know that the world is subject to law, the
|
|
introduction of the mere conception of law or design or final cause, and
|
|
the far-off anticipation of the harmony of knowledge, are great steps
|
|
onward. Even the crude generalization of the unity of all things leads
|
|
men to view the world with different eyes, and may easily affect their
|
|
conception of human life and of politics, and also their own conduct and
|
|
character (Tim). We can imagine how a great mind like that of Pericles
|
|
might derive elevation from his intercourse with Anaxagoras (Phaedr.).
|
|
To be struggling towards a higher but unattainable conception is a more
|
|
favourable intellectual condition than to rest satisfied in a narrow
|
|
portion of ascertained fact. And the earlier, which have sometimes been
|
|
the greater ideas of science, are often lost sight of at a later period.
|
|
How rarely can we say of any modern enquirer in the magnificent language
|
|
of Plato, that 'He is the spectator of all time and of all existence!'
|
|
|
|
Nor is there anything unnatural in the hasty application of these vast
|
|
metaphysical conceptions to practical and political life. In the first
|
|
enthusiasm of ideas men are apt to see them everywhere, and to apply
|
|
them in the most remote sphere. They do not understand that the
|
|
experience of ages is required to enable them to fill up 'the
|
|
intermediate axioms.' Plato himself seems to have imagined that the
|
|
truths of psychology, like those of astronomy and harmonics, would be
|
|
arrived at by a process of deduction, and that the method which he has
|
|
pursued in the Fourth Book, of inferring them from experience and the
|
|
use of language, was imperfect and only provisional. But when, after
|
|
having arrived at the idea of good, which is the end of the science of
|
|
dialectic, he is asked, What is the nature, and what are the divisions
|
|
of the science? He refuses to answer, as if intending by the refusal to
|
|
intimate that the state of knowledge which then existed was not such as
|
|
would allow the philosopher to enter into his final rest. The previous
|
|
sciences must first be studied, and will, we may add, continue to be
|
|
studied tell the end of time, although in a sense different from any
|
|
which Plato could have conceived. But we may observe, that while he is
|
|
aware of the vacancy of his own ideal, he is full of enthusiasm in the
|
|
contemplation of it. Looking into the orb of light, he sees nothing, but
|
|
he is warmed and elevated. The Hebrew prophet believed that faith in
|
|
God would enable him to govern the world; the Greek philosopher imagined
|
|
that contemplation of the good would make a legislator. There is as much
|
|
to be filled up in the one case as in the other, and the one mode of
|
|
conception is to the Israelite what the other is to the Greek. Both find
|
|
a repose in a divine perfection, which, whether in a more personal or
|
|
impersonal form, exists without them and independently of them, as well
|
|
as within them.
|
|
|
|
There is no mention of the idea of good in the Timaeus, nor of the
|
|
divine Creator of the world in the Republic; and we are naturally led
|
|
to ask in what relation they stand to one another. Is God above or below
|
|
the idea of good? Or is the Idea of Good another mode of conceiving God?
|
|
The latter appears to be the truer answer. To the Greek philosopher
|
|
the perfection and unity of God was a far higher conception than his
|
|
personality, which he hardly found a word to express, and which to him
|
|
would have seemed to be borrowed from mythology. To the Christian, on
|
|
the other hand, or to the modern thinker in general, it is difficult,
|
|
if not impossible, to attach reality to what he terms mere abstraction;
|
|
while to Plato this very abstraction is the truest and most real of all
|
|
things. Hence, from a difference in forms of thought, Plato appears to
|
|
be resting on a creation of his own mind only. But if we may be allowed
|
|
to paraphrase the idea of good by the words 'intelligent principle of
|
|
law and order in the universe, embracing equally man and nature,' we
|
|
begin to find a meeting-point between him and ourselves.
|
|
|
|
The question whether the ruler or statesman should be a philosopher is
|
|
one that has not lost interest in modern times. In most countries of
|
|
Europe and Asia there has been some one in the course of ages who
|
|
has truly united the power of command with the power of thought and
|
|
reflection, as there have been also many false combinations of these
|
|
qualities. Some kind of speculative power is necessary both in practical
|
|
and political life; like the rhetorician in the Phaedrus, men require to
|
|
have a conception of the varieties of human character, and to be raised
|
|
on great occasions above the commonplaces of ordinary life. Yet the idea
|
|
of the philosopher-statesman has never been popular with the mass of
|
|
mankind; partly because he cannot take the world into his confidence or
|
|
make them understand the motives from which he acts; and also because
|
|
they are jealous of a power which they do not understand. The revolution
|
|
which human nature desires to effect step by step in many ages is likely
|
|
to be precipitated by him in a single year or life. They are afraid that
|
|
in the pursuit of his greater aims he may disregard the common feelings
|
|
of humanity, he is too apt to be looking into the distant future or back
|
|
into the remote past, and unable to see actions or events which, to use
|
|
an expression of Plato's 'are tumbling out at his feet.' Besides, as
|
|
Plato would say, there are other corruptions of these philosophical
|
|
statesmen. Either 'the native hue of resolution is sicklied o'er with
|
|
the pale cast of thought,' and at the moment when action above all
|
|
things is required he is undecided, or general principles are enunciated
|
|
by him in order to cover some change of policy; or his ignorance of the
|
|
world has made him more easily fall a prey to the arts of others; or in
|
|
some cases he has been converted into a courtier, who enjoys the luxury
|
|
of holding liberal opinions, but was never known to perform a liberal
|
|
action. No wonder that mankind have been in the habit of calling
|
|
statesmen of this class pedants, sophisters, doctrinaires, visionaries.
|
|
For, as we may be allowed to say, a little parodying the words of Plato,
|
|
'they have seen bad imitations of the philosopher-statesman.' But a man
|
|
in whom the power of thought and action are perfectly balanced, equal to
|
|
the present, reaching forward to the future, 'such a one,' ruling in a
|
|
constitutional state, 'they have never seen.'
|
|
|
|
But as the philosopher is apt to fail in the routine of political life,
|
|
so the ordinary statesman is also apt to fail in extraordinary crises.
|
|
When the face of the world is beginning to alter, and thunder is heard
|
|
in the distance, he is still guided by his old maxims, and is the slave
|
|
of his inveterate party prejudices; he cannot perceive the signs of the
|
|
times; instead of looking forward he looks back; he learns nothing and
|
|
forgets nothing; with 'wise saws and modern instances' he would stem the
|
|
rising tide of revolution. He lives more and more within the circle of
|
|
his own party, as the world without him becomes stronger. This seems to
|
|
be the reason why the old order of things makes so poor a figure
|
|
when confronted with the new, why churches can never reform, why most
|
|
political changes are made blindly and convulsively. The great crises
|
|
in the history of nations have often been met by an ecclesiastical
|
|
positiveness, and a more obstinate reassertion of principles which
|
|
have lost their hold upon a nation. The fixed ideas of a reactionary
|
|
statesman may be compared to madness; they grow upon him, and he becomes
|
|
possessed by them; no judgement of others is ever admitted by him to be
|
|
weighed in the balance against his own.
|
|
|
|
(d) Plato, labouring under what, to modern readers, appears to have been
|
|
a confusion of ideas, assimilates the state to the individual, and fails
|
|
to distinguish Ethics from Politics. He thinks that to be most of a
|
|
state which is most like one man, and in which the citizens have the
|
|
greatest uniformity of character. He does not see that the analogy is
|
|
partly fallacious, and that the will or character of a state or nation
|
|
is really the balance or rather the surplus of individual wills, which
|
|
are limited by the condition of having to act in common. The movement
|
|
of a body of men can never have the pliancy or facility of a single man;
|
|
the freedom of the individual, which is always limited, becomes still
|
|
more straitened when transferred to a nation. The powers of action and
|
|
feeling are necessarily weaker and more balanced when they are diffused
|
|
through a community; whence arises the often discussed question, 'Can a
|
|
nation, like an individual, have a conscience?' We hesitate to say
|
|
that the characters of nations are nothing more than the sum of the
|
|
characters of the individuals who compose them; because there may be
|
|
tendencies in individuals which react upon one another. A whole nation
|
|
may be wiser than any one man in it; or may be animated by some common
|
|
opinion or feeling which could not equally have affected the mind of
|
|
a single person, or may have been inspired by a leader of genius to
|
|
perform acts more than human. Plato does not appear to have analysed
|
|
the complications which arise out of the collective action of mankind.
|
|
Neither is he capable of seeing that analogies, though specious as
|
|
arguments, may often have no foundation in fact, or of distinguishing
|
|
between what is intelligible or vividly present to the mind, and what
|
|
is true. In this respect he is far below Aristotle, who is comparatively
|
|
seldom imposed upon by false analogies. He cannot disentangle the arts
|
|
from the virtues--at least he is always arguing from one to the other.
|
|
His notion of music is transferred from harmony of sounds to harmony of
|
|
life: in this he is assisted by the ambiguities of language as well as
|
|
by the prevalence of Pythagorean notions. And having once assimilated
|
|
the state to the individual, he imagines that he will find the
|
|
succession of states paralleled in the lives of individuals.
|
|
|
|
Still, through this fallacious medium, a real enlargement of ideas is
|
|
attained. When the virtues as yet presented no distinct conception to
|
|
the mind, a great advance was made by the comparison of them with the
|
|
arts; for virtue is partly art, and has an outward form as well as an
|
|
inward principle. The harmony of music affords a lively image of the
|
|
harmonies of the world and of human life, and may be regarded as a
|
|
splendid illustration which was naturally mistaken for a real analogy.
|
|
In the same way the identification of ethics with politics has a
|
|
tendency to give definiteness to ethics, and also to elevate and ennoble
|
|
men's notions of the aims of government and of the duties of citizens;
|
|
for ethics from one point of view may be conceived as an idealized law
|
|
and politics; and politics, as ethics reduced to the conditions of human
|
|
society. There have been evils which have arisen out of the attempt to
|
|
identify them, and this has led to the separation or antagonism of
|
|
them, which has been introduced by modern political writers. But we may
|
|
likewise feel that something has been lost in their separation, and
|
|
that the ancient philosophers who estimated the moral and intellectual
|
|
wellbeing of mankind first, and the wealth of nations and individuals
|
|
second, may have a salutary influence on the speculations of modern
|
|
times. Many political maxims originate in a reaction against an opposite
|
|
error; and when the errors against which they were directed have passed
|
|
away, they in turn become errors.
|
|
|
|
3. Plato's views of education are in several respects remarkable;
|
|
like the rest of the Republic they are partly Greek and partly ideal,
|
|
beginning with the ordinary curriculum of the Greek youth, and extending
|
|
to after-life. Plato is the first writer who distinctly says that
|
|
education is to comprehend the whole of life, and to be a preparation
|
|
for another in which education begins again. This is the continuous
|
|
thread which runs through the Republic, and which more than any other of
|
|
his ideas admits of an application to modern life.
|
|
|
|
He has long given up the notion that virtue cannot be taught; and he is
|
|
disposed to modify the thesis of the Protagoras, that the virtues are
|
|
one and not many. He is not unwilling to admit the sensible world
|
|
into his scheme of truth. Nor does he assert in the Republic the
|
|
involuntariness of vice, which is maintained by him in the Timaeus,
|
|
Sophist, and Laws (Protag., Apol., Gorg.). Nor do the so-called Platonic
|
|
ideas recovered from a former state of existence affect his theory
|
|
of mental improvement. Still we observe in him the remains of the old
|
|
Socratic doctrine, that true knowledge must be elicited from within, and
|
|
is to be sought for in ideas, not in particulars of sense. Education, as
|
|
he says, will implant a principle of intelligence which is better than
|
|
ten thousand eyes. The paradox that the virtues are one, and the kindred
|
|
notion that all virtue is knowledge, are not entirely renounced; the
|
|
first is seen in the supremacy given to justice over the rest; the
|
|
second in the tendency to absorb the moral virtues in the intellectual,
|
|
and to centre all goodness in the contemplation of the idea of good. The
|
|
world of sense is still depreciated and identified with opinion, though
|
|
admitted to be a shadow of the true. In the Republic he is evidently
|
|
impressed with the conviction that vice arises chiefly from ignorance
|
|
and may be cured by education; the multitude are hardly to be deemed
|
|
responsible for what they do. A faint allusion to the doctrine of
|
|
reminiscence occurs in the Tenth Book; but Plato's views of education
|
|
have no more real connection with a previous state of existence than
|
|
our own; he only proposes to elicit from the mind that which is there
|
|
already. Education is represented by him, not as the filling of a
|
|
vessel, but as the turning the eye of the soul towards the light.
|
|
|
|
He treats first of music or literature, which he divides into true and
|
|
false, and then goes on to gymnastics; of infancy in the Republic he
|
|
takes no notice, though in the Laws he gives sage counsels about the
|
|
nursing of children and the management of the mothers, and would have
|
|
an education which is even prior to birth. But in the Republic he begins
|
|
with the age at which the child is capable of receiving ideas, and
|
|
boldly asserts, in language which sounds paradoxical to modern ears,
|
|
that he must be taught the false before he can learn the true. The
|
|
modern and ancient philosophical world are not agreed about truth and
|
|
falsehood; the one identifies truth almost exclusively with fact, the
|
|
other with ideas. This is the difference between ourselves and Plato,
|
|
which is, however, partly a difference of words. For we too should admit
|
|
that a child must receive many lessons which he imperfectly understands;
|
|
he must be taught some things in a figure only, some too which he can
|
|
hardly be expected to believe when he grows older; but we should limit
|
|
the use of fiction by the necessity of the case. Plato would draw the
|
|
line differently; according to him the aim of early education is not
|
|
truth as a matter of fact, but truth as a matter of principle; the child
|
|
is to be taught first simple religious truths, and then simple moral
|
|
truths, and insensibly to learn the lesson of good manners and good
|
|
taste. He would make an entire reformation of the old mythology; like
|
|
Xenophanes and Heracleitus he is sensible of the deep chasm which
|
|
separates his own age from Homer and Hesiod, whom he quotes and invests
|
|
with an imaginary authority, but only for his own purposes. The lusts
|
|
and treacheries of the gods are to be banished; the terrors of the world
|
|
below are to be dispelled; the misbehaviour of the Homeric heroes is
|
|
not to be a model for youth. But there is another strain heard in Homer
|
|
which may teach our youth endurance; and something may be learnt in
|
|
medicine from the simple practice of the Homeric age. The principles
|
|
on which religion is to be based are two only: first, that God is true;
|
|
secondly, that he is good. Modern and Christian writers have often
|
|
fallen short of these; they can hardly be said to have gone beyond them.
|
|
|
|
The young are to be brought up in happy surroundings, out of the way of
|
|
sights or sounds which may hurt the character or vitiate the taste.
|
|
They are to live in an atmosphere of health; the breeze is always to
|
|
be wafting to them the impressions of truth and goodness. Could such
|
|
an education be realized, or if our modern religious education could
|
|
be bound up with truth and virtue and good manners and good taste, that
|
|
would be the best hope of human improvement. Plato, like ourselves,
|
|
is looking forward to changes in the moral and religious world, and is
|
|
preparing for them. He recognizes the danger of unsettling young men's
|
|
minds by sudden changes of laws and principles, by destroying the
|
|
sacredness of one set of ideas when there is nothing else to take their
|
|
place. He is afraid too of the influence of the drama, on the ground
|
|
that it encourages false sentiment, and therefore he would not have
|
|
his children taken to the theatre; he thinks that the effect on the
|
|
spectators is bad, and on the actors still worse. His idea of education
|
|
is that of harmonious growth, in which are insensibly learnt the lessons
|
|
of temperance and endurance, and the body and mind develope in equal
|
|
proportions. The first principle which runs through all art and nature
|
|
is simplicity; this also is to be the rule of human life.
|
|
|
|
The second stage of education is gymnastic, which answers to the period
|
|
of muscular growth and development. The simplicity which is enforced in
|
|
music is extended to gymnastic; Plato is aware that the training of the
|
|
body may be inconsistent with the training of the mind, and that bodily
|
|
exercise may be easily overdone. Excessive training of the body is
|
|
apt to give men a headache or to render them sleepy at a lecture on
|
|
philosophy, and this they attribute not to the true cause, but to the
|
|
nature of the subject. Two points are noticeable in Plato's treatment of
|
|
gymnastic:--First, that the time of training is entirely separated from
|
|
the time of literary education. He seems to have thought that two things
|
|
of an opposite and different nature could not be learnt at the same
|
|
time. Here we can hardly agree with him; and, if we may judge by
|
|
experience, the effect of spending three years between the ages of
|
|
fourteen and seventeen in mere bodily exercise would be far from
|
|
improving to the intellect. Secondly, he affirms that music and
|
|
gymnastic are not, as common opinion is apt to imagine, intended, the
|
|
one for the cultivation of the mind and the other of the body, but that
|
|
they are both equally designed for the improvement of the mind. The
|
|
body, in his view, is the servant of the mind; the subjection of the
|
|
lower to the higher is for the advantage of both. And doubtless the
|
|
mind may exercise a very great and paramount influence over the body,
|
|
if exerted not at particular moments and by fits and starts, but
|
|
continuously, in making preparation for the whole of life. Other Greek
|
|
writers saw the mischievous tendency of Spartan discipline (Arist. Pol;
|
|
Thuc.). But only Plato recognized the fundamental error on which the
|
|
practice was based.
|
|
|
|
The subject of gymnastic leads Plato to the sister subject of medicine,
|
|
which he further illustrates by the parallel of law. The modern
|
|
disbelief in medicine has led in this, as in some other departments of
|
|
knowledge, to a demand for greater simplicity; physicians are becoming
|
|
aware that they often make diseases 'greater and more complicated' by
|
|
their treatment of them (Rep.). In two thousand years their art has made
|
|
but slender progress; what they have gained in the analysis of the parts
|
|
is in a great degree lost by their feebler conception of the human frame
|
|
as a whole. They have attended more to the cure of diseases than to the
|
|
conditions of health; and the improvements in medicine have been more
|
|
than counterbalanced by the disuse of regular training. Until lately
|
|
they have hardly thought of air and water, the importance of which was
|
|
well understood by the ancients; as Aristotle remarks, 'Air and water,
|
|
being the elements which we most use, have the greatest effect upon
|
|
health' (Polit.). For ages physicians have been under the dominion of
|
|
prejudices which have only recently given way; and now there are as many
|
|
opinions in medicine as in theology, and an equal degree of scepticism
|
|
and some want of toleration about both. Plato has several good notions
|
|
about medicine; according to him, 'the eye cannot be cured without the
|
|
rest of the body, nor the body without the mind' (Charm.). No man
|
|
of sense, he says in the Timaeus, would take physic; and we heartily
|
|
sympathize with him in the Laws when he declares that 'the limbs of the
|
|
rustic worn with toil will derive more benefit from warm baths than from
|
|
the prescriptions of a not over wise doctor.' But we can hardly praise
|
|
him when, in obedience to the authority of Homer, he depreciates diet,
|
|
or approve of the inhuman spirit in which he would get rid of invalid
|
|
and useless lives by leaving them to die. He does not seem to have
|
|
considered that the 'bridle of Theages' might be accompanied by
|
|
qualities which were of far more value to the State than the health
|
|
or strength of the citizens; or that the duty of taking care of the
|
|
helpless might be an important element of education in a State. The
|
|
physician himself (this is a delicate and subtle observation) should
|
|
not be a man in robust health; he should have, in modern phraseology,
|
|
a nervous temperament; he should have experience of disease in his own
|
|
person, in order that his powers of observation may be quickened in the
|
|
case of others.
|
|
|
|
The perplexity of medicine is paralleled by the perplexity of law; in
|
|
which, again, Plato would have men follow the golden rule of simplicity.
|
|
Greater matters are to be determined by the legislator or by the oracle
|
|
of Delphi, lesser matters are to be left to the temporary regulation
|
|
of the citizens themselves. Plato is aware that laissez faire is an
|
|
important element of government. The diseases of a State are like the
|
|
heads of a hydra; they multiply when they are cut off. The true remedy
|
|
for them is not extirpation but prevention. And the way to prevent them
|
|
is to take care of education, and education will take care of all the
|
|
rest. So in modern times men have often felt that the only political
|
|
measure worth having--the only one which would produce any certain or
|
|
lasting effect, was a measure of national education. And in our own more
|
|
than in any previous age the necessity has been recognized of restoring
|
|
the ever-increasing confusion of law to simplicity and common sense.
|
|
|
|
When the training in music and gymnastic is completed, there follows the
|
|
first stage of active and public life. But soon education is to begin
|
|
again from a new point of view. In the interval between the Fourth and
|
|
Seventh Books we have discussed the nature of knowledge, and have thence
|
|
been led to form a higher conception of what was required of us. For
|
|
true knowledge, according to Plato, is of abstractions, and has to do,
|
|
not with particulars or individuals, but with universals only; not with
|
|
the beauties of poetry, but with the ideas of philosophy. And the great
|
|
aim of education is the cultivation of the habit of abstraction. This
|
|
is to be acquired through the study of the mathematical sciences. They
|
|
alone are capable of giving ideas of relation, and of arousing the
|
|
dormant energies of thought.
|
|
|
|
Mathematics in the age of Plato comprehended a very small part of that
|
|
which is now included in them; but they bore a much larger proportion to
|
|
the sum of human knowledge. They were the only organon of thought which
|
|
the human mind at that time possessed, and the only measure by which
|
|
the chaos of particulars could be reduced to rule and order. The
|
|
faculty which they trained was naturally at war with the poetical
|
|
or imaginative; and hence to Plato, who is everywhere seeking for
|
|
abstractions and trying to get rid of the illusions of sense, nearly
|
|
the whole of education is contained in them. They seemed to have an
|
|
inexhaustible application, partly because their true limits were not yet
|
|
understood. These Plato himself is beginning to investigate; though
|
|
not aware that number and figure are mere abstractions of sense,
|
|
he recognizes that the forms used by geometry are borrowed from the
|
|
sensible world. He seeks to find the ultimate ground of mathematical
|
|
ideas in the idea of good, though he does not satisfactorily explain the
|
|
connexion between them; and in his conception of the relation of ideas
|
|
to numbers, he falls very far short of the definiteness attributed to
|
|
him by Aristotle (Met.). But if he fails to recognize the true limits of
|
|
mathematics, he also reaches a point beyond them; in his view, ideas
|
|
of number become secondary to a higher conception of knowledge. The
|
|
dialectician is as much above the mathematician as the mathematician is
|
|
above the ordinary man. The one, the self-proving, the good which is
|
|
the higher sphere of dialectic, is the perfect truth to which all things
|
|
ascend, and in which they finally repose.
|
|
|
|
This self-proving unity or idea of good is a mere vision of which no
|
|
distinct explanation can be given, relative only to a particular stage
|
|
in Greek philosophy. It is an abstraction under which no individuals
|
|
are comprehended, a whole which has no parts (Arist., Nic. Eth.). The
|
|
vacancy of such a form was perceived by Aristotle, but not by Plato.
|
|
Nor did he recognize that in the dialectical process are included two or
|
|
more methods of investigation which are at variance with each other.
|
|
He did not see that whether he took the longer or the shorter road, no
|
|
advance could be made in this way. And yet such visions often have an
|
|
immense effect; for although the method of science cannot anticipate
|
|
science, the idea of science, not as it is, but as it will be in the
|
|
future, is a great and inspiring principle. In the pursuit of knowledge
|
|
we are always pressing forward to something beyond us; and as a false
|
|
conception of knowledge, for example the scholastic philosophy, may lead
|
|
men astray during many ages, so the true ideal, though vacant, may draw
|
|
all their thoughts in a right direction. It makes a great difference
|
|
whether the general expectation of knowledge, as this indefinite feeling
|
|
may be termed, is based upon a sound judgment. For mankind may often
|
|
entertain a true conception of what knowledge ought to be when they have
|
|
but a slender experience of facts. The correlation of the sciences, the
|
|
consciousness of the unity of nature, the idea of classification, the
|
|
sense of proportion, the unwillingness to stop short of certainty or to
|
|
confound probability with truth, are important principles of the higher
|
|
education. Although Plato could tell us nothing, and perhaps knew that
|
|
he could tell us nothing, of the absolute truth, he has exercised
|
|
an influence on the human mind which even at the present day is not
|
|
exhausted; and political and social questions may yet arise in which the
|
|
thoughts of Plato may be read anew and receive a fresh meaning.
|
|
|
|
The Idea of good is so called only in the Republic, but there are traces
|
|
of it in other dialogues of Plato. It is a cause as well as an idea, and
|
|
from this point of view may be compared with the creator of the Timaeus,
|
|
who out of his goodness created all things. It corresponds to a certain
|
|
extent with the modern conception of a law of nature, or of a final
|
|
cause, or of both in one, and in this regard may be connected with the
|
|
measure and symmetry of the Philebus. It is represented in the Symposium
|
|
under the aspect of beauty, and is supposed to be attained there by
|
|
stages of initiation, as here by regular gradations of knowledge. Viewed
|
|
subjectively, it is the process or science of dialectic. This is the
|
|
science which, according to the Phaedrus, is the true basis of rhetoric,
|
|
which alone is able to distinguish the natures and classes of men and
|
|
things; which divides a whole into the natural parts, and reunites the
|
|
scattered parts into a natural or organized whole; which defines the
|
|
abstract essences or universal ideas of all things, and connects them;
|
|
which pierces the veil of hypotheses and reaches the final cause or
|
|
first principle of all; which regards the sciences in relation to the
|
|
idea of good. This ideal science is the highest process of thought,
|
|
and may be described as the soul conversing with herself or holding
|
|
communion with eternal truth and beauty, and in another form is
|
|
the everlasting question and answer--the ceaseless interrogative of
|
|
Socrates. The dialogues of Plato are themselves examples of the nature
|
|
and method of dialectic. Viewed objectively, the idea of good is a power
|
|
or cause which makes the world without us correspond with the world
|
|
within. Yet this world without us is still a world of ideas. With Plato
|
|
the investigation of nature is another department of knowledge, and in
|
|
this he seeks to attain only probable conclusions (Timaeus).
|
|
|
|
If we ask whether this science of dialectic which Plato only half
|
|
explains to us is more akin to logic or to metaphysics, the answer is
|
|
that in his mind the two sciences are not as yet distinguished, any more
|
|
than the subjective and objective aspects of the world and of man, which
|
|
German philosophy has revealed to us. Nor has he determined whether
|
|
his science of dialectic is at rest or in motion, concerned with the
|
|
contemplation of absolute being, or with a process of development
|
|
and evolution. Modern metaphysics may be described as the science of
|
|
abstractions, or as the science of the evolution of thought; modern
|
|
logic, when passing beyond the bounds of mere Aristotelian forms, may be
|
|
defined as the science of method. The germ of both of them is contained
|
|
in the Platonic dialectic; all metaphysicians have something in common
|
|
with the ideas of Plato; all logicians have derived something from
|
|
the method of Plato. The nearest approach in modern philosophy to the
|
|
universal science of Plato, is to be found in the Hegelian 'succession
|
|
of moments in the unity of the idea.' Plato and Hegel alike seem to
|
|
have conceived the world as the correlation of abstractions; and not
|
|
impossibly they would have understood one another better than any of
|
|
their commentators understand them (Swift's Voyage to Laputa. 'Having
|
|
a desire to see those ancients who were most renowned for wit and
|
|
learning, I set apart one day on purpose. I proposed that Homer and
|
|
Aristotle might appear at the head of all their commentators; but these
|
|
were so numerous that some hundreds were forced to attend in the court
|
|
and outward rooms of the palace. I knew, and could distinguish these two
|
|
heroes, at first sight, not only from the crowd, but from each other.
|
|
Homer was the taller and comelier person of the two, walked very erect
|
|
for one of his age, and his eyes were the most quick and piercing I ever
|
|
beheld. Aristotle stooped much, and made use of a staff. His visage was
|
|
meagre, his hair lank and thin, and his voice hollow. I soon discovered
|
|
that both of them were perfect strangers to the rest of the company,
|
|
and had never seen or heard of them before. And I had a whisper from a
|
|
ghost, who shall be nameless, "That these commentators always kept in
|
|
the most distant quarters from their principals, in the lower world,
|
|
through a consciousness of shame and guilt, because they had so horribly
|
|
misrepresented the meaning of these authors to posterity." I introduced
|
|
Didymus and Eustathius to Homer, and prevailed on him to treat them
|
|
better than perhaps they deserved, for he soon found they wanted a
|
|
genius to enter into the spirit of a poet. But Aristotle was out of all
|
|
patience with the account I gave him of Scotus and Ramus, as I presented
|
|
them to him; and he asked them "whether the rest of the tribe were as
|
|
great dunces as themselves?"'). There is, however, a difference between
|
|
them: for whereas Hegel is thinking of all the minds of men as one mind,
|
|
which developes the stages of the idea in different countries or at
|
|
different times in the same country, with Plato these gradations are
|
|
regarded only as an order of thought or ideas; the history of the human
|
|
mind had not yet dawned upon him.
|
|
|
|
Many criticisms may be made on Plato's theory of education. While in
|
|
some respects he unavoidably falls short of modern thinkers, in others
|
|
he is in advance of them. He is opposed to the modes of education which
|
|
prevailed in his own time; but he can hardly be said to have discovered
|
|
new ones. He does not see that education is relative to the characters
|
|
of individuals; he only desires to impress the same form of the state on
|
|
the minds of all. He has no sufficient idea of the effect of literature
|
|
on the formation of the mind, and greatly exaggerates that of
|
|
mathematics. His aim is above all things to train the reasoning
|
|
faculties; to implant in the mind the spirit and power of abstraction;
|
|
to explain and define general notions, and, if possible, to connect
|
|
them. No wonder that in the vacancy of actual knowledge his followers,
|
|
and at times even he himself, should have fallen away from the doctrine
|
|
of ideas, and have returned to that branch of knowledge in which alone
|
|
the relation of the one and many can be truly seen--the science of
|
|
number. In his views both of teaching and training he might be styled,
|
|
in modern language, a doctrinaire; after the Spartan fashion he would
|
|
have his citizens cast in one mould; he does not seem to consider that
|
|
some degree of freedom, 'a little wholesome neglect,' is necessary to
|
|
strengthen and develope the character and to give play to the individual
|
|
nature. His citizens would not have acquired that knowledge which in
|
|
the vision of Er is supposed to be gained by the pilgrims from their
|
|
experience of evil.
|
|
|
|
On the other hand, Plato is far in advance of modern philosophers and
|
|
theologians when he teaches that education is to be continued through
|
|
life and will begin again in another. He would never allow education of
|
|
some kind to cease; although he was aware that the proverbial saying of
|
|
Solon, 'I grow old learning many things,' cannot be applied literally.
|
|
Himself ravished with the contemplation of the idea of good, and
|
|
delighting in solid geometry (Rep.), he has no difficulty in imagining
|
|
that a lifetime might be passed happily in such pursuits. We who know
|
|
how many more men of business there are in the world than real students
|
|
or thinkers, are not equally sanguine. The education which he proposes
|
|
for his citizens is really the ideal life of the philosopher or man of
|
|
genius, interrupted, but only for a time, by practical duties,--a life
|
|
not for the many, but for the few.
|
|
|
|
Yet the thought of Plato may not be wholly incapable of application to
|
|
our own times. Even if regarded as an ideal which can never be realized,
|
|
it may have a great effect in elevating the characters of mankind,
|
|
and raising them above the routine of their ordinary occupation or
|
|
profession. It is the best form under which we can conceive the whole
|
|
of life. Nevertheless the idea of Plato is not easily put into practice.
|
|
For the education of after life is necessarily the education which each
|
|
one gives himself. Men and women cannot be brought together in schools
|
|
or colleges at forty or fifty years of age; and if they could the result
|
|
would be disappointing. The destination of most men is what Plato would
|
|
call 'the Den' for the whole of life, and with that they are content.
|
|
Neither have they teachers or advisers with whom they can take counsel
|
|
in riper years. There is no 'schoolmaster abroad' who will tell them of
|
|
their faults, or inspire them with the higher sense of duty, or with the
|
|
ambition of a true success in life; no Socrates who will convict them
|
|
of ignorance; no Christ, or follower of Christ, who will reprove them
|
|
of sin. Hence they have a difficulty in receiving the first element of
|
|
improvement, which is self-knowledge. The hopes of youth no longer stir
|
|
them; they rather wish to rest than to pursue high objects. A few
|
|
only who have come across great men and women, or eminent teachers of
|
|
religion and morality, have received a second life from them, and have
|
|
lighted a candle from the fire of their genius.
|
|
|
|
The want of energy is one of the main reasons why so few persons
|
|
continue to improve in later years. They have not the will, and do not
|
|
know the way. They 'never try an experiment,' or look up a point
|
|
of interest for themselves; they make no sacrifices for the sake of
|
|
knowledge; their minds, like their bodies, at a certain age become
|
|
fixed. Genius has been defined as 'the power of taking pains'; but
|
|
hardly any one keeps up his interest in knowledge throughout a whole
|
|
life. The troubles of a family, the business of making money, the
|
|
demands of a profession destroy the elasticity of the mind. The waxen
|
|
tablet of the memory which was once capable of receiving 'true thoughts
|
|
and clear impressions' becomes hard and crowded; there is not room
|
|
for the accumulations of a long life (Theaet.). The student, as years
|
|
advance, rather makes an exchange of knowledge than adds to his stores.
|
|
There is no pressing necessity to learn; the stock of Classics or
|
|
History or Natural Science which was enough for a man at twenty-five is
|
|
enough for him at fifty. Neither is it easy to give a definite answer to
|
|
any one who asks how he is to improve. For self-education consists in a
|
|
thousand things, commonplace in themselves,--in adding to what we are
|
|
by nature something of what we are not; in learning to see ourselves as
|
|
others see us; in judging, not by opinion, but by the evidence of facts;
|
|
in seeking out the society of superior minds; in a study of lives and
|
|
writings of great men; in observation of the world and character; in
|
|
receiving kindly the natural influence of different times of life; in
|
|
any act or thought which is raised above the practice or opinions of
|
|
mankind; in the pursuit of some new or original enquiry; in any effort
|
|
of mind which calls forth some latent power.
|
|
|
|
If any one is desirous of carrying out in detail the Platonic education
|
|
of after-life, some such counsels as the following may be offered to
|
|
him:--That he shall choose the branch of knowledge to which his own mind
|
|
most distinctly inclines, and in which he takes the greatest delight,
|
|
either one which seems to connect with his own daily employment, or,
|
|
perhaps, furnishes the greatest contrast to it. He may study from the
|
|
speculative side the profession or business in which he is practically
|
|
engaged. He may make Homer, Dante, Shakespeare, Plato, Bacon the friends
|
|
and companions of his life. He may find opportunities of hearing the
|
|
living voice of a great teacher. He may select for enquiry some point of
|
|
history or some unexplained phenomenon of nature. An hour a day passed
|
|
in such scientific or literary pursuits will furnish as many facts as
|
|
the memory can retain, and will give him 'a pleasure not to be repented
|
|
of' (Timaeus). Only let him beware of being the slave of crotchets, or
|
|
of running after a Will o' the Wisp in his ignorance, or in his vanity
|
|
of attributing to himself the gifts of a poet or assuming the air of
|
|
a philosopher. He should know the limits of his own powers. Better to
|
|
build up the mind by slow additions, to creep on quietly from one
|
|
thing to another, to gain insensibly new powers and new interests in
|
|
knowledge, than to form vast schemes which are never destined to be
|
|
realized. But perhaps, as Plato would say, 'This is part of another
|
|
subject' (Tim.); though we may also defend our digression by his example
|
|
(Theaet.).
|
|
|
|
4. We remark with surprise that the progress of nations or the natural
|
|
growth of institutions which fill modern treatises on political
|
|
philosophy seem hardly ever to have attracted the attention of Plato
|
|
and Aristotle. The ancients were familiar with the mutability of human
|
|
affairs; they could moralize over the ruins of cities and the fall of
|
|
empires (Plato, Statesman, and Sulpicius' Letter to Cicero); by them
|
|
fate and chance were deemed to be real powers, almost persons, and
|
|
to have had a great share in political events. The wiser of them like
|
|
Thucydides believed that 'what had been would be again,' and that a
|
|
tolerable idea of the future could be gathered from the past. Also they
|
|
had dreams of a Golden Age which existed once upon a time and might
|
|
still exist in some unknown land, or might return again in the remote
|
|
future. But the regular growth of a state enlightened by experience,
|
|
progressing in knowledge, improving in the arts, of which the citizens
|
|
were educated by the fulfilment of political duties, appears never to
|
|
have come within the range of their hopes and aspirations. Such a state
|
|
had never been seen, and therefore could not be conceived by them. Their
|
|
experience (Aristot. Metaph.; Plato, Laws) led them to conclude that
|
|
there had been cycles of civilization in which the arts had been
|
|
discovered and lost many times over, and cities had been overthrown and
|
|
rebuilt again and again, and deluges and volcanoes and other natural
|
|
convulsions had altered the face of the earth. Tradition told them of
|
|
many destructions of mankind and of the preservation of a remnant.
|
|
The world began again after a deluge and was reconstructed out of the
|
|
fragments of itself. Also they were acquainted with empires of unknown
|
|
antiquity, like the Egyptian or Assyrian; but they had never seen them
|
|
grow, and could not imagine, any more than we can, the state of man
|
|
which preceded them. They were puzzled and awestricken by the Egyptian
|
|
monuments, of which the forms, as Plato says, not in a figure, but
|
|
literally, were ten thousand years old (Laws), and they contrasted the
|
|
antiquity of Egypt with their own short memories.
|
|
|
|
The early legends of Hellas have no real connection with the later
|
|
history: they are at a distance, and the intermediate region is
|
|
concealed from view; there is no road or path which leads from one to
|
|
the other. At the beginning of Greek history, in the vestibule of the
|
|
temple, is seen standing first of all the figure of the legislator,
|
|
himself the interpreter and servant of the God. The fundamental laws
|
|
which he gives are not supposed to change with time and circumstances.
|
|
The salvation of the state is held rather to depend on the inviolable
|
|
maintenance of them. They were sanctioned by the authority of heaven,
|
|
and it was deemed impiety to alter them. The desire to maintain
|
|
them unaltered seems to be the origin of what at first sight is very
|
|
surprising to us--the intolerant zeal of Plato against innovators in
|
|
religion or politics (Laws); although with a happy inconsistency he
|
|
is also willing that the laws of other countries should be studied and
|
|
improvements in legislation privately communicated to the Nocturnal
|
|
Council (Laws). The additions which were made to them in later ages in
|
|
order to meet the increasing complexity of affairs were still ascribed
|
|
by a fiction to the original legislator; and the words of such
|
|
enactments at Athens were disputed over as if they had been the words of
|
|
Solon himself. Plato hopes to preserve in a later generation the mind of
|
|
the legislator; he would have his citizens remain within the lines
|
|
which he has laid down for them. He would not harass them with minute
|
|
regulations, he would have allowed some changes in the laws: but not
|
|
changes which would affect the fundamental institutions of the state,
|
|
such for example as would convert an aristocracy into a timocracy, or a
|
|
timocracy into a popular form of government.
|
|
|
|
Passing from speculations to facts, we observe that progress has been
|
|
the exception rather than the law of human history. And therefore we are
|
|
not surprised to find that the idea of progress is of modern rather than
|
|
of ancient date; and, like the idea of a philosophy of history, is
|
|
not more than a century or two old. It seems to have arisen out of the
|
|
impression left on the human mind by the growth of the Roman Empire
|
|
and of the Christian Church, and to be due to the political and social
|
|
improvements which they introduced into the world; and still more in
|
|
our own century to the idealism of the first French Revolution and the
|
|
triumph of American Independence; and in a yet greater degree to the
|
|
vast material prosperity and growth of population in England and her
|
|
colonies and in America. It is also to be ascribed in a measure to the
|
|
greater study of the philosophy of history. The optimist temperament of
|
|
some great writers has assisted the creation of it, while the opposite
|
|
character has led a few to regard the future of the world as dark.
|
|
The 'spectator of all time and of all existence' sees more of 'the
|
|
increasing purpose which through the ages ran' than formerly: but to the
|
|
inhabitant of a small state of Hellas the vision was necessarily limited
|
|
like the valley in which he dwelt. There was no remote past on which his
|
|
eye could rest, nor any future from which the veil was partly lifted up
|
|
by the analogy of history. The narrowness of view, which to ourselves
|
|
appears so singular, was to him natural, if not unavoidable.
|
|
|
|
5. For the relation of the Republic to the Statesman and the Laws, and
|
|
the two other works of Plato which directly treat of politics, see the
|
|
Introductions to the two latter; a few general points of comparison may
|
|
be touched upon in this place.
|
|
|
|
And first of the Laws.
|
|
|
|
(1) The Republic, though probably written at intervals, yet speaking
|
|
generally and judging by the indications of thought and style, may be
|
|
reasonably ascribed to the middle period of Plato's life: the Laws are
|
|
certainly the work of his declining years, and some portions of them at
|
|
any rate seem to have been written in extreme old age.
|
|
|
|
(2) The Republic is full of hope and aspiration: the Laws bear the stamp
|
|
of failure and disappointment. The one is a finished work which received
|
|
the last touches of the author: the other is imperfectly executed, and
|
|
apparently unfinished. The one has the grace and beauty of youth: the
|
|
other has lost the poetical form, but has more of the severity and
|
|
knowledge of life which is characteristic of old age.
|
|
|
|
(3) The most conspicuous defect of the Laws is the failure of dramatic
|
|
power, whereas the Republic is full of striking contrasts of ideas and
|
|
oppositions of character.
|
|
|
|
(4) The Laws may be said to have more the nature of a sermon,
|
|
the Republic of a poem; the one is more religious, the other more
|
|
intellectual.
|
|
|
|
(5) Many theories of Plato, such as the doctrine of ideas, the
|
|
government of the world by philosophers, are not found in the Laws;
|
|
the immortality of the soul is first mentioned in xii; the person of
|
|
Socrates has altogether disappeared. The community of women and children
|
|
is renounced; the institution of common or public meals for women (Laws)
|
|
is for the first time introduced (Ar. Pol.).
|
|
|
|
(6) There remains in the Laws the old enmity to the poets, who are
|
|
ironically saluted in high-flown terms, and, at the same time, are
|
|
peremptorily ordered out of the city, if they are not willing to submit
|
|
their poems to the censorship of the magistrates (Rep.).
|
|
|
|
(7) Though the work is in most respects inferior, there are a few
|
|
passages in the Laws, such as the honour due to the soul, the evils
|
|
of licentious or unnatural love, the whole of Book x. (religion), the
|
|
dishonesty of retail trade, and bequests, which come more home to us,
|
|
and contain more of what may be termed the modern element in Plato than
|
|
almost anything in the Republic.
|
|
|
|
The relation of the two works to one another is very well given:
|
|
|
|
(1) by Aristotle in the Politics from the side of the Laws:--
|
|
|
|
'The same, or nearly the same, objections apply to Plato's later work,
|
|
the Laws, and therefore we had better examine briefly the constitution
|
|
which is therein described. In the Republic, Socrates has definitely
|
|
settled in all a few questions only; such as the community of women and
|
|
children, the community of property, and the constitution of the state.
|
|
The population is divided into two classes--one of husbandmen, and
|
|
the other of warriors; from this latter is taken a third class of
|
|
counsellors and rulers of the state. But Socrates has not determined
|
|
whether the husbandmen and artists are to have a share in the
|
|
government, and whether they too are to carry arms and share in military
|
|
service or not. He certainly thinks that the women ought to share in the
|
|
education of the guardians, and to fight by their side. The remainder of
|
|
the work is filled up with digressions foreign to the main subject, and
|
|
with discussions about the education of the guardians. In the Laws there
|
|
is hardly anything but laws; not much is said about the constitution.
|
|
This, which he had intended to make more of the ordinary type, he
|
|
gradually brings round to the other or ideal form. For with the
|
|
exception of the community of women and property, he supposes everything
|
|
to be the same in both states; there is to be the same education; the
|
|
citizens of both are to live free from servile occupations, and there
|
|
are to be common meals in both. The only difference is that in the Laws
|
|
the common meals are extended to women, and the warriors number about
|
|
5000, but in the Republic only 1000.'
|
|
|
|
(2) by Plato in the Laws (Book v.), from the side of the Republic:--
|
|
|
|
'The first and highest form of the state and of the government and of
|
|
the law is that in which there prevails most widely the ancient saying
|
|
that "Friends have all things in common." Whether there is now, or ever
|
|
will be, this communion of women and children and of property, in which
|
|
the private and individual is altogether banished from life, and things
|
|
which are by nature private, such as eyes and ears and hands, have
|
|
become common, and all men express praise and blame, and feel joy
|
|
and sorrow, on the same occasions, and the laws unite the city to the
|
|
utmost,--whether all this is possible or not, I say that no man, acting
|
|
upon any other principle, will ever constitute a state more exalted in
|
|
virtue, or truer or better than this. Such a state, whether inhabited
|
|
by Gods or sons of Gods, will make them blessed who dwell therein; and
|
|
therefore to this we are to look for the pattern of the state, and to
|
|
cling to this, and, as far as possible, to seek for one which is like
|
|
this. The state which we have now in hand, when created, will be nearest
|
|
to immortality and unity in the next degree; and after that, by the
|
|
grace of God, we will complete the third one. And we will begin by
|
|
speaking of the nature and origin of the second.'
|
|
|
|
The comparatively short work called the Statesman or Politicus in its
|
|
style and manner is more akin to the Laws, while in its idealism
|
|
it rather resembles the Republic. As far as we can judge by various
|
|
indications of language and thought, it must be later than the one and
|
|
of course earlier than the other. In both the Republic and Statesman a
|
|
close connection is maintained between Politics and Dialectic. In the
|
|
Statesman, enquiries into the principles of Method are interspersed with
|
|
discussions about Politics. The comparative advantages of the rule of
|
|
law and of a person are considered, and the decision given in favour of
|
|
a person (Arist. Pol.). But much may be said on the other side, nor is
|
|
the opposition necessary; for a person may rule by law, and law may
|
|
be so applied as to be the living voice of the legislator. As in the
|
|
Republic, there is a myth, describing, however, not a future, but a
|
|
former existence of mankind. The question is asked, 'Whether the state
|
|
of innocence which is described in the myth, or a state like our own
|
|
which possesses art and science and distinguishes good from evil, is
|
|
the preferable condition of man.' To this question of the comparative
|
|
happiness of civilized and primitive life, which was so often discussed
|
|
in the last century and in our own, no answer is given. The Statesman,
|
|
though less perfect in style than the Republic and of far less range,
|
|
may justly be regarded as one of the greatest of Plato's dialogues.
|
|
|
|
6. Others as well as Plato have chosen an ideal Republic to be the
|
|
vehicle of thoughts which they could not definitely express, or which
|
|
went beyond their own age. The classical writing which approaches most
|
|
nearly to the Republic of Plato is the 'De Republica' of Cicero; but
|
|
neither in this nor in any other of his dialogues does he rival the
|
|
art of Plato. The manners are clumsy and inferior; the hand of the
|
|
rhetorician is apparent at every turn. Yet noble sentiments are
|
|
constantly recurring: the true note of Roman patriotism--'We Romans are
|
|
a great people'--resounds through the whole work. Like Socrates, Cicero
|
|
turns away from the phenomena of the heavens to civil and political
|
|
life. He would rather not discuss the 'two Suns' of which all Rome was
|
|
talking, when he can converse about 'the two nations in one' which had
|
|
divided Rome ever since the days of the Gracchi. Like Socrates again,
|
|
speaking in the person of Scipio, he is afraid lest he should assume
|
|
too much the character of a teacher, rather than of an equal who is
|
|
discussing among friends the two sides of a question. He would confine
|
|
the terms King or State to the rule of reason and justice, and he will
|
|
not concede that title either to a democracy or to a monarchy. But under
|
|
the rule of reason and justice he is willing to include the natural
|
|
superior ruling over the natural inferior, which he compares to the soul
|
|
ruling over the body. He prefers a mixture of forms of government to any
|
|
single one. The two portraits of the just and the unjust, which occur in
|
|
the second book of the Republic, are transferred to the state--Philus,
|
|
one of the interlocutors, maintaining against his will the necessity
|
|
of injustice as a principle of government, while the other, Laelius,
|
|
supports the opposite thesis. His views of language and number are
|
|
derived from Plato; like him he denounces the drama. He also declares
|
|
that if his life were to be twice as long he would have no time to read
|
|
the lyric poets. The picture of democracy is translated by him word for
|
|
word, though he had hardly shown himself able to 'carry the jest' of
|
|
Plato. He converts into a stately sentence the humorous fancy about the
|
|
animals, who 'are so imbued with the spirit of democracy that they make
|
|
the passers-by get out of their way.' His description of the tyrant is
|
|
imitated from Plato, but is far inferior. The second book is historical,
|
|
and claims for the Roman constitution (which is to him the ideal) a
|
|
foundation of fact such as Plato probably intended to have given to the
|
|
Republic in the Critias. His most remarkable imitation of Plato is the
|
|
adaptation of the vision of Er, which is converted by Cicero into the
|
|
'Somnium Scipionis'; he has 'romanized' the myth of the Republic, adding
|
|
an argument for the immortality of the soul taken from the Phaedrus,
|
|
and some other touches derived from the Phaedo and the Timaeus. Though a
|
|
beautiful tale and containing splendid passages, the 'Somnium Scipionis;
|
|
is very inferior to the vision of Er; it is only a dream, and hardly
|
|
allows the reader to suppose that the writer believes in his own
|
|
creation. Whether his dialogues were framed on the model of the lost
|
|
dialogues of Aristotle, as he himself tells us, or of Plato, to which
|
|
they bear many superficial resemblances, he is still the Roman orator;
|
|
he is not conversing, but making speeches, and is never able to mould
|
|
the intractable Latin to the grace and ease of the Greek Platonic
|
|
dialogue. But if he is defective in form, much more is he inferior to
|
|
the Greek in matter; he nowhere in his philosophical writings leaves
|
|
upon our minds the impression of an original thinker.
|
|
|
|
Plato's Republic has been said to be a church and not a state; and such
|
|
an ideal of a city in the heavens has always hovered over the Christian
|
|
world, and is embodied in St. Augustine's 'De Civitate Dei,' which is
|
|
suggested by the decay and fall of the Roman Empire, much in the same
|
|
manner in which we may imagine the Republic of Plato to have been
|
|
influenced by the decline of Greek politics in the writer's own age. The
|
|
difference is that in the time of Plato the degeneracy, though certain,
|
|
was gradual and insensible: whereas the taking of Rome by the Goths
|
|
stirred like an earthquake the age of St. Augustine. Men were inclined
|
|
to believe that the overthrow of the city was to be ascribed to the
|
|
anger felt by the old Roman deities at the neglect of their worship. St.
|
|
Augustine maintains the opposite thesis; he argues that the destruction
|
|
of the Roman Empire is due, not to the rise of Christianity, but to
|
|
the vices of Paganism. He wanders over Roman history, and over Greek
|
|
philosophy and mythology, and finds everywhere crime, impiety and
|
|
falsehood. He compares the worst parts of the Gentile religions with
|
|
the best elements of the faith of Christ. He shows nothing of the spirit
|
|
which led others of the early Christian Fathers to recognize in the
|
|
writings of the Greek philosophers the power of the divine truth. He
|
|
traces the parallel of the kingdom of God, that is, the history of the
|
|
Jews, contained in their scriptures, and of the kingdoms of the world,
|
|
which are found in gentile writers, and pursues them both into an ideal
|
|
future. It need hardly be remarked that his use both of Greek and
|
|
of Roman historians and of the sacred writings of the Jews is wholly
|
|
uncritical. The heathen mythology, the Sybilline oracles, the myths
|
|
of Plato, the dreams of Neo-Platonists are equally regarded by him as
|
|
matter of fact. He must be acknowledged to be a strictly polemical or
|
|
controversial writer who makes the best of everything on one side and
|
|
the worst of everything on the other. He has no sympathy with the old
|
|
Roman life as Plato has with Greek life, nor has he any idea of the
|
|
ecclesiastical kingdom which was to arise out of the ruins of the Roman
|
|
empire. He is not blind to the defects of the Christian Church, and
|
|
looks forward to a time when Christian and Pagan shall be alike brought
|
|
before the judgment-seat, and the true City of God shall appear...The
|
|
work of St. Augustine is a curious repertory of antiquarian learning and
|
|
quotations, deeply penetrated with Christian ethics, but showing little
|
|
power of reasoning, and a slender knowledge of the Greek literature
|
|
and language. He was a great genius, and a noble character, yet hardly
|
|
capable of feeling or understanding anything external to his own
|
|
theology. Of all the ancient philosophers he is most attracted by Plato,
|
|
though he is very slightly acquainted with his writings. He is inclined
|
|
to believe that the idea of creation in the Timaeus is derived from the
|
|
narrative in Genesis; and he is strangely taken with the coincidence (?)
|
|
of Plato's saying that 'the philosopher is the lover of God,' and
|
|
the words of the Book of Exodus in which God reveals himself to Moses
|
|
(Exod.) He dwells at length on miracles performed in his own day, of
|
|
which the evidence is regarded by him as irresistible. He speaks in a
|
|
very interesting manner of the beauty and utility of nature and of the
|
|
human frame, which he conceives to afford a foretaste of the heavenly
|
|
state and of the resurrection of the body. The book is not really what
|
|
to most persons the title of it would imply, and belongs to an age which
|
|
has passed away. But it contains many fine passages and thoughts which
|
|
are for all time.
|
|
|
|
The short treatise de Monarchia of Dante is by far the most remarkable
|
|
of mediaeval ideals, and bears the impress of the great genius in whom
|
|
Italy and the Middle Ages are so vividly reflected. It is the vision of
|
|
an Universal Empire, which is supposed to be the natural and necessary
|
|
government of the world, having a divine authority distinct from the
|
|
Papacy, yet coextensive with it. It is not 'the ghost of the dead Roman
|
|
Empire sitting crowned upon the grave thereof,' but the legitimate heir
|
|
and successor of it, justified by the ancient virtues of the Romans and
|
|
the beneficence of their rule. Their right to be the governors of the
|
|
world is also confirmed by the testimony of miracles, and acknowledged
|
|
by St. Paul when he appealed to Caesar, and even more emphatically by
|
|
Christ Himself, Who could not have made atonement for the sins of men
|
|
if He had not been condemned by a divinely authorized tribunal. The
|
|
necessity for the establishment of an Universal Empire is proved partly
|
|
by a priori arguments such as the unity of God and the unity of the
|
|
family or nation; partly by perversions of Scripture and history, by
|
|
false analogies of nature, by misapplied quotations from the classics,
|
|
and by odd scraps and commonplaces of logic, showing a familiar but by
|
|
no means exact knowledge of Aristotle (of Plato there is none). But
|
|
a more convincing argument still is the miserable state of the world,
|
|
which he touchingly describes. He sees no hope of happiness or peace
|
|
for mankind until all nations of the earth are comprehended in a single
|
|
empire. The whole treatise shows how deeply the idea of the Roman Empire
|
|
was fixed in the minds of his contemporaries. Not much argument was
|
|
needed to maintain the truth of a theory which to his own contemporaries
|
|
seemed so natural and congenial. He speaks, or rather preaches, from the
|
|
point of view, not of the ecclesiastic, but of the layman, although, as
|
|
a good Catholic, he is willing to acknowledge that in certain respects
|
|
the Empire must submit to the Church. The beginning and end of all his
|
|
noble reflections and of his arguments, good and bad, is the aspiration
|
|
'that in this little plot of earth belonging to mortal man life may pass
|
|
in freedom and peace.' So inextricably is his vision of the future bound
|
|
up with the beliefs and circumstances of his own age.
|
|
|
|
The 'Utopia' of Sir Thomas More is a surprising monument of his genius,
|
|
and shows a reach of thought far beyond his contemporaries. The book was
|
|
written by him at the age of about 34 or 35, and is full of the generous
|
|
sentiments of youth. He brings the light of Plato to bear upon the
|
|
miserable state of his own country. Living not long after the Wars of
|
|
the Roses, and in the dregs of the Catholic Church in England, he is
|
|
indignant at the corruption of the clergy, at the luxury of the nobility
|
|
and gentry, at the sufferings of the poor, at the calamities caused by
|
|
war. To the eye of More the whole world was in dissolution and decay;
|
|
and side by side with the misery and oppression which he has described
|
|
in the First Book of the Utopia, he places in the Second Book the ideal
|
|
state which by the help of Plato he had constructed. The times were full
|
|
of stir and intellectual interest. The distant murmur of the Reformation
|
|
was beginning to be heard. To minds like More's, Greek literature was
|
|
a revelation: there had arisen an art of interpretation, and the New
|
|
Testament was beginning to be understood as it had never been before,
|
|
and has not often been since, in its natural sense. The life there
|
|
depicted appeared to him wholly unlike that of Christian commonwealths,
|
|
in which 'he saw nothing but a certain conspiracy of rich men procuring
|
|
their own commodities under the name and title of the Commonwealth.'
|
|
He thought that Christ, like Plato, 'instituted all things common,' for
|
|
which reason, he tells us, the citizens of Utopia were the more willing
|
|
to receive his doctrines ('Howbeit, I think this was no small help and
|
|
furtherance in the matter, that they heard us say that Christ instituted
|
|
among his, all things common, and that the same community doth yet
|
|
remain in the rightest Christian communities' (Utopia).). The community
|
|
of property is a fixed idea with him, though he is aware of the
|
|
arguments which may be urged on the other side ('These things (I say),
|
|
when I consider with myself, I hold well with Plato, and do nothing
|
|
marvel that he would make no laws for them that refused those laws,
|
|
whereby all men should have and enjoy equal portions of riches and
|
|
commodities. For the wise men did easily foresee this to be the one and
|
|
only way to the wealth of a community, if equality of all things should
|
|
be brought in and established' (Utopia).). We wonder how in the reign of
|
|
Henry VIII, though veiled in another language and published in a foreign
|
|
country, such speculations could have been endured.
|
|
|
|
He is gifted with far greater dramatic invention than any one who
|
|
succeeded him, with the exception of Swift. In the art of feigning he is
|
|
a worthy disciple of Plato. Like him, starting from a small portion
|
|
of fact, he founds his tale with admirable skill on a few lines in the
|
|
Latin narrative of the voyages of Amerigo Vespucci. He is very precise
|
|
about dates and facts, and has the power of making us believe that the
|
|
narrator of the tale must have been an eyewitness. We are fairly puzzled
|
|
by his manner of mixing up real and imaginary persons; his boy John
|
|
Clement and Peter Giles, citizen of Antwerp, with whom he disputes
|
|
about the precise words which are supposed to have been used by the
|
|
(imaginary) Portuguese traveller, Raphael Hythloday. 'I have the more
|
|
cause,' says Hythloday, 'to fear that my words shall not be believed,
|
|
for that I know how difficultly and hardly I myself would have believed
|
|
another man telling the same, if I had not myself seen it with mine own
|
|
eyes.' Or again: 'If you had been with me in Utopia, and had presently
|
|
seen their fashions and laws as I did which lived there five years and
|
|
more, and would never have come thence, but only to make the new land
|
|
known here,' etc. More greatly regrets that he forgot to ask Hythloday
|
|
in what part of the world Utopia is situated; he 'would have spent no
|
|
small sum of money rather than it should have escaped him,' and he begs
|
|
Peter Giles to see Hythloday or write to him and obtain an answer to the
|
|
question. After this we are not surprised to hear that a Professor of
|
|
Divinity (perhaps 'a late famous vicar of Croydon in Surrey,' as the
|
|
translator thinks) is desirous of being sent thither as a missionary by
|
|
the High Bishop, 'yea, and that he may himself be made Bishop of Utopia,
|
|
nothing doubting that he must obtain this Bishopric with suit; and he
|
|
counteth that a godly suit which proceedeth not of the desire of honour
|
|
or lucre, but only of a godly zeal.' The design may have failed through
|
|
the disappearance of Hythloday, concerning whom we have 'very uncertain
|
|
news' after his departure. There is no doubt, however, that he had told
|
|
More and Giles the exact situation of the island, but unfortunately at
|
|
the same moment More's attention, as he is reminded in a letter from
|
|
Giles, was drawn off by a servant, and one of the company from a cold
|
|
caught on shipboard coughed so loud as to prevent Giles from hearing.
|
|
And 'the secret has perished' with him; to this day the place of Utopia
|
|
remains unknown.
|
|
|
|
The words of Phaedrus, 'O Socrates, you can easily invent Egyptians or
|
|
anything,' are recalled to our mind as we read this lifelike fiction.
|
|
Yet the greater merit of the work is not the admirable art, but the
|
|
originality of thought. More is as free as Plato from the prejudices
|
|
of his age, and far more tolerant. The Utopians do not allow him
|
|
who believes not in the immortality of the soul to share in the
|
|
administration of the state (Laws), 'howbeit they put him to no
|
|
punishment, because they be persuaded that it is in no man's power to
|
|
believe what he list'; and 'no man is to be blamed for reasoning in
|
|
support of his own religion ('One of our company in my presence was
|
|
sharply punished. He, as soon as he was baptised, began, against our
|
|
wills, with more earnest affection than wisdom, to reason of Christ's
|
|
religion, and began to wax so hot in his matter, that he did not only
|
|
prefer our religion before all other, but also did despise and condemn
|
|
all other, calling them profane, and the followers of them wicked and
|
|
devilish, and the children of everlasting damnation. When he had thus
|
|
long reasoned the matter, they laid hold on him, accused him, and
|
|
condemned him into exile, not as a despiser of religion, but as a
|
|
seditious person and a raiser up of dissension among the people').'
|
|
In the public services 'no prayers be used, but such as every man
|
|
may boldly pronounce without giving offence to any sect.' He says
|
|
significantly, 'There be that give worship to a man that was once of
|
|
excellent virtue or of famous glory, not only as God, but also the
|
|
chiefest and highest God. But the most and the wisest part, rejecting
|
|
all these, believe that there is a certain godly power unknown, far
|
|
above the capacity and reach of man's wit, dispersed throughout all the
|
|
world, not in bigness, but in virtue and power. Him they call the Father
|
|
of all. To Him alone they attribute the beginnings, the increasings, the
|
|
proceedings, the changes, and the ends of all things. Neither give they
|
|
any divine honours to any other than him.' So far was More from sharing
|
|
the popular beliefs of his time. Yet at the end he reminds us that he
|
|
does not in all respects agree with the customs and opinions of the
|
|
Utopians which he describes. And we should let him have the benefit of
|
|
this saving clause, and not rudely withdraw the veil behind which he has
|
|
been pleased to conceal himself.
|
|
|
|
Nor is he less in advance of popular opinion in his political and moral
|
|
speculations. He would like to bring military glory into contempt; he
|
|
would set all sorts of idle people to profitable occupation, including
|
|
in the same class, priests, women, noblemen, gentlemen, and 'sturdy and
|
|
valiant beggars,' that the labour of all may be reduced to six hours a
|
|
day. His dislike of capital punishment, and plans for the reformation of
|
|
offenders; his detestation of priests and lawyers (Compare his satirical
|
|
observation: 'They (the Utopians) have priests of exceeding holiness,
|
|
and therefore very few.); his remark that 'although every one may hear
|
|
of ravenous dogs and wolves and cruel man-eaters, it is not easy to find
|
|
states that are well and wisely governed,' are curiously at variance
|
|
with the notions of his age and indeed with his own life. There are many
|
|
points in which he shows a modern feeling and a prophetic insight like
|
|
Plato. He is a sanitary reformer; he maintains that civilized states
|
|
have a right to the soil of waste countries; he is inclined to the
|
|
opinion which places happiness in virtuous pleasures, but herein, as he
|
|
thinks, not disagreeing from those other philosophers who define virtue
|
|
to be a life according to nature. He extends the idea of happiness so as
|
|
to include the happiness of others; and he argues ingeniously, 'All men
|
|
agree that we ought to make others happy; but if others, how much more
|
|
ourselves!' And still he thinks that there may be a more excellent way,
|
|
but to this no man's reason can attain unless heaven should inspire him
|
|
with a higher truth. His ceremonies before marriage; his humane proposal
|
|
that war should be carried on by assassinating the leaders of the enemy,
|
|
may be compared to some of the paradoxes of Plato. He has a charming
|
|
fancy, like the affinities of Greeks and barbarians in the Timaeus, that
|
|
the Utopians learnt the language of the Greeks with the more readiness
|
|
because they were originally of the same race with them. He is
|
|
penetrated with the spirit of Plato, and quotes or adapts many thoughts
|
|
both from the Republic and from the Timaeus. He prefers public duties to
|
|
private, and is somewhat impatient of the importunity of relations. His
|
|
citizens have no silver or gold of their own, but are ready enough to
|
|
pay them to their mercenaries. There is nothing of which he is more
|
|
contemptuous than the love of money. Gold is used for fetters of
|
|
criminals, and diamonds and pearls for children's necklaces (When the
|
|
ambassadors came arrayed in gold and peacocks' feathers 'to the eyes of
|
|
all the Utopians except very few, which had been in other countries for
|
|
some reasonable cause, all that gorgeousness of apparel seemed shameful
|
|
and reproachful. In so much that they most reverently saluted the
|
|
vilest and most abject of them for lords--passing over the ambassadors
|
|
themselves without any honour, judging them by their wearing of golden
|
|
chains to be bondmen. You should have seen children also, that had cast
|
|
away their pearls and precious stones, when they saw the like sticking
|
|
upon the ambassadors' caps, dig and push their mothers under the sides,
|
|
saying thus to them--"Look, though he were a little child still." But
|
|
the mother; yea and that also in good earnest: "Peace, son," saith she,
|
|
"I think he be some of the ambassadors' fools."')
|
|
|
|
Like Plato he is full of satirical reflections on governments and
|
|
princes; on the state of the world and of knowledge. The hero of his
|
|
discourse (Hythloday) is very unwilling to become a minister of state,
|
|
considering that he would lose his independence and his advice would
|
|
never be heeded (Compare an exquisite passage, of which the conclusion
|
|
is as follows: 'And verily it is naturally given...suppressed and
|
|
ended.') He ridicules the new logic of his time; the Utopians could
|
|
never be made to understand the doctrine of Second Intentions ('For they
|
|
have not devised one of all those rules of restrictions, amplifications,
|
|
and suppositions, very wittily invented in the small Logicals, which
|
|
here our children in every place do learn. Furthermore, they were never
|
|
yet able to find out the second intentions; insomuch that none of them
|
|
all could ever see man himself in common, as they call him, though he be
|
|
(as you know) bigger than was ever any giant, yea, and pointed to of us
|
|
even with our finger.') He is very severe on the sports of the gentry;
|
|
the Utopians count 'hunting the lowest, the vilest, and the most abject
|
|
part of butchery.' He quotes the words of the Republic in which the
|
|
philosopher is described 'standing out of the way under a wall until the
|
|
driving storm of sleet and rain be overpast,' which admit of a singular
|
|
application to More's own fate; although, writing twenty years before
|
|
(about the year 1514), he can hardly be supposed to have foreseen this.
|
|
There is no touch of satire which strikes deeper than his quiet remark
|
|
that the greater part of the precepts of Christ are more at variance
|
|
with the lives of ordinary Christians than the discourse of Utopia ('And
|
|
yet the most part of them is more dissident from the manners of the
|
|
world now a days, than my communication was. But preachers, sly and
|
|
wily men, following your counsel (as I suppose) because they saw men
|
|
evil-willing to frame their manners to Christ's rule, they have wrested
|
|
and wried his doctrine, and, like a rule of lead, have applied it to
|
|
men's manners, that by some means at the least way, they might agree
|
|
together.')
|
|
|
|
The 'New Atlantis' is only a fragment, and far inferior in merit to the
|
|
'Utopia.' The work is full of ingenuity, but wanting in creative fancy,
|
|
and by no means impresses the reader with a sense of credibility. In
|
|
some places Lord Bacon is characteristically different from Sir Thomas
|
|
More, as, for example, in the external state which he attributes to the
|
|
governor of Solomon's House, whose dress he minutely describes, while to
|
|
Sir Thomas More such trappings appear simple ridiculous. Yet, after this
|
|
programme of dress, Bacon adds the beautiful trait, 'that he had a look
|
|
as though he pitied men.' Several things are borrowed by him from the
|
|
Timaeus; but he has injured the unity of style by adding thoughts and
|
|
passages which are taken from the Hebrew Scriptures.
|
|
|
|
The 'City of the Sun' written by Campanella (1568-1639), a Dominican
|
|
friar, several years after the 'New Atlantis' of Bacon, has many
|
|
resemblances to the Republic of Plato. The citizens have wives and
|
|
children in common; their marriages are of the same temporary sort, and
|
|
are arranged by the magistrates from time to time. They do not, however,
|
|
adopt his system of lots, but bring together the best natures, male and
|
|
female, 'according to philosophical rules.' The infants until two years
|
|
of age are brought up by their mothers in public temples; and since
|
|
individuals for the most part educate their children badly, at the
|
|
beginning of their third year they are committed to the care of the
|
|
State, and are taught at first, not out of books, but from paintings of
|
|
all kinds, which are emblazoned on the walls of the city. The city has
|
|
six interior circuits of walls, and an outer wall which is the
|
|
seventh. On this outer wall are painted the figures of legislators and
|
|
philosophers, and on each of the interior walls the symbols or forms
|
|
of some one of the sciences are delineated. The women are, for the most
|
|
part, trained, like the men, in warlike and other exercises; but they
|
|
have two special occupations of their own. After a battle, they and the
|
|
boys soothe and relieve the wounded warriors; also they encourage them
|
|
with embraces and pleasant words. Some elements of the Christian or
|
|
Catholic religion are preserved among them. The life of the Apostles is
|
|
greatly admired by this people because they had all things in common;
|
|
and the short prayer which Jesus Christ taught men is used in their
|
|
worship. It is a duty of the chief magistrates to pardon sins, and
|
|
therefore the whole people make secret confession of them to the
|
|
magistrates, and they to their chief, who is a sort of Rector
|
|
Metaphysicus; and by this means he is well informed of all that is going
|
|
on in the minds of men. After confession, absolution is granted to
|
|
the citizens collectively, but no one is mentioned by name. There
|
|
also exists among them a practice of perpetual prayer, performed by
|
|
a succession of priests, who change every hour. Their religion is
|
|
a worship of God in Trinity, that is of Wisdom, Love and Power,
|
|
but without any distinction of persons. They behold in the sun the
|
|
reflection of His glory; mere graven images they reject, refusing to
|
|
fall under the 'tyranny' of idolatry.
|
|
|
|
Many details are given about their customs of eating and drinking, about
|
|
their mode of dressing, their employments, their wars. Campanella looks
|
|
forward to a new mode of education, which is to be a study of nature,
|
|
and not of Aristotle. He would not have his citizens waste their time
|
|
in the consideration of what he calls 'the dead signs of things.' He
|
|
remarks that he who knows one science only, does not really know that
|
|
one any more than the rest, and insists strongly on the necessity of a
|
|
variety of knowledge. More scholars are turned out in the City of the
|
|
Sun in one year than by contemporary methods in ten or fifteen. He
|
|
evidently believes, like Bacon, that henceforward natural science will
|
|
play a great part in education, a hope which seems hardly to have
|
|
been realized, either in our own or in any former age; at any rate the
|
|
fulfilment of it has been long deferred.
|
|
|
|
There is a good deal of ingenuity and even originality in this work, and
|
|
a most enlightened spirit pervades it. But it has little or no charm
|
|
of style, and falls very far short of the 'New Atlantis' of Bacon,
|
|
and still more of the 'Utopia' of Sir Thomas More. It is full of
|
|
inconsistencies, and though borrowed from Plato, shows but a superficial
|
|
acquaintance with his writings. It is a work such as one might expect
|
|
to have been written by a philosopher and man of genius who was also a
|
|
friar, and who had spent twenty-seven years of his life in a prison of
|
|
the Inquisition. The most interesting feature of the book, common to
|
|
Plato and Sir Thomas More, is the deep feeling which is shown by the
|
|
writer, of the misery and ignorance prevailing among the lower classes
|
|
in his own time. Campanella takes note of Aristotle's answer to Plato's
|
|
community of property, that in a society where all things are common, no
|
|
individual would have any motive to work (Arist. Pol.): he replies, that
|
|
his citizens being happy and contented in themselves (they are required
|
|
to work only four hours a day), will have greater regard for their
|
|
fellows than exists among men at present. He thinks, like Plato, that if
|
|
he abolishes private feelings and interests, a great public feeling will
|
|
take their place.
|
|
|
|
Other writings on ideal states, such as the 'Oceana' of Harrington, in
|
|
which the Lord Archon, meaning Cromwell, is described, not as he was,
|
|
but as he ought to have been; or the 'Argenis' of Barclay, which is an
|
|
historical allegory of his own time, are too unlike Plato to be worth
|
|
mentioning. More interesting than either of these, and far more Platonic
|
|
in style and thought, is Sir John Eliot's 'Monarchy of Man,' in which
|
|
the prisoner of the Tower, no longer able 'to be a politician in the
|
|
land of his birth,' turns away from politics to view 'that other city
|
|
which is within him,' and finds on the very threshold of the grave that
|
|
the secret of human happiness is the mastery of self. The change of
|
|
government in the time of the English Commonwealth set men thinking
|
|
about first principles, and gave rise to many works of this class...The
|
|
great original genius of Swift owes nothing to Plato; nor is there
|
|
any trace in the conversation or in the works of Dr. Johnson of any
|
|
acquaintance with his writings. He probably would have refuted Plato
|
|
without reading him, in the same fashion in which he supposed himself to
|
|
have refuted Bishop Berkeley's theory of the non-existence of matter.
|
|
If we except the so-called English Platonists, or rather Neo-Platonists,
|
|
who never understood their master, and the writings of Coleridge,
|
|
who was to some extent a kindred spirit, Plato has left no permanent
|
|
impression on English literature.
|
|
|
|
7. Human life and conduct are affected by ideals in the same way that
|
|
they are affected by the examples of eminent men. Neither the one nor
|
|
the other are immediately applicable to practice, but there is a virtue
|
|
flowing from them which tends to raise individuals above the common
|
|
routine of society or trade, and to elevate States above the mere
|
|
interests of commerce or the necessities of self-defence. Like the
|
|
ideals of art they are partly framed by the omission of particulars;
|
|
they require to be viewed at a certain distance, and are apt to fade
|
|
away if we attempt to approach them. They gain an imaginary distinctness
|
|
when embodied in a State or in a system of philosophy, but they still
|
|
remain the visions of 'a world unrealized.' More striking and obvious to
|
|
the ordinary mind are the examples of great men, who have served their
|
|
own generation and are remembered in another. Even in our own family
|
|
circle there may have been some one, a woman, or even a child, in
|
|
whose face has shone forth a goodness more than human. The ideal then
|
|
approaches nearer to us, and we fondly cling to it. The ideal of the
|
|
past, whether of our own past lives or of former states of society, has
|
|
a singular fascination for the minds of many. Too late we learn that
|
|
such ideals cannot be recalled, though the recollection of them may
|
|
have a humanizing influence on other times. But the abstractions of
|
|
philosophy are to most persons cold and vacant; they give light without
|
|
warmth; they are like the full moon in the heavens when there are no
|
|
stars appearing. Men cannot live by thought alone; the world of sense is
|
|
always breaking in upon them. They are for the most part confined to a
|
|
corner of earth, and see but a little way beyond their own home or place
|
|
of abode; they 'do not lift up their eyes to the hills'; they are not
|
|
awake when the dawn appears. But in Plato we have reached a height from
|
|
which a man may look into the distance and behold the future of the
|
|
world and of philosophy. The ideal of the State and of the life of
|
|
the philosopher; the ideal of an education continuing through life and
|
|
extending equally to both sexes; the ideal of the unity and correlation
|
|
of knowledge; the faith in good and immortality--are the vacant forms of
|
|
light on which Plato is seeking to fix the eye of mankind.
|
|
|
|
8. Two other ideals, which never appeared above the horizon in Greek
|
|
Philosophy, float before the minds of men in our own day: one seen more
|
|
clearly than formerly, as though each year and each generation brought
|
|
us nearer to some great change; the other almost in the same degree
|
|
retiring from view behind the laws of nature, as if oppressed by them,
|
|
but still remaining a silent hope of we know not what hidden in the
|
|
heart of man. The first ideal is the future of the human race in this
|
|
world; the second the future of the individual in another. The first is
|
|
the more perfect realization of our own present life; the second,
|
|
the abnegation of it: the one, limited by experience, the other,
|
|
transcending it. Both of them have been and are powerful motives of
|
|
action; there are a few in whom they have taken the place of all earthly
|
|
interests. The hope of a future for the human race at first sight seems
|
|
to be the more disinterested, the hope of individual existence the more
|
|
egotistical, of the two motives. But when men have learned to resolve
|
|
their hope of a future either for themselves or for the world into the
|
|
will of God--'not my will but Thine,' the difference between them falls
|
|
away; and they may be allowed to make either of them the basis of their
|
|
lives, according to their own individual character or temperament. There
|
|
is as much faith in the willingness to work for an unseen future in this
|
|
world as in another. Neither is it inconceivable that some rare nature
|
|
may feel his duty to another generation, or to another century, almost
|
|
as strongly as to his own, or that living always in the presence of God,
|
|
he may realize another world as vividly as he does this.
|
|
|
|
The greatest of all ideals may, or rather must be conceived by us under
|
|
similitudes derived from human qualities; although sometimes, like the
|
|
Jewish prophets, we may dash away these figures of speech and describe
|
|
the nature of God only in negatives. These again by degrees acquire a
|
|
positive meaning. It would be well, if when meditating on the higher
|
|
truths either of philosophy or religion, we sometimes substituted one
|
|
form of expression for another, lest through the necessities of language
|
|
we should become the slaves of mere words.
|
|
|
|
There is a third ideal, not the same, but akin to these, which has a
|
|
place in the home and heart of every believer in the religion of Christ,
|
|
and in which men seem to find a nearer and more familiar truth,
|
|
the Divine man, the Son of Man, the Saviour of mankind, Who is the
|
|
first-born and head of the whole family in heaven and earth, in Whom
|
|
the Divine and human, that which is without and that which is within the
|
|
range of our earthly faculties, are indissolubly united. Neither is this
|
|
divine form of goodness wholly separable from the ideal of the Christian
|
|
Church, which is said in the New Testament to be 'His body,' or at
|
|
variance with those other images of good which Plato sets before us. We
|
|
see Him in a figure only, and of figures of speech we select but a few,
|
|
and those the simplest, to be the expression of Him. We behold Him in
|
|
a picture, but He is not there. We gather up the fragments of His
|
|
discourses, but neither do they represent Him as He truly was. His
|
|
dwelling is neither in heaven nor earth, but in the heart of man.
|
|
This is that image which Plato saw dimly in the distance, which, when
|
|
existing among men, he called, in the language of Homer, 'the likeness
|
|
of God,' the likeness of a nature which in all ages men have felt to be
|
|
greater and better than themselves, and which in endless forms, whether
|
|
derived from Scripture or nature, from the witness of history or from
|
|
the human heart, regarded as a person or not as a person, with or
|
|
without parts or passions, existing in space or not in space, is and
|
|
will always continue to be to mankind the Idea of Good.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
THE REPUBLIC.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
PERSONS OF THE DIALOGUE.
|
|
|
|
Socrates, who is the narrator.
|
|
|
|
Glaucon.
|
|
|
|
Adeimantus.
|
|
|
|
Polemarchus.
|
|
|
|
Cephalus.
|
|
|
|
Thrasymachus.
|
|
|
|
Cleitophon.
|
|
|
|
And others who are mute auditors.
|
|
|
|
The scene is laid in the house of Cephalus at the Piraeus; and the whole
|
|
dialogue is narrated by Socrates the day after it actually took place to
|
|
Timaeus, Hermocrates, Critias, and a nameless person, who are introduced
|
|
in the Timaeus.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK I.
|
|
|
|
I went down yesterday to the Piraeus with Glaucon the son of Ariston,
|
|
that I might offer up my prayers to the goddess (Bendis, the Thracian
|
|
Artemis.); and also because I wanted to see in what manner they would
|
|
celebrate the festival, which was a new thing. I was delighted with the
|
|
procession of the inhabitants; but that of the Thracians was equally,
|
|
if not more, beautiful. When we had finished our prayers and viewed the
|
|
spectacle, we turned in the direction of the city; and at that instant
|
|
Polemarchus the son of Cephalus chanced to catch sight of us from a
|
|
distance as we were starting on our way home, and told his servant to
|
|
run and bid us wait for him. The servant took hold of me by the cloak
|
|
behind, and said: Polemarchus desires you to wait.
|
|
|
|
I turned round, and asked him where his master was.
|
|
|
|
There he is, said the youth, coming after you, if you will only wait.
|
|
|
|
Certainly we will, said Glaucon; and in a few minutes Polemarchus
|
|
appeared, and with him Adeimantus, Glaucon's brother, Niceratus the son
|
|
of Nicias, and several others who had been at the procession.
|
|
|
|
Polemarchus said to me: I perceive, Socrates, that you and your
|
|
companion are already on your way to the city.
|
|
|
|
You are not far wrong, I said.
|
|
|
|
But do you see, he rejoined, how many we are?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And are you stronger than all these? for if not, you will have to remain
|
|
where you are.
|
|
|
|
May there not be the alternative, I said, that we may persuade you to
|
|
let us go?
|
|
|
|
But can you persuade us, if we refuse to listen to you? he said.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, replied Glaucon.
|
|
|
|
Then we are not going to listen; of that you may be assured.
|
|
|
|
Adeimantus added: Has no one told you of the torch-race on horseback in
|
|
honour of the goddess which will take place in the evening?
|
|
|
|
With horses! I replied: That is a novelty. Will horsemen carry torches
|
|
and pass them one to another during the race?
|
|
|
|
Yes, said Polemarchus, and not only so, but a festival will be
|
|
celebrated at night, which you certainly ought to see. Let us rise soon
|
|
after supper and see this festival; there will be a gathering of young
|
|
men, and we will have a good talk. Stay then, and do not be perverse.
|
|
|
|
Glaucon said: I suppose, since you insist, that we must.
|
|
|
|
Very good, I replied.
|
|
|
|
Accordingly we went with Polemarchus to his house; and there we found
|
|
his brothers Lysias and Euthydemus, and with them Thrasymachus the
|
|
Chalcedonian, Charmantides the Paeanian, and Cleitophon the son of
|
|
Aristonymus. There too was Cephalus the father of Polemarchus, whom I
|
|
had not seen for a long time, and I thought him very much aged. He was
|
|
seated on a cushioned chair, and had a garland on his head, for he had
|
|
been sacrificing in the court; and there were some other chairs in the
|
|
room arranged in a semicircle, upon which we sat down by him. He saluted
|
|
me eagerly, and then he said:--
|
|
|
|
You don't come to see me, Socrates, as often as you ought: If I were
|
|
still able to go and see you I would not ask you to come to me. But
|
|
at my age I can hardly get to the city, and therefore you should come
|
|
oftener to the Piraeus. For let me tell you, that the more the pleasures
|
|
of the body fade away, the greater to me is the pleasure and charm
|
|
of conversation. Do not then deny my request, but make our house your
|
|
resort and keep company with these young men; we are old friends, and
|
|
you will be quite at home with us.
|
|
|
|
I replied: There is nothing which for my part I like better, Cephalus,
|
|
than conversing with aged men; for I regard them as travellers who
|
|
have gone a journey which I too may have to go, and of whom I ought to
|
|
enquire, whether the way is smooth and easy, or rugged and difficult.
|
|
And this is a question which I should like to ask of you who have
|
|
arrived at that time which the poets call the 'threshold of old age'--Is
|
|
life harder towards the end, or what report do you give of it?
|
|
|
|
I will tell you, Socrates, he said, what my own feeling is. Men of my
|
|
age flock together; we are birds of a feather, as the old proverb says;
|
|
and at our meetings the tale of my acquaintance commonly is--I cannot
|
|
eat, I cannot drink; the pleasures of youth and love are fled away:
|
|
there was a good time once, but now that is gone, and life is no longer
|
|
life. Some complain of the slights which are put upon them by relations,
|
|
and they will tell you sadly of how many evils their old age is the
|
|
cause. But to me, Socrates, these complainers seem to blame that which
|
|
is not really in fault. For if old age were the cause, I too being old,
|
|
and every other old man, would have felt as they do. But this is not
|
|
my own experience, nor that of others whom I have known. How well I
|
|
remember the aged poet Sophocles, when in answer to the question, How
|
|
does love suit with age, Sophocles,--are you still the man you were?
|
|
Peace, he replied; most gladly have I escaped the thing of which you
|
|
speak; I feel as if I had escaped from a mad and furious master. His
|
|
words have often occurred to my mind since, and they seem as good to
|
|
me now as at the time when he uttered them. For certainly old age has
|
|
a great sense of calm and freedom; when the passions relax their hold,
|
|
then, as Sophocles says, we are freed from the grasp not of one mad
|
|
master only, but of many. The truth is, Socrates, that these regrets,
|
|
and also the complaints about relations, are to be attributed to the
|
|
same cause, which is not old age, but men's characters and tempers; for
|
|
he who is of a calm and happy nature will hardly feel the pressure of
|
|
age, but to him who is of an opposite disposition youth and age are
|
|
equally a burden.
|
|
|
|
I listened in admiration, and wanting to draw him out, that he might go
|
|
on--Yes, Cephalus, I said: but I rather suspect that people in general
|
|
are not convinced by you when you speak thus; they think that old
|
|
age sits lightly upon you, not because of your happy disposition, but
|
|
because you are rich, and wealth is well known to be a great comforter.
|
|
|
|
You are right, he replied; they are not convinced: and there is
|
|
something in what they say; not, however, so much as they imagine. I
|
|
might answer them as Themistocles answered the Seriphian who was abusing
|
|
him and saying that he was famous, not for his own merits but because he
|
|
was an Athenian: 'If you had been a native of my country or I of yours,
|
|
neither of us would have been famous.' And to those who are not rich and
|
|
are impatient of old age, the same reply may be made; for to the good
|
|
poor man old age cannot be a light burden, nor can a bad rich man ever
|
|
have peace with himself.
|
|
|
|
May I ask, Cephalus, whether your fortune was for the most part
|
|
inherited or acquired by you?
|
|
|
|
Acquired! Socrates; do you want to know how much I acquired? In the art
|
|
of making money I have been midway between my father and grandfather:
|
|
for my grandfather, whose name I bear, doubled and trebled the value of
|
|
his patrimony, that which he inherited being much what I possess now;
|
|
but my father Lysanias reduced the property below what it is at present:
|
|
and I shall be satisfied if I leave to these my sons not less but a
|
|
little more than I received.
|
|
|
|
That was why I asked you the question, I replied, because I see that you
|
|
are indifferent about money, which is a characteristic rather of those
|
|
who have inherited their fortunes than of those who have acquired them;
|
|
the makers of fortunes have a second love of money as a creation of
|
|
their own, resembling the affection of authors for their own poems, or
|
|
of parents for their children, besides that natural love of it for the
|
|
sake of use and profit which is common to them and all men. And hence
|
|
they are very bad company, for they can talk about nothing but the
|
|
praises of wealth.
|
|
|
|
That is true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is very true, but may I ask another question?--What do you
|
|
consider to be the greatest blessing which you have reaped from your
|
|
wealth?
|
|
|
|
One, he said, of which I could not expect easily to convince others.
|
|
For let me tell you, Socrates, that when a man thinks himself to be near
|
|
death, fears and cares enter into his mind which he never had before;
|
|
the tales of a world below and the punishment which is exacted there
|
|
of deeds done here were once a laughing matter to him, but now he
|
|
is tormented with the thought that they may be true: either from the
|
|
weakness of age, or because he is now drawing nearer to that other
|
|
place, he has a clearer view of these things; suspicions and alarms
|
|
crowd thickly upon him, and he begins to reflect and consider what
|
|
wrongs he has done to others. And when he finds that the sum of his
|
|
transgressions is great he will many a time like a child start up in his
|
|
sleep for fear, and he is filled with dark forebodings. But to him who
|
|
is conscious of no sin, sweet hope, as Pindar charmingly says, is the
|
|
kind nurse of his age:
|
|
|
|
'Hope,' he says, 'cherishes the soul of him who lives in justice
|
|
and holiness, and is the nurse of his age and the companion of his
|
|
journey;--hope which is mightiest to sway the restless soul of man.'
|
|
|
|
How admirable are his words! And the great blessing of riches, I do not
|
|
say to every man, but to a good man, is, that he has had no occasion to
|
|
deceive or to defraud others, either intentionally or unintentionally;
|
|
and when he departs to the world below he is not in any apprehension
|
|
about offerings due to the gods or debts which he owes to men. Now to
|
|
this peace of mind the possession of wealth greatly contributes; and
|
|
therefore I say, that, setting one thing against another, of the many
|
|
advantages which wealth has to give, to a man of sense this is in my
|
|
opinion the greatest.
|
|
|
|
Well said, Cephalus, I replied; but as concerning justice, what is
|
|
it?--to speak the truth and to pay your debts--no more than this? And
|
|
even to this are there not exceptions? Suppose that a friend when in his
|
|
right mind has deposited arms with me and he asks for them when he is
|
|
not in his right mind, ought I to give them back to him? No one would
|
|
say that I ought or that I should be right in doing so, any more than
|
|
they would say that I ought always to speak the truth to one who is in
|
|
his condition.
|
|
|
|
You are quite right, he replied.
|
|
|
|
But then, I said, speaking the truth and paying your debts is not a
|
|
correct definition of justice.
|
|
|
|
Quite correct, Socrates, if Simonides is to be believed, said
|
|
Polemarchus interposing.
|
|
|
|
I fear, said Cephalus, that I must go now, for I have to look after the
|
|
sacrifices, and I hand over the argument to Polemarchus and the company.
|
|
|
|
Is not Polemarchus your heir? I said.
|
|
|
|
To be sure, he answered, and went away laughing to the sacrifices.
|
|
|
|
Tell me then, O thou heir of the argument, what did Simonides say, and
|
|
according to you truly say, about justice?
|
|
|
|
He said that the repayment of a debt is just, and in saying so he
|
|
appears to me to be right.
|
|
|
|
I should be sorry to doubt the word of such a wise and inspired man, but
|
|
his meaning, though probably clear to you, is the reverse of clear to
|
|
me. For he certainly does not mean, as we were just now saying, that I
|
|
ought to return a deposit of arms or of anything else to one who asks
|
|
for it when he is not in his right senses; and yet a deposit cannot be
|
|
denied to be a debt.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then when the person who asks me is not in his right mind I am by no
|
|
means to make the return?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
When Simonides said that the repayment of a debt was justice, he did not
|
|
mean to include that case?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not; for he thinks that a friend ought always to do good to a
|
|
friend and never evil.
|
|
|
|
You mean that the return of a deposit of gold which is to the injury of
|
|
the receiver, if the two parties are friends, is not the repayment of a
|
|
debt,--that is what you would imagine him to say?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And are enemies also to receive what we owe to them?
|
|
|
|
To be sure, he said, they are to receive what we owe them, and an enemy,
|
|
as I take it, owes to an enemy that which is due or proper to him--that
|
|
is to say, evil.
|
|
|
|
Simonides, then, after the manner of poets, would seem to have spoken
|
|
darkly of the nature of justice; for he really meant to say that justice
|
|
is the giving to each man what is proper to him, and this he termed a
|
|
debt.
|
|
|
|
That must have been his meaning, he said.
|
|
|
|
By heaven! I replied; and if we asked him what due or proper thing is
|
|
given by medicine, and to whom, what answer do you think that he would
|
|
make to us?
|
|
|
|
He would surely reply that medicine gives drugs and meat and drink to
|
|
human bodies.
|
|
|
|
And what due or proper thing is given by cookery, and to what?
|
|
|
|
Seasoning to food.
|
|
|
|
And what is that which justice gives, and to whom?
|
|
|
|
If, Socrates, we are to be guided at all by the analogy of the preceding
|
|
instances, then justice is the art which gives good to friends and evil
|
|
to enemies.
|
|
|
|
That is his meaning then?
|
|
|
|
I think so.
|
|
|
|
And who is best able to do good to his friends and evil to his enemies
|
|
in time of sickness?
|
|
|
|
The physician.
|
|
|
|
Or when they are on a voyage, amid the perils of the sea?
|
|
|
|
The pilot.
|
|
|
|
And in what sort of actions or with a view to what result is the just
|
|
man most able to do harm to his enemy and good to his friend?
|
|
|
|
In going to war against the one and in making alliances with the other.
|
|
|
|
But when a man is well, my dear Polemarchus, there is no need of a
|
|
physician?
|
|
|
|
No.
|
|
|
|
And he who is not on a voyage has no need of a pilot?
|
|
|
|
No.
|
|
|
|
Then in time of peace justice will be of no use?
|
|
|
|
I am very far from thinking so.
|
|
|
|
You think that justice may be of use in peace as well as in war?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Like husbandry for the acquisition of corn?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Or like shoemaking for the acquisition of shoes,--that is what you mean?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And what similar use or power of acquisition has justice in time of
|
|
peace?
|
|
|
|
In contracts, Socrates, justice is of use.
|
|
|
|
And by contracts you mean partnerships?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
But is the just man or the skilful player a more useful and better
|
|
partner at a game of draughts?
|
|
|
|
The skilful player.
|
|
|
|
And in the laying of bricks and stones is the just man a more useful or
|
|
better partner than the builder?
|
|
|
|
Quite the reverse.
|
|
|
|
Then in what sort of partnership is the just man a better partner than
|
|
the harp-player, as in playing the harp the harp-player is certainly a
|
|
better partner than the just man?
|
|
|
|
In a money partnership.
|
|
|
|
Yes, Polemarchus, but surely not in the use of money; for you do not
|
|
want a just man to be your counsellor in the purchase or sale of a
|
|
horse; a man who is knowing about horses would be better for that, would
|
|
he not?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And when you want to buy a ship, the shipwright or the pilot would be
|
|
better?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then what is that joint use of silver or gold in which the just man is
|
|
to be preferred?
|
|
|
|
When you want a deposit to be kept safely.
|
|
|
|
You mean when money is not wanted, but allowed to lie?
|
|
|
|
Precisely.
|
|
|
|
That is to say, justice is useful when money is useless?
|
|
|
|
That is the inference.
|
|
|
|
And when you want to keep a pruning-hook safe, then justice is useful to
|
|
the individual and to the state; but when you want to use it, then the
|
|
art of the vine-dresser?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And when you want to keep a shield or a lyre, and not to use them, you
|
|
would say that justice is useful; but when you want to use them, then
|
|
the art of the soldier or of the musician?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And so of all other things;--justice is useful when they are useless,
|
|
and useless when they are useful?
|
|
|
|
That is the inference.
|
|
|
|
Then justice is not good for much. But let us consider this further
|
|
point: Is not he who can best strike a blow in a boxing match or in any
|
|
kind of fighting best able to ward off a blow?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And he who is most skilful in preventing or escaping from a disease is
|
|
best able to create one?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And he is the best guard of a camp who is best able to steal a march
|
|
upon the enemy?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then he who is a good keeper of anything is also a good thief?
|
|
|
|
That, I suppose, is to be inferred.
|
|
|
|
Then if the just man is good at keeping money, he is good at stealing
|
|
it.
|
|
|
|
That is implied in the argument.
|
|
|
|
Then after all the just man has turned out to be a thief. And this is
|
|
a lesson which I suspect you must have learnt out of Homer; for he,
|
|
speaking of Autolycus, the maternal grandfather of Odysseus, who is a
|
|
favourite of his, affirms that
|
|
|
|
'He was excellent above all men in theft and perjury.'
|
|
|
|
And so, you and Homer and Simonides are agreed that justice is an art of
|
|
theft; to be practised however 'for the good of friends and for the harm
|
|
of enemies,'--that was what you were saying?
|
|
|
|
No, certainly not that, though I do not now know what I did say; but I
|
|
still stand by the latter words.
|
|
|
|
Well, there is another question: By friends and enemies do we mean those
|
|
who are so really, or only in seeming?
|
|
|
|
Surely, he said, a man may be expected to love those whom he thinks
|
|
good, and to hate those whom he thinks evil.
|
|
|
|
Yes, but do not persons often err about good and evil: many who are not
|
|
good seem to be so, and conversely?
|
|
|
|
That is true.
|
|
|
|
Then to them the good will be enemies and the evil will be their
|
|
friends? True.
|
|
|
|
And in that case they will be right in doing good to the evil and evil
|
|
to the good?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
But the good are just and would not do an injustice?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then according to your argument it is just to injure those who do no
|
|
wrong?
|
|
|
|
Nay, Socrates; the doctrine is immoral.
|
|
|
|
Then I suppose that we ought to do good to the just and harm to the
|
|
unjust?
|
|
|
|
I like that better.
|
|
|
|
But see the consequence:--Many a man who is ignorant of human nature
|
|
has friends who are bad friends, and in that case he ought to do harm to
|
|
them; and he has good enemies whom he ought to benefit; but, if so, we
|
|
shall be saying the very opposite of that which we affirmed to be the
|
|
meaning of Simonides.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said: and I think that we had better correct an error
|
|
into which we seem to have fallen in the use of the words 'friend' and
|
|
'enemy.'
|
|
|
|
What was the error, Polemarchus? I asked.
|
|
|
|
We assumed that he is a friend who seems to be or who is thought good.
|
|
|
|
And how is the error to be corrected?
|
|
|
|
We should rather say that he is a friend who is, as well as seems, good;
|
|
and that he who seems only, and is not good, only seems to be and is not
|
|
a friend; and of an enemy the same may be said.
|
|
|
|
You would argue that the good are our friends and the bad our enemies?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And instead of saying simply as we did at first, that it is just to do
|
|
good to our friends and harm to our enemies, we should further say: It
|
|
is just to do good to our friends when they are good and harm to our
|
|
enemies when they are evil?
|
|
|
|
Yes, that appears to me to be the truth.
|
|
|
|
But ought the just to injure any one at all?
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly he ought to injure those who are both wicked and his
|
|
enemies.
|
|
|
|
When horses are injured, are they improved or deteriorated?
|
|
|
|
The latter.
|
|
|
|
Deteriorated, that is to say, in the good qualities of horses, not of
|
|
dogs?
|
|
|
|
Yes, of horses.
|
|
|
|
And dogs are deteriorated in the good qualities of dogs, and not of
|
|
horses?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And will not men who are injured be deteriorated in that which is the
|
|
proper virtue of man?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And that human virtue is justice?
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
Then men who are injured are of necessity made unjust?
|
|
|
|
That is the result.
|
|
|
|
But can the musician by his art make men unmusical?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Or the horseman by his art make them bad horsemen?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
And can the just by justice make men unjust, or speaking generally, can
|
|
the good by virtue make them bad?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly not.
|
|
|
|
Any more than heat can produce cold?
|
|
|
|
It cannot.
|
|
|
|
Or drought moisture?
|
|
|
|
Clearly not.
|
|
|
|
Nor can the good harm any one?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
And the just is the good?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then to injure a friend or any one else is not the act of a just man,
|
|
but of the opposite, who is the unjust?
|
|
|
|
I think that what you say is quite true, Socrates.
|
|
|
|
Then if a man says that justice consists in the repayment of debts, and
|
|
that good is the debt which a just man owes to his friends, and evil the
|
|
debt which he owes to his enemies,--to say this is not wise; for it is
|
|
not true, if, as has been clearly shown, the injuring of another can be
|
|
in no case just.
|
|
|
|
I agree with you, said Polemarchus.
|
|
|
|
Then you and I are prepared to take up arms against any one who
|
|
attributes such a saying to Simonides or Bias or Pittacus, or any other
|
|
wise man or seer?
|
|
|
|
I am quite ready to do battle at your side, he said.
|
|
|
|
Shall I tell you whose I believe the saying to be?
|
|
|
|
Whose?
|
|
|
|
I believe that Periander or Perdiccas or Xerxes or Ismenias the Theban,
|
|
or some other rich and mighty man, who had a great opinion of his own
|
|
power, was the first to say that justice is 'doing good to your friends
|
|
and harm to your enemies.'
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; but if this definition of justice also breaks down, what
|
|
other can be offered?
|
|
|
|
Several times in the course of the discussion Thrasymachus had made an
|
|
attempt to get the argument into his own hands, and had been put down
|
|
by the rest of the company, who wanted to hear the end. But when
|
|
Polemarchus and I had done speaking and there was a pause, he could no
|
|
longer hold his peace; and, gathering himself up, he came at us like a
|
|
wild beast, seeking to devour us. We were quite panic-stricken at the
|
|
sight of him.
|
|
|
|
He roared out to the whole company: What folly, Socrates, has taken
|
|
possession of you all? And why, sillybillies, do you knock under to
|
|
one another? I say that if you want really to know what justice is,
|
|
you should not only ask but answer, and you should not seek honour to
|
|
yourself from the refutation of an opponent, but have your own answer;
|
|
for there is many a one who can ask and cannot answer. And now I will
|
|
not have you say that justice is duty or advantage or profit or gain
|
|
or interest, for this sort of nonsense will not do for me; I must have
|
|
clearness and accuracy.
|
|
|
|
I was panic-stricken at his words, and could not look at him without
|
|
trembling. Indeed I believe that if I had not fixed my eye upon him, I
|
|
should have been struck dumb: but when I saw his fury rising, I looked
|
|
at him first, and was therefore able to reply to him.
|
|
|
|
Thrasymachus, I said, with a quiver, don't be hard upon us. Polemarchus
|
|
and I may have been guilty of a little mistake in the argument, but I
|
|
can assure you that the error was not intentional. If we were seeking
|
|
for a piece of gold, you would not imagine that we were 'knocking under
|
|
to one another,' and so losing our chance of finding it. And why, when
|
|
we are seeking for justice, a thing more precious than many pieces of
|
|
gold, do you say that we are weakly yielding to one another and not
|
|
doing our utmost to get at the truth? Nay, my good friend, we are most
|
|
willing and anxious to do so, but the fact is that we cannot. And if so,
|
|
you people who know all things should pity us and not be angry with us.
|
|
|
|
How characteristic of Socrates! he replied, with a bitter laugh;--that's
|
|
your ironical style! Did I not foresee--have I not already told you,
|
|
that whatever he was asked he would refuse to answer, and try irony or
|
|
any other shuffle, in order that he might avoid answering?
|
|
|
|
You are a philosopher, Thrasymachus, I replied, and well know that if
|
|
you ask a person what numbers make up twelve, taking care to prohibit
|
|
him whom you ask from answering twice six, or three times four, or six
|
|
times two, or four times three, 'for this sort of nonsense will not do
|
|
for me,'--then obviously, if that is your way of putting the
|
|
question, no one can answer you. But suppose that he were to retort,
|
|
'Thrasymachus, what do you mean? If one of these numbers which you
|
|
interdict be the true answer to the question, am I falsely to say some
|
|
other number which is not the right one?--is that your meaning?'--How
|
|
would you answer him?
|
|
|
|
Just as if the two cases were at all alike! he said.
|
|
|
|
Why should they not be? I replied; and even if they are not, but only
|
|
appear to be so to the person who is asked, ought he not to say what he
|
|
thinks, whether you and I forbid him or not?
|
|
|
|
I presume then that you are going to make one of the interdicted
|
|
answers?
|
|
|
|
I dare say that I may, notwithstanding the danger, if upon reflection I
|
|
approve of any of them.
|
|
|
|
But what if I give you an answer about justice other and better, he
|
|
said, than any of these? What do you deserve to have done to you?
|
|
|
|
Done to me!--as becomes the ignorant, I must learn from the wise--that
|
|
is what I deserve to have done to me.
|
|
|
|
What, and no payment! a pleasant notion!
|
|
|
|
I will pay when I have the money, I replied.
|
|
|
|
But you have, Socrates, said Glaucon: and you, Thrasymachus, need be
|
|
under no anxiety about money, for we will all make a contribution for
|
|
Socrates.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied, and then Socrates will do as he always does--refuse to
|
|
answer himself, but take and pull to pieces the answer of some one else.
|
|
|
|
Why, my good friend, I said, how can any one answer who knows, and says
|
|
that he knows, just nothing; and who, even if he has some faint notions
|
|
of his own, is told by a man of authority not to utter them? The
|
|
natural thing is, that the speaker should be some one like yourself
|
|
who professes to know and can tell what he knows. Will you then kindly
|
|
answer, for the edification of the company and of myself?
|
|
|
|
Glaucon and the rest of the company joined in my request, and
|
|
Thrasymachus, as any one might see, was in reality eager to speak;
|
|
for he thought that he had an excellent answer, and would distinguish
|
|
himself. But at first he affected to insist on my answering; at length
|
|
he consented to begin. Behold, he said, the wisdom of Socrates; he
|
|
refuses to teach himself, and goes about learning of others, to whom he
|
|
never even says Thank you.
|
|
|
|
That I learn of others, I replied, is quite true; but that I am
|
|
ungrateful I wholly deny. Money I have none, and therefore I pay in
|
|
praise, which is all I have; and how ready I am to praise any one who
|
|
appears to me to speak well you will very soon find out when you answer;
|
|
for I expect that you will answer well.
|
|
|
|
Listen, then, he said; I proclaim that justice is nothing else than
|
|
the interest of the stronger. And now why do you not praise me? But of
|
|
course you won't.
|
|
|
|
Let me first understand you, I replied. Justice, as you say, is the
|
|
interest of the stronger. What, Thrasymachus, is the meaning of this?
|
|
You cannot mean to say that because Polydamas, the pancratiast, is
|
|
stronger than we are, and finds the eating of beef conducive to his
|
|
bodily strength, that to eat beef is therefore equally for our good who
|
|
are weaker than he is, and right and just for us?
|
|
|
|
That's abominable of you, Socrates; you take the words in the sense
|
|
which is most damaging to the argument.
|
|
|
|
Not at all, my good sir, I said; I am trying to understand them; and I
|
|
wish that you would be a little clearer.
|
|
|
|
Well, he said, have you never heard that forms of government differ;
|
|
there are tyrannies, and there are democracies, and there are
|
|
aristocracies?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I know.
|
|
|
|
And the government is the ruling power in each state?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And the different forms of government make laws democratical,
|
|
aristocratical, tyrannical, with a view to their several interests;
|
|
and these laws, which are made by them for their own interests, are the
|
|
justice which they deliver to their subjects, and him who transgresses
|
|
them they punish as a breaker of the law, and unjust. And that is what
|
|
I mean when I say that in all states there is the same principle of
|
|
justice, which is the interest of the government; and as the government
|
|
must be supposed to have power, the only reasonable conclusion is, that
|
|
everywhere there is one principle of justice, which is the interest of
|
|
the stronger.
|
|
|
|
Now I understand you, I said; and whether you are right or not I will
|
|
try to discover. But let me remark, that in defining justice you have
|
|
yourself used the word 'interest' which you forbade me to use. It is
|
|
true, however, that in your definition the words 'of the stronger' are
|
|
added.
|
|
|
|
A small addition, you must allow, he said.
|
|
|
|
Great or small, never mind about that: we must first enquire whether
|
|
what you are saying is the truth. Now we are both agreed that justice
|
|
is interest of some sort, but you go on to say 'of the stronger'; about
|
|
this addition I am not so sure, and must therefore consider further.
|
|
|
|
Proceed.
|
|
|
|
I will; and first tell me, Do you admit that it is just for subjects to
|
|
obey their rulers?
|
|
|
|
I do.
|
|
|
|
But are the rulers of states absolutely infallible, or are they
|
|
sometimes liable to err?
|
|
|
|
To be sure, he replied, they are liable to err.
|
|
|
|
Then in making their laws they may sometimes make them rightly, and
|
|
sometimes not?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
When they make them rightly, they make them agreeably to their interest;
|
|
when they are mistaken, contrary to their interest; you admit that?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the laws which they make must be obeyed by their subjects,--and that
|
|
is what you call justice?
|
|
|
|
Doubtless.
|
|
|
|
Then justice, according to your argument, is not only obedience to the
|
|
interest of the stronger but the reverse?
|
|
|
|
What is that you are saying? he asked.
|
|
|
|
I am only repeating what you are saying, I believe. But let us consider:
|
|
Have we not admitted that the rulers may be mistaken about their own
|
|
interest in what they command, and also that to obey them is justice?
|
|
Has not that been admitted?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then you must also have acknowledged justice not to be for the interest
|
|
of the stronger, when the rulers unintentionally command things to be
|
|
done which are to their own injury. For if, as you say, justice is the
|
|
obedience which the subject renders to their commands, in that case, O
|
|
wisest of men, is there any escape from the conclusion that the weaker
|
|
are commanded to do, not what is for the interest, but what is for the
|
|
injury of the stronger?
|
|
|
|
Nothing can be clearer, Socrates, said Polemarchus.
|
|
|
|
Yes, said Cleitophon, interposing, if you are allowed to be his witness.
|
|
|
|
But there is no need of any witness, said Polemarchus, for Thrasymachus
|
|
himself acknowledges that rulers may sometimes command what is not for
|
|
their own interest, and that for subjects to obey them is justice.
|
|
|
|
Yes, Polemarchus,--Thrasymachus said that for subjects to do what was
|
|
commanded by their rulers is just.
|
|
|
|
Yes, Cleitophon, but he also said that justice is the interest of the
|
|
stronger, and, while admitting both these propositions, he further
|
|
acknowledged that the stronger may command the weaker who are his
|
|
subjects to do what is not for his own interest; whence follows that
|
|
justice is the injury quite as much as the interest of the stronger.
|
|
|
|
But, said Cleitophon, he meant by the interest of the stronger what the
|
|
stronger thought to be his interest,--this was what the weaker had to
|
|
do; and this was affirmed by him to be justice.
|
|
|
|
Those were not his words, rejoined Polemarchus.
|
|
|
|
Never mind, I replied, if he now says that they are, let us accept his
|
|
statement. Tell me, Thrasymachus, I said, did you mean by justice what
|
|
the stronger thought to be his interest, whether really so or not?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, he said. Do you suppose that I call him who is mistaken
|
|
the stronger at the time when he is mistaken?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, my impression was that you did so, when you admitted that
|
|
the ruler was not infallible but might be sometimes mistaken.
|
|
|
|
You argue like an informer, Socrates. Do you mean, for example, that he
|
|
who is mistaken about the sick is a physician in that he is mistaken?
|
|
or that he who errs in arithmetic or grammar is an arithmetician or
|
|
grammarian at the time when he is making the mistake, in respect of the
|
|
mistake? True, we say that the physician or arithmetician or grammarian
|
|
has made a mistake, but this is only a way of speaking; for the fact is
|
|
that neither the grammarian nor any other person of skill ever makes a
|
|
mistake in so far as he is what his name implies; they none of them
|
|
err unless their skill fails them, and then they cease to be skilled
|
|
artists. No artist or sage or ruler errs at the time when he is what
|
|
his name implies; though he is commonly said to err, and I adopted the
|
|
common mode of speaking. But to be perfectly accurate, since you are
|
|
such a lover of accuracy, we should say that the ruler, in so far as he
|
|
is a ruler, is unerring, and, being unerring, always commands that which
|
|
is for his own interest; and the subject is required to execute his
|
|
commands; and therefore, as I said at first and now repeat, justice is
|
|
the interest of the stronger.
|
|
|
|
Indeed, Thrasymachus, and do I really appear to you to argue like an
|
|
informer?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And do you suppose that I ask these questions with any design of
|
|
injuring you in the argument?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he replied, 'suppose' is not the word--I know it; but you will be
|
|
found out, and by sheer force of argument you will never prevail.
|
|
|
|
I shall not make the attempt, my dear man; but to avoid any
|
|
misunderstanding occurring between us in future, let me ask, in what
|
|
sense do you speak of a ruler or stronger whose interest, as you were
|
|
saying, he being the superior, it is just that the inferior should
|
|
execute--is he a ruler in the popular or in the strict sense of the
|
|
term?
|
|
|
|
In the strictest of all senses, he said. And now cheat and play the
|
|
informer if you can; I ask no quarter at your hands. But you never will
|
|
be able, never.
|
|
|
|
And do you imagine, I said, that I am such a madman as to try and cheat,
|
|
Thrasymachus? I might as well shave a lion.
|
|
|
|
Why, he said, you made the attempt a minute ago, and you failed.
|
|
|
|
Enough, I said, of these civilities. It will be better that I should ask
|
|
you a question: Is the physician, taken in that strict sense of which
|
|
you are speaking, a healer of the sick or a maker of money? And remember
|
|
that I am now speaking of the true physician.
|
|
|
|
A healer of the sick, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And the pilot--that is to say, the true pilot--is he a captain of
|
|
sailors or a mere sailor?
|
|
|
|
A captain of sailors.
|
|
|
|
The circumstance that he sails in the ship is not to be taken into
|
|
account; neither is he to be called a sailor; the name pilot by which he
|
|
is distinguished has nothing to do with sailing, but is significant of
|
|
his skill and of his authority over the sailors.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Now, I said, every art has an interest?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
For which the art has to consider and provide?
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is the aim of art.
|
|
|
|
And the interest of any art is the perfection of it--this and nothing
|
|
else?
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I mean what I may illustrate negatively by the example of the body.
|
|
Suppose you were to ask me whether the body is self-sufficing or has
|
|
wants, I should reply: Certainly the body has wants; for the body may
|
|
be ill and require to be cured, and has therefore interests to which
|
|
the art of medicine ministers; and this is the origin and intention of
|
|
medicine, as you will acknowledge. Am I not right?
|
|
|
|
Quite right, he replied.
|
|
|
|
But is the art of medicine or any other art faulty or deficient in any
|
|
quality in the same way that the eye may be deficient in sight or the
|
|
ear fail of hearing, and therefore requires another art to provide
|
|
for the interests of seeing and hearing--has art in itself, I say, any
|
|
similar liability to fault or defect, and does every art require another
|
|
supplementary art to provide for its interests, and that another and
|
|
another without end? Or have the arts to look only after their
|
|
own interests? Or have they no need either of themselves or of
|
|
another?--having no faults or defects, they have no need to correct
|
|
them, either by the exercise of their own art or of any other; they have
|
|
only to consider the interest of their subject-matter. For every art
|
|
remains pure and faultless while remaining true--that is to say, while
|
|
perfect and unimpaired. Take the words in your precise sense, and tell
|
|
me whether I am not right.
|
|
|
|
Yes, clearly.
|
|
|
|
Then medicine does not consider the interest of medicine, but the
|
|
interest of the body?
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
Nor does the art of horsemanship consider the interests of the art of
|
|
horsemanship, but the interests of the horse; neither do any other arts
|
|
care for themselves, for they have no needs; they care only for that
|
|
which is the subject of their art?
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
But surely, Thrasymachus, the arts are the superiors and rulers of their
|
|
own subjects?
|
|
|
|
To this he assented with a good deal of reluctance.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, no science or art considers or enjoins the interest of the
|
|
stronger or superior, but only the interest of the subject and weaker?
|
|
|
|
He made an attempt to contest this proposition also, but finally
|
|
acquiesced.
|
|
|
|
Then, I continued, no physician, in so far as he is a physician,
|
|
considers his own good in what he prescribes, but the good of his
|
|
patient; for the true physician is also a ruler having the human body as
|
|
a subject, and is not a mere money-maker; that has been admitted?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the pilot likewise, in the strict sense of the term, is a ruler of
|
|
sailors and not a mere sailor?
|
|
|
|
That has been admitted.
|
|
|
|
And such a pilot and ruler will provide and prescribe for the interest
|
|
of the sailor who is under him, and not for his own or the ruler's
|
|
interest?
|
|
|
|
He gave a reluctant 'Yes.'
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, Thrasymachus, there is no one in any rule who, in so far
|
|
as he is a ruler, considers or enjoins what is for his own interest, but
|
|
always what is for the interest of his subject or suitable to his art;
|
|
to that he looks, and that alone he considers in everything which he
|
|
says and does.
|
|
|
|
When we had got to this point in the argument, and every one saw that
|
|
the definition of justice had been completely upset, Thrasymachus,
|
|
instead of replying to me, said: Tell me, Socrates, have you got a
|
|
nurse?
|
|
|
|
Why do you ask such a question, I said, when you ought rather to be
|
|
answering?
|
|
|
|
Because she leaves you to snivel, and never wipes your nose: she has not
|
|
even taught you to know the shepherd from the sheep.
|
|
|
|
What makes you say that? I replied.
|
|
|
|
Because you fancy that the shepherd or neatherd fattens or tends the
|
|
sheep or oxen with a view to their own good and not to the good of
|
|
himself or his master; and you further imagine that the rulers of
|
|
states, if they are true rulers, never think of their subjects as sheep,
|
|
and that they are not studying their own advantage day and night. Oh,
|
|
no; and so entirely astray are you in your ideas about the just and
|
|
unjust as not even to know that justice and the just are in reality
|
|
another's good; that is to say, the interest of the ruler and stronger,
|
|
and the loss of the subject and servant; and injustice the opposite; for
|
|
the unjust is lord over the truly simple and just: he is the stronger,
|
|
and his subjects do what is for his interest, and minister to his
|
|
happiness, which is very far from being their own. Consider further,
|
|
most foolish Socrates, that the just is always a loser in comparison
|
|
with the unjust. First of all, in private contracts: wherever the unjust
|
|
is the partner of the just you will find that, when the partnership is
|
|
dissolved, the unjust man has always more and the just less. Secondly,
|
|
in their dealings with the State: when there is an income-tax, the just
|
|
man will pay more and the unjust less on the same amount of income;
|
|
and when there is anything to be received the one gains nothing and the
|
|
other much. Observe also what happens when they take an office; there is
|
|
the just man neglecting his affairs and perhaps suffering other losses,
|
|
and getting nothing out of the public, because he is just; moreover he
|
|
is hated by his friends and acquaintance for refusing to serve them in
|
|
unlawful ways. But all this is reversed in the case of the unjust man.
|
|
I am speaking, as before, of injustice on a large scale in which the
|
|
advantage of the unjust is most apparent; and my meaning will be most
|
|
clearly seen if we turn to that highest form of injustice in which the
|
|
criminal is the happiest of men, and the sufferers or those who refuse
|
|
to do injustice are the most miserable--that is to say tyranny, which by
|
|
fraud and force takes away the property of others, not little by little
|
|
but wholesale; comprehending in one, things sacred as well as profane,
|
|
private and public; for which acts of wrong, if he were detected
|
|
perpetrating any one of them singly, he would be punished and incur
|
|
great disgrace--they who do such wrong in particular cases are called
|
|
robbers of temples, and man-stealers and burglars and swindlers and
|
|
thieves. But when a man besides taking away the money of the citizens
|
|
has made slaves of them, then, instead of these names of reproach, he is
|
|
termed happy and blessed, not only by the citizens but by all who
|
|
hear of his having achieved the consummation of injustice. For mankind
|
|
censure injustice, fearing that they may be the victims of it and not
|
|
because they shrink from committing it. And thus, as I have shown,
|
|
Socrates, injustice, when on a sufficient scale, has more strength and
|
|
freedom and mastery than justice; and, as I said at first, justice is
|
|
the interest of the stronger, whereas injustice is a man's own profit
|
|
and interest.
|
|
|
|
Thrasymachus, when he had thus spoken, having, like a bath-man, deluged
|
|
our ears with his words, had a mind to go away. But the company
|
|
would not let him; they insisted that he should remain and defend his
|
|
position; and I myself added my own humble request that he would not
|
|
leave us. Thrasymachus, I said to him, excellent man, how suggestive
|
|
are your remarks! And are you going to run away before you have fairly
|
|
taught or learned whether they are true or not? Is the attempt to
|
|
determine the way of man's life so small a matter in your eyes--to
|
|
determine how life may be passed by each one of us to the greatest
|
|
advantage?
|
|
|
|
And do I differ from you, he said, as to the importance of the enquiry?
|
|
|
|
You appear rather, I replied, to have no care or thought about us,
|
|
Thrasymachus--whether we live better or worse from not knowing what you
|
|
say you know, is to you a matter of indifference. Prithee, friend,
|
|
do not keep your knowledge to yourself; we are a large party; and any
|
|
benefit which you confer upon us will be amply rewarded. For my own
|
|
part I openly declare that I am not convinced, and that I do not believe
|
|
injustice to be more gainful than justice, even if uncontrolled and
|
|
allowed to have free play. For, granting that there may be an unjust
|
|
man who is able to commit injustice either by fraud or force, still this
|
|
does not convince me of the superior advantage of injustice, and there
|
|
may be others who are in the same predicament with myself. Perhaps we
|
|
may be wrong; if so, you in your wisdom should convince us that we are
|
|
mistaken in preferring justice to injustice.
|
|
|
|
And how am I to convince you, he said, if you are not already convinced
|
|
by what I have just said; what more can I do for you? Would you have me
|
|
put the proof bodily into your souls?
|
|
|
|
Heaven forbid! I said; I would only ask you to be consistent; or, if you
|
|
change, change openly and let there be no deception. For I must remark,
|
|
Thrasymachus, if you will recall what was previously said, that although
|
|
you began by defining the true physician in an exact sense, you did not
|
|
observe a like exactness when speaking of the shepherd; you thought that
|
|
the shepherd as a shepherd tends the sheep not with a view to their own
|
|
good, but like a mere diner or banquetter with a view to the pleasures
|
|
of the table; or, again, as a trader for sale in the market, and not as
|
|
a shepherd. Yet surely the art of the shepherd is concerned only with
|
|
the good of his subjects; he has only to provide the best for them,
|
|
since the perfection of the art is already ensured whenever all the
|
|
requirements of it are satisfied. And that was what I was saying just
|
|
now about the ruler. I conceived that the art of the ruler, considered
|
|
as ruler, whether in a state or in private life, could only regard the
|
|
good of his flock or subjects; whereas you seem to think that the rulers
|
|
in states, that is to say, the true rulers, like being in authority.
|
|
|
|
Think! Nay, I am sure of it.
|
|
|
|
Then why in the case of lesser offices do men never take them willingly
|
|
without payment, unless under the idea that they govern for the
|
|
advantage not of themselves but of others? Let me ask you a question:
|
|
Are not the several arts different, by reason of their each having a
|
|
separate function? And, my dear illustrious friend, do say what you
|
|
think, that we may make a little progress.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is the difference, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And each art gives us a particular good and not merely a general
|
|
one--medicine, for example, gives us health; navigation, safety at sea,
|
|
and so on?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said.
|
|
|
|
And the art of payment has the special function of giving pay: but we do
|
|
not confuse this with other arts, any more than the art of the pilot is
|
|
to be confused with the art of medicine, because the health of the pilot
|
|
may be improved by a sea voyage. You would not be inclined to say, would
|
|
you, that navigation is the art of medicine, at least if we are to adopt
|
|
your exact use of language?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Or because a man is in good health when he receives pay you would not
|
|
say that the art of payment is medicine?
|
|
|
|
I should not.
|
|
|
|
Nor would you say that medicine is the art of receiving pay because a
|
|
man takes fees when he is engaged in healing?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
And we have admitted, I said, that the good of each art is specially
|
|
confined to the art?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then, if there be any good which all artists have in common, that is to
|
|
be attributed to something of which they all have the common use?
|
|
|
|
True, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And when the artist is benefited by receiving pay the advantage is
|
|
gained by an additional use of the art of pay, which is not the art
|
|
professed by him?
|
|
|
|
He gave a reluctant assent to this.
|
|
|
|
Then the pay is not derived by the several artists from their respective
|
|
arts. But the truth is, that while the art of medicine gives health, and
|
|
the art of the builder builds a house, another art attends them which
|
|
is the art of pay. The various arts may be doing their own business and
|
|
benefiting that over which they preside, but would the artist receive
|
|
any benefit from his art unless he were paid as well?
|
|
|
|
I suppose not.
|
|
|
|
But does he therefore confer no benefit when he works for nothing?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he confers a benefit.
|
|
|
|
Then now, Thrasymachus, there is no longer any doubt that neither arts
|
|
nor governments provide for their own interests; but, as we were before
|
|
saying, they rule and provide for the interests of their subjects who
|
|
are the weaker and not the stronger--to their good they attend and
|
|
not to the good of the superior. And this is the reason, my dear
|
|
Thrasymachus, why, as I was just now saying, no one is willing to
|
|
govern; because no one likes to take in hand the reformation of evils
|
|
which are not his concern without remuneration. For, in the execution of
|
|
his work, and in giving his orders to another, the true artist does not
|
|
regard his own interest, but always that of his subjects; and therefore
|
|
in order that rulers may be willing to rule, they must be paid in one of
|
|
three modes of payment, money, or honour, or a penalty for refusing.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean, Socrates? said Glaucon. The first two modes of payment
|
|
are intelligible enough, but what the penalty is I do not understand, or
|
|
how a penalty can be a payment.
|
|
|
|
You mean that you do not understand the nature of this payment which to
|
|
the best men is the great inducement to rule? Of course you know that
|
|
ambition and avarice are held to be, as indeed they are, a disgrace?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And for this reason, I said, money and honour have no attraction for
|
|
them; good men do not wish to be openly demanding payment for governing
|
|
and so to get the name of hirelings, nor by secretly helping themselves
|
|
out of the public revenues to get the name of thieves. And not being
|
|
ambitious they do not care about honour. Wherefore necessity must be
|
|
laid upon them, and they must be induced to serve from the fear of
|
|
punishment. And this, as I imagine, is the reason why the forwardness
|
|
to take office, instead of waiting to be compelled, has been deemed
|
|
dishonourable. Now the worst part of the punishment is that he who
|
|
refuses to rule is liable to be ruled by one who is worse than himself.
|
|
And the fear of this, as I conceive, induces the good to take office,
|
|
not because they would, but because they cannot help--not under the idea
|
|
that they are going to have any benefit or enjoyment themselves, but as
|
|
a necessity, and because they are not able to commit the task of ruling
|
|
to any one who is better than themselves, or indeed as good. For there
|
|
is reason to think that if a city were composed entirely of good men,
|
|
then to avoid office would be as much an object of contention as to
|
|
obtain office is at present; then we should have plain proof that the
|
|
true ruler is not meant by nature to regard his own interest, but that
|
|
of his subjects; and every one who knew this would choose rather to
|
|
receive a benefit from another than to have the trouble of conferring
|
|
one. So far am I from agreeing with Thrasymachus that justice is the
|
|
interest of the stronger. This latter question need not be further
|
|
discussed at present; but when Thrasymachus says that the life of the
|
|
unjust is more advantageous than that of the just, his new statement
|
|
appears to me to be of a far more serious character. Which of us has
|
|
spoken truly? And which sort of life, Glaucon, do you prefer?
|
|
|
|
I for my part deem the life of the just to be the more advantageous, he
|
|
answered.
|
|
|
|
Did you hear all the advantages of the unjust which Thrasymachus was
|
|
rehearsing?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I heard him, he replied, but he has not convinced me.
|
|
|
|
Then shall we try to find some way of convincing him, if we can, that he
|
|
is saying what is not true?
|
|
|
|
Most certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
If, I said, he makes a set speech and we make another recounting all the
|
|
advantages of being just, and he answers and we rejoin, there must be a
|
|
numbering and measuring of the goods which are claimed on either side,
|
|
and in the end we shall want judges to decide; but if we proceed in our
|
|
enquiry as we lately did, by making admissions to one another, we shall
|
|
unite the offices of judge and advocate in our own persons.
|
|
|
|
Very good, he said.
|
|
|
|
And which method do I understand you to prefer? I said.
|
|
|
|
That which you propose.
|
|
|
|
Well, then, Thrasymachus, I said, suppose you begin at the beginning and
|
|
answer me. You say that perfect injustice is more gainful than perfect
|
|
justice?
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is what I say, and I have given you my reasons.
|
|
|
|
And what is your view about them? Would you call one of them virtue and
|
|
the other vice?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
I suppose that you would call justice virtue and injustice vice?
|
|
|
|
What a charming notion! So likely too, seeing that I affirm injustice to
|
|
be profitable and justice not.
|
|
|
|
What else then would you say?
|
|
|
|
The opposite, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And would you call justice vice?
|
|
|
|
No, I would rather say sublime simplicity.
|
|
|
|
Then would you call injustice malignity?
|
|
|
|
No; I would rather say discretion.
|
|
|
|
And do the unjust appear to you to be wise and good?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; at any rate those of them who are able to be perfectly
|
|
unjust, and who have the power of subduing states and nations; but
|
|
perhaps you imagine me to be talking of cutpurses. Even this profession
|
|
if undetected has advantages, though they are not to be compared with
|
|
those of which I was just now speaking.
|
|
|
|
I do not think that I misapprehend your meaning, Thrasymachus, I
|
|
replied; but still I cannot hear without amazement that you class
|
|
injustice with wisdom and virtue, and justice with the opposite.
|
|
|
|
Certainly I do so class them.
|
|
|
|
Now, I said, you are on more substantial and almost unanswerable ground;
|
|
for if the injustice which you were maintaining to be profitable had
|
|
been admitted by you as by others to be vice and deformity, an answer
|
|
might have been given to you on received principles; but now I perceive
|
|
that you will call injustice honourable and strong, and to the unjust
|
|
you will attribute all the qualities which were attributed by us before
|
|
to the just, seeing that you do not hesitate to rank injustice with
|
|
wisdom and virtue.
|
|
|
|
You have guessed most infallibly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then I certainly ought not to shrink from going through with the
|
|
argument so long as I have reason to think that you, Thrasymachus, are
|
|
speaking your real mind; for I do believe that you are now in earnest
|
|
and are not amusing yourself at our expense.
|
|
|
|
I may be in earnest or not, but what is that to you?--to refute the
|
|
argument is your business.
|
|
|
|
Very true, I said; that is what I have to do: But will you be so good
|
|
as answer yet one more question? Does the just man try to gain any
|
|
advantage over the just?
|
|
|
|
Far otherwise; if he did he would not be the simple amusing creature
|
|
which he is.
|
|
|
|
And would he try to go beyond just action?
|
|
|
|
He would not.
|
|
|
|
And how would he regard the attempt to gain an advantage over the
|
|
unjust; would that be considered by him as just or unjust?
|
|
|
|
He would think it just, and would try to gain the advantage; but he
|
|
would not be able.
|
|
|
|
Whether he would or would not be able, I said, is not to the point. My
|
|
question is only whether the just man, while refusing to have more than
|
|
another just man, would wish and claim to have more than the unjust?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he would.
|
|
|
|
And what of the unjust--does he claim to have more than the just man and
|
|
to do more than is just?
|
|
|
|
Of course, he said, for he claims to have more than all men.
|
|
|
|
And the unjust man will strive and struggle to obtain more than the
|
|
unjust man or action, in order that he may have more than all?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
We may put the matter thus, I said--the just does not desire more than
|
|
his like but more than his unlike, whereas the unjust desires more than
|
|
both his like and his unlike?
|
|
|
|
Nothing, he said, can be better than that statement.
|
|
|
|
And the unjust is good and wise, and the just is neither?
|
|
|
|
Good again, he said.
|
|
|
|
And is not the unjust like the wise and good and the just unlike them?
|
|
|
|
Of course, he said, he who is of a certain nature, is like those who are
|
|
of a certain nature; he who is not, not.
|
|
|
|
Each of them, I said, is such as his like is?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Very good, Thrasymachus, I said; and now to take the case of the arts:
|
|
you would admit that one man is a musician and another not a musician?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And which is wise and which is foolish?
|
|
|
|
Clearly the musician is wise, and he who is not a musician is foolish.
|
|
|
|
And he is good in as far as he is wise, and bad in as far as he is
|
|
foolish?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And you would say the same sort of thing of the physician?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And do you think, my excellent friend, that a musician when he adjusts
|
|
the lyre would desire or claim to exceed or go beyond a musician in the
|
|
tightening and loosening the strings?
|
|
|
|
I do not think that he would.
|
|
|
|
But he would claim to exceed the non-musician?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And what would you say of the physician? In prescribing meats and drinks
|
|
would he wish to go beyond another physician or beyond the practice of
|
|
medicine?
|
|
|
|
He would not.
|
|
|
|
But he would wish to go beyond the non-physician?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And about knowledge and ignorance in general; see whether you think that
|
|
any man who has knowledge ever would wish to have the choice of saying
|
|
or doing more than another man who has knowledge. Would he not rather
|
|
say or do the same as his like in the same case?
|
|
|
|
That, I suppose, can hardly be denied.
|
|
|
|
And what of the ignorant? would he not desire to have more than either
|
|
the knowing or the ignorant?
|
|
|
|
I dare say.
|
|
|
|
And the knowing is wise?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the wise is good?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then the wise and good will not desire to gain more than his like, but
|
|
more than his unlike and opposite?
|
|
|
|
I suppose so.
|
|
|
|
Whereas the bad and ignorant will desire to gain more than both?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
But did we not say, Thrasymachus, that the unjust goes beyond both his
|
|
like and unlike? Were not these your words?
|
|
|
|
They were.
|
|
|
|
And you also said that the just will not go beyond his like but his
|
|
unlike?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then the just is like the wise and good, and the unjust like the evil
|
|
and ignorant?
|
|
|
|
That is the inference.
|
|
|
|
And each of them is such as his like is?
|
|
|
|
That was admitted.
|
|
|
|
Then the just has turned out to be wise and good and the unjust evil and
|
|
ignorant.
|
|
|
|
Thrasymachus made all these admissions, not fluently, as I repeat
|
|
them, but with extreme reluctance; it was a hot summer's day, and the
|
|
perspiration poured from him in torrents; and then I saw what I had
|
|
never seen before, Thrasymachus blushing. As we were now agreed that
|
|
justice was virtue and wisdom, and injustice vice and ignorance, I
|
|
proceeded to another point:
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, Thrasymachus, that matter is now settled; but were we not
|
|
also saying that injustice had strength; do you remember?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I remember, he said, but do not suppose that I approve of what you
|
|
are saying or have no answer; if however I were to answer, you would be
|
|
quite certain to accuse me of haranguing; therefore either permit me to
|
|
have my say out, or if you would rather ask, do so, and I will answer
|
|
'Very good,' as they say to story-telling old women, and will nod 'Yes'
|
|
and 'No.'
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, I said, if contrary to your real opinion.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I will, to please you, since you will not let me speak.
|
|
What else would you have?
|
|
|
|
Nothing in the world, I said; and if you are so disposed I will ask and
|
|
you shall answer.
|
|
|
|
Proceed.
|
|
|
|
Then I will repeat the question which I asked before, in order that
|
|
our examination of the relative nature of justice and injustice may be
|
|
carried on regularly. A statement was made that injustice is stronger
|
|
and more powerful than justice, but now justice, having been identified
|
|
with wisdom and virtue, is easily shown to be stronger than injustice,
|
|
if injustice is ignorance; this can no longer be questioned by any one.
|
|
But I want to view the matter, Thrasymachus, in a different way: You
|
|
would not deny that a state may be unjust and may be unjustly attempting
|
|
to enslave other states, or may have already enslaved them, and may be
|
|
holding many of them in subjection?
|
|
|
|
True, he replied; and I will add that the best and most perfectly unjust
|
|
state will be most likely to do so.
|
|
|
|
I know, I said, that such was your position; but what I would further
|
|
consider is, whether this power which is possessed by the superior state
|
|
can exist or be exercised without justice or only with justice.
|
|
|
|
If you are right in your view, and justice is wisdom, then only with
|
|
justice; but if I am right, then without justice.
|
|
|
|
I am delighted, Thrasymachus, to see you not only nodding assent and
|
|
dissent, but making answers which are quite excellent.
|
|
|
|
That is out of civility to you, he replied.
|
|
|
|
You are very kind, I said; and would you have the goodness also to
|
|
inform me, whether you think that a state, or an army, or a band of
|
|
robbers and thieves, or any other gang of evil-doers could act at all if
|
|
they injured one another?
|
|
|
|
No indeed, he said, they could not.
|
|
|
|
But if they abstained from injuring one another, then they might act
|
|
together better?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And this is because injustice creates divisions and hatreds and
|
|
fighting, and justice imparts harmony and friendship; is not that true,
|
|
Thrasymachus?
|
|
|
|
I agree, he said, because I do not wish to quarrel with you.
|
|
|
|
How good of you, I said; but I should like to know also whether
|
|
injustice, having this tendency to arouse hatred, wherever existing,
|
|
among slaves or among freemen, will not make them hate one another and
|
|
set them at variance and render them incapable of common action?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And even if injustice be found in two only, will they not quarrel and
|
|
fight, and become enemies to one another and to the just?
|
|
|
|
They will.
|
|
|
|
And suppose injustice abiding in a single person, would your wisdom say
|
|
that she loses or that she retains her natural power?
|
|
|
|
Let us assume that she retains her power.
|
|
|
|
Yet is not the power which injustice exercises of such a nature that
|
|
wherever she takes up her abode, whether in a city, in an army, in a
|
|
family, or in any other body, that body is, to begin with, rendered
|
|
incapable of united action by reason of sedition and distraction; and
|
|
does it not become its own enemy and at variance with all that opposes
|
|
it, and with the just? Is not this the case?
|
|
|
|
Yes, certainly.
|
|
|
|
And is not injustice equally fatal when existing in a single person; in
|
|
the first place rendering him incapable of action because he is not
|
|
at unity with himself, and in the second place making him an enemy to
|
|
himself and the just? Is not that true, Thrasymachus?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And O my friend, I said, surely the gods are just?
|
|
|
|
Granted that they are.
|
|
|
|
But if so, the unjust will be the enemy of the gods, and the just will
|
|
be their friend?
|
|
|
|
Feast away in triumph, and take your fill of the argument; I will not
|
|
oppose you, lest I should displease the company.
|
|
|
|
Well then, proceed with your answers, and let me have the remainder of
|
|
my repast. For we have already shown that the just are clearly wiser and
|
|
better and abler than the unjust, and that the unjust are incapable of
|
|
common action; nay more, that to speak as we did of men who are evil
|
|
acting at any time vigorously together, is not strictly true, for
|
|
if they had been perfectly evil, they would have laid hands upon one
|
|
another; but it is evident that there must have been some remnant of
|
|
justice in them, which enabled them to combine; if there had not been
|
|
they would have injured one another as well as their victims; they
|
|
were but half-villains in their enterprises; for had they been whole
|
|
villains, and utterly unjust, they would have been utterly incapable of
|
|
action. That, as I believe, is the truth of the matter, and not what you
|
|
said at first. But whether the just have a better and happier life than
|
|
the unjust is a further question which we also proposed to consider. I
|
|
think that they have, and for the reasons which I have given; but still
|
|
I should like to examine further, for no light matter is at stake,
|
|
nothing less than the rule of human life.
|
|
|
|
Proceed.
|
|
|
|
I will proceed by asking a question: Would you not say that a horse has
|
|
some end?
|
|
|
|
I should.
|
|
|
|
And the end or use of a horse or of anything would be that which could
|
|
not be accomplished, or not so well accomplished, by any other thing?
|
|
|
|
I do not understand, he said.
|
|
|
|
Let me explain: Can you see, except with the eye?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Or hear, except with the ear?
|
|
|
|
No.
|
|
|
|
These then may be truly said to be the ends of these organs?
|
|
|
|
They may.
|
|
|
|
But you can cut off a vine-branch with a dagger or with a chisel, and in
|
|
many other ways?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And yet not so well as with a pruning-hook made for the purpose?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
May we not say that this is the end of a pruning-hook?
|
|
|
|
We may.
|
|
|
|
Then now I think you will have no difficulty in understanding my meaning
|
|
when I asked the question whether the end of anything would be that
|
|
which could not be accomplished, or not so well accomplished, by any
|
|
other thing?
|
|
|
|
I understand your meaning, he said, and assent.
|
|
|
|
And that to which an end is appointed has also an excellence? Need I ask
|
|
again whether the eye has an end?
|
|
|
|
It has.
|
|
|
|
And has not the eye an excellence?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the ear has an end and an excellence also?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the same is true of all other things; they have each of them an end
|
|
and a special excellence?
|
|
|
|
That is so.
|
|
|
|
Well, and can the eyes fulfil their end if they are wanting in their own
|
|
proper excellence and have a defect instead?
|
|
|
|
How can they, he said, if they are blind and cannot see?
|
|
|
|
You mean to say, if they have lost their proper excellence, which is
|
|
sight; but I have not arrived at that point yet. I would rather ask
|
|
the question more generally, and only enquire whether the things which
|
|
fulfil their ends fulfil them by their own proper excellence, and fail
|
|
of fulfilling them by their own defect?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
I might say the same of the ears; when deprived of their own proper
|
|
excellence they cannot fulfil their end?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the same observation will apply to all other things?
|
|
|
|
I agree.
|
|
|
|
Well; and has not the soul an end which nothing else can fulfil? for
|
|
example, to superintend and command and deliberate and the like. Are not
|
|
these functions proper to the soul, and can they rightly be assigned to
|
|
any other?
|
|
|
|
To no other.
|
|
|
|
And is not life to be reckoned among the ends of the soul?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly, he said.
|
|
|
|
And has not the soul an excellence also?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And can she or can she not fulfil her own ends when deprived of that
|
|
excellence?
|
|
|
|
She cannot.
|
|
|
|
Then an evil soul must necessarily be an evil ruler and superintendent,
|
|
and the good soul a good ruler?
|
|
|
|
Yes, necessarily.
|
|
|
|
And we have admitted that justice is the excellence of the soul, and
|
|
injustice the defect of the soul?
|
|
|
|
That has been admitted.
|
|
|
|
Then the just soul and the just man will live well, and the unjust man
|
|
will live ill?
|
|
|
|
That is what your argument proves.
|
|
|
|
And he who lives well is blessed and happy, and he who lives ill the
|
|
reverse of happy?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then the just is happy, and the unjust miserable?
|
|
|
|
So be it.
|
|
|
|
But happiness and not misery is profitable.
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
Then, my blessed Thrasymachus, injustice can never be more profitable
|
|
than justice.
|
|
|
|
Let this, Socrates, he said, be your entertainment at the Bendidea.
|
|
|
|
For which I am indebted to you, I said, now that you have grown gentle
|
|
towards me and have left off scolding. Nevertheless, I have not been
|
|
well entertained; but that was my own fault and not yours. As an epicure
|
|
snatches a taste of every dish which is successively brought to table,
|
|
he not having allowed himself time to enjoy the one before, so have I
|
|
gone from one subject to another without having discovered what I sought
|
|
at first, the nature of justice. I left that enquiry and turned away
|
|
to consider whether justice is virtue and wisdom or evil and folly; and
|
|
when there arose a further question about the comparative advantages of
|
|
justice and injustice, I could not refrain from passing on to that. And
|
|
the result of the whole discussion has been that I know nothing at all.
|
|
For I know not what justice is, and therefore I am not likely to know
|
|
whether it is or is not a virtue, nor can I say whether the just man is
|
|
happy or unhappy.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK II.
|
|
|
|
With these words I was thinking that I had made an end of the
|
|
discussion; but the end, in truth, proved to be only a beginning. For
|
|
Glaucon, who is always the most pugnacious of men, was dissatisfied at
|
|
Thrasymachus' retirement; he wanted to have the battle out. So he said
|
|
to me: Socrates, do you wish really to persuade us, or only to seem to
|
|
have persuaded us, that to be just is always better than to be unjust?
|
|
|
|
I should wish really to persuade you, I replied, if I could.
|
|
|
|
Then you certainly have not succeeded. Let me ask you now:--How would
|
|
you arrange goods--are there not some which we welcome for their
|
|
own sakes, and independently of their consequences, as, for example,
|
|
harmless pleasures and enjoyments, which delight us at the time,
|
|
although nothing follows from them?
|
|
|
|
I agree in thinking that there is such a class, I replied.
|
|
|
|
Is there not also a second class of goods, such as knowledge, sight,
|
|
health, which are desirable not only in themselves, but also for their
|
|
results?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, I said.
|
|
|
|
And would you not recognize a third class, such as gymnastic, and the
|
|
care of the sick, and the physician's art; also the various ways of
|
|
money-making--these do us good but we regard them as disagreeable; and
|
|
no one would choose them for their own sakes, but only for the sake of
|
|
some reward or result which flows from them?
|
|
|
|
There is, I said, this third class also. But why do you ask?
|
|
|
|
Because I want to know in which of the three classes you would place
|
|
justice?
|
|
|
|
In the highest class, I replied,--among those goods which he who would
|
|
be happy desires both for their own sake and for the sake of their
|
|
results.
|
|
|
|
Then the many are of another mind; they think that justice is to be
|
|
reckoned in the troublesome class, among goods which are to be pursued
|
|
for the sake of rewards and of reputation, but in themselves are
|
|
disagreeable and rather to be avoided.
|
|
|
|
I know, I said, that this is their manner of thinking, and that this was
|
|
the thesis which Thrasymachus was maintaining just now, when he censured
|
|
justice and praised injustice. But I am too stupid to be convinced by
|
|
him.
|
|
|
|
I wish, he said, that you would hear me as well as him, and then I shall
|
|
see whether you and I agree. For Thrasymachus seems to me, like a snake,
|
|
to have been charmed by your voice sooner than he ought to have been;
|
|
but to my mind the nature of justice and injustice have not yet been
|
|
made clear. Setting aside their rewards and results, I want to know what
|
|
they are in themselves, and how they inwardly work in the soul. If you,
|
|
please, then, I will revive the argument of Thrasymachus. And first I
|
|
will speak of the nature and origin of justice according to the common
|
|
view of them. Secondly, I will show that all men who practise justice do
|
|
so against their will, of necessity, but not as a good. And thirdly, I
|
|
will argue that there is reason in this view, for the life of the unjust
|
|
is after all better far than the life of the just--if what they say
|
|
is true, Socrates, since I myself am not of their opinion. But still I
|
|
acknowledge that I am perplexed when I hear the voices of Thrasymachus
|
|
and myriads of others dinning in my ears; and, on the other hand, I have
|
|
never yet heard the superiority of justice to injustice maintained by
|
|
any one in a satisfactory way. I want to hear justice praised in respect
|
|
of itself; then I shall be satisfied, and you are the person from whom
|
|
I think that I am most likely to hear this; and therefore I will praise
|
|
the unjust life to the utmost of my power, and my manner of speaking
|
|
will indicate the manner in which I desire to hear you too praising
|
|
justice and censuring injustice. Will you say whether you approve of my
|
|
proposal?
|
|
|
|
Indeed I do; nor can I imagine any theme about which a man of sense
|
|
would oftener wish to converse.
|
|
|
|
I am delighted, he replied, to hear you say so, and shall begin by
|
|
speaking, as I proposed, of the nature and origin of justice.
|
|
|
|
They say that to do injustice is, by nature, good; to suffer injustice,
|
|
evil; but that the evil is greater than the good. And so when men have
|
|
both done and suffered injustice and have had experience of both, not
|
|
being able to avoid the one and obtain the other, they think that they
|
|
had better agree among themselves to have neither; hence there arise
|
|
laws and mutual covenants; and that which is ordained by law is termed
|
|
by them lawful and just. This they affirm to be the origin and nature of
|
|
justice;--it is a mean or compromise, between the best of all, which is
|
|
to do injustice and not be punished, and the worst of all, which is to
|
|
suffer injustice without the power of retaliation; and justice, being at
|
|
a middle point between the two, is tolerated not as a good, but as
|
|
the lesser evil, and honoured by reason of the inability of men to do
|
|
injustice. For no man who is worthy to be called a man would ever submit
|
|
to such an agreement if he were able to resist; he would be mad if he
|
|
did. Such is the received account, Socrates, of the nature and origin of
|
|
justice.
|
|
|
|
Now that those who practise justice do so involuntarily and because they
|
|
have not the power to be unjust will best appear if we imagine something
|
|
of this kind: having given both to the just and the unjust power to do
|
|
what they will, let us watch and see whither desire will lead them;
|
|
then we shall discover in the very act the just and unjust man to be
|
|
proceeding along the same road, following their interest, which all
|
|
natures deem to be their good, and are only diverted into the path of
|
|
justice by the force of law. The liberty which we are supposing may be
|
|
most completely given to them in the form of such a power as is said
|
|
to have been possessed by Gyges, the ancestor of Croesus the Lydian.
|
|
According to the tradition, Gyges was a shepherd in the service of
|
|
the king of Lydia; there was a great storm, and an earthquake made an
|
|
opening in the earth at the place where he was feeding his flock. Amazed
|
|
at the sight, he descended into the opening, where, among other marvels,
|
|
he beheld a hollow brazen horse, having doors, at which he stooping and
|
|
looking in saw a dead body of stature, as appeared to him, more than
|
|
human, and having nothing on but a gold ring; this he took from the
|
|
finger of the dead and reascended. Now the shepherds met together,
|
|
according to custom, that they might send their monthly report about the
|
|
flocks to the king; into their assembly he came having the ring on his
|
|
finger, and as he was sitting among them he chanced to turn the collet
|
|
of the ring inside his hand, when instantly he became invisible to the
|
|
rest of the company and they began to speak of him as if he were no
|
|
longer present. He was astonished at this, and again touching the ring
|
|
he turned the collet outwards and reappeared; he made several trials
|
|
of the ring, and always with the same result--when he turned the collet
|
|
inwards he became invisible, when outwards he reappeared. Whereupon he
|
|
contrived to be chosen one of the messengers who were sent to the court;
|
|
whereas soon as he arrived he seduced the queen, and with her help
|
|
conspired against the king and slew him, and took the kingdom. Suppose
|
|
now that there were two such magic rings, and the just put on one of
|
|
them and the unjust the other; no man can be imagined to be of such an
|
|
iron nature that he would stand fast in justice. No man would keep his
|
|
hands off what was not his own when he could safely take what he
|
|
liked out of the market, or go into houses and lie with any one at
|
|
his pleasure, or kill or release from prison whom he would, and in all
|
|
respects be like a God among men. Then the actions of the just would be
|
|
as the actions of the unjust; they would both come at last to the same
|
|
point. And this we may truly affirm to be a great proof that a man is
|
|
just, not willingly or because he thinks that justice is any good to him
|
|
individually, but of necessity, for wherever any one thinks that he
|
|
can safely be unjust, there he is unjust. For all men believe in their
|
|
hearts that injustice is far more profitable to the individual than
|
|
justice, and he who argues as I have been supposing, will say that they
|
|
are right. If you could imagine any one obtaining this power of becoming
|
|
invisible, and never doing any wrong or touching what was another's, he
|
|
would be thought by the lookers-on to be a most wretched idiot, although
|
|
they would praise him to one another's faces, and keep up appearances
|
|
with one another from a fear that they too might suffer injustice.
|
|
Enough of this.
|
|
|
|
Now, if we are to form a real judgment of the life of the just and
|
|
unjust, we must isolate them; there is no other way; and how is the
|
|
isolation to be effected? I answer: Let the unjust man be entirely
|
|
unjust, and the just man entirely just; nothing is to be taken away from
|
|
either of them, and both are to be perfectly furnished for the work
|
|
of their respective lives. First, let the unjust be like other
|
|
distinguished masters of craft; like the skilful pilot or physician, who
|
|
knows intuitively his own powers and keeps within their limits, and who,
|
|
if he fails at any point, is able to recover himself. So let the unjust
|
|
make his unjust attempts in the right way, and lie hidden if he means
|
|
to be great in his injustice: (he who is found out is nobody:) for
|
|
the highest reach of injustice is, to be deemed just when you are not.
|
|
Therefore I say that in the perfectly unjust man we must assume the most
|
|
perfect injustice; there is to be no deduction, but we must allow
|
|
him, while doing the most unjust acts, to have acquired the greatest
|
|
reputation for justice. If he have taken a false step he must be able to
|
|
recover himself; he must be one who can speak with effect, if any of his
|
|
deeds come to light, and who can force his way where force is required
|
|
by his courage and strength, and command of money and friends. And at
|
|
his side let us place the just man in his nobleness and simplicity,
|
|
wishing, as Aeschylus says, to be and not to seem good. There must be no
|
|
seeming, for if he seem to be just he will be honoured and rewarded, and
|
|
then we shall not know whether he is just for the sake of justice or
|
|
for the sake of honours and rewards; therefore, let him be clothed in
|
|
justice only, and have no other covering; and he must be imagined in a
|
|
state of life the opposite of the former. Let him be the best of men,
|
|
and let him be thought the worst; then he will have been put to the
|
|
proof; and we shall see whether he will be affected by the fear of
|
|
infamy and its consequences. And let him continue thus to the hour of
|
|
death; being just and seeming to be unjust. When both have reached the
|
|
uttermost extreme, the one of justice and the other of injustice, let
|
|
judgment be given which of them is the happier of the two.
|
|
|
|
Heavens! my dear Glaucon, I said, how energetically you polish them
|
|
up for the decision, first one and then the other, as if they were two
|
|
statues.
|
|
|
|
I do my best, he said. And now that we know what they are like there
|
|
is no difficulty in tracing out the sort of life which awaits either
|
|
of them. This I will proceed to describe; but as you may think the
|
|
description a little too coarse, I ask you to suppose, Socrates, that
|
|
the words which follow are not mine.--Let me put them into the mouths of
|
|
the eulogists of injustice: They will tell you that the just man who is
|
|
thought unjust will be scourged, racked, bound--will have his eyes
|
|
burnt out; and, at last, after suffering every kind of evil, he will be
|
|
impaled: Then he will understand that he ought to seem only, and not to
|
|
be, just; the words of Aeschylus may be more truly spoken of the unjust
|
|
than of the just. For the unjust is pursuing a reality; he does not live
|
|
with a view to appearances--he wants to be really unjust and not to seem
|
|
only:--
|
|
|
|
'His mind has a soil deep and fertile, Out of which spring his prudent
|
|
counsels.'
|
|
|
|
In the first place, he is thought just, and therefore bears rule in the
|
|
city; he can marry whom he will, and give in marriage to whom he
|
|
will; also he can trade and deal where he likes, and always to his own
|
|
advantage, because he has no misgivings about injustice; and at every
|
|
contest, whether in public or private, he gets the better of his
|
|
antagonists, and gains at their expense, and is rich, and out of his
|
|
gains he can benefit his friends, and harm his enemies; moreover, he
|
|
can offer sacrifices, and dedicate gifts to the gods abundantly and
|
|
magnificently, and can honour the gods or any man whom he wants to
|
|
honour in a far better style than the just, and therefore he is likely
|
|
to be dearer than they are to the gods. And thus, Socrates, gods and men
|
|
are said to unite in making the life of the unjust better than the life
|
|
of the just.
|
|
|
|
I was going to say something in answer to Glaucon, when Adeimantus, his
|
|
brother, interposed: Socrates, he said, you do not suppose that there is
|
|
nothing more to be urged?
|
|
|
|
Why, what else is there? I answered.
|
|
|
|
The strongest point of all has not been even mentioned, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Well, then, according to the proverb, 'Let brother help brother'--if
|
|
he fails in any part do you assist him; although I must confess that
|
|
Glaucon has already said quite enough to lay me in the dust, and take
|
|
from me the power of helping justice.
|
|
|
|
Nonsense, he replied. But let me add something more: There is another
|
|
side to Glaucon's argument about the praise and censure of justice
|
|
and injustice, which is equally required in order to bring out what I
|
|
believe to be his meaning. Parents and tutors are always telling their
|
|
sons and their wards that they are to be just; but why? not for the sake
|
|
of justice, but for the sake of character and reputation; in the hope of
|
|
obtaining for him who is reputed just some of those offices, marriages,
|
|
and the like which Glaucon has enumerated among the advantages accruing
|
|
to the unjust from the reputation of justice. More, however, is made of
|
|
appearances by this class of persons than by the others; for they
|
|
throw in the good opinion of the gods, and will tell you of a shower of
|
|
benefits which the heavens, as they say, rain upon the pious; and this
|
|
accords with the testimony of the noble Hesiod and Homer, the first of
|
|
whom says, that the gods make the oaks of the just--
|
|
|
|
'To bear acorns at their summit, and bees in the middle;
|
|
And the sheep are bowed down with the weight of their fleeces,'
|
|
|
|
and many other blessings of a like kind are provided for them. And Homer
|
|
has a very similar strain; for he speaks of one whose fame is--
|
|
|
|
'As the fame of some blameless king who, like a god, Maintains justice;
|
|
to whom the black earth brings forth Wheat and barley, whose trees are
|
|
bowed with fruit, And his sheep never fail to bear, and the sea gives
|
|
him fish.'
|
|
|
|
Still grander are the gifts of heaven which Musaeus and his son
|
|
vouchsafe to the just; they take them down into the world below, where
|
|
they have the saints lying on couches at a feast, everlastingly drunk,
|
|
crowned with garlands; their idea seems to be that an immortality of
|
|
drunkenness is the highest meed of virtue. Some extend their rewards
|
|
yet further; the posterity, as they say, of the faithful and just shall
|
|
survive to the third and fourth generation. This is the style in which
|
|
they praise justice. But about the wicked there is another strain; they
|
|
bury them in a slough in Hades, and make them carry water in a sieve;
|
|
also while they are yet living they bring them to infamy, and inflict
|
|
upon them the punishments which Glaucon described as the portion of the
|
|
just who are reputed to be unjust; nothing else does their invention
|
|
supply. Such is their manner of praising the one and censuring the
|
|
other.
|
|
|
|
Once more, Socrates, I will ask you to consider another way of speaking
|
|
about justice and injustice, which is not confined to the poets, but
|
|
is found in prose writers. The universal voice of mankind is always
|
|
declaring that justice and virtue are honourable, but grievous and
|
|
toilsome; and that the pleasures of vice and injustice are easy of
|
|
attainment, and are only censured by law and opinion. They say also that
|
|
honesty is for the most part less profitable than dishonesty; and they
|
|
are quite ready to call wicked men happy, and to honour them both in
|
|
public and private when they are rich or in any other way influential,
|
|
while they despise and overlook those who may be weak and poor, even
|
|
though acknowledging them to be better than the others. But most
|
|
extraordinary of all is their mode of speaking about virtue and the
|
|
gods: they say that the gods apportion calamity and misery to many good
|
|
men, and good and happiness to the wicked. And mendicant prophets go to
|
|
rich men's doors and persuade them that they have a power committed
|
|
to them by the gods of making an atonement for a man's own or his
|
|
ancestor's sins by sacrifices or charms, with rejoicings and feasts; and
|
|
they promise to harm an enemy, whether just or unjust, at a small cost;
|
|
with magic arts and incantations binding heaven, as they say, to execute
|
|
their will. And the poets are the authorities to whom they appeal, now
|
|
smoothing the path of vice with the words of Hesiod;--
|
|
|
|
'Vice may be had in abundance without trouble; the way is smooth and her
|
|
dwelling-place is near. But before virtue the gods have set toil,'
|
|
|
|
and a tedious and uphill road: then citing Homer as a witness that the
|
|
gods may be influenced by men; for he also says:--
|
|
|
|
'The gods, too, may be turned from their purpose; and men pray to them
|
|
and avert their wrath by sacrifices and soothing entreaties, and by
|
|
libations and the odour of fat, when they have sinned and transgressed.'
|
|
|
|
And they produce a host of books written by Musaeus and Orpheus,
|
|
who were children of the Moon and the Muses--that is what they
|
|
say--according to which they perform their ritual, and persuade not only
|
|
individuals, but whole cities, that expiations and atonements for sin
|
|
may be made by sacrifices and amusements which fill a vacant hour, and
|
|
are equally at the service of the living and the dead; the latter sort
|
|
they call mysteries, and they redeem us from the pains of hell, but if
|
|
we neglect them no one knows what awaits us.
|
|
|
|
He proceeded: And now when the young hear all this said about virtue and
|
|
vice, and the way in which gods and men regard them, how are their minds
|
|
likely to be affected, my dear Socrates,--those of them, I mean, who are
|
|
quickwitted, and, like bees on the wing, light on every flower, and from
|
|
all that they hear are prone to draw conclusions as to what manner of
|
|
persons they should be and in what way they should walk if they would
|
|
make the best of life? Probably the youth will say to himself in the
|
|
words of Pindar--
|
|
|
|
'Can I by justice or by crooked ways of deceit ascend a loftier tower
|
|
which may be a fortress to me all my days?'
|
|
|
|
For what men say is that, if I am really just and am not also thought
|
|
just profit there is none, but the pain and loss on the other hand
|
|
are unmistakeable. But if, though unjust, I acquire the reputation of
|
|
justice, a heavenly life is promised to me. Since then, as philosophers
|
|
prove, appearance tyrannizes over truth and is lord of happiness, to
|
|
appearance I must devote myself. I will describe around me a picture and
|
|
shadow of virtue to be the vestibule and exterior of my house; behind I
|
|
will trail the subtle and crafty fox, as Archilochus, greatest of sages,
|
|
recommends. But I hear some one exclaiming that the concealment of
|
|
wickedness is often difficult; to which I answer, Nothing great is easy.
|
|
Nevertheless, the argument indicates this, if we would be happy, to be
|
|
the path along which we should proceed. With a view to concealment we
|
|
will establish secret brotherhoods and political clubs. And there
|
|
are professors of rhetoric who teach the art of persuading courts and
|
|
assemblies; and so, partly by persuasion and partly by force, I shall
|
|
make unlawful gains and not be punished. Still I hear a voice saying
|
|
that the gods cannot be deceived, neither can they be compelled. But
|
|
what if there are no gods? or, suppose them to have no care of human
|
|
things--why in either case should we mind about concealment? And even if
|
|
there are gods, and they do care about us, yet we know of them only
|
|
from tradition and the genealogies of the poets; and these are the very
|
|
persons who say that they may be influenced and turned by 'sacrifices
|
|
and soothing entreaties and by offerings.' Let us be consistent then,
|
|
and believe both or neither. If the poets speak truly, why then we had
|
|
better be unjust, and offer of the fruits of injustice; for if we are
|
|
just, although we may escape the vengeance of heaven, we shall lose the
|
|
gains of injustice; but, if we are unjust, we shall keep the gains, and
|
|
by our sinning and praying, and praying and sinning, the gods will be
|
|
propitiated, and we shall not be punished. 'But there is a world below
|
|
in which either we or our posterity will suffer for our unjust deeds.'
|
|
Yes, my friend, will be the reflection, but there are mysteries and
|
|
atoning deities, and these have great power. That is what mighty
|
|
cities declare; and the children of the gods, who were their poets and
|
|
prophets, bear a like testimony.
|
|
|
|
On what principle, then, shall we any longer choose justice rather than
|
|
the worst injustice? when, if we only unite the latter with a deceitful
|
|
regard to appearances, we shall fare to our mind both with gods and
|
|
men, in life and after death, as the most numerous and the highest
|
|
authorities tell us. Knowing all this, Socrates, how can a man who
|
|
has any superiority of mind or person or rank or wealth, be willing to
|
|
honour justice; or indeed to refrain from laughing when he hears justice
|
|
praised? And even if there should be some one who is able to disprove
|
|
the truth of my words, and who is satisfied that justice is best, still
|
|
he is not angry with the unjust, but is very ready to forgive them,
|
|
because he also knows that men are not just of their own free will;
|
|
unless, peradventure, there be some one whom the divinity within him may
|
|
have inspired with a hatred of injustice, or who has attained knowledge
|
|
of the truth--but no other man. He only blames injustice who, owing to
|
|
cowardice or age or some weakness, has not the power of being unjust.
|
|
And this is proved by the fact that when he obtains the power, he
|
|
immediately becomes unjust as far as he can be.
|
|
|
|
The cause of all this, Socrates, was indicated by us at the beginning of
|
|
the argument, when my brother and I told you how astonished we were to
|
|
find that of all the professing panegyrists of justice--beginning with
|
|
the ancient heroes of whom any memorial has been preserved to us, and
|
|
ending with the men of our own time--no one has ever blamed injustice or
|
|
praised justice except with a view to the glories, honours, and benefits
|
|
which flow from them. No one has ever adequately described either in
|
|
verse or prose the true essential nature of either of them abiding in
|
|
the soul, and invisible to any human or divine eye; or shown that of
|
|
all the things of a man's soul which he has within him, justice is
|
|
the greatest good, and injustice the greatest evil. Had this been the
|
|
universal strain, had you sought to persuade us of this from our youth
|
|
upwards, we should not have been on the watch to keep one another from
|
|
doing wrong, but every one would have been his own watchman, because
|
|
afraid, if he did wrong, of harbouring in himself the greatest of
|
|
evils. I dare say that Thrasymachus and others would seriously hold the
|
|
language which I have been merely repeating, and words even stronger
|
|
than these about justice and injustice, grossly, as I conceive,
|
|
perverting their true nature. But I speak in this vehement manner, as
|
|
I must frankly confess to you, because I want to hear from you the
|
|
opposite side; and I would ask you to show not only the superiority
|
|
which justice has over injustice, but what effect they have on the
|
|
possessor of them which makes the one to be a good and the other an evil
|
|
to him. And please, as Glaucon requested of you, to exclude reputations;
|
|
for unless you take away from each of them his true reputation and
|
|
add on the false, we shall say that you do not praise justice, but the
|
|
appearance of it; we shall think that you are only exhorting us to keep
|
|
injustice dark, and that you really agree with Thrasymachus in thinking
|
|
that justice is another's good and the interest of the stronger, and
|
|
that injustice is a man's own profit and interest, though injurious to
|
|
the weaker. Now as you have admitted that justice is one of that highest
|
|
class of goods which are desired indeed for their results, but in a far
|
|
greater degree for their own sakes--like sight or hearing or knowledge
|
|
or health, or any other real and natural and not merely conventional
|
|
good--I would ask you in your praise of justice to regard one point
|
|
only: I mean the essential good and evil which justice and injustice
|
|
work in the possessors of them. Let others praise justice and censure
|
|
injustice, magnifying the rewards and honours of the one and abusing the
|
|
other; that is a manner of arguing which, coming from them, I am
|
|
ready to tolerate, but from you who have spent your whole life in the
|
|
consideration of this question, unless I hear the contrary from your own
|
|
lips, I expect something better. And therefore, I say, not only prove to
|
|
us that justice is better than injustice, but show what they either of
|
|
them do to the possessor of them, which makes the one to be a good and
|
|
the other an evil, whether seen or unseen by gods and men.
|
|
|
|
I had always admired the genius of Glaucon and Adeimantus, but on
|
|
hearing these words I was quite delighted, and said: Sons of an
|
|
illustrious father, that was not a bad beginning of the Elegiac verses
|
|
which the admirer of Glaucon made in honour of you after you had
|
|
distinguished yourselves at the battle of Megara:--
|
|
|
|
'Sons of Ariston,' he sang, 'divine offspring of an illustrious hero.'
|
|
|
|
The epithet is very appropriate, for there is something truly divine in
|
|
being able to argue as you have done for the superiority of injustice,
|
|
and remaining unconvinced by your own arguments. And I do believe that
|
|
you are not convinced--this I infer from your general character, for had
|
|
I judged only from your speeches I should have mistrusted you. But
|
|
now, the greater my confidence in you, the greater is my difficulty in
|
|
knowing what to say. For I am in a strait between two; on the one hand I
|
|
feel that I am unequal to the task; and my inability is brought home to
|
|
me by the fact that you were not satisfied with the answer which I made
|
|
to Thrasymachus, proving, as I thought, the superiority which justice
|
|
has over injustice. And yet I cannot refuse to help, while breath and
|
|
speech remain to me; I am afraid that there would be an impiety in being
|
|
present when justice is evil spoken of and not lifting up a hand in her
|
|
defence. And therefore I had best give such help as I can.
|
|
|
|
Glaucon and the rest entreated me by all means not to let the question
|
|
drop, but to proceed in the investigation. They wanted to arrive at the
|
|
truth, first, about the nature of justice and injustice, and secondly,
|
|
about their relative advantages. I told them, what I really thought,
|
|
that the enquiry would be of a serious nature, and would require very
|
|
good eyes. Seeing then, I said, that we are no great wits, I think that
|
|
we had better adopt a method which I may illustrate thus; suppose that
|
|
a short-sighted person had been asked by some one to read small letters
|
|
from a distance; and it occurred to some one else that they might be
|
|
found in another place which was larger and in which the letters were
|
|
larger--if they were the same and he could read the larger letters
|
|
first, and then proceed to the lesser--this would have been thought a
|
|
rare piece of good fortune.
|
|
|
|
Very true, said Adeimantus; but how does the illustration apply to our
|
|
enquiry?
|
|
|
|
I will tell you, I replied; justice, which is the subject of our
|
|
enquiry, is, as you know, sometimes spoken of as the virtue of an
|
|
individual, and sometimes as the virtue of a State.
|
|
|
|
True, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And is not a State larger than an individual?
|
|
|
|
It is.
|
|
|
|
Then in the larger the quantity of justice is likely to be larger and
|
|
more easily discernible. I propose therefore that we enquire into the
|
|
nature of justice and injustice, first as they appear in the State, and
|
|
secondly in the individual, proceeding from the greater to the lesser
|
|
and comparing them.
|
|
|
|
That, he said, is an excellent proposal.
|
|
|
|
And if we imagine the State in process of creation, we shall see the
|
|
justice and injustice of the State in process of creation also.
|
|
|
|
I dare say.
|
|
|
|
When the State is completed there may be a hope that the object of our
|
|
search will be more easily discovered.
|
|
|
|
Yes, far more easily.
|
|
|
|
But ought we to attempt to construct one? I said; for to do so, as I am
|
|
inclined to think, will be a very serious task. Reflect therefore.
|
|
|
|
I have reflected, said Adeimantus, and am anxious that you should
|
|
proceed.
|
|
|
|
A State, I said, arises, as I conceive, out of the needs of mankind;
|
|
no one is self-sufficing, but all of us have many wants. Can any other
|
|
origin of a State be imagined?
|
|
|
|
There can be no other.
|
|
|
|
Then, as we have many wants, and many persons are needed to supply them,
|
|
one takes a helper for one purpose and another for another; and when
|
|
these partners and helpers are gathered together in one habitation the
|
|
body of inhabitants is termed a State.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And they exchange with one another, and one gives, and another receives,
|
|
under the idea that the exchange will be for their good.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, let us begin and create in idea a State; and yet the true
|
|
creator is necessity, who is the mother of our invention.
|
|
|
|
Of course, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Now the first and greatest of necessities is food, which is the
|
|
condition of life and existence.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
The second is a dwelling, and the third clothing and the like.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And now let us see how our city will be able to supply this great
|
|
demand: We may suppose that one man is a husbandman, another a builder,
|
|
some one else a weaver--shall we add to them a shoemaker, or perhaps
|
|
some other purveyor to our bodily wants?
|
|
|
|
Quite right.
|
|
|
|
The barest notion of a State must include four or five men.
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And how will they proceed? Will each bring the result of his labours
|
|
into a common stock?--the individual husbandman, for example, producing
|
|
for four, and labouring four times as long and as much as he need in the
|
|
provision of food with which he supplies others as well as himself;
|
|
or will he have nothing to do with others and not be at the trouble of
|
|
producing for them, but provide for himself alone a fourth of the food
|
|
in a fourth of the time, and in the remaining three fourths of his time
|
|
be employed in making a house or a coat or a pair of shoes, having no
|
|
partnership with others, but supplying himself all his own wants?
|
|
|
|
Adeimantus thought that he should aim at producing food only and not at
|
|
producing everything.
|
|
|
|
Probably, I replied, that would be the better way; and when I hear you
|
|
say this, I am myself reminded that we are not all alike; there
|
|
are diversities of natures among us which are adapted to different
|
|
occupations.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And will you have a work better done when the workman has many
|
|
occupations, or when he has only one?
|
|
|
|
When he has only one.
|
|
|
|
Further, there can be no doubt that a work is spoilt when not done at
|
|
the right time?
|
|
|
|
No doubt.
|
|
|
|
For business is not disposed to wait until the doer of the business is
|
|
at leisure; but the doer must follow up what he is doing, and make the
|
|
business his first object.
|
|
|
|
He must.
|
|
|
|
And if so, we must infer that all things are produced more plentifully
|
|
and easily and of a better quality when one man does one thing which is
|
|
natural to him and does it at the right time, and leaves other things.
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly.
|
|
|
|
Then more than four citizens will be required; for the husbandman will
|
|
not make his own plough or mattock, or other implements of agriculture,
|
|
if they are to be good for anything. Neither will the builder make
|
|
his tools--and he too needs many; and in like manner the weaver and
|
|
shoemaker.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then carpenters, and smiths, and many other artisans, will be sharers in
|
|
our little State, which is already beginning to grow?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Yet even if we add neatherds, shepherds, and other herdsmen, in order
|
|
that our husbandmen may have oxen to plough with, and builders as well
|
|
as husbandmen may have draught cattle, and curriers and weavers fleeces
|
|
and hides,--still our State will not be very large.
|
|
|
|
That is true; yet neither will it be a very small State which contains
|
|
all these.
|
|
|
|
Then, again, there is the situation of the city--to find a place where
|
|
nothing need be imported is wellnigh impossible.
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
Then there must be another class of citizens who will bring the required
|
|
supply from another city?
|
|
|
|
There must.
|
|
|
|
But if the trader goes empty-handed, having nothing which they require
|
|
who would supply his need, he will come back empty-handed.
|
|
|
|
That is certain.
|
|
|
|
And therefore what they produce at home must be not only enough for
|
|
themselves, but such both in quantity and quality as to accommodate
|
|
those from whom their wants are supplied.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Then more husbandmen and more artisans will be required?
|
|
|
|
They will.
|
|
|
|
Not to mention the importers and exporters, who are called merchants?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then we shall want merchants?
|
|
|
|
We shall.
|
|
|
|
And if merchandise is to be carried over the sea, skilful sailors will
|
|
also be needed, and in considerable numbers?
|
|
|
|
Yes, in considerable numbers.
|
|
|
|
Then, again, within the city, how will they exchange their productions?
|
|
To secure such an exchange was, as you will remember, one of our
|
|
principal objects when we formed them into a society and constituted a
|
|
State.
|
|
|
|
Clearly they will buy and sell.
|
|
|
|
Then they will need a market-place, and a money-token for purposes of
|
|
exchange.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Suppose now that a husbandman, or an artisan, brings some production
|
|
to market, and he comes at a time when there is no one to exchange with
|
|
him,--is he to leave his calling and sit idle in the market-place?
|
|
|
|
Not at all; he will find people there who, seeing the want, undertake
|
|
the office of salesmen. In well-ordered states they are commonly those
|
|
who are the weakest in bodily strength, and therefore of little use for
|
|
any other purpose; their duty is to be in the market, and to give money
|
|
in exchange for goods to those who desire to sell and to take money from
|
|
those who desire to buy.
|
|
|
|
This want, then, creates a class of retail-traders in our State. Is
|
|
not 'retailer' the term which is applied to those who sit in the
|
|
market-place engaged in buying and selling, while those who wander from
|
|
one city to another are called merchants?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said.
|
|
|
|
And there is another class of servants, who are intellectually hardly
|
|
on the level of companionship; still they have plenty of bodily strength
|
|
for labour, which accordingly they sell, and are called, if I do not
|
|
mistake, hirelings, hire being the name which is given to the price of
|
|
their labour.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then hirelings will help to make up our population?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And now, Adeimantus, is our State matured and perfected?
|
|
|
|
I think so.
|
|
|
|
Where, then, is justice, and where is injustice, and in what part of the
|
|
State did they spring up?
|
|
|
|
Probably in the dealings of these citizens with one another. I cannot
|
|
imagine that they are more likely to be found any where else.
|
|
|
|
I dare say that you are right in your suggestion, I said; we had better
|
|
think the matter out, and not shrink from the enquiry.
|
|
|
|
Let us then consider, first of all, what will be their way of life,
|
|
now that we have thus established them. Will they not produce corn, and
|
|
wine, and clothes, and shoes, and build houses for themselves? And
|
|
when they are housed, they will work, in summer, commonly, stripped and
|
|
barefoot, but in winter substantially clothed and shod. They will feed
|
|
on barley-meal and flour of wheat, baking and kneading them, making
|
|
noble cakes and loaves; these they will serve up on a mat of reeds or on
|
|
clean leaves, themselves reclining the while upon beds strewn with yew
|
|
or myrtle. And they and their children will feast, drinking of the wine
|
|
which they have made, wearing garlands on their heads, and hymning the
|
|
praises of the gods, in happy converse with one another. And they will
|
|
take care that their families do not exceed their means; having an eye
|
|
to poverty or war.
|
|
|
|
But, said Glaucon, interposing, you have not given them a relish to
|
|
their meal.
|
|
|
|
True, I replied, I had forgotten; of course they must have a
|
|
relish--salt, and olives, and cheese, and they will boil roots and herbs
|
|
such as country people prepare; for a dessert we shall give them figs,
|
|
and peas, and beans; and they will roast myrtle-berries and acorns
|
|
at the fire, drinking in moderation. And with such a diet they may be
|
|
expected to live in peace and health to a good old age, and bequeath a
|
|
similar life to their children after them.
|
|
|
|
Yes, Socrates, he said, and if you were providing for a city of pigs,
|
|
how else would you feed the beasts?
|
|
|
|
But what would you have, Glaucon? I replied.
|
|
|
|
Why, he said, you should give them the ordinary conveniences of life.
|
|
People who are to be comfortable are accustomed to lie on sofas, and
|
|
dine off tables, and they should have sauces and sweets in the modern
|
|
style.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, now I understand: the question which you would have me
|
|
consider is, not only how a State, but how a luxurious State is created;
|
|
and possibly there is no harm in this, for in such a State we shall be
|
|
more likely to see how justice and injustice originate. In my opinion
|
|
the true and healthy constitution of the State is the one which I have
|
|
described. But if you wish also to see a State at fever-heat, I have
|
|
no objection. For I suspect that many will not be satisfied with the
|
|
simpler way of life. They will be for adding sofas, and tables,
|
|
and other furniture; also dainties, and perfumes, and incense, and
|
|
courtesans, and cakes, all these not of one sort only, but in every
|
|
variety; we must go beyond the necessaries of which I was at first
|
|
speaking, such as houses, and clothes, and shoes: the arts of the
|
|
painter and the embroiderer will have to be set in motion, and gold and
|
|
ivory and all sorts of materials must be procured.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then we must enlarge our borders; for the original healthy State is
|
|
no longer sufficient. Now will the city have to fill and swell with a
|
|
multitude of callings which are not required by any natural want; such
|
|
as the whole tribe of hunters and actors, of whom one large class
|
|
have to do with forms and colours; another will be the votaries of
|
|
music--poets and their attendant train of rhapsodists, players, dancers,
|
|
contractors; also makers of divers kinds of articles, including women's
|
|
dresses. And we shall want more servants. Will not tutors be also in
|
|
request, and nurses wet and dry, tirewomen and barbers, as well as
|
|
confectioners and cooks; and swineherds, too, who were not needed and
|
|
therefore had no place in the former edition of our State, but are
|
|
needed now? They must not be forgotten: and there will be animals of
|
|
many other kinds, if people eat them.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And living in this way we shall have much greater need of physicians
|
|
than before?
|
|
|
|
Much greater.
|
|
|
|
And the country which was enough to support the original inhabitants
|
|
will be too small now, and not enough?
|
|
|
|
Quite true.
|
|
|
|
Then a slice of our neighbours' land will be wanted by us for pasture
|
|
and tillage, and they will want a slice of ours, if, like ourselves,
|
|
they exceed the limit of necessity, and give themselves up to the
|
|
unlimited accumulation of wealth?
|
|
|
|
That, Socrates, will be inevitable.
|
|
|
|
And so we shall go to war, Glaucon. Shall we not?
|
|
|
|
Most certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then without determining as yet whether war does good or harm, thus much
|
|
we may affirm, that now we have discovered war to be derived from causes
|
|
which are also the causes of almost all the evils in States, private as
|
|
well as public.
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly.
|
|
|
|
And our State must once more enlarge; and this time the enlargement will
|
|
be nothing short of a whole army, which will have to go out and fight
|
|
with the invaders for all that we have, as well as for the things and
|
|
persons whom we were describing above.
|
|
|
|
Why? he said; are they not capable of defending themselves?
|
|
|
|
No, I said; not if we were right in the principle which was acknowledged
|
|
by all of us when we were framing the State: the principle, as you will
|
|
remember, was that one man cannot practise many arts with success.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
But is not war an art?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And an art requiring as much attention as shoemaking?
|
|
|
|
Quite true.
|
|
|
|
And the shoemaker was not allowed by us to be a husbandman, or a weaver,
|
|
or a builder--in order that we might have our shoes well made; but to
|
|
him and to every other worker was assigned one work for which he was by
|
|
nature fitted, and at that he was to continue working all his life long
|
|
and at no other; he was not to let opportunities slip, and then he would
|
|
become a good workman. Now nothing can be more important than that
|
|
the work of a soldier should be well done. But is war an art so easily
|
|
acquired that a man may be a warrior who is also a husbandman, or
|
|
shoemaker, or other artisan; although no one in the world would be a
|
|
good dice or draught player who merely took up the game as a recreation,
|
|
and had not from his earliest years devoted himself to this and nothing
|
|
else? No tools will make a man a skilled workman, or master of defence,
|
|
nor be of any use to him who has not learned how to handle them, and has
|
|
never bestowed any attention upon them. How then will he who takes up
|
|
a shield or other implement of war become a good fighter all in a day,
|
|
whether with heavy-armed or any other kind of troops?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, the tools which would teach men their own use would be
|
|
beyond price.
|
|
|
|
And the higher the duties of the guardian, I said, the more time, and
|
|
skill, and art, and application will be needed by him?
|
|
|
|
No doubt, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Will he not also require natural aptitude for his calling?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then it will be our duty to select, if we can, natures which are fitted
|
|
for the task of guarding the city?
|
|
|
|
It will.
|
|
|
|
And the selection will be no easy matter, I said; but we must be brave
|
|
and do our best.
|
|
|
|
We must.
|
|
|
|
Is not the noble youth very like a well-bred dog in respect of guarding
|
|
and watching?
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I mean that both of them ought to be quick to see, and swift to overtake
|
|
the enemy when they see him; and strong too if, when they have caught
|
|
him, they have to fight with him.
|
|
|
|
All these qualities, he replied, will certainly be required by them.
|
|
|
|
Well, and your guardian must be brave if he is to fight well?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And is he likely to be brave who has no spirit, whether horse or dog
|
|
or any other animal? Have you never observed how invincible and
|
|
unconquerable is spirit and how the presence of it makes the soul of any
|
|
creature to be absolutely fearless and indomitable?
|
|
|
|
I have.
|
|
|
|
Then now we have a clear notion of the bodily qualities which are
|
|
required in the guardian.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And also of the mental ones; his soul is to be full of spirit?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
But are not these spirited natures apt to be savage with one another,
|
|
and with everybody else?
|
|
|
|
A difficulty by no means easy to overcome, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Whereas, I said, they ought to be dangerous to their enemies, and gentle
|
|
to their friends; if not, they will destroy themselves without waiting
|
|
for their enemies to destroy them.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
What is to be done then? I said; how shall we find a gentle nature which
|
|
has also a great spirit, for the one is the contradiction of the other?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
He will not be a good guardian who is wanting in either of these two
|
|
qualities; and yet the combination of them appears to be impossible; and
|
|
hence we must infer that to be a good guardian is impossible.
|
|
|
|
I am afraid that what you say is true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Here feeling perplexed I began to think over what had preceded.--My
|
|
friend, I said, no wonder that we are in a perplexity; for we have lost
|
|
sight of the image which we had before us.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? he said.
|
|
|
|
I mean to say that there do exist natures gifted with those opposite
|
|
qualities.
|
|
|
|
And where do you find them?
|
|
|
|
Many animals, I replied, furnish examples of them; our friend the dog
|
|
is a very good one: you know that well-bred dogs are perfectly gentle to
|
|
their familiars and acquaintances, and the reverse to strangers.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I know.
|
|
|
|
Then there is nothing impossible or out of the order of nature in our
|
|
finding a guardian who has a similar combination of qualities?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Would not he who is fitted to be a guardian, besides the spirited
|
|
nature, need to have the qualities of a philosopher?
|
|
|
|
I do not apprehend your meaning.
|
|
|
|
The trait of which I am speaking, I replied, may be also seen in the
|
|
dog, and is remarkable in the animal.
|
|
|
|
What trait?
|
|
|
|
Why, a dog, whenever he sees a stranger, is angry; when an acquaintance,
|
|
he welcomes him, although the one has never done him any harm, nor the
|
|
other any good. Did this never strike you as curious?
|
|
|
|
The matter never struck me before; but I quite recognise the truth of
|
|
your remark.
|
|
|
|
And surely this instinct of the dog is very charming;--your dog is a
|
|
true philosopher.
|
|
|
|
Why?
|
|
|
|
Why, because he distinguishes the face of a friend and of an enemy only
|
|
by the criterion of knowing and not knowing. And must not an animal be a
|
|
lover of learning who determines what he likes and dislikes by the test
|
|
of knowledge and ignorance?
|
|
|
|
Most assuredly.
|
|
|
|
And is not the love of learning the love of wisdom, which is philosophy?
|
|
|
|
They are the same, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And may we not say confidently of man also, that he who is likely to be
|
|
gentle to his friends and acquaintances, must by nature be a lover of
|
|
wisdom and knowledge?
|
|
|
|
That we may safely affirm.
|
|
|
|
Then he who is to be a really good and noble guardian of the State will
|
|
require to unite in himself philosophy and spirit and swiftness and
|
|
strength?
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly.
|
|
|
|
Then we have found the desired natures; and now that we have found them,
|
|
how are they to be reared and educated? Is not this an enquiry which
|
|
may be expected to throw light on the greater enquiry which is our final
|
|
end--How do justice and injustice grow up in States? for we do not want
|
|
either to omit what is to the point or to draw out the argument to an
|
|
inconvenient length.
|
|
|
|
Adeimantus thought that the enquiry would be of great service to us.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, my dear friend, the task must not be given up, even if
|
|
somewhat long.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Come then, and let us pass a leisure hour in story-telling, and our
|
|
story shall be the education of our heroes.
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
And what shall be their education? Can we find a better than the
|
|
traditional sort?--and this has two divisions, gymnastic for the body,
|
|
and music for the soul.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Shall we begin education with music, and go on to gymnastic afterwards?
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
And when you speak of music, do you include literature or not?
|
|
|
|
I do.
|
|
|
|
And literature may be either true or false?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the young should be trained in both kinds, and we begin with the
|
|
false?
|
|
|
|
I do not understand your meaning, he said.
|
|
|
|
You know, I said, that we begin by telling children stories which,
|
|
though not wholly destitute of truth, are in the main fictitious;
|
|
and these stories are told them when they are not of an age to learn
|
|
gymnastics.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
That was my meaning when I said that we must teach music before
|
|
gymnastics.
|
|
|
|
Quite right, he said.
|
|
|
|
You know also that the beginning is the most important part of any work,
|
|
especially in the case of a young and tender thing; for that is the time
|
|
at which the character is being formed and the desired impression is
|
|
more readily taken.
|
|
|
|
Quite true.
|
|
|
|
And shall we just carelessly allow children to hear any casual tales
|
|
which may be devised by casual persons, and to receive into their minds
|
|
ideas for the most part the very opposite of those which we should wish
|
|
them to have when they are grown up?
|
|
|
|
We cannot.
|
|
|
|
Then the first thing will be to establish a censorship of the writers of
|
|
fiction, and let the censors receive any tale of fiction which is good,
|
|
and reject the bad; and we will desire mothers and nurses to tell their
|
|
children the authorised ones only. Let them fashion the mind with such
|
|
tales, even more fondly than they mould the body with their hands; but
|
|
most of those which are now in use must be discarded.
|
|
|
|
Of what tales are you speaking? he said.
|
|
|
|
You may find a model of the lesser in the greater, I said; for they are
|
|
necessarily of the same type, and there is the same spirit in both of
|
|
them.
|
|
|
|
Very likely, he replied; but I do not as yet know what you would term
|
|
the greater.
|
|
|
|
Those, I said, which are narrated by Homer and Hesiod, and the rest of
|
|
the poets, who have ever been the great story-tellers of mankind.
|
|
|
|
But which stories do you mean, he said; and what fault do you find with
|
|
them?
|
|
|
|
A fault which is most serious, I said; the fault of telling a lie, and,
|
|
what is more, a bad lie.
|
|
|
|
But when is this fault committed?
|
|
|
|
Whenever an erroneous representation is made of the nature of gods and
|
|
heroes,--as when a painter paints a portrait not having the shadow of a
|
|
likeness to the original.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that sort of thing is certainly very blameable; but what
|
|
are the stories which you mean?
|
|
|
|
First of all, I said, there was that greatest of all lies in high
|
|
places, which the poet told about Uranus, and which was a bad lie
|
|
too,--I mean what Hesiod says that Uranus did, and how Cronus retaliated
|
|
on him. The doings of Cronus, and the sufferings which in turn his son
|
|
inflicted upon him, even if they were true, ought certainly not to be
|
|
lightly told to young and thoughtless persons; if possible, they had
|
|
better be buried in silence. But if there is an absolute necessity
|
|
for their mention, a chosen few might hear them in a mystery, and
|
|
they should sacrifice not a common (Eleusinian) pig, but some huge and
|
|
unprocurable victim; and then the number of the hearers will be very few
|
|
indeed.
|
|
|
|
Why, yes, said he, those stories are extremely objectionable.
|
|
|
|
Yes, Adeimantus, they are stories not to be repeated in our State; the
|
|
young man should not be told that in committing the worst of crimes he
|
|
is far from doing anything outrageous; and that even if he chastises his
|
|
father when he does wrong, in whatever manner, he will only be following
|
|
the example of the first and greatest among the gods.
|
|
|
|
I entirely agree with you, he said; in my opinion those stories are
|
|
quite unfit to be repeated.
|
|
|
|
Neither, if we mean our future guardians to regard the habit of
|
|
quarrelling among themselves as of all things the basest, should
|
|
any word be said to them of the wars in heaven, and of the plots and
|
|
fightings of the gods against one another, for they are not true. No,
|
|
we shall never mention the battles of the giants, or let them be
|
|
embroidered on garments; and we shall be silent about the innumerable
|
|
other quarrels of gods and heroes with their friends and relatives.
|
|
If they would only believe us we would tell them that quarrelling
|
|
is unholy, and that never up to this time has there been any quarrel
|
|
between citizens; this is what old men and old women should begin by
|
|
telling children; and when they grow up, the poets also should be told
|
|
to compose for them in a similar spirit. But the narrative of Hephaestus
|
|
binding Here his mother, or how on another occasion Zeus sent him flying
|
|
for taking her part when she was being beaten, and all the battles of
|
|
the gods in Homer--these tales must not be admitted into our State,
|
|
whether they are supposed to have an allegorical meaning or not. For
|
|
a young person cannot judge what is allegorical and what is literal;
|
|
anything that he receives into his mind at that age is likely to become
|
|
indelible and unalterable; and therefore it is most important that the
|
|
tales which the young first hear should be models of virtuous thoughts.
|
|
|
|
There you are right, he replied; but if any one asks where are such
|
|
models to be found and of what tales are you speaking--how shall we
|
|
answer him?
|
|
|
|
I said to him, You and I, Adeimantus, at this moment are not poets,
|
|
but founders of a State: now the founders of a State ought to know the
|
|
general forms in which poets should cast their tales, and the limits
|
|
which must be observed by them, but to make the tales is not their
|
|
business.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said; but what are these forms of theology which you mean?
|
|
|
|
Something of this kind, I replied:--God is always to be represented as
|
|
he truly is, whatever be the sort of poetry, epic, lyric or tragic, in
|
|
which the representation is given.
|
|
|
|
Right.
|
|
|
|
And is he not truly good? and must he not be represented as such?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And no good thing is hurtful?
|
|
|
|
No, indeed.
|
|
|
|
And that which is not hurtful hurts not?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
And that which hurts not does no evil?
|
|
|
|
No.
|
|
|
|
And can that which does no evil be a cause of evil?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
And the good is advantageous?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And therefore the cause of well-being?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
It follows therefore that the good is not the cause of all things, but
|
|
of the good only?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
Then God, if he be good, is not the author of all things, as the many
|
|
assert, but he is the cause of a few things only, and not of most things
|
|
that occur to men. For few are the goods of human life, and many are the
|
|
evils, and the good is to be attributed to God alone; of the evils the
|
|
causes are to be sought elsewhere, and not in him.
|
|
|
|
That appears to me to be most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then we must not listen to Homer or to any other poet who is guilty of
|
|
the folly of saying that two casks
|
|
|
|
'Lie at the threshold of Zeus, full of lots, one of good, the other of
|
|
evil lots,'
|
|
|
|
and that he to whom Zeus gives a mixture of the two
|
|
|
|
'Sometimes meets with evil fortune, at other times with good;'
|
|
|
|
but that he to whom is given the cup of unmingled ill,
|
|
|
|
'Him wild hunger drives o'er the beauteous earth.'
|
|
|
|
And again--
|
|
|
|
'Zeus, who is the dispenser of good and evil to us.'
|
|
|
|
And if any one asserts that the violation of oaths and treaties, which
|
|
was really the work of Pandarus, was brought about by Athene and Zeus,
|
|
or that the strife and contention of the gods was instigated by Themis
|
|
and Zeus, he shall not have our approval; neither will we allow our
|
|
young men to hear the words of Aeschylus, that
|
|
|
|
'God plants guilt among men when he desires utterly to destroy a house.'
|
|
|
|
And if a poet writes of the sufferings of Niobe--the subject of the
|
|
tragedy in which these iambic verses occur--or of the house of Pelops,
|
|
or of the Trojan war or on any similar theme, either we must not permit
|
|
him to say that these are the works of God, or if they are of God, he
|
|
must devise some explanation of them such as we are seeking; he must say
|
|
that God did what was just and right, and they were the better for being
|
|
punished; but that those who are punished are miserable, and that God
|
|
is the author of their misery--the poet is not to be permitted to say;
|
|
though he may say that the wicked are miserable because they require
|
|
to be punished, and are benefited by receiving punishment from God;
|
|
but that God being good is the author of evil to any one is to be
|
|
strenuously denied, and not to be said or sung or heard in verse or
|
|
prose by any one whether old or young in any well-ordered commonwealth.
|
|
Such a fiction is suicidal, ruinous, impious.
|
|
|
|
I agree with you, he replied, and am ready to give my assent to the law.
|
|
|
|
Let this then be one of our rules and principles concerning the gods, to
|
|
which our poets and reciters will be expected to conform,--that God is
|
|
not the author of all things, but of good only.
|
|
|
|
That will do, he said.
|
|
|
|
And what do you think of a second principle? Shall I ask you whether God
|
|
is a magician, and of a nature to appear insidiously now in one shape,
|
|
and now in another--sometimes himself changing and passing into
|
|
many forms, sometimes deceiving us with the semblance of such
|
|
transformations; or is he one and the same immutably fixed in his own
|
|
proper image?
|
|
|
|
I cannot answer you, he said, without more thought.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said; but if we suppose a change in anything, that change must
|
|
be effected either by the thing itself, or by some other thing?
|
|
|
|
Most certainly.
|
|
|
|
And things which are at their best are also least liable to be altered
|
|
or discomposed; for example, when healthiest and strongest, the human
|
|
frame is least liable to be affected by meats and drinks, and the plant
|
|
which is in the fullest vigour also suffers least from winds or the heat
|
|
of the sun or any similar causes.
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And will not the bravest and wisest soul be least confused or deranged
|
|
by any external influence?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the same principle, as I should suppose, applies to all composite
|
|
things--furniture, houses, garments: when good and well made, they are
|
|
least altered by time and circumstances.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Then everything which is good, whether made by art or nature, or both,
|
|
is least liable to suffer change from without?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
But surely God and the things of God are in every way perfect?
|
|
|
|
Of course they are.
|
|
|
|
Then he can hardly be compelled by external influence to take many
|
|
shapes?
|
|
|
|
He cannot.
|
|
|
|
But may he not change and transform himself?
|
|
|
|
Clearly, he said, that must be the case if he is changed at all.
|
|
|
|
And will he then change himself for the better and fairer, or for the
|
|
worse and more unsightly?
|
|
|
|
If he change at all he can only change for the worse, for we cannot
|
|
suppose him to be deficient either in virtue or beauty.
|
|
|
|
Very true, Adeimantus; but then, would any one, whether God or man,
|
|
desire to make himself worse?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
Then it is impossible that God should ever be willing to change; being,
|
|
as is supposed, the fairest and best that is conceivable, every God
|
|
remains absolutely and for ever in his own form.
|
|
|
|
That necessarily follows, he said, in my judgment.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, my dear friend, let none of the poets tell us that
|
|
|
|
'The gods, taking the disguise of strangers from other lands, walk up
|
|
and down cities in all sorts of forms;'
|
|
|
|
and let no one slander Proteus and Thetis, neither let any one, either
|
|
in tragedy or in any other kind of poetry, introduce Here disguised in
|
|
the likeness of a priestess asking an alms
|
|
|
|
'For the life-giving daughters of Inachus the river of Argos;'
|
|
|
|
--let us have no more lies of that sort. Neither must we have mothers
|
|
under the influence of the poets scaring their children with a bad
|
|
version of these myths--telling how certain gods, as they say, 'Go about
|
|
by night in the likeness of so many strangers and in divers forms;' but
|
|
let them take heed lest they make cowards of their children, and at the
|
|
same time speak blasphemy against the gods.
|
|
|
|
Heaven forbid, he said.
|
|
|
|
But although the gods are themselves unchangeable, still by witchcraft
|
|
and deception they may make us think that they appear in various forms?
|
|
|
|
Perhaps, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Well, but can you imagine that God will be willing to lie, whether in
|
|
word or deed, or to put forth a phantom of himself?
|
|
|
|
I cannot say, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Do you not know, I said, that the true lie, if such an expression may be
|
|
allowed, is hated of gods and men?
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? he said.
|
|
|
|
I mean that no one is willingly deceived in that which is the truest and
|
|
highest part of himself, or about the truest and highest matters; there,
|
|
above all, he is most afraid of a lie having possession of him.
|
|
|
|
Still, he said, I do not comprehend you.
|
|
|
|
The reason is, I replied, that you attribute some profound meaning to
|
|
my words; but I am only saying that deception, or being deceived
|
|
or uninformed about the highest realities in the highest part of
|
|
themselves, which is the soul, and in that part of them to have and to
|
|
hold the lie, is what mankind least like;--that, I say, is what they
|
|
utterly detest.
|
|
|
|
There is nothing more hateful to them.
|
|
|
|
And, as I was just now remarking, this ignorance in the soul of him who
|
|
is deceived may be called the true lie; for the lie in words is only a
|
|
kind of imitation and shadowy image of a previous affection of the soul,
|
|
not pure unadulterated falsehood. Am I not right?
|
|
|
|
Perfectly right.
|
|
|
|
The true lie is hated not only by the gods, but also by men?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Whereas the lie in words is in certain cases useful and not hateful; in
|
|
dealing with enemies--that would be an instance; or again, when those
|
|
whom we call our friends in a fit of madness or illusion are going to
|
|
do some harm, then it is useful and is a sort of medicine or
|
|
preventive; also in the tales of mythology, of which we were just now
|
|
speaking--because we do not know the truth about ancient times, we make
|
|
falsehood as much like truth as we can, and so turn it to account.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
But can any of these reasons apply to God? Can we suppose that he is
|
|
ignorant of antiquity, and therefore has recourse to invention?
|
|
|
|
That would be ridiculous, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then the lying poet has no place in our idea of God?
|
|
|
|
I should say not.
|
|
|
|
Or perhaps he may tell a lie because he is afraid of enemies?
|
|
|
|
That is inconceivable.
|
|
|
|
But he may have friends who are senseless or mad?
|
|
|
|
But no mad or senseless person can be a friend of God.
|
|
|
|
Then no motive can be imagined why God should lie?
|
|
|
|
None whatever.
|
|
|
|
Then the superhuman and divine is absolutely incapable of falsehood?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then is God perfectly simple and true both in word and deed; he changes
|
|
not; he deceives not, either by sign or word, by dream or waking vision.
|
|
|
|
Your thoughts, he said, are the reflection of my own.
|
|
|
|
You agree with me then, I said, that this is the second type or form in
|
|
which we should write and speak about divine things. The gods are not
|
|
magicians who transform themselves, neither do they deceive mankind in
|
|
any way.
|
|
|
|
I grant that.
|
|
|
|
Then, although we are admirers of Homer, we do not admire the lying
|
|
dream which Zeus sends to Agamemnon; neither will we praise the verses
|
|
of Aeschylus in which Thetis says that Apollo at her nuptials
|
|
|
|
'Was celebrating in song her fair progeny whose days were to be long,
|
|
and to know no sickness. And when he had spoken of my lot as in all
|
|
things blessed of heaven he raised a note of triumph and cheered my
|
|
soul. And I thought that the word of Phoebus, being divine and full of
|
|
prophecy, would not fail. And now he himself who uttered the strain,
|
|
he who was present at the banquet, and who said this--he it is who has
|
|
slain my son.'
|
|
|
|
These are the kind of sentiments about the gods which will arouse our
|
|
anger; and he who utters them shall be refused a chorus; neither shall
|
|
we allow teachers to make use of them in the instruction of the young,
|
|
meaning, as we do, that our guardians, as far as men can be, should be
|
|
true worshippers of the gods and like them.
|
|
|
|
I entirely agree, he said, in these principles, and promise to make them
|
|
my laws.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK III.
|
|
|
|
Such then, I said, are our principles of theology--some tales are to be
|
|
told, and others are not to be told to our disciples from their youth
|
|
upwards, if we mean them to honour the gods and their parents, and to
|
|
value friendship with one another.
|
|
|
|
Yes; and I think that our principles are right, he said.
|
|
|
|
But if they are to be courageous, must they not learn other lessons
|
|
besides these, and lessons of such a kind as will take away the fear of
|
|
death? Can any man be courageous who has the fear of death in him?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, he said.
|
|
|
|
And can he be fearless of death, or will he choose death in battle
|
|
rather than defeat and slavery, who believes the world below to be real
|
|
and terrible?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
Then we must assume a control over the narrators of this class of tales
|
|
as well as over the others, and beg them not simply to revile but rather
|
|
to commend the world below, intimating to them that their descriptions
|
|
are untrue, and will do harm to our future warriors.
|
|
|
|
That will be our duty, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, we shall have to obliterate many obnoxious passages,
|
|
beginning with the verses,
|
|
|
|
'I would rather be a serf on the land of a poor and portionless man than
|
|
rule over all the dead who have come to nought.'
|
|
|
|
We must also expunge the verse, which tells us how Pluto feared,
|
|
|
|
'Lest the mansions grim and squalid which the gods abhor should be seen
|
|
both of mortals and immortals.'
|
|
|
|
And again:--
|
|
|
|
'O heavens! verily in the house of Hades there is soul and ghostly form
|
|
but no mind at all!'
|
|
|
|
Again of Tiresias:--
|
|
|
|
'(To him even after death did Persephone grant mind,) that he alone
|
|
should be wise; but the other souls are flitting shades.'
|
|
|
|
Again:--
|
|
|
|
'The soul flying from the limbs had gone to Hades, lamenting her fate,
|
|
leaving manhood and youth.'
|
|
|
|
Again:--
|
|
|
|
'And the soul, with shrilling cry, passed like smoke beneath the earth.'
|
|
|
|
And,--
|
|
|
|
'As bats in hollow of mystic cavern, whenever any of them has dropped
|
|
out of the string and falls from the rock, fly shrilling and cling
|
|
to one another, so did they with shrilling cry hold together as they
|
|
moved.'
|
|
|
|
And we must beg Homer and the other poets not to be angry if we strike
|
|
out these and similar passages, not because they are unpoetical, or
|
|
unattractive to the popular ear, but because the greater the poetical
|
|
charm of them, the less are they meet for the ears of boys and men who
|
|
are meant to be free, and who should fear slavery more than death.
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly.
|
|
|
|
Also we shall have to reject all the terrible and appalling names which
|
|
describe the world below--Cocytus and Styx, ghosts under the earth, and
|
|
sapless shades, and any similar words of which the very mention causes a
|
|
shudder to pass through the inmost soul of him who hears them. I do not
|
|
say that these horrible stories may not have a use of some kind; but
|
|
there is a danger that the nerves of our guardians may be rendered too
|
|
excitable and effeminate by them.
|
|
|
|
There is a real danger, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then we must have no more of them.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Another and a nobler strain must be composed and sung by us.
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And shall we proceed to get rid of the weepings and wailings of famous
|
|
men?
|
|
|
|
They will go with the rest.
|
|
|
|
But shall we be right in getting rid of them? Reflect: our principle is
|
|
that the good man will not consider death terrible to any other good man
|
|
who is his comrade.
|
|
|
|
Yes; that is our principle.
|
|
|
|
And therefore he will not sorrow for his departed friend as though he
|
|
had suffered anything terrible?
|
|
|
|
He will not.
|
|
|
|
Such an one, as we further maintain, is sufficient for himself and his
|
|
own happiness, and therefore is least in need of other men.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And for this reason the loss of a son or brother, or the deprivation of
|
|
fortune, is to him of all men least terrible.
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
And therefore he will be least likely to lament, and will bear with the
|
|
greatest equanimity any misfortune of this sort which may befall him.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he will feel such a misfortune far less than another.
|
|
|
|
Then we shall be right in getting rid of the lamentations of famous men,
|
|
and making them over to women (and not even to women who are good for
|
|
anything), or to men of a baser sort, that those who are being educated
|
|
by us to be the defenders of their country may scorn to do the like.
|
|
|
|
That will be very right.
|
|
|
|
Then we will once more entreat Homer and the other poets not to depict
|
|
Achilles, who is the son of a goddess, first lying on his side, then on
|
|
his back, and then on his face; then starting up and sailing in a frenzy
|
|
along the shores of the barren sea; now taking the sooty ashes in both
|
|
his hands and pouring them over his head, or weeping and wailing in the
|
|
various modes which Homer has delineated. Nor should he describe Priam
|
|
the kinsman of the gods as praying and beseeching,
|
|
|
|
'Rolling in the dirt, calling each man loudly by his name.'
|
|
|
|
Still more earnestly will we beg of him at all events not to introduce
|
|
the gods lamenting and saying,
|
|
|
|
'Alas! my misery! Alas! that I bore the bravest to my sorrow.'
|
|
|
|
But if he must introduce the gods, at any rate let him not dare so
|
|
completely to misrepresent the greatest of the gods, as to make him
|
|
say--
|
|
|
|
'O heavens! with my eyes verily I behold a dear friend of mine chased
|
|
round and round the city, and my heart is sorrowful.'
|
|
|
|
Or again:--
|
|
|
|
Woe is me that I am fated to have Sarpedon, dearest of men to me,
|
|
subdued at the hands of Patroclus the son of Menoetius.'
|
|
|
|
For if, my sweet Adeimantus, our youth seriously listen to such unworthy
|
|
representations of the gods, instead of laughing at them as they ought,
|
|
hardly will any of them deem that he himself, being but a man, can be
|
|
dishonoured by similar actions; neither will he rebuke any inclination
|
|
which may arise in his mind to say and do the like. And instead
|
|
of having any shame or self-control, he will be always whining and
|
|
lamenting on slight occasions.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is most true.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I replied; but that surely is what ought not to be, as the argument
|
|
has just proved to us; and by that proof we must abide until it is
|
|
disproved by a better.
|
|
|
|
It ought not to be.
|
|
|
|
Neither ought our guardians to be given to laughter. For a fit of
|
|
laughter which has been indulged to excess almost always produces a
|
|
violent reaction.
|
|
|
|
So I believe.
|
|
|
|
Then persons of worth, even if only mortal men, must not be represented
|
|
as overcome by laughter, and still less must such a representation of
|
|
the gods be allowed.
|
|
|
|
Still less of the gods, as you say, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then we shall not suffer such an expression to be used about the gods as
|
|
that of Homer when he describes how
|
|
|
|
'Inextinguishable laughter arose among the blessed gods, when they saw
|
|
Hephaestus bustling about the mansion.'
|
|
|
|
On your views, we must not admit them.
|
|
|
|
On my views, if you like to father them on me; that we must not admit
|
|
them is certain.
|
|
|
|
Again, truth should be highly valued; if, as we were saying, a lie is
|
|
useless to the gods, and useful only as a medicine to men, then the
|
|
use of such medicines should be restricted to physicians; private
|
|
individuals have no business with them.
|
|
|
|
Clearly not, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then if any one at all is to have the privilege of lying, the rulers of
|
|
the State should be the persons; and they, in their dealings either with
|
|
enemies or with their own citizens, may be allowed to lie for the public
|
|
good. But nobody else should meddle with anything of the kind; and
|
|
although the rulers have this privilege, for a private man to lie to
|
|
them in return is to be deemed a more heinous fault than for the patient
|
|
or the pupil of a gymnasium not to speak the truth about his own bodily
|
|
illnesses to the physician or to the trainer, or for a sailor not to
|
|
tell the captain what is happening about the ship and the rest of the
|
|
crew, and how things are going with himself or his fellow sailors.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
If, then, the ruler catches anybody beside himself lying in the State,
|
|
|
|
'Any of the craftsmen, whether he be priest or physician or carpenter,'
|
|
|
|
he will punish him for introducing a practice which is equally
|
|
subversive and destructive of ship or State.
|
|
|
|
Most certainly, he said, if our idea of the State is ever carried out.
|
|
|
|
In the next place our youth must be temperate?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Are not the chief elements of temperance, speaking generally, obedience
|
|
to commanders and self-control in sensual pleasures?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then we shall approve such language as that of Diomede in Homer,
|
|
|
|
'Friend, sit still and obey my word,'
|
|
|
|
and the verses which follow,
|
|
|
|
'The Greeks marched breathing prowess, ...in silent awe of their
|
|
leaders,'
|
|
|
|
and other sentiments of the same kind.
|
|
|
|
We shall.
|
|
|
|
What of this line,
|
|
|
|
'O heavy with wine, who hast the eyes of a dog and the heart of a stag,'
|
|
|
|
and of the words which follow? Would you say that these, or any similar
|
|
impertinences which private individuals are supposed to address to their
|
|
rulers, whether in verse or prose, are well or ill spoken?
|
|
|
|
They are ill spoken.
|
|
|
|
They may very possibly afford some amusement, but they do not conduce
|
|
to temperance. And therefore they are likely to do harm to our young
|
|
men--you would agree with me there?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And then, again, to make the wisest of men say that nothing in his
|
|
opinion is more glorious than
|
|
|
|
'When the tables are full of bread and meat, and the cup-bearer carries
|
|
round wine which he draws from the bowl and pours into the cups,'
|
|
|
|
is it fit or conducive to temperance for a young man to hear such words?
|
|
Or the verse
|
|
|
|
'The saddest of fates is to die and meet destiny from hunger?'
|
|
|
|
What would you say again to the tale of Zeus, who, while other gods and
|
|
men were asleep and he the only person awake, lay devising plans, but
|
|
forgot them all in a moment through his lust, and was so completely
|
|
overcome at the sight of Here that he would not even go into the hut,
|
|
but wanted to lie with her on the ground, declaring that he had never
|
|
been in such a state of rapture before, even when they first met one
|
|
another
|
|
|
|
'Without the knowledge of their parents;'
|
|
|
|
or that other tale of how Hephaestus, because of similar goings on, cast
|
|
a chain around Ares and Aphrodite?
|
|
|
|
Indeed, he said, I am strongly of opinion that they ought not to hear
|
|
that sort of thing.
|
|
|
|
But any deeds of endurance which are done or told by famous men, these
|
|
they ought to see and hear; as, for example, what is said in the verses,
|
|
|
|
'He smote his breast, and thus reproached his heart, Endure, my heart;
|
|
far worse hast thou endured!'
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
In the next place, we must not let them be receivers of gifts or lovers
|
|
of money.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Neither must we sing to them of
|
|
|
|
'Gifts persuading gods, and persuading reverend kings.'
|
|
|
|
Neither is Phoenix, the tutor of Achilles, to be approved or deemed to
|
|
have given his pupil good counsel when he told him that he should take
|
|
the gifts of the Greeks and assist them; but that without a gift he
|
|
should not lay aside his anger. Neither will we believe or acknowledge
|
|
Achilles himself to have been such a lover of money that he took
|
|
Agamemnon's gifts, or that when he had received payment he restored the
|
|
dead body of Hector, but that without payment he was unwilling to do so.
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly, he said, these are not sentiments which can be approved.
|
|
|
|
Loving Homer as I do, I hardly like to say that in attributing these
|
|
feelings to Achilles, or in believing that they are truly attributed
|
|
to him, he is guilty of downright impiety. As little can I believe the
|
|
narrative of his insolence to Apollo, where he says,
|
|
|
|
'Thou hast wronged me, O far-darter, most abominable of deities. Verily
|
|
I would be even with thee, if I had only the power;'
|
|
|
|
or his insubordination to the river-god, on whose divinity he is ready
|
|
to lay hands; or his offering to the dead Patroclus of his own hair,
|
|
which had been previously dedicated to the other river-god Spercheius,
|
|
and that he actually performed this vow; or that he dragged Hector round
|
|
the tomb of Patroclus, and slaughtered the captives at the pyre; of all
|
|
this I cannot believe that he was guilty, any more than I can allow
|
|
our citizens to believe that he, the wise Cheiron's pupil, the son of a
|
|
goddess and of Peleus who was the gentlest of men and third in descent
|
|
from Zeus, was so disordered in his wits as to be at one time the slave
|
|
of two seemingly inconsistent passions, meanness, not untainted by
|
|
avarice, combined with overweening contempt of gods and men.
|
|
|
|
You are quite right, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And let us equally refuse to believe, or allow to be repeated, the tale
|
|
of Theseus son of Poseidon, or of Peirithous son of Zeus, going forth as
|
|
they did to perpetrate a horrid rape; or of any other hero or son of
|
|
a god daring to do such impious and dreadful things as they falsely
|
|
ascribe to them in our day: and let us further compel the poets to
|
|
declare either that these acts were not done by them, or that they
|
|
were not the sons of gods;--both in the same breath they shall not be
|
|
permitted to affirm. We will not have them trying to persuade our youth
|
|
that the gods are the authors of evil, and that heroes are no better
|
|
than men--sentiments which, as we were saying, are neither pious nor
|
|
true, for we have already proved that evil cannot come from the gods.
|
|
|
|
Assuredly not.
|
|
|
|
And further they are likely to have a bad effect on those who hear them;
|
|
for everybody will begin to excuse his own vices when he is convinced
|
|
that similar wickednesses are always being perpetrated by--
|
|
|
|
'The kindred of the gods, the relatives of Zeus, whose ancestral altar,
|
|
the altar of Zeus, is aloft in air on the peak of Ida,'
|
|
|
|
and who have
|
|
|
|
'the blood of deities yet flowing in their veins.'
|
|
|
|
And therefore let us put an end to such tales, lest they engender laxity
|
|
of morals among the young.
|
|
|
|
By all means, he replied.
|
|
|
|
But now that we are determining what classes of subjects are or are not
|
|
to be spoken of, let us see whether any have been omitted by us. The
|
|
manner in which gods and demigods and heroes and the world below should
|
|
be treated has been already laid down.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And what shall we say about men? That is clearly the remaining portion
|
|
of our subject.
|
|
|
|
Clearly so.
|
|
|
|
But we are not in a condition to answer this question at present, my
|
|
friend.
|
|
|
|
Why not?
|
|
|
|
Because, if I am not mistaken, we shall have to say that about men poets
|
|
and story-tellers are guilty of making the gravest misstatements when
|
|
they tell us that wicked men are often happy, and the good miserable;
|
|
and that injustice is profitable when undetected, but that justice is a
|
|
man's own loss and another's gain--these things we shall forbid them to
|
|
utter, and command them to sing and say the opposite.
|
|
|
|
To be sure we shall, he replied.
|
|
|
|
But if you admit that I am right in this, then I shall maintain that you
|
|
have implied the principle for which we have been all along contending.
|
|
|
|
I grant the truth of your inference.
|
|
|
|
That such things are or are not to be said about men is a question which
|
|
we cannot determine until we have discovered what justice is, and how
|
|
naturally advantageous to the possessor, whether he seem to be just or
|
|
not.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Enough of the subjects of poetry: let us now speak of the style; and
|
|
when this has been considered, both matter and manner will have been
|
|
completely treated.
|
|
|
|
I do not understand what you mean, said Adeimantus.
|
|
|
|
Then I must make you understand; and perhaps I may be more intelligible
|
|
if I put the matter in this way. You are aware, I suppose, that all
|
|
mythology and poetry is a narration of events, either past, present, or
|
|
to come?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And narration may be either simple narration, or imitation, or a union
|
|
of the two?
|
|
|
|
That again, he said, I do not quite understand.
|
|
|
|
I fear that I must be a ridiculous teacher when I have so much
|
|
difficulty in making myself apprehended. Like a bad speaker, therefore,
|
|
I will not take the whole of the subject, but will break a piece off in
|
|
illustration of my meaning. You know the first lines of the Iliad,
|
|
in which the poet says that Chryses prayed Agamemnon to release his
|
|
daughter, and that Agamemnon flew into a passion with him; whereupon
|
|
Chryses, failing of his object, invoked the anger of the God against the
|
|
Achaeans. Now as far as these lines,
|
|
|
|
'And he prayed all the Greeks, but especially the two sons of Atreus,
|
|
the chiefs of the people,'
|
|
|
|
the poet is speaking in his own person; he never leads us to suppose
|
|
that he is any one else. But in what follows he takes the person of
|
|
Chryses, and then he does all that he can to make us believe that the
|
|
speaker is not Homer, but the aged priest himself. And in this double
|
|
form he has cast the entire narrative of the events which occurred at
|
|
Troy and in Ithaca and throughout the Odyssey.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And a narrative it remains both in the speeches which the poet recites
|
|
from time to time and in the intermediate passages?
|
|
|
|
Quite true.
|
|
|
|
But when the poet speaks in the person of another, may we not say that
|
|
he assimilates his style to that of the person who, as he informs you,
|
|
is going to speak?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And this assimilation of himself to another, either by the use of voice
|
|
or gesture, is the imitation of the person whose character he assumes?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
Then in this case the narrative of the poet may be said to proceed by
|
|
way of imitation?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Or, if the poet everywhere appears and never conceals himself, then
|
|
again the imitation is dropped, and his poetry becomes simple narration.
|
|
However, in order that I may make my meaning quite clear, and that you
|
|
may no more say, 'I don't understand,' I will show how the change might
|
|
be effected. If Homer had said, 'The priest came, having his daughter's
|
|
ransom in his hands, supplicating the Achaeans, and above all the
|
|
kings;' and then if, instead of speaking in the person of Chryses,
|
|
he had continued in his own person, the words would have been, not
|
|
imitation, but simple narration. The passage would have run as follows
|
|
(I am no poet, and therefore I drop the metre), 'The priest came and
|
|
prayed the gods on behalf of the Greeks that they might capture Troy
|
|
and return safely home, but begged that they would give him back his
|
|
daughter, and take the ransom which he brought, and respect the God.
|
|
Thus he spoke, and the other Greeks revered the priest and assented. But
|
|
Agamemnon was wroth, and bade him depart and not come again, lest the
|
|
staff and chaplets of the God should be of no avail to him--the daughter
|
|
of Chryses should not be released, he said--she should grow old with him
|
|
in Argos. And then he told him to go away and not to provoke him, if he
|
|
intended to get home unscathed. And the old man went away in fear and
|
|
silence, and, when he had left the camp, he called upon Apollo by his
|
|
many names, reminding him of everything which he had done pleasing to
|
|
him, whether in building his temples, or in offering sacrifice, and
|
|
praying that his good deeds might be returned to him, and that the
|
|
Achaeans might expiate his tears by the arrows of the god,'--and so on.
|
|
In this way the whole becomes simple narrative.
|
|
|
|
I understand, he said.
|
|
|
|
Or you may suppose the opposite case--that the intermediate passages are
|
|
omitted, and the dialogue only left.
|
|
|
|
That also, he said, I understand; you mean, for example, as in tragedy.
|
|
|
|
You have conceived my meaning perfectly; and if I mistake not, what you
|
|
failed to apprehend before is now made clear to you, that poetry and
|
|
mythology are, in some cases, wholly imitative--instances of this are
|
|
supplied by tragedy and comedy; there is likewise the opposite style,
|
|
in which the poet is the only speaker--of this the dithyramb affords
|
|
the best example; and the combination of both is found in epic, and in
|
|
several other styles of poetry. Do I take you with me?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; I see now what you meant.
|
|
|
|
I will ask you to remember also what I began by saying, that we had done
|
|
with the subject and might proceed to the style.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I remember.
|
|
|
|
In saying this, I intended to imply that we must come to an
|
|
understanding about the mimetic art,--whether the poets, in narrating
|
|
their stories, are to be allowed by us to imitate, and if so, whether
|
|
in whole or in part, and if the latter, in what parts; or should all
|
|
imitation be prohibited?
|
|
|
|
You mean, I suspect, to ask whether tragedy and comedy shall be admitted
|
|
into our State?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; but there may be more than this in question: I really do
|
|
not know as yet, but whither the argument may blow, thither we go.
|
|
|
|
And go we will, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then, Adeimantus, let me ask you whether our guardians ought to be
|
|
imitators; or rather, has not this question been decided by the rule
|
|
already laid down that one man can only do one thing well, and not many;
|
|
and that if he attempt many, he will altogether fail of gaining much
|
|
reputation in any?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And this is equally true of imitation; no one man can imitate many
|
|
things as well as he would imitate a single one?
|
|
|
|
He cannot.
|
|
|
|
Then the same person will hardly be able to play a serious part in life,
|
|
and at the same time to be an imitator and imitate many other parts as
|
|
well; for even when two species of imitation are nearly allied, the same
|
|
persons cannot succeed in both, as, for example, the writers of tragedy
|
|
and comedy--did you not just now call them imitations?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I did; and you are right in thinking that the same persons cannot
|
|
succeed in both.
|
|
|
|
Any more than they can be rhapsodists and actors at once?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Neither are comic and tragic actors the same; yet all these things are
|
|
but imitations.
|
|
|
|
They are so.
|
|
|
|
And human nature, Adeimantus, appears to have been coined into yet
|
|
smaller pieces, and to be as incapable of imitating many things well, as
|
|
of performing well the actions of which the imitations are copies.
|
|
|
|
Quite true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
If then we adhere to our original notion and bear in mind that
|
|
our guardians, setting aside every other business, are to dedicate
|
|
themselves wholly to the maintenance of freedom in the State, making
|
|
this their craft, and engaging in no work which does not bear on this
|
|
end, they ought not to practise or imitate anything else; if they
|
|
imitate at all, they should imitate from youth upward only those
|
|
characters which are suitable to their profession--the courageous,
|
|
temperate, holy, free, and the like; but they should not depict or be
|
|
skilful at imitating any kind of illiberality or baseness, lest from
|
|
imitation they should come to be what they imitate. Did you never
|
|
observe how imitations, beginning in early youth and continuing far into
|
|
life, at length grow into habits and become a second nature, affecting
|
|
body, voice, and mind?
|
|
|
|
Yes, certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, we will not allow those for whom we profess a care and of
|
|
whom we say that they ought to be good men, to imitate a woman, whether
|
|
young or old, quarrelling with her husband, or striving and vaunting
|
|
against the gods in conceit of her happiness, or when she is in
|
|
affliction, or sorrow, or weeping; and certainly not one who is in
|
|
sickness, love, or labour.
|
|
|
|
Very right, he said.
|
|
|
|
Neither must they represent slaves, male or female, performing the
|
|
offices of slaves?
|
|
|
|
They must not.
|
|
|
|
And surely not bad men, whether cowards or any others, who do the
|
|
reverse of what we have just been prescribing, who scold or mock or
|
|
revile one another in drink or out of drink, or who in any other manner
|
|
sin against themselves and their neighbours in word or deed, as the
|
|
manner of such is. Neither should they be trained to imitate the action
|
|
or speech of men or women who are mad or bad; for madness, like vice, is
|
|
to be known but not to be practised or imitated.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Neither may they imitate smiths or other artificers, or oarsmen, or
|
|
boatswains, or the like?
|
|
|
|
How can they, he said, when they are not allowed to apply their minds to
|
|
the callings of any of these?
|
|
|
|
Nor may they imitate the neighing of horses, the bellowing of bulls, the
|
|
murmur of rivers and roll of the ocean, thunder, and all that sort of
|
|
thing?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he said, if madness be forbidden, neither may they copy the
|
|
behaviour of madmen.
|
|
|
|
You mean, I said, if I understand you aright, that there is one sort of
|
|
narrative style which may be employed by a truly good man when he has
|
|
anything to say, and that another sort will be used by a man of an
|
|
opposite character and education.
|
|
|
|
And which are these two sorts? he asked.
|
|
|
|
Suppose, I answered, that a just and good man in the course of a
|
|
narration comes on some saying or action of another good man,--I should
|
|
imagine that he will like to personate him, and will not be ashamed of
|
|
this sort of imitation: he will be most ready to play the part of the
|
|
good man when he is acting firmly and wisely; in a less degree when
|
|
he is overtaken by illness or love or drink, or has met with any other
|
|
disaster. But when he comes to a character which is unworthy of him, he
|
|
will not make a study of that; he will disdain such a person, and will
|
|
assume his likeness, if at all, for a moment only when he is performing
|
|
some good action; at other times he will be ashamed to play a part which
|
|
he has never practised, nor will he like to fashion and frame himself
|
|
after the baser models; he feels the employment of such an art, unless
|
|
in jest, to be beneath him, and his mind revolts at it.
|
|
|
|
So I should expect, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then he will adopt a mode of narration such as we have illustrated
|
|
out of Homer, that is to say, his style will be both imitative and
|
|
narrative; but there will be very little of the former, and a great deal
|
|
of the latter. Do you agree?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said; that is the model which such a speaker must
|
|
necessarily take.
|
|
|
|
But there is another sort of character who will narrate anything, and,
|
|
the worse he is, the more unscrupulous he will be; nothing will be too
|
|
bad for him: and he will be ready to imitate anything, not as a joke,
|
|
but in right good earnest, and before a large company. As I was just now
|
|
saying, he will attempt to represent the roll of thunder, the noise of
|
|
wind and hail, or the creaking of wheels, and pulleys, and the various
|
|
sounds of flutes, pipes, trumpets, and all sorts of instruments: he will
|
|
bark like a dog, bleat like a sheep, or crow like a cock; his entire art
|
|
will consist in imitation of voice and gesture, and there will be very
|
|
little narration.
|
|
|
|
That, he said, will be his mode of speaking.
|
|
|
|
These, then, are the two kinds of style?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And you would agree with me in saying that one of them is simple and has
|
|
but slight changes; and if the harmony and rhythm are also chosen
|
|
for their simplicity, the result is that the speaker, if he speaks
|
|
correctly, is always pretty much the same in style, and he will keep
|
|
within the limits of a single harmony (for the changes are not great),
|
|
and in like manner he will make use of nearly the same rhythm?
|
|
|
|
That is quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Whereas the other requires all sorts of harmonies and all sorts of
|
|
rhythms, if the music and the style are to correspond, because the style
|
|
has all sorts of changes.
|
|
|
|
That is also perfectly true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And do not the two styles, or the mixture of the two, comprehend all
|
|
poetry, and every form of expression in words? No one can say anything
|
|
except in one or other of them or in both together.
|
|
|
|
They include all, he said.
|
|
|
|
And shall we receive into our State all the three styles, or one only of
|
|
the two unmixed styles? or would you include the mixed?
|
|
|
|
I should prefer only to admit the pure imitator of virtue.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, Adeimantus, but the mixed style is also very charming: and
|
|
indeed the pantomimic, which is the opposite of the one chosen by you,
|
|
is the most popular style with children and their attendants, and with
|
|
the world in general.
|
|
|
|
I do not deny it.
|
|
|
|
But I suppose you would argue that such a style is unsuitable to our
|
|
State, in which human nature is not twofold or manifold, for one man
|
|
plays one part only?
|
|
|
|
Yes; quite unsuitable.
|
|
|
|
And this is the reason why in our State, and in our State only, we
|
|
shall find a shoemaker to be a shoemaker and not a pilot also, and a
|
|
husbandman to be a husbandman and not a dicast also, and a soldier a
|
|
soldier and not a trader also, and the same throughout?
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And therefore when any one of these pantomimic gentlemen, who are so
|
|
clever that they can imitate anything, comes to us, and makes a proposal
|
|
to exhibit himself and his poetry, we will fall down and worship him as
|
|
a sweet and holy and wonderful being; but we must also inform him that
|
|
in our State such as he are not permitted to exist; the law will not
|
|
allow them. And so when we have anointed him with myrrh, and set a
|
|
garland of wool upon his head, we shall send him away to another city.
|
|
For we mean to employ for our souls' health the rougher and severer poet
|
|
or story-teller, who will imitate the style of the virtuous only, and
|
|
will follow those models which we prescribed at first when we began the
|
|
education of our soldiers.
|
|
|
|
We certainly will, he said, if we have the power.
|
|
|
|
Then now, my friend, I said, that part of music or literary education
|
|
which relates to the story or myth may be considered to be finished; for
|
|
the matter and manner have both been discussed.
|
|
|
|
I think so too, he said.
|
|
|
|
Next in order will follow melody and song.
|
|
|
|
That is obvious.
|
|
|
|
Every one can see already what we ought to say about them, if we are to
|
|
be consistent with ourselves.
|
|
|
|
I fear, said Glaucon, laughing, that the word 'every one' hardly
|
|
includes me, for I cannot at the moment say what they should be; though
|
|
I may guess.
|
|
|
|
At any rate you can tell that a song or ode has three parts--the words,
|
|
the melody, and the rhythm; that degree of knowledge I may presuppose?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; so much as that you may.
|
|
|
|
And as for the words, there will surely be no difference between words
|
|
which are and which are not set to music; both will conform to the same
|
|
laws, and these have been already determined by us?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the melody and rhythm will depend upon the words?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
We were saying, when we spoke of the subject-matter, that we had no need
|
|
of lamentation and strains of sorrow?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And which are the harmonies expressive of sorrow? You are musical, and
|
|
can tell me.
|
|
|
|
The harmonies which you mean are the mixed or tenor Lydian, and the
|
|
full-toned or bass Lydian, and such like.
|
|
|
|
These then, I said, must be banished; even to women who have a character
|
|
to maintain they are of no use, and much less to men.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
In the next place, drunkenness and softness and indolence are utterly
|
|
unbecoming the character of our guardians.
|
|
|
|
Utterly unbecoming.
|
|
|
|
And which are the soft or drinking harmonies?
|
|
|
|
The Ionian, he replied, and the Lydian; they are termed 'relaxed.'
|
|
|
|
Well, and are these of any military use?
|
|
|
|
Quite the reverse, he replied; and if so the Dorian and the Phrygian are
|
|
the only ones which you have left.
|
|
|
|
I answered: Of the harmonies I know nothing, but I want to have one
|
|
warlike, to sound the note or accent which a brave man utters in the
|
|
hour of danger and stern resolve, or when his cause is failing, and he
|
|
is going to wounds or death or is overtaken by some other evil, and
|
|
at every such crisis meets the blows of fortune with firm step and a
|
|
determination to endure; and another to be used by him in times of peace
|
|
and freedom of action, when there is no pressure of necessity, and he is
|
|
seeking to persuade God by prayer, or man by instruction and admonition,
|
|
or on the other hand, when he is expressing his willingness to yield to
|
|
persuasion or entreaty or admonition, and which represents him when
|
|
by prudent conduct he has attained his end, not carried away by his
|
|
success, but acting moderately and wisely under the circumstances, and
|
|
acquiescing in the event. These two harmonies I ask you to leave;
|
|
the strain of necessity and the strain of freedom, the strain of the
|
|
unfortunate and the strain of the fortunate, the strain of courage, and
|
|
the strain of temperance; these, I say, leave.
|
|
|
|
And these, he replied, are the Dorian and Phrygian harmonies of which I
|
|
was just now speaking.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, if these and these only are to be used in our songs and
|
|
melodies, we shall not want multiplicity of notes or a panharmonic
|
|
scale?
|
|
|
|
I suppose not.
|
|
|
|
Then we shall not maintain the artificers of lyres with three
|
|
corners and complex scales, or the makers of any other many-stringed
|
|
curiously-harmonised instruments?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
But what do you say to flute-makers and flute-players? Would you admit
|
|
them into our State when you reflect that in this composite use of
|
|
harmony the flute is worse than all the stringed instruments put
|
|
together; even the panharmonic music is only an imitation of the flute?
|
|
|
|
Clearly not.
|
|
|
|
There remain then only the lyre and the harp for use in the city, and
|
|
the shepherds may have a pipe in the country.
|
|
|
|
That is surely the conclusion to be drawn from the argument.
|
|
|
|
The preferring of Apollo and his instruments to Marsyas and his
|
|
instruments is not at all strange, I said.
|
|
|
|
Not at all, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And so, by the dog of Egypt, we have been unconsciously purging the
|
|
State, which not long ago we termed luxurious.
|
|
|
|
And we have done wisely, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then let us now finish the purgation, I said. Next in order to
|
|
harmonies, rhythms will naturally follow, and they should be subject to
|
|
the same rules, for we ought not to seek out complex systems of metre,
|
|
or metres of every kind, but rather to discover what rhythms are the
|
|
expressions of a courageous and harmonious life; and when we have found
|
|
them, we shall adapt the foot and the melody to words having a like
|
|
spirit, not the words to the foot and melody. To say what these rhythms
|
|
are will be your duty--you must teach me them, as you have already
|
|
taught me the harmonies.
|
|
|
|
But, indeed, he replied, I cannot tell you. I only know that there
|
|
are some three principles of rhythm out of which metrical systems are
|
|
framed, just as in sounds there are four notes (i.e. the four notes of
|
|
the tetrachord.) out of which all the harmonies are composed; that is
|
|
an observation which I have made. But of what sort of lives they are
|
|
severally the imitations I am unable to say.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, we must take Damon into our counsels; and he will tell us
|
|
what rhythms are expressive of meanness, or insolence, or fury, or other
|
|
unworthiness, and what are to be reserved for the expression of opposite
|
|
feelings. And I think that I have an indistinct recollection of his
|
|
mentioning a complex Cretic rhythm; also a dactylic or heroic, and he
|
|
arranged them in some manner which I do not quite understand, making
|
|
the rhythms equal in the rise and fall of the foot, long and short
|
|
alternating; and, unless I am mistaken, he spoke of an iambic as well
|
|
as of a trochaic rhythm, and assigned to them short and long quantities.
|
|
Also in some cases he appeared to praise or censure the movement of the
|
|
foot quite as much as the rhythm; or perhaps a combination of the two;
|
|
for I am not certain what he meant. These matters, however, as I was
|
|
saying, had better be referred to Damon himself, for the analysis of
|
|
the subject would be difficult, you know? (Socrates expresses himself
|
|
carelessly in accordance with his assumed ignorance of the details of
|
|
the subject. In the first part of the sentence he appears to be speaking
|
|
of paeonic rhythms which are in the ratio of 3/2; in the second part, of
|
|
dactylic and anapaestic rhythms, which are in the ratio of 1/1; in the
|
|
last clause, of iambic and trochaic rhythms, which are in the ratio of
|
|
1/2 or 2/1.)
|
|
|
|
Rather so, I should say.
|
|
|
|
But there is no difficulty in seeing that grace or the absence of grace
|
|
is an effect of good or bad rhythm.
|
|
|
|
None at all.
|
|
|
|
And also that good and bad rhythm naturally assimilate to a good and bad
|
|
style; and that harmony and discord in like manner follow style; for our
|
|
principle is that rhythm and harmony are regulated by the words, and not
|
|
the words by them.
|
|
|
|
Just so, he said, they should follow the words.
|
|
|
|
And will not the words and the character of the style depend on the
|
|
temper of the soul?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And everything else on the style?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then beauty of style and harmony and grace and good rhythm depend on
|
|
simplicity,--I mean the true simplicity of a rightly and nobly ordered
|
|
mind and character, not that other simplicity which is only an euphemism
|
|
for folly?
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And if our youth are to do their work in life, must they not make these
|
|
graces and harmonies their perpetual aim?
|
|
|
|
They must.
|
|
|
|
And surely the art of the painter and every other creative and
|
|
constructive art are full of them,--weaving, embroidery, architecture,
|
|
and every kind of manufacture; also nature, animal and vegetable,--in
|
|
all of them there is grace or the absence of grace. And ugliness and
|
|
discord and inharmonious motion are nearly allied to ill words and ill
|
|
nature, as grace and harmony are the twin sisters of goodness and virtue
|
|
and bear their likeness.
|
|
|
|
That is quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
But shall our superintendence go no further, and are the poets only to
|
|
be required by us to express the image of the good in their works, on
|
|
pain, if they do anything else, of expulsion from our State? Or is the
|
|
same control to be extended to other artists, and are they also to be
|
|
prohibited from exhibiting the opposite forms of vice and intemperance
|
|
and meanness and indecency in sculpture and building and the other
|
|
creative arts; and is he who cannot conform to this rule of ours to be
|
|
prevented from practising his art in our State, lest the taste of our
|
|
citizens be corrupted by him? We would not have our guardians grow up
|
|
amid images of moral deformity, as in some noxious pasture, and there
|
|
browse and feed upon many a baneful herb and flower day by day, little
|
|
by little, until they silently gather a festering mass of corruption
|
|
in their own soul. Let our artists rather be those who are gifted to
|
|
discern the true nature of the beautiful and graceful; then will our
|
|
youth dwell in a land of health, amid fair sights and sounds, and
|
|
receive the good in everything; and beauty, the effluence of fair works,
|
|
shall flow into the eye and ear, like a health-giving breeze from a
|
|
purer region, and insensibly draw the soul from earliest years into
|
|
likeness and sympathy with the beauty of reason.
|
|
|
|
There can be no nobler training than that, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And therefore, I said, Glaucon, musical training is a more potent
|
|
instrument than any other, because rhythm and harmony find their way
|
|
into the inward places of the soul, on which they mightily fasten,
|
|
imparting grace, and making the soul of him who is rightly educated
|
|
graceful, or of him who is ill-educated ungraceful; and also because
|
|
he who has received this true education of the inner being will most
|
|
shrewdly perceive omissions or faults in art and nature, and with a true
|
|
taste, while he praises and rejoices over and receives into his soul the
|
|
good, and becomes noble and good, he will justly blame and hate the bad,
|
|
now in the days of his youth, even before he is able to know the reason
|
|
why; and when reason comes he will recognise and salute the friend with
|
|
whom his education has made him long familiar.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I quite agree with you in thinking that our youth should
|
|
be trained in music and on the grounds which you mention.
|
|
|
|
Just as in learning to read, I said, we were satisfied when we knew
|
|
the letters of the alphabet, which are very few, in all their recurring
|
|
sizes and combinations; not slighting them as unimportant whether they
|
|
occupy a space large or small, but everywhere eager to make them out;
|
|
and not thinking ourselves perfect in the art of reading until we
|
|
recognise them wherever they are found:
|
|
|
|
True--
|
|
|
|
Or, as we recognise the reflection of letters in the water, or in a
|
|
mirror, only when we know the letters themselves; the same art and study
|
|
giving us the knowledge of both:
|
|
|
|
Exactly--
|
|
|
|
Even so, as I maintain, neither we nor our guardians, whom we have to
|
|
educate, can ever become musical until we and they know the essential
|
|
forms of temperance, courage, liberality, magnificence, and their
|
|
kindred, as well as the contrary forms, in all their combinations,
|
|
and can recognise them and their images wherever they are found, not
|
|
slighting them either in small things or great, but believing them all
|
|
to be within the sphere of one art and study.
|
|
|
|
Most assuredly.
|
|
|
|
And when a beautiful soul harmonizes with a beautiful form, and the two
|
|
are cast in one mould, that will be the fairest of sights to him who has
|
|
an eye to see it?
|
|
|
|
The fairest indeed.
|
|
|
|
And the fairest is also the loveliest?
|
|
|
|
That may be assumed.
|
|
|
|
And the man who has the spirit of harmony will be most in love with the
|
|
loveliest; but he will not love him who is of an inharmonious soul?
|
|
|
|
That is true, he replied, if the deficiency be in his soul; but if there
|
|
be any merely bodily defect in another he will be patient of it, and
|
|
will love all the same.
|
|
|
|
I perceive, I said, that you have or have had experiences of this sort,
|
|
and I agree. But let me ask you another question: Has excess of pleasure
|
|
any affinity to temperance?
|
|
|
|
How can that be? he replied; pleasure deprives a man of the use of his
|
|
faculties quite as much as pain.
|
|
|
|
Or any affinity to virtue in general?
|
|
|
|
None whatever.
|
|
|
|
Any affinity to wantonness and intemperance?
|
|
|
|
Yes, the greatest.
|
|
|
|
And is there any greater or keener pleasure than that of sensual love?
|
|
|
|
No, nor a madder.
|
|
|
|
Whereas true love is a love of beauty and order--temperate and
|
|
harmonious?
|
|
|
|
Quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then no intemperance or madness should be allowed to approach true love?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Then mad or intemperate pleasure must never be allowed to come near the
|
|
lover and his beloved; neither of them can have any part in it if their
|
|
love is of the right sort?
|
|
|
|
No, indeed, Socrates, it must never come near them.
|
|
|
|
Then I suppose that in the city which we are founding you would make a
|
|
law to the effect that a friend should use no other familiarity to
|
|
his love than a father would use to his son, and then only for a noble
|
|
purpose, and he must first have the other's consent; and this rule is
|
|
to limit him in all his intercourse, and he is never to be seen going
|
|
further, or, if he exceeds, he is to be deemed guilty of coarseness and
|
|
bad taste.
|
|
|
|
I quite agree, he said.
|
|
|
|
Thus much of music, which makes a fair ending; for what should be the
|
|
end of music if not the love of beauty?
|
|
|
|
I agree, he said.
|
|
|
|
After music comes gymnastic, in which our youth are next to be trained.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Gymnastic as well as music should begin in early years; the training
|
|
in it should be careful and should continue through life. Now my belief
|
|
is,--and this is a matter upon which I should like to have your opinion
|
|
in confirmation of my own, but my own belief is,--not that the good body
|
|
by any bodily excellence improves the soul, but, on the contrary, that
|
|
the good soul, by her own excellence, improves the body as far as this
|
|
may be possible. What do you say?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I agree.
|
|
|
|
Then, to the mind when adequately trained, we shall be right in handing
|
|
over the more particular care of the body; and in order to avoid
|
|
prolixity we will now only give the general outlines of the subject.
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
That they must abstain from intoxication has been already remarked by
|
|
us; for of all persons a guardian should be the last to get drunk and
|
|
not know where in the world he is.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; that a guardian should require another guardian to take
|
|
care of him is ridiculous indeed.
|
|
|
|
But next, what shall we say of their food; for the men are in training
|
|
for the great contest of all--are they not?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said.
|
|
|
|
And will the habit of body of our ordinary athletes be suited to them?
|
|
|
|
Why not?
|
|
|
|
I am afraid, I said, that a habit of body such as they have is but a
|
|
sleepy sort of thing, and rather perilous to health. Do you not observe
|
|
that these athletes sleep away their lives, and are liable to most
|
|
dangerous illnesses if they depart, in ever so slight a degree, from
|
|
their customary regimen?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I do.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, a finer sort of training will be required for our warrior
|
|
athletes, who are to be like wakeful dogs, and to see and hear with the
|
|
utmost keenness; amid the many changes of water and also of food, of
|
|
summer heat and winter cold, which they will have to endure when on a
|
|
campaign, they must not be liable to break down in health.
|
|
|
|
That is my view.
|
|
|
|
The really excellent gymnastic is twin sister of that simple music which
|
|
we were just now describing.
|
|
|
|
How so?
|
|
|
|
Why, I conceive that there is a gymnastic which, like our music, is
|
|
simple and good; and especially the military gymnastic.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
My meaning may be learned from Homer; he, you know, feeds his heroes at
|
|
their feasts, when they are campaigning, on soldiers' fare; they have
|
|
no fish, although they are on the shores of the Hellespont, and they
|
|
are not allowed boiled meats but only roast, which is the food most
|
|
convenient for soldiers, requiring only that they should light a fire,
|
|
and not involving the trouble of carrying about pots and pans.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And I can hardly be mistaken in saying that sweet sauces are nowhere
|
|
mentioned in Homer. In proscribing them, however, he is not singular;
|
|
all professional athletes are well aware that a man who is to be in good
|
|
condition should take nothing of the kind.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; and knowing this, they are quite right in not taking them.
|
|
|
|
Then you would not approve of Syracusan dinners, and the refinements of
|
|
Sicilian cookery?
|
|
|
|
I think not.
|
|
|
|
Nor, if a man is to be in condition, would you allow him to have a
|
|
Corinthian girl as his fair friend?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Neither would you approve of the delicacies, as they are thought, of
|
|
Athenian confectionary?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
All such feeding and living may be rightly compared by us to melody and
|
|
song composed in the panharmonic style, and in all the rhythms.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
There complexity engendered licence, and here disease; whereas
|
|
simplicity in music was the parent of temperance in the soul; and
|
|
simplicity in gymnastic of health in the body.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
But when intemperance and diseases multiply in a State, halls of justice
|
|
and medicine are always being opened; and the arts of the doctor and the
|
|
lawyer give themselves airs, finding how keen is the interest which not
|
|
only the slaves but the freemen of a city take about them.
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And yet what greater proof can there be of a bad and disgraceful state
|
|
of education than this, that not only artisans and the meaner sort of
|
|
people need the skill of first-rate physicians and judges, but also
|
|
those who would profess to have had a liberal education? Is it not
|
|
disgraceful, and a great sign of want of good-breeding, that a man
|
|
should have to go abroad for his law and physic because he has none of
|
|
his own at home, and must therefore surrender himself into the hands of
|
|
other men whom he makes lords and judges over him?
|
|
|
|
Of all things, he said, the most disgraceful.
|
|
|
|
Would you say 'most,' I replied, when you consider that there is
|
|
a further stage of the evil in which a man is not only a life-long
|
|
litigant, passing all his days in the courts, either as plaintiff or
|
|
defendant, but is actually led by his bad taste to pride himself on his
|
|
litigiousness; he imagines that he is a master in dishonesty; able to
|
|
take every crooked turn, and wriggle into and out of every hole,
|
|
bending like a withy and getting out of the way of justice: and all
|
|
for what?--in order to gain small points not worth mentioning, he not
|
|
knowing that so to order his life as to be able to do without a napping
|
|
judge is a far higher and nobler sort of thing. Is not that still more
|
|
disgraceful?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is still more disgraceful.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, and to require the help of medicine, not when a wound
|
|
has to be cured, or on occasion of an epidemic, but just because, by
|
|
indolence and a habit of life such as we have been describing, men
|
|
fill themselves with waters and winds, as if their bodies were a marsh,
|
|
compelling the ingenious sons of Asclepius to find more names for
|
|
diseases, such as flatulence and catarrh; is not this, too, a disgrace?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, they do certainly give very strange and newfangled names
|
|
to diseases.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, and I do not believe that there were any such diseases in
|
|
the days of Asclepius; and this I infer from the circumstance that the
|
|
hero Eurypylus, after he has been wounded in Homer, drinks a posset of
|
|
Pramnian wine well besprinkled with barley-meal and grated cheese, which
|
|
are certainly inflammatory, and yet the sons of Asclepius who were
|
|
at the Trojan war do not blame the damsel who gives him the drink, or
|
|
rebuke Patroclus, who is treating his case.
|
|
|
|
Well, he said, that was surely an extraordinary drink to be given to a
|
|
person in his condition.
|
|
|
|
Not so extraordinary, I replied, if you bear in mind that in former
|
|
days, as is commonly said, before the time of Herodicus, the guild of
|
|
Asclepius did not practise our present system of medicine, which may be
|
|
said to educate diseases. But Herodicus, being a trainer, and himself of
|
|
a sickly constitution, by a combination of training and doctoring found
|
|
out a way of torturing first and chiefly himself, and secondly the rest
|
|
of the world.
|
|
|
|
How was that? he said.
|
|
|
|
By the invention of lingering death; for he had a mortal disease which
|
|
he perpetually tended, and as recovery was out of the question, he
|
|
passed his entire life as a valetudinarian; he could do nothing but
|
|
attend upon himself, and he was in constant torment whenever he departed
|
|
in anything from his usual regimen, and so dying hard, by the help of
|
|
science he struggled on to old age.
|
|
|
|
A rare reward of his skill!
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; a reward which a man might fairly expect who never
|
|
understood that, if Asclepius did not instruct his descendants
|
|
in valetudinarian arts, the omission arose, not from ignorance or
|
|
inexperience of such a branch of medicine, but because he knew that in
|
|
all well-ordered states every individual has an occupation to which he
|
|
must attend, and has therefore no leisure to spend in continually being
|
|
ill. This we remark in the case of the artisan, but, ludicrously enough,
|
|
do not apply the same rule to people of the richer sort.
|
|
|
|
How do you mean? he said.
|
|
|
|
I mean this: When a carpenter is ill he asks the physician for a rough
|
|
and ready cure; an emetic or a purge or a cautery or the knife,--these
|
|
are his remedies. And if some one prescribes for him a course of
|
|
dietetics, and tells him that he must swathe and swaddle his head, and
|
|
all that sort of thing, he replies at once that he has no time to be
|
|
ill, and that he sees no good in a life which is spent in nursing
|
|
his disease to the neglect of his customary employment; and therefore
|
|
bidding good-bye to this sort of physician, he resumes his ordinary
|
|
habits, and either gets well and lives and does his business, or, if his
|
|
constitution fails, he dies and has no more trouble.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, and a man in his condition of life ought to use the art of
|
|
medicine thus far only.
|
|
|
|
Has he not, I said, an occupation; and what profit would there be in his
|
|
life if he were deprived of his occupation?
|
|
|
|
Quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
But with the rich man this is otherwise; of him we do not say that he
|
|
has any specially appointed work which he must perform, if he would
|
|
live.
|
|
|
|
He is generally supposed to have nothing to do.
|
|
|
|
Then you never heard of the saying of Phocylides, that as soon as a man
|
|
has a livelihood he should practise virtue?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he said, I think that he had better begin somewhat sooner.
|
|
|
|
Let us not have a dispute with him about this, I said; but rather ask
|
|
ourselves: Is the practice of virtue obligatory on the rich man, or
|
|
can he live without it? And if obligatory on him, then let us raise
|
|
a further question, whether this dieting of disorders, which is an
|
|
impediment to the application of the mind in carpentering and the
|
|
mechanical arts, does not equally stand in the way of the sentiment of
|
|
Phocylides?
|
|
|
|
Of that, he replied, there can be no doubt; such excessive care of the
|
|
body, when carried beyond the rules of gymnastic, is most inimical to
|
|
the practice of virtue.
|
|
|
|
Yes, indeed, I replied, and equally incompatible with the management of
|
|
a house, an army, or an office of state; and, what is most important
|
|
of all, irreconcileable with any kind of study or thought or
|
|
self-reflection--there is a constant suspicion that headache and
|
|
giddiness are to be ascribed to philosophy, and hence all practising or
|
|
making trial of virtue in the higher sense is absolutely stopped; for
|
|
a man is always fancying that he is being made ill, and is in constant
|
|
anxiety about the state of his body.
|
|
|
|
Yes, likely enough.
|
|
|
|
And therefore our politic Asclepius may be supposed to have exhibited
|
|
the power of his art only to persons who, being generally of healthy
|
|
constitution and habits of life, had a definite ailment; such as these
|
|
he cured by purges and operations, and bade them live as usual, herein
|
|
consulting the interests of the State; but bodies which disease had
|
|
penetrated through and through he would not have attempted to cure
|
|
by gradual processes of evacuation and infusion: he did not want to
|
|
lengthen out good-for-nothing lives, or to have weak fathers begetting
|
|
weaker sons;--if a man was not able to live in the ordinary way he
|
|
had no business to cure him; for such a cure would have been of no use
|
|
either to himself, or to the State.
|
|
|
|
Then, he said, you regard Asclepius as a statesman.
|
|
|
|
Clearly; and his character is further illustrated by his sons. Note that
|
|
they were heroes in the days of old and practised the medicines of which
|
|
I am speaking at the siege of Troy: You will remember how, when Pandarus
|
|
wounded Menelaus, they
|
|
|
|
'Sucked the blood out of the wound, and sprinkled soothing remedies,'
|
|
|
|
but they never prescribed what the patient was afterwards to eat or
|
|
drink in the case of Menelaus, any more than in the case of Eurypylus;
|
|
the remedies, as they conceived, were enough to heal any man who before
|
|
he was wounded was healthy and regular in his habits; and even though he
|
|
did happen to drink a posset of Pramnian wine, he might get well all the
|
|
same. But they would have nothing to do with unhealthy and intemperate
|
|
subjects, whose lives were of no use either to themselves or others; the
|
|
art of medicine was not designed for their good, and though they were as
|
|
rich as Midas, the sons of Asclepius would have declined to attend them.
|
|
|
|
They were very acute persons, those sons of Asclepius.
|
|
|
|
Naturally so, I replied. Nevertheless, the tragedians and Pindar
|
|
disobeying our behests, although they acknowledge that Asclepius was the
|
|
son of Apollo, say also that he was bribed into healing a rich man
|
|
who was at the point of death, and for this reason he was struck by
|
|
lightning. But we, in accordance with the principle already affirmed by
|
|
us, will not believe them when they tell us both;--if he was the son of
|
|
a god, we maintain that he was not avaricious; or, if he was avaricious,
|
|
he was not the son of a god.
|
|
|
|
All that, Socrates, is excellent; but I should like to put a question to
|
|
you: Ought there not to be good physicians in a State, and are not the
|
|
best those who have treated the greatest number of constitutions good
|
|
and bad? and are not the best judges in like manner those who are
|
|
acquainted with all sorts of moral natures?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, I too would have good judges and good physicians. But do
|
|
you know whom I think good?
|
|
|
|
Will you tell me?
|
|
|
|
I will, if I can. Let me however note that in the same question you join
|
|
two things which are not the same.
|
|
|
|
How so? he asked.
|
|
|
|
Why, I said, you join physicians and judges. Now the most skilful
|
|
physicians are those who, from their youth upwards, have combined with
|
|
the knowledge of their art the greatest experience of disease; they
|
|
had better not be robust in health, and should have had all manner of
|
|
diseases in their own persons. For the body, as I conceive, is not the
|
|
instrument with which they cure the body; in that case we could not
|
|
allow them ever to be or to have been sickly; but they cure the body
|
|
with the mind, and the mind which has become and is sick can cure
|
|
nothing.
|
|
|
|
That is very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
But with the judge it is otherwise; since he governs mind by mind; he
|
|
ought not therefore to have been trained among vicious minds, and to
|
|
have associated with them from youth upwards, and to have gone through
|
|
the whole calendar of crime, only in order that he may quickly infer
|
|
the crimes of others as he might their bodily diseases from his own
|
|
self-consciousness; the honourable mind which is to form a healthy
|
|
judgment should have had no experience or contamination of evil habits
|
|
when young. And this is the reason why in youth good men often appear to
|
|
be simple, and are easily practised upon by the dishonest, because they
|
|
have no examples of what evil is in their own souls.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, they are far too apt to be deceived.
|
|
|
|
Therefore, I said, the judge should not be young; he should have learned
|
|
to know evil, not from his own soul, but from late and long observation
|
|
of the nature of evil in others: knowledge should be his guide, not
|
|
personal experience.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is the ideal of a judge.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I replied, and he will be a good man (which is my answer to your
|
|
question); for he is good who has a good soul. But the cunning and
|
|
suspicious nature of which we spoke,--he who has committed many crimes,
|
|
and fancies himself to be a master in wickedness, when he is amongst
|
|
his fellows, is wonderful in the precautions which he takes, because he
|
|
judges of them by himself: but when he gets into the company of men of
|
|
virtue, who have the experience of age, he appears to be a fool again,
|
|
owing to his unseasonable suspicions; he cannot recognise an honest man,
|
|
because he has no pattern of honesty in himself; at the same time, as
|
|
the bad are more numerous than the good, and he meets with them oftener,
|
|
he thinks himself, and is by others thought to be, rather wise than
|
|
foolish.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then the good and wise judge whom we are seeking is not this man, but
|
|
the other; for vice cannot know virtue too, but a virtuous nature,
|
|
educated by time, will acquire a knowledge both of virtue and vice: the
|
|
virtuous, and not the vicious, man has wisdom--in my opinion.
|
|
|
|
And in mine also.
|
|
|
|
This is the sort of medicine, and this is the sort of law, which you
|
|
will sanction in your state. They will minister to better natures,
|
|
giving health both of soul and of body; but those who are diseased in
|
|
their bodies they will leave to die, and the corrupt and incurable souls
|
|
they will put an end to themselves.
|
|
|
|
That is clearly the best thing both for the patients and for the State.
|
|
|
|
And thus our youth, having been educated only in that simple music
|
|
which, as we said, inspires temperance, will be reluctant to go to law.
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And the musician, who, keeping to the same track, is content to practise
|
|
the simple gymnastic, will have nothing to do with medicine unless in
|
|
some extreme case.
|
|
|
|
That I quite believe.
|
|
|
|
The very exercises and tolls which he undergoes are intended to
|
|
stimulate the spirited element of his nature, and not to increase his
|
|
strength; he will not, like common athletes, use exercise and regimen to
|
|
develope his muscles.
|
|
|
|
Very right, he said.
|
|
|
|
Neither are the two arts of music and gymnastic really designed, as is
|
|
often supposed, the one for the training of the soul, the other for the
|
|
training of the body.
|
|
|
|
What then is the real object of them?
|
|
|
|
I believe, I said, that the teachers of both have in view chiefly the
|
|
improvement of the soul.
|
|
|
|
How can that be? he asked.
|
|
|
|
Did you never observe, I said, the effect on the mind itself of
|
|
exclusive devotion to gymnastic, or the opposite effect of an exclusive
|
|
devotion to music?
|
|
|
|
In what way shown? he said.
|
|
|
|
The one producing a temper of hardness and ferocity, the other of
|
|
softness and effeminacy, I replied.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I am quite aware that the mere athlete becomes too much of
|
|
a savage, and that the mere musician is melted and softened beyond what
|
|
is good for him.
|
|
|
|
Yet surely, I said, this ferocity only comes from spirit, which, if
|
|
rightly educated, would give courage, but, if too much intensified, is
|
|
liable to become hard and brutal.
|
|
|
|
That I quite think.
|
|
|
|
On the other hand the philosopher will have the quality of gentleness.
|
|
And this also, when too much indulged, will turn to softness, but, if
|
|
educated rightly, will be gentle and moderate.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And in our opinion the guardians ought to have both these qualities?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
And both should be in harmony?
|
|
|
|
Beyond question.
|
|
|
|
And the harmonious soul is both temperate and courageous?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the inharmonious is cowardly and boorish?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And, when a man allows music to play upon him and to pour into his soul
|
|
through the funnel of his ears those sweet and soft and melancholy airs
|
|
of which we were just now speaking, and his whole life is passed in
|
|
warbling and the delights of song; in the first stage of the process
|
|
the passion or spirit which is in him is tempered like iron, and made
|
|
useful, instead of brittle and useless. But, if he carries on the
|
|
softening and soothing process, in the next stage he begins to melt and
|
|
waste, until he has wasted away his spirit and cut out the sinews of his
|
|
soul; and he becomes a feeble warrior.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
If the element of spirit is naturally weak in him the change is speedily
|
|
accomplished, but if he have a good deal, then the power of music
|
|
weakening the spirit renders him excitable;--on the least provocation
|
|
he flames up at once, and is speedily extinguished; instead of having
|
|
spirit he grows irritable and passionate and is quite impracticable.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
And so in gymnastics, if a man takes violent exercise and is a great
|
|
feeder, and the reverse of a great student of music and philosophy, at
|
|
first the high condition of his body fills him with pride and spirit,
|
|
and he becomes twice the man that he was.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And what happens? if he do nothing else, and holds no converse with the
|
|
Muses, does not even that intelligence which there may be in him, having
|
|
no taste of any sort of learning or enquiry or thought or culture,
|
|
grow feeble and dull and blind, his mind never waking up or receiving
|
|
nourishment, and his senses not being purged of their mists?
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And he ends by becoming a hater of philosophy, uncivilized, never using
|
|
the weapon of persuasion,--he is like a wild beast, all violence and
|
|
fierceness, and knows no other way of dealing; and he lives in all
|
|
ignorance and evil conditions, and has no sense of propriety and grace.
|
|
|
|
That is quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And as there are two principles of human nature, one the spirited
|
|
and the other the philosophical, some God, as I should say, has given
|
|
mankind two arts answering to them (and only indirectly to the soul
|
|
and body), in order that these two principles (like the strings of
|
|
an instrument) may be relaxed or drawn tighter until they are duly
|
|
harmonized.
|
|
|
|
That appears to be the intention.
|
|
|
|
And he who mingles music with gymnastic in the fairest proportions, and
|
|
best attempers them to the soul, may be rightly called the true musician
|
|
and harmonist in a far higher sense than the tuner of the strings.
|
|
|
|
You are quite right, Socrates.
|
|
|
|
And such a presiding genius will be always required in our State if the
|
|
government is to last.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he will be absolutely necessary.
|
|
|
|
Such, then, are our principles of nurture and education: Where would be
|
|
the use of going into further details about the dances of our citizens,
|
|
or about their hunting and coursing, their gymnastic and equestrian
|
|
contests? For these all follow the general principle, and having found
|
|
that, we shall have no difficulty in discovering them.
|
|
|
|
I dare say that there will be no difficulty.
|
|
|
|
Very good, I said; then what is the next question? Must we not ask who
|
|
are to be rulers and who subjects?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
There can be no doubt that the elder must rule the younger.
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And that the best of these must rule.
|
|
|
|
That is also clear.
|
|
|
|
Now, are not the best husbandmen those who are most devoted to
|
|
husbandry?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And as we are to have the best of guardians for our city, must they not
|
|
be those who have most the character of guardians?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And to this end they ought to be wise and efficient, and to have a
|
|
special care of the State?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And a man will be most likely to care about that which he loves?
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
And he will be most likely to love that which he regards as having the
|
|
same interests with himself, and that of which the good or evil fortune
|
|
is supposed by him at any time most to affect his own?
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then there must be a selection. Let us note among the guardians those
|
|
who in their whole life show the greatest eagerness to do what is for
|
|
the good of their country, and the greatest repugnance to do what is
|
|
against her interests.
|
|
|
|
Those are the right men.
|
|
|
|
And they will have to be watched at every age, in order that we may see
|
|
whether they preserve their resolution, and never, under the influence
|
|
either of force or enchantment, forget or cast off their sense of duty
|
|
to the State.
|
|
|
|
How cast off? he said.
|
|
|
|
I will explain to you, I replied. A resolution may go out of a man's
|
|
mind either with his will or against his will; with his will when he
|
|
gets rid of a falsehood and learns better, against his will whenever he
|
|
is deprived of a truth.
|
|
|
|
I understand, he said, the willing loss of a resolution; the meaning of
|
|
the unwilling I have yet to learn.
|
|
|
|
Why, I said, do you not see that men are unwillingly deprived of good,
|
|
and willingly of evil? Is not to have lost the truth an evil, and to
|
|
possess the truth a good? and you would agree that to conceive things as
|
|
they are is to possess the truth?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied; I agree with you in thinking that mankind are deprived
|
|
of truth against their will.
|
|
|
|
And is not this involuntary deprivation caused either by theft, or
|
|
force, or enchantment?
|
|
|
|
Still, he replied, I do not understand you.
|
|
|
|
I fear that I must have been talking darkly, like the tragedians. I only
|
|
mean that some men are changed by persuasion and that others forget;
|
|
argument steals away the hearts of one class, and time of the other; and
|
|
this I call theft. Now you understand me?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Those again who are forced, are those whom the violence of some pain or
|
|
grief compels to change their opinion.
|
|
|
|
I understand, he said, and you are quite right.
|
|
|
|
And you would also acknowledge that the enchanted are those who change
|
|
their minds either under the softer influence of pleasure, or the
|
|
sterner influence of fear?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; everything that deceives may be said to enchant.
|
|
|
|
Therefore, as I was just now saying, we must enquire who are the best
|
|
guardians of their own conviction that what they think the interest
|
|
of the State is to be the rule of their lives. We must watch them from
|
|
their youth upwards, and make them perform actions in which they are
|
|
most likely to forget or to be deceived, and he who remembers and is
|
|
not deceived is to be selected, and he who fails in the trial is to be
|
|
rejected. That will be the way?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And there should also be toils and pains and conflicts prescribed for
|
|
them, in which they will be made to give further proof of the same
|
|
qualities.
|
|
|
|
Very right, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And then, I said, we must try them with enchantments--that is the third
|
|
sort of test--and see what will be their behaviour: like those who take
|
|
colts amid noise and tumult to see if they are of a timid nature, so
|
|
must we take our youth amid terrors of some kind, and again pass them
|
|
into pleasures, and prove them more thoroughly than gold is proved in
|
|
the furnace, that we may discover whether they are armed against
|
|
all enchantments, and of a noble bearing always, good guardians of
|
|
themselves and of the music which they have learned, and retaining under
|
|
all circumstances a rhythmical and harmonious nature, such as will be
|
|
most serviceable to the individual and to the State. And he who at every
|
|
age, as boy and youth and in mature life, has come out of the trial
|
|
victorious and pure, shall be appointed a ruler and guardian of the
|
|
State; he shall be honoured in life and death, and shall receive
|
|
sepulture and other memorials of honour, the greatest that we have to
|
|
give. But him who fails, we must reject. I am inclined to think that
|
|
this is the sort of way in which our rulers and guardians should be
|
|
chosen and appointed. I speak generally, and not with any pretension to
|
|
exactness.
|
|
|
|
And, speaking generally, I agree with you, he said.
|
|
|
|
And perhaps the word 'guardian' in the fullest sense ought to be applied
|
|
to this higher class only who preserve us against foreign enemies and
|
|
maintain peace among our citizens at home, that the one may not have the
|
|
will, or the others the power, to harm us. The young men whom we
|
|
before called guardians may be more properly designated auxiliaries and
|
|
supporters of the principles of the rulers.
|
|
|
|
I agree with you, he said.
|
|
|
|
How then may we devise one of those needful falsehoods of which we
|
|
lately spoke--just one royal lie which may deceive the rulers, if that
|
|
be possible, and at any rate the rest of the city?
|
|
|
|
What sort of lie? he said.
|
|
|
|
Nothing new, I replied; only an old Phoenician tale (Laws) of what has
|
|
often occurred before now in other places, (as the poets say, and have
|
|
made the world believe,) though not in our time, and I do not know
|
|
whether such an event could ever happen again, or could now even be made
|
|
probable, if it did.
|
|
|
|
How your words seem to hesitate on your lips!
|
|
|
|
You will not wonder, I replied, at my hesitation when you have heard.
|
|
|
|
Speak, he said, and fear not.
|
|
|
|
Well then, I will speak, although I really know not how to look you
|
|
in the face, or in what words to utter the audacious fiction, which
|
|
I propose to communicate gradually, first to the rulers, then to the
|
|
soldiers, and lastly to the people. They are to be told that their youth
|
|
was a dream, and the education and training which they received from
|
|
us, an appearance only; in reality during all that time they were being
|
|
formed and fed in the womb of the earth, where they themselves and their
|
|
arms and appurtenances were manufactured; when they were completed, the
|
|
earth, their mother, sent them up; and so, their country being their
|
|
mother and also their nurse, they are bound to advise for her good, and
|
|
to defend her against attacks, and her citizens they are to regard as
|
|
children of the earth and their own brothers.
|
|
|
|
You had good reason, he said, to be ashamed of the lie which you were
|
|
going to tell.
|
|
|
|
True, I replied, but there is more coming; I have only told you half.
|
|
Citizens, we shall say to them in our tale, you are brothers, yet God
|
|
has framed you differently. Some of you have the power of command, and
|
|
in the composition of these he has mingled gold, wherefore also
|
|
they have the greatest honour; others he has made of silver, to be
|
|
auxiliaries; others again who are to be husbandmen and craftsmen he has
|
|
composed of brass and iron; and the species will generally be preserved
|
|
in the children. But as all are of the same original stock, a golden
|
|
parent will sometimes have a silver son, or a silver parent a golden
|
|
son. And God proclaims as a first principle to the rulers, and above all
|
|
else, that there is nothing which they should so anxiously guard, or of
|
|
which they are to be such good guardians, as of the purity of the race.
|
|
They should observe what elements mingle in their offspring; for if the
|
|
son of a golden or silver parent has an admixture of brass and iron,
|
|
then nature orders a transposition of ranks, and the eye of the ruler
|
|
must not be pitiful towards the child because he has to descend in the
|
|
scale and become a husbandman or artisan, just as there may be sons of
|
|
artisans who having an admixture of gold or silver in them are raised
|
|
to honour, and become guardians or auxiliaries. For an oracle says that
|
|
when a man of brass or iron guards the State, it will be destroyed. Such
|
|
is the tale; is there any possibility of making our citizens believe in
|
|
it?
|
|
|
|
Not in the present generation, he replied; there is no way of
|
|
accomplishing this; but their sons may be made to believe in the tale,
|
|
and their sons' sons, and posterity after them.
|
|
|
|
I see the difficulty, I replied; yet the fostering of such a belief will
|
|
make them care more for the city and for one another. Enough, however,
|
|
of the fiction, which may now fly abroad upon the wings of rumour, while
|
|
we arm our earth-born heroes, and lead them forth under the command of
|
|
their rulers. Let them look round and select a spot whence they can best
|
|
suppress insurrection, if any prove refractory within, and also defend
|
|
themselves against enemies, who like wolves may come down on the fold
|
|
from without; there let them encamp, and when they have encamped, let
|
|
them sacrifice to the proper Gods and prepare their dwellings.
|
|
|
|
Just so, he said.
|
|
|
|
And their dwellings must be such as will shield them against the cold of
|
|
winter and the heat of summer.
|
|
|
|
I suppose that you mean houses, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; but they must be the houses of soldiers, and not of
|
|
shop-keepers.
|
|
|
|
What is the difference? he said.
|
|
|
|
That I will endeavour to explain, I replied. To keep watch-dogs, who,
|
|
from want of discipline or hunger, or some evil habit or other, would
|
|
turn upon the sheep and worry them, and behave not like dogs but wolves,
|
|
would be a foul and monstrous thing in a shepherd?
|
|
|
|
Truly monstrous, he said.
|
|
|
|
And therefore every care must be taken that our auxiliaries, being
|
|
stronger than our citizens, may not grow to be too much for them and
|
|
become savage tyrants instead of friends and allies?
|
|
|
|
Yes, great care should be taken.
|
|
|
|
And would not a really good education furnish the best safeguard?
|
|
|
|
But they are well-educated already, he replied.
|
|
|
|
I cannot be so confident, my dear Glaucon, I said; I am much more
|
|
certain that they ought to be, and that true education, whatever that
|
|
may be, will have the greatest tendency to civilize and humanize them
|
|
in their relations to one another, and to those who are under their
|
|
protection.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And not only their education, but their habitations, and all that
|
|
belongs to them, should be such as will neither impair their virtue as
|
|
guardians, nor tempt them to prey upon the other citizens. Any man of
|
|
sense must acknowledge that.
|
|
|
|
He must.
|
|
|
|
Then now let us consider what will be their way of life, if they are to
|
|
realize our idea of them. In the first place, none of them should have
|
|
any property of his own beyond what is absolutely necessary; neither
|
|
should they have a private house or store closed against any one who has
|
|
a mind to enter; their provisions should be only such as are required
|
|
by trained warriors, who are men of temperance and courage; they should
|
|
agree to receive from the citizens a fixed rate of pay, enough to meet
|
|
the expenses of the year and no more; and they will go to mess and live
|
|
together like soldiers in a camp. Gold and silver we will tell them
|
|
that they have from God; the diviner metal is within them, and they have
|
|
therefore no need of the dross which is current among men, and ought not
|
|
to pollute the divine by any such earthly admixture; for that commoner
|
|
metal has been the source of many unholy deeds, but their own is
|
|
undefiled. And they alone of all the citizens may not touch or handle
|
|
silver or gold, or be under the same roof with them, or wear them, or
|
|
drink from them. And this will be their salvation, and they will be the
|
|
saviours of the State. But should they ever acquire homes or lands
|
|
or moneys of their own, they will become housekeepers and husbandmen
|
|
instead of guardians, enemies and tyrants instead of allies of the other
|
|
citizens; hating and being hated, plotting and being plotted against,
|
|
they will pass their whole life in much greater terror of internal than
|
|
of external enemies, and the hour of ruin, both to themselves and to the
|
|
rest of the State, will be at hand. For all which reasons may we not
|
|
say that thus shall our State be ordered, and that these shall be the
|
|
regulations appointed by us for guardians concerning their houses and
|
|
all other matters?
|
|
|
|
Yes, said Glaucon.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK IV.
|
|
|
|
Here Adeimantus interposed a question: How would you answer, Socrates,
|
|
said he, if a person were to say that you are making these people
|
|
miserable, and that they are the cause of their own unhappiness; the
|
|
city in fact belongs to them, but they are none the better for it;
|
|
whereas other men acquire lands, and build large and handsome houses,
|
|
and have everything handsome about them, offering sacrifices to the gods
|
|
on their own account, and practising hospitality; moreover, as you were
|
|
saying just now, they have gold and silver, and all that is usual among
|
|
the favourites of fortune; but our poor citizens are no better than
|
|
mercenaries who are quartered in the city and are always mounting guard?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and you may add that they are only fed, and not paid in
|
|
addition to their food, like other men; and therefore they cannot, if
|
|
they would, take a journey of pleasure; they have no money to spend on
|
|
a mistress or any other luxurious fancy, which, as the world goes, is
|
|
thought to be happiness; and many other accusations of the same nature
|
|
might be added.
|
|
|
|
But, said he, let us suppose all this to be included in the charge.
|
|
|
|
You mean to ask, I said, what will be our answer?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
If we proceed along the old path, my belief, I said, is that we shall
|
|
find the answer. And our answer will be that, even as they are, our
|
|
guardians may very likely be the happiest of men; but that our aim in
|
|
founding the State was not the disproportionate happiness of any one
|
|
class, but the greatest happiness of the whole; we thought that in a
|
|
State which is ordered with a view to the good of the whole we should
|
|
be most likely to find justice, and in the ill-ordered State injustice:
|
|
and, having found them, we might then decide which of the two is the
|
|
happier. At present, I take it, we are fashioning the happy State,
|
|
not piecemeal, or with a view of making a few happy citizens, but as a
|
|
whole; and by-and-by we will proceed to view the opposite kind of State.
|
|
Suppose that we were painting a statue, and some one came up to us
|
|
and said, Why do you not put the most beautiful colours on the most
|
|
beautiful parts of the body--the eyes ought to be purple, but you have
|
|
made them black--to him we might fairly answer, Sir, you would not
|
|
surely have us beautify the eyes to such a degree that they are no
|
|
longer eyes; consider rather whether, by giving this and the other
|
|
features their due proportion, we make the whole beautiful. And so I say
|
|
to you, do not compel us to assign to the guardians a sort of happiness
|
|
which will make them anything but guardians; for we too can clothe our
|
|
husbandmen in royal apparel, and set crowns of gold on their heads, and
|
|
bid them till the ground as much as they like, and no more. Our potters
|
|
also might be allowed to repose on couches, and feast by the fireside,
|
|
passing round the winecup, while their wheel is conveniently at hand,
|
|
and working at pottery only as much as they like; in this way we might
|
|
make every class happy--and then, as you imagine, the whole State would
|
|
be happy. But do not put this idea into our heads; for, if we listen
|
|
to you, the husbandman will be no longer a husbandman, the potter will
|
|
cease to be a potter, and no one will have the character of any distinct
|
|
class in the State. Now this is not of much consequence where the
|
|
corruption of society, and pretension to be what you are not, is
|
|
confined to cobblers; but when the guardians of the laws and of the
|
|
government are only seeming and not real guardians, then see how they
|
|
turn the State upside down; and on the other hand they alone have the
|
|
power of giving order and happiness to the State. We mean our guardians
|
|
to be true saviours and not the destroyers of the State, whereas our
|
|
opponent is thinking of peasants at a festival, who are enjoying a life
|
|
of revelry, not of citizens who are doing their duty to the State. But,
|
|
if so, we mean different things, and he is speaking of something which
|
|
is not a State. And therefore we must consider whether in appointing
|
|
our guardians we would look to their greatest happiness individually, or
|
|
whether this principle of happiness does not rather reside in the State
|
|
as a whole. But if the latter be the truth, then the guardians and
|
|
auxiliaries, and all others equally with them, must be compelled or
|
|
induced to do their own work in the best way. And thus the whole State
|
|
will grow up in a noble order, and the several classes will receive the
|
|
proportion of happiness which nature assigns to them.
|
|
|
|
I think that you are quite right.
|
|
|
|
I wonder whether you will agree with another remark which occurs to me.
|
|
|
|
What may that be?
|
|
|
|
There seem to be two causes of the deterioration of the arts.
|
|
|
|
What are they?
|
|
|
|
Wealth, I said, and poverty.
|
|
|
|
How do they act?
|
|
|
|
The process is as follows: When a potter becomes rich, will he, think
|
|
you, any longer take the same pains with his art?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
He will grow more and more indolent and careless?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And the result will be that he becomes a worse potter?
|
|
|
|
Yes; he greatly deteriorates.
|
|
|
|
But, on the other hand, if he has no money, and cannot provide himself
|
|
with tools or instruments, he will not work equally well himself, nor
|
|
will he teach his sons or apprentices to work equally well.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Then, under the influence either of poverty or of wealth, workmen and
|
|
their work are equally liable to degenerate?
|
|
|
|
That is evident.
|
|
|
|
Here, then, is a discovery of new evils, I said, against which
|
|
the guardians will have to watch, or they will creep into the city
|
|
unobserved.
|
|
|
|
What evils?
|
|
|
|
Wealth, I said, and poverty; the one is the parent of luxury and
|
|
indolence, and the other of meanness and viciousness, and both of
|
|
discontent.
|
|
|
|
That is very true, he replied; but still I should like to know,
|
|
Socrates, how our city will be able to go to war, especially against an
|
|
enemy who is rich and powerful, if deprived of the sinews of war.
|
|
|
|
There would certainly be a difficulty, I replied, in going to war with
|
|
one such enemy; but there is no difficulty where there are two of them.
|
|
|
|
How so? he asked.
|
|
|
|
In the first place, I said, if we have to fight, our side will be
|
|
trained warriors fighting against an army of rich men.
|
|
|
|
That is true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And do you not suppose, Adeimantus, that a single boxer who was
|
|
perfect in his art would easily be a match for two stout and well-to-do
|
|
gentlemen who were not boxers?
|
|
|
|
Hardly, if they came upon him at once.
|
|
|
|
What, now, I said, if he were able to run away and then turn and strike
|
|
at the one who first came up? And supposing he were to do this several
|
|
times under the heat of a scorching sun, might he not, being an expert,
|
|
overturn more than one stout personage?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said, there would be nothing wonderful in that.
|
|
|
|
And yet rich men probably have a greater superiority in the science and
|
|
practise of boxing than they have in military qualities.
|
|
|
|
Likely enough.
|
|
|
|
Then we may assume that our athletes will be able to fight with two or
|
|
three times their own number?
|
|
|
|
I agree with you, for I think you right.
|
|
|
|
And suppose that, before engaging, our citizens send an embassy to one
|
|
of the two cities, telling them what is the truth: Silver and gold we
|
|
neither have nor are permitted to have, but you may; do you therefore
|
|
come and help us in war, and take the spoils of the other city: Who,
|
|
on hearing these words, would choose to fight against lean wiry dogs,
|
|
rather than, with the dogs on their side, against fat and tender sheep?
|
|
|
|
That is not likely; and yet there might be a danger to the poor State if
|
|
the wealth of many States were to be gathered into one.
|
|
|
|
But how simple of you to use the term State at all of any but our own!
|
|
|
|
Why so?
|
|
|
|
You ought to speak of other States in the plural number; not one of
|
|
them is a city, but many cities, as they say in the game. For indeed any
|
|
city, however small, is in fact divided into two, one the city of the
|
|
poor, the other of the rich; these are at war with one another; and in
|
|
either there are many smaller divisions, and you would be altogether
|
|
beside the mark if you treated them all as a single State. But if you
|
|
deal with them as many, and give the wealth or power or persons of the
|
|
one to the others, you will always have a great many friends and not
|
|
many enemies. And your State, while the wise order which has now been
|
|
prescribed continues to prevail in her, will be the greatest of States,
|
|
I do not mean to say in reputation or appearance, but in deed and truth,
|
|
though she number not more than a thousand defenders. A single State
|
|
which is her equal you will hardly find, either among Hellenes or
|
|
barbarians, though many that appear to be as great and many times
|
|
greater.
|
|
|
|
That is most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And what, I said, will be the best limit for our rulers to fix when they
|
|
are considering the size of the State and the amount of territory which
|
|
they are to include, and beyond which they will not go?
|
|
|
|
What limit would you propose?
|
|
|
|
I would allow the State to increase so far as is consistent with unity;
|
|
that, I think, is the proper limit.
|
|
|
|
Very good, he said.
|
|
|
|
Here then, I said, is another order which will have to be conveyed to
|
|
our guardians: Let our city be accounted neither large nor small, but
|
|
one and self-sufficing.
|
|
|
|
And surely, said he, this is not a very severe order which we impose
|
|
upon them.
|
|
|
|
And the other, said I, of which we were speaking before is lighter
|
|
still,--I mean the duty of degrading the offspring of the guardians when
|
|
inferior, and of elevating into the rank of guardians the offspring of
|
|
the lower classes, when naturally superior. The intention was, that, in
|
|
the case of the citizens generally, each individual should be put to the
|
|
use for which nature intended him, one to one work, and then every man
|
|
would do his own business, and be one and not many; and so the whole
|
|
city would be one and not many.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; that is not so difficult.
|
|
|
|
The regulations which we are prescribing, my good Adeimantus, are not,
|
|
as might be supposed, a number of great principles, but trifles all,
|
|
if care be taken, as the saying is, of the one great thing,--a thing,
|
|
however, which I would rather call, not great, but sufficient for our
|
|
purpose.
|
|
|
|
What may that be? he asked.
|
|
|
|
Education, I said, and nurture: If our citizens are well educated,
|
|
and grow into sensible men, they will easily see their way through all
|
|
these, as well as other matters which I omit; such, for example, as
|
|
marriage, the possession of women and the procreation of children, which
|
|
will all follow the general principle that friends have all things in
|
|
common, as the proverb says.
|
|
|
|
That will be the best way of settling them.
|
|
|
|
Also, I said, the State, if once started well, moves with accumulating
|
|
force like a wheel. For good nurture and education implant good
|
|
constitutions, and these good constitutions taking root in a good
|
|
education improve more and more, and this improvement affects the breed
|
|
in man as in other animals.
|
|
|
|
Very possibly, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then to sum up: This is the point to which, above all, the attention of
|
|
our rulers should be directed,--that music and gymnastic be preserved in
|
|
their original form, and no innovation made. They must do their utmost
|
|
to maintain them intact. And when any one says that mankind most regard
|
|
|
|
'The newest song which the singers have,'
|
|
|
|
they will be afraid that he may be praising, not new songs, but a new
|
|
kind of song; and this ought not to be praised, or conceived to be the
|
|
meaning of the poet; for any musical innovation is full of danger to the
|
|
whole State, and ought to be prohibited. So Damon tells me, and I
|
|
can quite believe him;--he says that when modes of music change, the
|
|
fundamental laws of the State always change with them.
|
|
|
|
Yes, said Adeimantus; and you may add my suffrage to Damon's and your
|
|
own.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, our guardians must lay the foundations of their fortress
|
|
in music?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; the lawlessness of which you speak too easily steals in.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I replied, in the form of amusement; and at first sight it appears
|
|
harmless.
|
|
|
|
Why, yes, he said, and there is no harm; were it not that little by
|
|
little this spirit of licence, finding a home, imperceptibly penetrates
|
|
into manners and customs; whence, issuing with greater force, it invades
|
|
contracts between man and man, and from contracts goes on to laws and
|
|
constitutions, in utter recklessness, ending at last, Socrates, by an
|
|
overthrow of all rights, private as well as public.
|
|
|
|
Is that true? I said.
|
|
|
|
That is my belief, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then, as I was saying, our youth should be trained from the first in
|
|
a stricter system, for if amusements become lawless, and the youths
|
|
themselves become lawless, they can never grow up into well-conducted
|
|
and virtuous citizens.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And when they have made a good beginning in play, and by the help of
|
|
music have gained the habit of good order, then this habit of order, in
|
|
a manner how unlike the lawless play of the others! will accompany them
|
|
in all their actions and be a principle of growth to them, and if there
|
|
be any fallen places in the State will raise them up again.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Thus educated, they will invent for themselves any lesser rules which
|
|
their predecessors have altogether neglected.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I mean such things as these:--when the young are to be silent before
|
|
their elders; how they are to show respect to them by standing and
|
|
making them sit; what honour is due to parents; what garments or shoes
|
|
are to be worn; the mode of dressing the hair; deportment and manners in
|
|
general. You would agree with me?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
But there is, I think, small wisdom in legislating about such
|
|
matters,--I doubt if it is ever done; nor are any precise written
|
|
enactments about them likely to be lasting.
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
It would seem, Adeimantus, that the direction in which education starts
|
|
a man, will determine his future life. Does not like always attract
|
|
like?
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
Until some one rare and grand result is reached which may be good, and
|
|
may be the reverse of good?
|
|
|
|
That is not to be denied.
|
|
|
|
And for this reason, I said, I shall not attempt to legislate further
|
|
about them.
|
|
|
|
Naturally enough, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Well, and about the business of the agora, and the ordinary dealings
|
|
between man and man, or again about agreements with artisans; about
|
|
insult and injury, or the commencement of actions, and the appointment
|
|
of juries, what would you say? there may also arise questions about
|
|
any impositions and exactions of market and harbour dues which may
|
|
be required, and in general about the regulations of markets, police,
|
|
harbours, and the like. But, oh heavens! shall we condescend to
|
|
legislate on any of these particulars?
|
|
|
|
I think, he said, that there is no need to impose laws about them on
|
|
good men; what regulations are necessary they will find out soon enough
|
|
for themselves.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, my friend, if God will only preserve to them the laws which
|
|
we have given them.
|
|
|
|
And without divine help, said Adeimantus, they will go on for ever
|
|
making and mending their laws and their lives in the hope of attaining
|
|
perfection.
|
|
|
|
You would compare them, I said, to those invalids who, having no
|
|
self-restraint, will not leave off their habits of intemperance?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and what a delightful life they lead! they are always
|
|
doctoring and increasing and complicating their disorders, and always
|
|
fancying that they will be cured by any nostrum which anybody advises
|
|
them to try.
|
|
|
|
Such cases are very common, he said, with invalids of this sort.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I replied; and the charming thing is that they deem him their worst
|
|
enemy who tells them the truth, which is simply that, unless they give
|
|
up eating and drinking and wenching and idling, neither drug nor cautery
|
|
nor spell nor amulet nor any other remedy will avail.
|
|
|
|
Charming! he replied. I see nothing charming in going into a passion
|
|
with a man who tells you what is right.
|
|
|
|
These gentlemen, I said, do not seem to be in your good graces.
|
|
|
|
Assuredly not.
|
|
|
|
Nor would you praise the behaviour of States which act like the men whom
|
|
I was just now describing. For are there not ill-ordered States in
|
|
which the citizens are forbidden under pain of death to alter the
|
|
constitution; and yet he who most sweetly courts those who live under
|
|
this regime and indulges them and fawns upon them and is skilful in
|
|
anticipating and gratifying their humours is held to be a great and
|
|
good statesman--do not these States resemble the persons whom I was
|
|
describing?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; the States are as bad as the men; and I am very far from
|
|
praising them.
|
|
|
|
But do you not admire, I said, the coolness and dexterity of these ready
|
|
ministers of political corruption?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I do; but not of all of them, for there are some whom
|
|
the applause of the multitude has deluded into the belief that they are
|
|
really statesmen, and these are not much to be admired.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? I said; you should have more feeling for them. When a
|
|
man cannot measure, and a great many others who cannot measure declare
|
|
that he is four cubits high, can he help believing what they say?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he said, certainly not in that case.
|
|
|
|
Well, then, do not be angry with them; for are they not as good as a
|
|
play, trying their hand at paltry reforms such as I was describing; they
|
|
are always fancying that by legislation they will make an end of frauds
|
|
in contracts, and the other rascalities which I was mentioning, not
|
|
knowing that they are in reality cutting off the heads of a hydra?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; that is just what they are doing.
|
|
|
|
I conceive, I said, that the true legislator will not trouble
|
|
himself with this class of enactments whether concerning laws or the
|
|
constitution either in an ill-ordered or in a well-ordered State; for
|
|
in the former they are quite useless, and in the latter there will be no
|
|
difficulty in devising them; and many of them will naturally flow out of
|
|
our previous regulations.
|
|
|
|
What, then, he said, is still remaining to us of the work of
|
|
legislation?
|
|
|
|
Nothing to us, I replied; but to Apollo, the God of Delphi, there
|
|
remains the ordering of the greatest and noblest and chiefest things of
|
|
all.
|
|
|
|
Which are they? he said.
|
|
|
|
The institution of temples and sacrifices, and the entire service of
|
|
gods, demigods, and heroes; also the ordering of the repositories of
|
|
the dead, and the rites which have to be observed by him who would
|
|
propitiate the inhabitants of the world below. These are matters of
|
|
which we are ignorant ourselves, and as founders of a city we should be
|
|
unwise in trusting them to any interpreter but our ancestral deity. He
|
|
is the god who sits in the centre, on the navel of the earth, and he is
|
|
the interpreter of religion to all mankind.
|
|
|
|
You are right, and we will do as you propose.
|
|
|
|
But where, amid all this, is justice? son of Ariston, tell me where. Now
|
|
that our city has been made habitable, light a candle and search, and
|
|
get your brother and Polemarchus and the rest of our friends to help,
|
|
and let us see where in it we can discover justice and where injustice,
|
|
and in what they differ from one another, and which of them the man who
|
|
would be happy should have for his portion, whether seen or unseen by
|
|
gods and men.
|
|
|
|
Nonsense, said Glaucon: did you not promise to search yourself, saying
|
|
that for you not to help justice in her need would be an impiety?
|
|
|
|
I do not deny that I said so, and as you remind me, I will be as good as
|
|
my word; but you must join.
|
|
|
|
We will, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Well, then, I hope to make the discovery in this way: I mean to begin
|
|
with the assumption that our State, if rightly ordered, is perfect.
|
|
|
|
That is most certain.
|
|
|
|
And being perfect, is therefore wise and valiant and temperate and just.
|
|
|
|
That is likewise clear.
|
|
|
|
And whichever of these qualities we find in the State, the one which is
|
|
not found will be the residue?
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
If there were four things, and we were searching for one of them,
|
|
wherever it might be, the one sought for might be known to us from the
|
|
first, and there would be no further trouble; or we might know the other
|
|
three first, and then the fourth would clearly be the one left.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And is not a similar method to be pursued about the virtues, which are
|
|
also four in number?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
First among the virtues found in the State, wisdom comes into view, and
|
|
in this I detect a certain peculiarity.
|
|
|
|
What is that?
|
|
|
|
The State which we have been describing is said to be wise as being good
|
|
in counsel?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And good counsel is clearly a kind of knowledge, for not by ignorance,
|
|
but by knowledge, do men counsel well?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And the kinds of knowledge in a State are many and diverse?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
There is the knowledge of the carpenter; but is that the sort of
|
|
knowledge which gives a city the title of wise and good in counsel?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not; that would only give a city the reputation of skill in
|
|
carpentering.
|
|
|
|
Then a city is not to be called wise because possessing a knowledge
|
|
which counsels for the best about wooden implements?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Nor by reason of a knowledge which advises about brazen pots, I said,
|
|
nor as possessing any other similar knowledge?
|
|
|
|
Not by reason of any of them, he said.
|
|
|
|
Nor yet by reason of a knowledge which cultivates the earth; that would
|
|
give the city the name of agricultural?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, and is there any knowledge in our recently-founded State
|
|
among any of the citizens which advises, not about any particular thing
|
|
in the State, but about the whole, and considers how a State can best
|
|
deal with itself and with other States?
|
|
|
|
There certainly is.
|
|
|
|
And what is this knowledge, and among whom is it found? I asked.
|
|
|
|
It is the knowledge of the guardians, he replied, and is found among
|
|
those whom we were just now describing as perfect guardians.
|
|
|
|
And what is the name which the city derives from the possession of this
|
|
sort of knowledge?
|
|
|
|
The name of good in counsel and truly wise.
|
|
|
|
And will there be in our city more of these true guardians or more
|
|
smiths?
|
|
|
|
The smiths, he replied, will be far more numerous.
|
|
|
|
Will not the guardians be the smallest of all the classes who receive a
|
|
name from the profession of some kind of knowledge?
|
|
|
|
Much the smallest.
|
|
|
|
And so by reason of the smallest part or class, and of the knowledge
|
|
which resides in this presiding and ruling part of itself, the whole
|
|
State, being thus constituted according to nature, will be wise; and
|
|
this, which has the only knowledge worthy to be called wisdom, has been
|
|
ordained by nature to be of all classes the least.
|
|
|
|
Most true.
|
|
|
|
Thus, then, I said, the nature and place in the State of one of the four
|
|
virtues has somehow or other been discovered.
|
|
|
|
And, in my humble opinion, very satisfactorily discovered, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Again, I said, there is no difficulty in seeing the nature of courage,
|
|
and in what part that quality resides which gives the name of courageous
|
|
to the State.
|
|
|
|
How do you mean?
|
|
|
|
Why, I said, every one who calls any State courageous or cowardly, will
|
|
be thinking of the part which fights and goes out to war on the State's
|
|
behalf.
|
|
|
|
No one, he replied, would ever think of any other.
|
|
|
|
The rest of the citizens may be courageous or may be cowardly, but their
|
|
courage or cowardice will not, as I conceive, have the effect of making
|
|
the city either the one or the other.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
The city will be courageous in virtue of a portion of herself which
|
|
preserves under all circumstances that opinion about the nature of
|
|
things to be feared and not to be feared in which our legislator
|
|
educated them; and this is what you term courage.
|
|
|
|
I should like to hear what you are saying once more, for I do not think
|
|
that I perfectly understand you.
|
|
|
|
I mean that courage is a kind of salvation.
|
|
|
|
Salvation of what?
|
|
|
|
Of the opinion respecting things to be feared, what they are and of
|
|
what nature, which the law implants through education; and I mean by the
|
|
words 'under all circumstances' to intimate that in pleasure or in pain,
|
|
or under the influence of desire or fear, a man preserves, and does not
|
|
lose this opinion. Shall I give you an illustration?
|
|
|
|
If you please.
|
|
|
|
You know, I said, that dyers, when they want to dye wool for making the
|
|
true sea-purple, begin by selecting their white colour first; this they
|
|
prepare and dress with much care and pains, in order that the white
|
|
ground may take the purple hue in full perfection. The dyeing then
|
|
proceeds; and whatever is dyed in this manner becomes a fast colour,
|
|
and no washing either with lyes or without them can take away the bloom.
|
|
But, when the ground has not been duly prepared, you will have noticed
|
|
how poor is the look either of purple or of any other colour.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; I know that they have a washed-out and ridiculous
|
|
appearance.
|
|
|
|
Then now, I said, you will understand what our object was in selecting
|
|
our soldiers, and educating them in music and gymnastic; we were
|
|
contriving influences which would prepare them to take the dye of the
|
|
laws in perfection, and the colour of their opinion about dangers and
|
|
of every other opinion was to be indelibly fixed by their nurture
|
|
and training, not to be washed away by such potent lyes as
|
|
pleasure--mightier agent far in washing the soul than any soda or lye;
|
|
or by sorrow, fear, and desire, the mightiest of all other solvents. And
|
|
this sort of universal saving power of true opinion in conformity with
|
|
law about real and false dangers I call and maintain to be courage,
|
|
unless you disagree.
|
|
|
|
But I agree, he replied; for I suppose that you mean to exclude mere
|
|
uninstructed courage, such as that of a wild beast or of a slave--this,
|
|
in your opinion, is not the courage which the law ordains, and ought to
|
|
have another name.
|
|
|
|
Most certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then I may infer courage to be such as you describe?
|
|
|
|
Why, yes, said I, you may, and if you add the words 'of a citizen,'
|
|
you will not be far wrong;--hereafter, if you like, we will carry the
|
|
examination further, but at present we are seeking not for courage but
|
|
justice; and for the purpose of our enquiry we have said enough.
|
|
|
|
You are right, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Two virtues remain to be discovered in the State--first, temperance, and
|
|
then justice which is the end of our search.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Now, can we find justice without troubling ourselves about temperance?
|
|
|
|
I do not know how that can be accomplished, he said, nor do I desire
|
|
that justice should be brought to light and temperance lost sight of;
|
|
and therefore I wish that you would do me the favour of considering
|
|
temperance first.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, I replied, I should not be justified in refusing your
|
|
request.
|
|
|
|
Then consider, he said.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I replied; I will; and as far as I can at present see, the virtue
|
|
of temperance has more of the nature of harmony and symphony than the
|
|
preceding.
|
|
|
|
How so? he asked.
|
|
|
|
Temperance, I replied, is the ordering or controlling of certain
|
|
pleasures and desires; this is curiously enough implied in the saying of
|
|
'a man being his own master;' and other traces of the same notion may be
|
|
found in language.
|
|
|
|
No doubt, he said.
|
|
|
|
There is something ridiculous in the expression 'master of himself;' for
|
|
the master is also the servant and the servant the master; and in all
|
|
these modes of speaking the same person is denoted.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
The meaning is, I believe, that in the human soul there is a better and
|
|
also a worse principle; and when the better has the worse under control,
|
|
then a man is said to be master of himself; and this is a term of
|
|
praise: but when, owing to evil education or association, the better
|
|
principle, which is also the smaller, is overwhelmed by the greater mass
|
|
of the worse--in this case he is blamed and is called the slave of self
|
|
and unprincipled.
|
|
|
|
Yes, there is reason in that.
|
|
|
|
And now, I said, look at our newly-created State, and there you will
|
|
find one of these two conditions realized; for the State, as you
|
|
will acknowledge, may be justly called master of itself, if the words
|
|
'temperance' and 'self-mastery' truly express the rule of the better
|
|
part over the worse.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I see that what you say is true.
|
|
|
|
Let me further note that the manifold and complex pleasures and desires
|
|
and pains are generally found in children and women and servants, and in
|
|
the freemen so called who are of the lowest and more numerous class.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
Whereas the simple and moderate desires which follow reason, and are
|
|
under the guidance of mind and true opinion, are to be found only in a
|
|
few, and those the best born and best educated.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
These two, as you may perceive, have a place in our State; and the
|
|
meaner desires of the many are held down by the virtuous desires and
|
|
wisdom of the few.
|
|
|
|
That I perceive, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then if there be any city which may be described as master of its own
|
|
pleasures and desires, and master of itself, ours may claim such a
|
|
designation?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
It may also be called temperate, and for the same reasons?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And if there be any State in which rulers and subjects will be agreed as
|
|
to the question who are to rule, that again will be our State?
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly.
|
|
|
|
And the citizens being thus agreed among themselves, in which class will
|
|
temperance be found--in the rulers or in the subjects?
|
|
|
|
In both, as I should imagine, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Do you observe that we were not far wrong in our guess that temperance
|
|
was a sort of harmony?
|
|
|
|
Why so?
|
|
|
|
Why, because temperance is unlike courage and wisdom, each of which
|
|
resides in a part only, the one making the State wise and the other
|
|
valiant; not so temperance, which extends to the whole, and runs through
|
|
all the notes of the scale, and produces a harmony of the weaker and the
|
|
stronger and the middle class, whether you suppose them to be stronger
|
|
or weaker in wisdom or power or numbers or wealth, or anything else.
|
|
Most truly then may we deem temperance to be the agreement of the
|
|
naturally superior and inferior, as to the right to rule of either, both
|
|
in states and individuals.
|
|
|
|
I entirely agree with you.
|
|
|
|
And so, I said, we may consider three out of the four virtues to have
|
|
been discovered in our State. The last of those qualities which make a
|
|
state virtuous must be justice, if we only knew what that was.
|
|
|
|
The inference is obvious.
|
|
|
|
The time then has arrived, Glaucon, when, like huntsmen, we should
|
|
surround the cover, and look sharp that justice does not steal away, and
|
|
pass out of sight and escape us; for beyond a doubt she is somewhere in
|
|
this country: watch therefore and strive to catch a sight of her, and if
|
|
you see her first, let me know.
|
|
|
|
Would that I could! but you should regard me rather as a follower who
|
|
has just eyes enough to see what you show him--that is about as much as
|
|
I am good for.
|
|
|
|
Offer up a prayer with me and follow.
|
|
|
|
I will, but you must show me the way.
|
|
|
|
Here is no path, I said, and the wood is dark and perplexing; still we
|
|
must push on.
|
|
|
|
Let us push on.
|
|
|
|
Here I saw something: Halloo! I said, I begin to perceive a track, and I
|
|
believe that the quarry will not escape.
|
|
|
|
Good news, he said.
|
|
|
|
Truly, I said, we are stupid fellows.
|
|
|
|
Why so?
|
|
|
|
Why, my good sir, at the beginning of our enquiry, ages ago, there was
|
|
justice tumbling out at our feet, and we never saw her; nothing could be
|
|
more ridiculous. Like people who go about looking for what they have
|
|
in their hands--that was the way with us--we looked not at what we
|
|
were seeking, but at what was far off in the distance; and therefore, I
|
|
suppose, we missed her.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I mean to say that in reality for a long time past we have been talking
|
|
of justice, and have failed to recognise her.
|
|
|
|
I grow impatient at the length of your exordium.
|
|
|
|
Well then, tell me, I said, whether I am right or not: You remember the
|
|
original principle which we were always laying down at the foundation
|
|
of the State, that one man should practise one thing only, the thing to
|
|
which his nature was best adapted;--now justice is this principle or a
|
|
part of it.
|
|
|
|
Yes, we often said that one man should do one thing only.
|
|
|
|
Further, we affirmed that justice was doing one's own business, and not
|
|
being a busybody; we said so again and again, and many others have said
|
|
the same to us.
|
|
|
|
Yes, we said so.
|
|
|
|
Then to do one's own business in a certain way may be assumed to be
|
|
justice. Can you tell me whence I derive this inference?
|
|
|
|
I cannot, but I should like to be told.
|
|
|
|
Because I think that this is the only virtue which remains in the
|
|
State when the other virtues of temperance and courage and wisdom are
|
|
abstracted; and, that this is the ultimate cause and condition of the
|
|
existence of all of them, and while remaining in them is also their
|
|
preservative; and we were saying that if the three were discovered by
|
|
us, justice would be the fourth or remaining one.
|
|
|
|
That follows of necessity.
|
|
|
|
If we are asked to determine which of these four qualities by its
|
|
presence contributes most to the excellence of the State, whether the
|
|
agreement of rulers and subjects, or the preservation in the soldiers of
|
|
the opinion which the law ordains about the true nature of dangers, or
|
|
wisdom and watchfulness in the rulers, or whether this other which I am
|
|
mentioning, and which is found in children and women, slave and freeman,
|
|
artisan, ruler, subject,--the quality, I mean, of every one doing his
|
|
own work, and not being a busybody, would claim the palm--the question
|
|
is not so easily answered.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied, there would be a difficulty in saying which.
|
|
|
|
Then the power of each individual in the State to do his own work
|
|
appears to compete with the other political virtues, wisdom, temperance,
|
|
courage.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said.
|
|
|
|
And the virtue which enters into this competition is justice?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
Let us look at the question from another point of view: Are not
|
|
the rulers in a State those to whom you would entrust the office of
|
|
determining suits at law?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And are suits decided on any other ground but that a man may neither
|
|
take what is another's, nor be deprived of what is his own?
|
|
|
|
Yes; that is their principle.
|
|
|
|
Which is a just principle?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then on this view also justice will be admitted to be the having and
|
|
doing what is a man's own, and belongs to him?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Think, now, and say whether you agree with me or not. Suppose a
|
|
carpenter to be doing the business of a cobbler, or a cobbler of a
|
|
carpenter; and suppose them to exchange their implements or their
|
|
duties, or the same person to be doing the work of both, or whatever be
|
|
the change; do you think that any great harm would result to the State?
|
|
|
|
Not much.
|
|
|
|
But when the cobbler or any other man whom nature designed to be a
|
|
trader, having his heart lifted up by wealth or strength or the number
|
|
of his followers, or any like advantage, attempts to force his way
|
|
into the class of warriors, or a warrior into that of legislators and
|
|
guardians, for which he is unfitted, and either to take the implements
|
|
or the duties of the other; or when one man is trader, legislator, and
|
|
warrior all in one, then I think you will agree with me in saying that
|
|
this interchange and this meddling of one with another is the ruin of
|
|
the State.
|
|
|
|
Most true.
|
|
|
|
Seeing then, I said, that there are three distinct classes, any meddling
|
|
of one with another, or the change of one into another, is the greatest
|
|
harm to the State, and may be most justly termed evil-doing?
|
|
|
|
Precisely.
|
|
|
|
And the greatest degree of evil-doing to one's own city would be termed
|
|
by you injustice?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
This then is injustice; and on the other hand when the trader, the
|
|
auxiliary, and the guardian each do their own business, that is justice,
|
|
and will make the city just.
|
|
|
|
I agree with you.
|
|
|
|
We will not, I said, be over-positive as yet; but if, on trial, this
|
|
conception of justice be verified in the individual as well as in
|
|
the State, there will be no longer any room for doubt; if it be not
|
|
verified, we must have a fresh enquiry. First let us complete the old
|
|
investigation, which we began, as you remember, under the impression
|
|
that, if we could previously examine justice on the larger scale, there
|
|
would be less difficulty in discerning her in the individual. That
|
|
larger example appeared to be the State, and accordingly we constructed
|
|
as good a one as we could, knowing well that in the good State justice
|
|
would be found. Let the discovery which we made be now applied to the
|
|
individual--if they agree, we shall be satisfied; or, if there be a
|
|
difference in the individual, we will come back to the State and
|
|
have another trial of the theory. The friction of the two when rubbed
|
|
together may possibly strike a light in which justice will shine forth,
|
|
and the vision which is then revealed we will fix in our souls.
|
|
|
|
That will be in regular course; let us do as you say.
|
|
|
|
I proceeded to ask: When two things, a greater and less, are called by
|
|
the same name, are they like or unlike in so far as they are called the
|
|
same?
|
|
|
|
Like, he replied.
|
|
|
|
The just man then, if we regard the idea of justice only, will be like
|
|
the just State?
|
|
|
|
He will.
|
|
|
|
And a State was thought by us to be just when the three classes in the
|
|
State severally did their own business; and also thought to be temperate
|
|
and valiant and wise by reason of certain other affections and qualities
|
|
of these same classes?
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And so of the individual; we may assume that he has the same three
|
|
principles in his own soul which are found in the State; and he may be
|
|
rightly described in the same terms, because he is affected in the same
|
|
manner?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
Once more then, O my friend, we have alighted upon an easy
|
|
question--whether the soul has these three principles or not?
|
|
|
|
An easy question! Nay, rather, Socrates, the proverb holds that hard is
|
|
the good.
|
|
|
|
Very true, I said; and I do not think that the method which we are
|
|
employing is at all adequate to the accurate solution of this question;
|
|
the true method is another and a longer one. Still we may arrive at a
|
|
solution not below the level of the previous enquiry.
|
|
|
|
May we not be satisfied with that? he said;--under the circumstances, I
|
|
am quite content.
|
|
|
|
I too, I replied, shall be extremely well satisfied.
|
|
|
|
Then faint not in pursuing the speculation, he said.
|
|
|
|
Must we not acknowledge, I said, that in each of us there are the same
|
|
principles and habits which there are in the State; and that from the
|
|
individual they pass into the State?--how else can they come there? Take
|
|
the quality of passion or spirit;--it would be ridiculous to imagine
|
|
that this quality, when found in States, is not derived from the
|
|
individuals who are supposed to possess it, e.g. the Thracians,
|
|
Scythians, and in general the northern nations; and the same may be said
|
|
of the love of knowledge, which is the special characteristic of our
|
|
part of the world, or of the love of money, which may, with equal truth,
|
|
be attributed to the Phoenicians and Egyptians.
|
|
|
|
Exactly so, he said.
|
|
|
|
There is no difficulty in understanding this.
|
|
|
|
None whatever.
|
|
|
|
But the question is not quite so easy when we proceed to ask whether
|
|
these principles are three or one; whether, that is to say, we learn
|
|
with one part of our nature, are angry with another, and with a third
|
|
part desire the satisfaction of our natural appetites; or whether the
|
|
whole soul comes into play in each sort of action--to determine that is
|
|
the difficulty.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; there lies the difficulty.
|
|
|
|
Then let us now try and determine whether they are the same or
|
|
different.
|
|
|
|
How can we? he asked.
|
|
|
|
I replied as follows: The same thing clearly cannot act or be acted upon
|
|
in the same part or in relation to the same thing at the same time,
|
|
in contrary ways; and therefore whenever this contradiction occurs in
|
|
things apparently the same, we know that they are really not the same,
|
|
but different.
|
|
|
|
Good.
|
|
|
|
For example, I said, can the same thing be at rest and in motion at the
|
|
same time in the same part?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
Still, I said, let us have a more precise statement of terms, lest we
|
|
should hereafter fall out by the way. Imagine the case of a man who is
|
|
standing and also moving his hands and his head, and suppose a person
|
|
to say that one and the same person is in motion and at rest at the same
|
|
moment--to such a mode of speech we should object, and should rather say
|
|
that one part of him is in motion while another is at rest.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And suppose the objector to refine still further, and to draw the nice
|
|
distinction that not only parts of tops, but whole tops, when they spin
|
|
round with their pegs fixed on the spot, are at rest and in motion at
|
|
the same time (and he may say the same of anything which revolves in the
|
|
same spot), his objection would not be admitted by us, because in
|
|
such cases things are not at rest and in motion in the same parts of
|
|
themselves; we should rather say that they have both an axis and a
|
|
circumference, and that the axis stands still, for there is no deviation
|
|
from the perpendicular; and that the circumference goes round. But if,
|
|
while revolving, the axis inclines either to the right or left, forwards
|
|
or backwards, then in no point of view can they be at rest.
|
|
|
|
That is the correct mode of describing them, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then none of these objections will confuse us, or incline us to believe
|
|
that the same thing at the same time, in the same part or in relation to
|
|
the same thing, can act or be acted upon in contrary ways.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, according to my way of thinking.
|
|
|
|
Yet, I said, that we may not be compelled to examine all such
|
|
objections, and prove at length that they are untrue, let us assume
|
|
their absurdity, and go forward on the understanding that hereafter, if
|
|
this assumption turn out to be untrue, all the consequences which follow
|
|
shall be withdrawn.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that will be the best way.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, would you not allow that assent and dissent, desire and
|
|
aversion, attraction and repulsion, are all of them opposites, whether
|
|
they are regarded as active or passive (for that makes no difference in
|
|
the fact of their opposition)?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, they are opposites.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, and hunger and thirst, and the desires in general, and
|
|
again willing and wishing,--all these you would refer to the classes
|
|
already mentioned. You would say--would you not?--that the soul of him
|
|
who desires is seeking after the object of his desire; or that he is
|
|
drawing to himself the thing which he wishes to possess: or again,
|
|
when a person wants anything to be given him, his mind, longing for the
|
|
realization of his desire, intimates his wish to have it by a nod of
|
|
assent, as if he had been asked a question?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And what would you say of unwillingness and dislike and the absence of
|
|
desire; should not these be referred to the opposite class of repulsion
|
|
and rejection?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Admitting this to be true of desire generally, let us suppose a
|
|
particular class of desires, and out of these we will select hunger and
|
|
thirst, as they are termed, which are the most obvious of them?
|
|
|
|
Let us take that class, he said.
|
|
|
|
The object of one is food, and of the other drink?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And here comes the point: is not thirst the desire which the soul has of
|
|
drink, and of drink only; not of drink qualified by anything else; for
|
|
example, warm or cold, or much or little, or, in a word, drink of any
|
|
particular sort: but if the thirst be accompanied by heat, then the
|
|
desire is of cold drink; or, if accompanied by cold, then of warm drink;
|
|
or, if the thirst be excessive, then the drink which is desired will be
|
|
excessive; or, if not great, the quantity of drink will also be small:
|
|
but thirst pure and simple will desire drink pure and simple, which is
|
|
the natural satisfaction of thirst, as food is of hunger?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; the simple desire is, as you say, in every case of the
|
|
simple object, and the qualified desire of the qualified object.
|
|
|
|
But here a confusion may arise; and I should wish to guard against an
|
|
opponent starting up and saying that no man desires drink only, but good
|
|
drink, or food only, but good food; for good is the universal object of
|
|
desire, and thirst being a desire, will necessarily be thirst after good
|
|
drink; and the same is true of every other desire.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied, the opponent might have something to say.
|
|
|
|
Nevertheless I should still maintain, that of relatives some have a
|
|
quality attached to either term of the relation; others are simple and
|
|
have their correlatives simple.
|
|
|
|
I do not know what you mean.
|
|
|
|
Well, you know of course that the greater is relative to the less?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And the much greater to the much less?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the sometime greater to the sometime less, and the greater that is
|
|
to be to the less that is to be?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
And so of more and less, and of other correlative terms, such as the
|
|
double and the half, or again, the heavier and the lighter, the swifter
|
|
and the slower; and of hot and cold, and of any other relatives;--is not
|
|
this true of all of them?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And does not the same principle hold in the sciences? The object of
|
|
science is knowledge (assuming that to be the true definition), but
|
|
the object of a particular science is a particular kind of knowledge;
|
|
I mean, for example, that the science of house-building is a kind of
|
|
knowledge which is defined and distinguished from other kinds and is
|
|
therefore termed architecture.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Because it has a particular quality which no other has?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And it has this particular quality because it has an object of a
|
|
particular kind; and this is true of the other arts and sciences?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Now, then, if I have made myself clear, you will understand my original
|
|
meaning in what I said about relatives. My meaning was, that if one term
|
|
of a relation is taken alone, the other is taken alone; if one term
|
|
is qualified, the other is also qualified. I do not mean to say that
|
|
relatives may not be disparate, or that the science of health is
|
|
healthy, or of disease necessarily diseased, or that the sciences of
|
|
good and evil are therefore good and evil; but only that, when the term
|
|
science is no longer used absolutely, but has a qualified object which
|
|
in this case is the nature of health and disease, it becomes defined,
|
|
and is hence called not merely science, but the science of medicine.
|
|
|
|
I quite understand, and I think as you do.
|
|
|
|
Would you not say that thirst is one of these essentially relative
|
|
terms, having clearly a relation--
|
|
|
|
Yes, thirst is relative to drink.
|
|
|
|
And a certain kind of thirst is relative to a certain kind of drink; but
|
|
thirst taken alone is neither of much nor little, nor of good nor bad,
|
|
nor of any particular kind of drink, but of drink only?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then the soul of the thirsty one, in so far as he is thirsty, desires
|
|
only drink; for this he yearns and tries to obtain it?
|
|
|
|
That is plain.
|
|
|
|
And if you suppose something which pulls a thirsty soul away from drink,
|
|
that must be different from the thirsty principle which draws him like
|
|
a beast to drink; for, as we were saying, the same thing cannot at the
|
|
same time with the same part of itself act in contrary ways about the
|
|
same.
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
No more than you can say that the hands of the archer push and pull the
|
|
bow at the same time, but what you say is that one hand pushes and the
|
|
other pulls.
|
|
|
|
Exactly so, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And might a man be thirsty, and yet unwilling to drink?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, it constantly happens.
|
|
|
|
And in such a case what is one to say? Would you not say that there
|
|
was something in the soul bidding a man to drink, and something else
|
|
forbidding him, which is other and stronger than the principle which
|
|
bids him?
|
|
|
|
I should say so.
|
|
|
|
And the forbidding principle is derived from reason, and that which bids
|
|
and attracts proceeds from passion and disease?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
Then we may fairly assume that they are two, and that they differ from
|
|
one another; the one with which a man reasons, we may call the rational
|
|
principle of the soul, the other, with which he loves and hungers and
|
|
thirsts and feels the flutterings of any other desire, may be termed
|
|
the irrational or appetitive, the ally of sundry pleasures and
|
|
satisfactions?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, we may fairly assume them to be different.
|
|
|
|
Then let us finally determine that there are two principles existing in
|
|
the soul. And what of passion, or spirit? Is it a third, or akin to one
|
|
of the preceding?
|
|
|
|
I should be inclined to say--akin to desire.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, there is a story which I remember to have heard, and in
|
|
which I put faith. The story is, that Leontius, the son of Aglaion,
|
|
coming up one day from the Piraeus, under the north wall on the outside,
|
|
observed some dead bodies lying on the ground at the place of execution.
|
|
He felt a desire to see them, and also a dread and abhorrence of them;
|
|
for a time he struggled and covered his eyes, but at length the desire
|
|
got the better of him; and forcing them open, he ran up to the dead
|
|
bodies, saying, Look, ye wretches, take your fill of the fair sight.
|
|
|
|
I have heard the story myself, he said.
|
|
|
|
The moral of the tale is, that anger at times goes to war with desire,
|
|
as though they were two distinct things.
|
|
|
|
Yes; that is the meaning, he said.
|
|
|
|
And are there not many other cases in which we observe that when a man's
|
|
desires violently prevail over his reason, he reviles himself, and is
|
|
angry at the violence within him, and that in this struggle, which is
|
|
like the struggle of factions in a State, his spirit is on the side of
|
|
his reason;--but for the passionate or spirited element to take part
|
|
with the desires when reason decides that she should not be opposed,
|
|
is a sort of thing which I believe that you never observed occurring in
|
|
yourself, nor, as I should imagine, in any one else?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Suppose that a man thinks he has done a wrong to another, the nobler
|
|
he is the less able is he to feel indignant at any suffering, such as
|
|
hunger, or cold, or any other pain which the injured person may inflict
|
|
upon him--these he deems to be just, and, as I say, his anger refuses to
|
|
be excited by them.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
But when he thinks that he is the sufferer of the wrong, then he boils
|
|
and chafes, and is on the side of what he believes to be justice; and
|
|
because he suffers hunger or cold or other pain he is only the more
|
|
determined to persevere and conquer. His noble spirit will not be
|
|
quelled until he either slays or is slain; or until he hears the voice
|
|
of the shepherd, that is, reason, bidding his dog bark no more.
|
|
|
|
The illustration is perfect, he replied; and in our State, as we were
|
|
saying, the auxiliaries were to be dogs, and to hear the voice of the
|
|
rulers, who are their shepherds.
|
|
|
|
I perceive, I said, that you quite understand me; there is, however, a
|
|
further point which I wish you to consider.
|
|
|
|
What point?
|
|
|
|
You remember that passion or spirit appeared at first sight to be a kind
|
|
of desire, but now we should say quite the contrary; for in the conflict
|
|
of the soul spirit is arrayed on the side of the rational principle.
|
|
|
|
Most assuredly.
|
|
|
|
But a further question arises: Is passion different from reason also, or
|
|
only a kind of reason; in which latter case, instead of three principles
|
|
in the soul, there will only be two, the rational and the concupiscent;
|
|
or rather, as the State was composed of three classes, traders,
|
|
auxiliaries, counsellors, so may there not be in the individual soul a
|
|
third element which is passion or spirit, and when not corrupted by bad
|
|
education is the natural auxiliary of reason?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, there must be a third.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I replied, if passion, which has already been shown to be different
|
|
from desire, turn out also to be different from reason.
|
|
|
|
But that is easily proved:--We may observe even in young children that
|
|
they are full of spirit almost as soon as they are born, whereas some
|
|
of them never seem to attain to the use of reason, and most of them late
|
|
enough.
|
|
|
|
Excellent, I said, and you may see passion equally in brute animals,
|
|
which is a further proof of the truth of what you are saying. And we may
|
|
once more appeal to the words of Homer, which have been already quoted
|
|
by us,
|
|
|
|
'He smote his breast, and thus rebuked his soul,'
|
|
|
|
for in this verse Homer has clearly supposed the power which reasons
|
|
about the better and worse to be different from the unreasoning anger
|
|
which is rebuked by it.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And so, after much tossing, we have reached land, and are fairly agreed
|
|
that the same principles which exist in the State exist also in the
|
|
individual, and that they are three in number.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
Must we not then infer that the individual is wise in the same way, and
|
|
in virtue of the same quality which makes the State wise?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Also that the same quality which constitutes courage in the State
|
|
constitutes courage in the individual, and that both the State and the
|
|
individual bear the same relation to all the other virtues?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
And the individual will be acknowledged by us to be just in the same way
|
|
in which the State is just?
|
|
|
|
That follows, of course.
|
|
|
|
We cannot but remember that the justice of the State consisted in each
|
|
of the three classes doing the work of its own class?
|
|
|
|
We are not very likely to have forgotten, he said.
|
|
|
|
We must recollect that the individual in whom the several qualities of
|
|
his nature do their own work will be just, and will do his own work?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, we must remember that too.
|
|
|
|
And ought not the rational principle, which is wise, and has the care of
|
|
the whole soul, to rule, and the passionate or spirited principle to be
|
|
the subject and ally?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And, as we were saying, the united influence of music and gymnastic will
|
|
bring them into accord, nerving and sustaining the reason with noble
|
|
words and lessons, and moderating and soothing and civilizing the
|
|
wildness of passion by harmony and rhythm?
|
|
|
|
Quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And these two, thus nurtured and educated, and having learned truly to
|
|
know their own functions, will rule over the concupiscent, which in each
|
|
of us is the largest part of the soul and by nature most insatiable of
|
|
gain; over this they will keep guard, lest, waxing great and strong with
|
|
the fulness of bodily pleasures, as they are termed, the concupiscent
|
|
soul, no longer confined to her own sphere, should attempt to enslave
|
|
and rule those who are not her natural-born subjects, and overturn the
|
|
whole life of man?
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Both together will they not be the best defenders of the whole soul and
|
|
the whole body against attacks from without; the one counselling, and
|
|
the other fighting under his leader, and courageously executing his
|
|
commands and counsels?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And he is to be deemed courageous whose spirit retains in pleasure and
|
|
in pain the commands of reason about what he ought or ought not to fear?
|
|
|
|
Right, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And him we call wise who has in him that little part which rules, and
|
|
which proclaims these commands; that part too being supposed to have a
|
|
knowledge of what is for the interest of each of the three parts and of
|
|
the whole?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
And would you not say that he is temperate who has these same elements
|
|
in friendly harmony, in whom the one ruling principle of reason, and
|
|
the two subject ones of spirit and desire are equally agreed that reason
|
|
ought to rule, and do not rebel?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said, that is the true account of temperance whether in
|
|
the State or individual.
|
|
|
|
And surely, I said, we have explained again and again how and by virtue
|
|
of what quality a man will be just.
|
|
|
|
That is very certain.
|
|
|
|
And is justice dimmer in the individual, and is her form different, or
|
|
is she the same which we found her to be in the State?
|
|
|
|
There is no difference in my opinion, he said.
|
|
|
|
Because, if any doubt is still lingering in our minds, a few commonplace
|
|
instances will satisfy us of the truth of what I am saying.
|
|
|
|
What sort of instances do you mean?
|
|
|
|
If the case is put to us, must we not admit that the just State, or
|
|
the man who is trained in the principles of such a State, will be less
|
|
likely than the unjust to make away with a deposit of gold or silver?
|
|
Would any one deny this?
|
|
|
|
No one, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Will the just man or citizen ever be guilty of sacrilege or theft, or
|
|
treachery either to his friends or to his country?
|
|
|
|
Never.
|
|
|
|
Neither will he ever break faith where there have been oaths or
|
|
agreements?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
No one will be less likely to commit adultery, or to dishonour his
|
|
father and mother, or to fail in his religious duties?
|
|
|
|
No one.
|
|
|
|
And the reason is that each part of him is doing its own business,
|
|
whether in ruling or being ruled?
|
|
|
|
Exactly so.
|
|
|
|
Are you satisfied then that the quality which makes such men and such
|
|
states is justice, or do you hope to discover some other?
|
|
|
|
Not I, indeed.
|
|
|
|
Then our dream has been realized; and the suspicion which we entertained
|
|
at the beginning of our work of construction, that some divine power
|
|
must have conducted us to a primary form of justice, has now been
|
|
verified?
|
|
|
|
Yes, certainly.
|
|
|
|
And the division of labour which required the carpenter and the
|
|
shoemaker and the rest of the citizens to be doing each his own
|
|
business, and not another's, was a shadow of justice, and for that
|
|
reason it was of use?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
But in reality justice was such as we were describing, being concerned
|
|
however, not with the outward man, but with the inward, which is the
|
|
true self and concernment of man: for the just man does not permit the
|
|
several elements within him to interfere with one another, or any of
|
|
them to do the work of others,--he sets in order his own inner life, and
|
|
is his own master and his own law, and at peace with himself; and when
|
|
he has bound together the three principles within him, which may be
|
|
compared to the higher, lower, and middle notes of the scale, and the
|
|
intermediate intervals--when he has bound all these together, and is
|
|
no longer many, but has become one entirely temperate and perfectly
|
|
adjusted nature, then he proceeds to act, if he has to act, whether in
|
|
a matter of property, or in the treatment of the body, or in some affair
|
|
of politics or private business; always thinking and calling that which
|
|
preserves and co-operates with this harmonious condition, just and good
|
|
action, and the knowledge which presides over it, wisdom, and that which
|
|
at any time impairs this condition, he will call unjust action, and the
|
|
opinion which presides over it ignorance.
|
|
|
|
You have said the exact truth, Socrates.
|
|
|
|
Very good; and if we were to affirm that we had discovered the just man
|
|
and the just State, and the nature of justice in each of them, we should
|
|
not be telling a falsehood?
|
|
|
|
Most certainly not.
|
|
|
|
May we say so, then?
|
|
|
|
Let us say so.
|
|
|
|
And now, I said, injustice has to be considered.
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
Must not injustice be a strife which arises among the three
|
|
principles--a meddlesomeness, and interference, and rising up of a part
|
|
of the soul against the whole, an assertion of unlawful authority, which
|
|
is made by a rebellious subject against a true prince, of whom he is the
|
|
natural vassal,--what is all this confusion and delusion but injustice,
|
|
and intemperance and cowardice and ignorance, and every form of vice?
|
|
|
|
Exactly so.
|
|
|
|
And if the nature of justice and injustice be known, then the meaning of
|
|
acting unjustly and being unjust, or, again, of acting justly, will also
|
|
be perfectly clear?
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? he said.
|
|
|
|
Why, I said, they are like disease and health; being in the soul just
|
|
what disease and health are in the body.
|
|
|
|
How so? he said.
|
|
|
|
Why, I said, that which is healthy causes health, and that which is
|
|
unhealthy causes disease.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And just actions cause justice, and unjust actions cause injustice?
|
|
|
|
That is certain.
|
|
|
|
And the creation of health is the institution of a natural order and
|
|
government of one by another in the parts of the body; and the creation
|
|
of disease is the production of a state of things at variance with this
|
|
natural order?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And is not the creation of justice the institution of a natural order
|
|
and government of one by another in the parts of the soul, and the
|
|
creation of injustice the production of a state of things at variance
|
|
with the natural order?
|
|
|
|
Exactly so, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then virtue is the health and beauty and well-being of the soul, and
|
|
vice the disease and weakness and deformity of the same?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And do not good practices lead to virtue, and evil practices to vice?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
Still our old question of the comparative advantage of justice and
|
|
injustice has not been answered: Which is the more profitable, to be
|
|
just and act justly and practise virtue, whether seen or unseen of
|
|
gods and men, or to be unjust and act unjustly, if only unpunished and
|
|
unreformed?
|
|
|
|
In my judgment, Socrates, the question has now become ridiculous. We
|
|
know that, when the bodily constitution is gone, life is no longer
|
|
endurable, though pampered with all kinds of meats and drinks, and
|
|
having all wealth and all power; and shall we be told that when the
|
|
very essence of the vital principle is undermined and corrupted, life
|
|
is still worth having to a man, if only he be allowed to do whatever he
|
|
likes with the single exception that he is not to acquire justice and
|
|
virtue, or to escape from injustice and vice; assuming them both to be
|
|
such as we have described?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, the question is, as you say, ridiculous. Still, as we are
|
|
near the spot at which we may see the truth in the clearest manner with
|
|
our own eyes, let us not faint by the way.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Come up hither, I said, and behold the various forms of vice, those of
|
|
them, I mean, which are worth looking at.
|
|
|
|
I am following you, he replied: proceed.
|
|
|
|
I said, The argument seems to have reached a height from which, as from
|
|
some tower of speculation, a man may look down and see that virtue
|
|
is one, but that the forms of vice are innumerable; there being four
|
|
special ones which are deserving of note.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? he said.
|
|
|
|
I mean, I replied, that there appear to be as many forms of the soul as
|
|
there are distinct forms of the State.
|
|
|
|
How many?
|
|
|
|
There are five of the State, and five of the soul, I said.
|
|
|
|
What are they?
|
|
|
|
The first, I said, is that which we have been describing, and which may
|
|
be said to have two names, monarchy and aristocracy, accordingly as rule
|
|
is exercised by one distinguished man or by many.
|
|
|
|
True, he replied.
|
|
|
|
But I regard the two names as describing one form only; for whether the
|
|
government is in the hands of one or many, if the governors have been
|
|
trained in the manner which we have supposed, the fundamental laws of
|
|
the State will be maintained.
|
|
|
|
That is true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK V.
|
|
|
|
Such is the good and true City or State, and the good and true man is
|
|
of the same pattern; and if this is right every other is wrong; and the
|
|
evil is one which affects not only the ordering of the State, but also
|
|
the regulation of the individual soul, and is exhibited in four forms.
|
|
|
|
What are they? he said.
|
|
|
|
I was proceeding to tell the order in which the four evil forms appeared
|
|
to me to succeed one another, when Polemarchus, who was sitting a little
|
|
way off, just beyond Adeimantus, began to whisper to him: stretching
|
|
forth his hand, he took hold of the upper part of his coat by the
|
|
shoulder, and drew him towards him, leaning forward himself so as to be
|
|
quite close and saying something in his ear, of which I only caught the
|
|
words, 'Shall we let him off, or what shall we do?'
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, said Adeimantus, raising his voice.
|
|
|
|
Who is it, I said, whom you are refusing to let off?
|
|
|
|
You, he said.
|
|
|
|
I repeated, Why am I especially not to be let off?
|
|
|
|
Why, he said, we think that you are lazy, and mean to cheat us out of a
|
|
whole chapter which is a very important part of the story; and you fancy
|
|
that we shall not notice your airy way of proceeding; as if it were
|
|
self-evident to everybody, that in the matter of women and children
|
|
'friends have all things in common.'
|
|
|
|
And was I not right, Adeimantus?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; but what is right in this particular case, like everything
|
|
else, requires to be explained; for community may be of many kinds.
|
|
Please, therefore, to say what sort of community you mean. We have been
|
|
long expecting that you would tell us something about the family life
|
|
of your citizens--how they will bring children into the world, and rear
|
|
them when they have arrived, and, in general, what is the nature of this
|
|
community of women and children--for we are of opinion that the right
|
|
or wrong management of such matters will have a great and paramount
|
|
influence on the State for good or for evil. And now, since the question
|
|
is still undetermined, and you are taking in hand another State, we have
|
|
resolved, as you heard, not to let you go until you give an account of
|
|
all this.
|
|
|
|
To that resolution, said Glaucon, you may regard me as saying Agreed.
|
|
|
|
And without more ado, said Thrasymachus, you may consider us all to be
|
|
equally agreed.
|
|
|
|
I said, You know not what you are doing in thus assailing me: What an
|
|
argument are you raising about the State! Just as I thought that I had
|
|
finished, and was only too glad that I had laid this question to sleep,
|
|
and was reflecting how fortunate I was in your acceptance of what I then
|
|
said, you ask me to begin again at the very foundation, ignorant of what
|
|
a hornet's nest of words you are stirring. Now I foresaw this gathering
|
|
trouble, and avoided it.
|
|
|
|
For what purpose do you conceive that we have come here, said
|
|
Thrasymachus,--to look for gold, or to hear discourse?
|
|
|
|
Yes, but discourse should have a limit.
|
|
|
|
Yes, Socrates, said Glaucon, and the whole of life is the only limit
|
|
which wise men assign to the hearing of such discourses. But never mind
|
|
about us; take heart yourself and answer the question in your own way:
|
|
What sort of community of women and children is this which is to prevail
|
|
among our guardians? and how shall we manage the period between birth
|
|
and education, which seems to require the greatest care? Tell us how
|
|
these things will be.
|
|
|
|
Yes, my simple friend, but the answer is the reverse of easy; many more
|
|
doubts arise about this than about our previous conclusions. For the
|
|
practicability of what is said may be doubted; and looked at in another
|
|
point of view, whether the scheme, if ever so practicable, would be for
|
|
the best, is also doubtful. Hence I feel a reluctance to approach the
|
|
subject, lest our aspiration, my dear friend, should turn out to be a
|
|
dream only.
|
|
|
|
Fear not, he replied, for your audience will not be hard upon you; they
|
|
are not sceptical or hostile.
|
|
|
|
I said: My good friend, I suppose that you mean to encourage me by these
|
|
words.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then let me tell you that you are doing just the reverse; the
|
|
encouragement which you offer would have been all very well had I myself
|
|
believed that I knew what I was talking about: to declare the truth
|
|
about matters of high interest which a man honours and loves among wise
|
|
men who love him need occasion no fear or faltering in his mind; but to
|
|
carry on an argument when you are yourself only a hesitating enquirer,
|
|
which is my condition, is a dangerous and slippery thing; and the danger
|
|
is not that I shall be laughed at (of which the fear would be childish),
|
|
but that I shall miss the truth where I have most need to be sure of my
|
|
footing, and drag my friends after me in my fall. And I pray Nemesis not
|
|
to visit upon me the words which I am going to utter. For I do indeed
|
|
believe that to be an involuntary homicide is a less crime than to be a
|
|
deceiver about beauty or goodness or justice in the matter of laws.
|
|
And that is a risk which I would rather run among enemies than among
|
|
friends, and therefore you do well to encourage me.
|
|
|
|
Glaucon laughed and said: Well then, Socrates, in case you and your
|
|
argument do us any serious injury you shall be acquitted beforehand of
|
|
the homicide, and shall not be held to be a deceiver; take courage then
|
|
and speak.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, the law says that when a man is acquitted he is free from
|
|
guilt, and what holds at law may hold in argument.
|
|
|
|
Then why should you mind?
|
|
|
|
Well, I replied, I suppose that I must retrace my steps and say what I
|
|
perhaps ought to have said before in the proper place. The part of the
|
|
men has been played out, and now properly enough comes the turn of the
|
|
women. Of them I will proceed to speak, and the more readily since I am
|
|
invited by you.
|
|
|
|
For men born and educated like our citizens, the only way, in my
|
|
opinion, of arriving at a right conclusion about the possession and
|
|
use of women and children is to follow the path on which we originally
|
|
started, when we said that the men were to be the guardians and
|
|
watchdogs of the herd.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Let us further suppose the birth and education of our women to be
|
|
subject to similar or nearly similar regulations; then we shall see
|
|
whether the result accords with our design.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
What I mean may be put into the form of a question, I said: Are dogs
|
|
divided into hes and shes, or do they both share equally in hunting and
|
|
in keeping watch and in the other duties of dogs? or do we entrust to
|
|
the males the entire and exclusive care of the flocks, while we leave
|
|
the females at home, under the idea that the bearing and suckling their
|
|
puppies is labour enough for them?
|
|
|
|
No, he said, they share alike; the only difference between them is that
|
|
the males are stronger and the females weaker.
|
|
|
|
But can you use different animals for the same purpose, unless they are
|
|
bred and fed in the same way?
|
|
|
|
You cannot.
|
|
|
|
Then, if women are to have the same duties as men, they must have the
|
|
same nurture and education?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
The education which was assigned to the men was music and gymnastic.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then women must be taught music and gymnastic and also the art of war,
|
|
which they must practise like the men?
|
|
|
|
That is the inference, I suppose.
|
|
|
|
I should rather expect, I said, that several of our proposals, if they
|
|
are carried out, being unusual, may appear ridiculous.
|
|
|
|
No doubt of it.
|
|
|
|
Yes, and the most ridiculous thing of all will be the sight of women
|
|
naked in the palaestra, exercising with the men, especially when they
|
|
are no longer young; they certainly will not be a vision of beauty, any
|
|
more than the enthusiastic old men who in spite of wrinkles and ugliness
|
|
continue to frequent the gymnasia.
|
|
|
|
Yes, indeed, he said: according to present notions the proposal would be
|
|
thought ridiculous.
|
|
|
|
But then, I said, as we have determined to speak our minds, we must not
|
|
fear the jests of the wits which will be directed against this sort of
|
|
innovation; how they will talk of women's attainments both in music
|
|
and gymnastic, and above all about their wearing armour and riding upon
|
|
horseback!
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Yet having begun we must go forward to the rough places of the law; at
|
|
the same time begging of these gentlemen for once in their life to be
|
|
serious. Not long ago, as we shall remind them, the Hellenes were of the
|
|
opinion, which is still generally received among the barbarians, that
|
|
the sight of a naked man was ridiculous and improper; and when first the
|
|
Cretans and then the Lacedaemonians introduced the custom, the wits of
|
|
that day might equally have ridiculed the innovation.
|
|
|
|
No doubt.
|
|
|
|
But when experience showed that to let all things be uncovered was far
|
|
better than to cover them up, and the ludicrous effect to the outward
|
|
eye vanished before the better principle which reason asserted, then the
|
|
man was perceived to be a fool who directs the shafts of his ridicule
|
|
at any other sight but that of folly and vice, or seriously inclines to
|
|
weigh the beautiful by any other standard but that of the good.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
First, then, whether the question is to be put in jest or in earnest,
|
|
let us come to an understanding about the nature of woman: Is she
|
|
capable of sharing either wholly or partially in the actions of men, or
|
|
not at all? And is the art of war one of those arts in which she can or
|
|
can not share? That will be the best way of commencing the enquiry, and
|
|
will probably lead to the fairest conclusion.
|
|
|
|
That will be much the best way.
|
|
|
|
Shall we take the other side first and begin by arguing against
|
|
ourselves; in this manner the adversary's position will not be
|
|
undefended.
|
|
|
|
Why not? he said.
|
|
|
|
Then let us put a speech into the mouths of our opponents. They will
|
|
say: 'Socrates and Glaucon, no adversary need convict you, for you
|
|
yourselves, at the first foundation of the State, admitted the principle
|
|
that everybody was to do the one work suited to his own nature.' And
|
|
certainly, if I am not mistaken, such an admission was made by us. 'And
|
|
do not the natures of men and women differ very much indeed?' And we
|
|
shall reply: Of course they do. Then we shall be asked, 'Whether the
|
|
tasks assigned to men and to women should not be different, and such as
|
|
are agreeable to their different natures?' Certainly they should. 'But
|
|
if so, have you not fallen into a serious inconsistency in saying that
|
|
men and women, whose natures are so entirely different, ought to perform
|
|
the same actions?'--What defence will you make for us, my good Sir,
|
|
against any one who offers these objections?
|
|
|
|
That is not an easy question to answer when asked suddenly; and I shall
|
|
and I do beg of you to draw out the case on our side.
|
|
|
|
These are the objections, Glaucon, and there are many others of a like
|
|
kind, which I foresaw long ago; they made me afraid and reluctant to
|
|
take in hand any law about the possession and nurture of women and
|
|
children.
|
|
|
|
By Zeus, he said, the problem to be solved is anything but easy.
|
|
|
|
Why yes, I said, but the fact is that when a man is out of his depth,
|
|
whether he has fallen into a little swimming bath or into mid ocean, he
|
|
has to swim all the same.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And must not we swim and try to reach the shore: we will hope that
|
|
Arion's dolphin or some other miraculous help may save us?
|
|
|
|
I suppose so, he said.
|
|
|
|
Well then, let us see if any way of escape can be found. We
|
|
acknowledged--did we not? that different natures ought to have different
|
|
pursuits, and that men's and women's natures are different. And now
|
|
what are we saying?--that different natures ought to have the same
|
|
pursuits,--this is the inconsistency which is charged upon us.
|
|
|
|
Precisely.
|
|
|
|
Verily, Glaucon, I said, glorious is the power of the art of
|
|
contradiction!
|
|
|
|
Why do you say so?
|
|
|
|
Because I think that many a man falls into the practice against his
|
|
will. When he thinks that he is reasoning he is really disputing, just
|
|
because he cannot define and divide, and so know that of which he is
|
|
speaking; and he will pursue a merely verbal opposition in the spirit of
|
|
contention and not of fair discussion.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied, such is very often the case; but what has that to do
|
|
with us and our argument?
|
|
|
|
A great deal; for there is certainly a danger of our getting
|
|
unintentionally into a verbal opposition.
|
|
|
|
In what way?
|
|
|
|
Why we valiantly and pugnaciously insist upon the verbal truth, that
|
|
different natures ought to have different pursuits, but we never
|
|
considered at all what was the meaning of sameness or difference of
|
|
nature, or why we distinguished them when we assigned different pursuits
|
|
to different natures and the same to the same natures.
|
|
|
|
Why, no, he said, that was never considered by us.
|
|
|
|
I said: Suppose that by way of illustration we were to ask the question
|
|
whether there is not an opposition in nature between bald men and hairy
|
|
men; and if this is admitted by us, then, if bald men are cobblers, we
|
|
should forbid the hairy men to be cobblers, and conversely?
|
|
|
|
That would be a jest, he said.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, a jest; and why? because we never meant when we constructed
|
|
the State, that the opposition of natures should extend to every
|
|
difference, but only to those differences which affected the pursuit
|
|
in which the individual is engaged; we should have argued, for example,
|
|
that a physician and one who is in mind a physician may be said to have
|
|
the same nature.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Whereas the physician and the carpenter have different natures?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And if, I said, the male and female sex appear to differ in their
|
|
fitness for any art or pursuit, we should say that such pursuit or art
|
|
ought to be assigned to one or the other of them; but if the difference
|
|
consists only in women bearing and men begetting children, this does not
|
|
amount to a proof that a woman differs from a man in respect of the
|
|
sort of education she should receive; and we shall therefore continue
|
|
to maintain that our guardians and their wives ought to have the same
|
|
pursuits.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Next, we shall ask our opponent how, in reference to any of the pursuits
|
|
or arts of civic life, the nature of a woman differs from that of a man?
|
|
|
|
That will be quite fair.
|
|
|
|
And perhaps he, like yourself, will reply that to give a sufficient
|
|
answer on the instant is not easy; but after a little reflection there
|
|
is no difficulty.
|
|
|
|
Yes, perhaps.
|
|
|
|
Suppose then that we invite him to accompany us in the argument, and
|
|
then we may hope to show him that there is nothing peculiar in the
|
|
constitution of women which would affect them in the administration of
|
|
the State.
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
Let us say to him: Come now, and we will ask you a question:--when you
|
|
spoke of a nature gifted or not gifted in any respect, did you mean to
|
|
say that one man will acquire a thing easily, another with difficulty; a
|
|
little learning will lead the one to discover a great deal; whereas
|
|
the other, after much study and application, no sooner learns than he
|
|
forgets; or again, did you mean, that the one has a body which is a
|
|
good servant to his mind, while the body of the other is a hindrance to
|
|
him?--would not these be the sort of differences which distinguish the
|
|
man gifted by nature from the one who is ungifted?
|
|
|
|
No one will deny that.
|
|
|
|
And can you mention any pursuit of mankind in which the male sex has not
|
|
all these gifts and qualities in a higher degree than the female? Need
|
|
I waste time in speaking of the art of weaving, and the management of
|
|
pancakes and preserves, in which womankind does really appear to be
|
|
great, and in which for her to be beaten by a man is of all things the
|
|
most absurd?
|
|
|
|
You are quite right, he replied, in maintaining the general inferiority
|
|
of the female sex: although many women are in many things superior to
|
|
many men, yet on the whole what you say is true.
|
|
|
|
And if so, my friend, I said, there is no special faculty of
|
|
administration in a state which a woman has because she is a woman, or
|
|
which a man has by virtue of his sex, but the gifts of nature are alike
|
|
diffused in both; all the pursuits of men are the pursuits of women
|
|
also, but in all of them a woman is inferior to a man.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Then are we to impose all our enactments on men and none of them on
|
|
women?
|
|
|
|
That will never do.
|
|
|
|
One woman has a gift of healing, another not; one is a musician, and
|
|
another has no music in her nature?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And one woman has a turn for gymnastic and military exercises, and
|
|
another is unwarlike and hates gymnastics?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And one woman is a philosopher, and another is an enemy of philosophy;
|
|
one has spirit, and another is without spirit?
|
|
|
|
That is also true.
|
|
|
|
Then one woman will have the temper of a guardian, and another not. Was
|
|
not the selection of the male guardians determined by differences of
|
|
this sort?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Men and women alike possess the qualities which make a guardian; they
|
|
differ only in their comparative strength or weakness.
|
|
|
|
Obviously.
|
|
|
|
And those women who have such qualities are to be selected as the
|
|
companions and colleagues of men who have similar qualities and whom
|
|
they resemble in capacity and in character?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And ought not the same natures to have the same pursuits?
|
|
|
|
They ought.
|
|
|
|
Then, as we were saying before, there is nothing unnatural in assigning
|
|
music and gymnastic to the wives of the guardians--to that point we come
|
|
round again.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
The law which we then enacted was agreeable to nature, and therefore not
|
|
an impossibility or mere aspiration; and the contrary practice, which
|
|
prevails at present, is in reality a violation of nature.
|
|
|
|
That appears to be true.
|
|
|
|
We had to consider, first, whether our proposals were possible, and
|
|
secondly whether they were the most beneficial?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the possibility has been acknowledged?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
The very great benefit has next to be established?
|
|
|
|
Quite so.
|
|
|
|
You will admit that the same education which makes a man a good guardian
|
|
will make a woman a good guardian; for their original nature is the
|
|
same?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
I should like to ask you a question.
|
|
|
|
What is it?
|
|
|
|
Would you say that all men are equal in excellence, or is one man better
|
|
than another?
|
|
|
|
The latter.
|
|
|
|
And in the commonwealth which we were founding do you conceive the
|
|
guardians who have been brought up on our model system to be more
|
|
perfect men, or the cobblers whose education has been cobbling?
|
|
|
|
What a ridiculous question!
|
|
|
|
You have answered me, I replied: Well, and may we not further say that
|
|
our guardians are the best of our citizens?
|
|
|
|
By far the best.
|
|
|
|
And will not their wives be the best women?
|
|
|
|
Yes, by far the best.
|
|
|
|
And can there be anything better for the interests of the State than
|
|
that the men and women of a State should be as good as possible?
|
|
|
|
There can be nothing better.
|
|
|
|
And this is what the arts of music and gymnastic, when present in such
|
|
manner as we have described, will accomplish?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then we have made an enactment not only possible but in the highest
|
|
degree beneficial to the State?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then let the wives of our guardians strip, for their virtue will be
|
|
their robe, and let them share in the toils of war and the defence of
|
|
their country; only in the distribution of labours the lighter are to be
|
|
assigned to the women, who are the weaker natures, but in other respects
|
|
their duties are to be the same. And as for the man who laughs at naked
|
|
women exercising their bodies from the best of motives, in his laughter
|
|
he is plucking
|
|
|
|
'A fruit of unripe wisdom,'
|
|
|
|
and he himself is ignorant of what he is laughing at, or what he is
|
|
about;--for that is, and ever will be, the best of sayings, That the
|
|
useful is the noble and the hurtful is the base.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Here, then, is one difficulty in our law about women, which we may say
|
|
that we have now escaped; the wave has not swallowed us up alive for
|
|
enacting that the guardians of either sex should have all their
|
|
pursuits in common; to the utility and also to the possibility of this
|
|
arrangement the consistency of the argument with itself bears witness.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that was a mighty wave which you have escaped.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, but a greater is coming; you will not think much of this
|
|
when you see the next.
|
|
|
|
Go on; let me see.
|
|
|
|
The law, I said, which is the sequel of this and of all that has
|
|
preceded, is to the following effect,--'that the wives of our guardians
|
|
are to be common, and their children are to be common, and no parent is
|
|
to know his own child, nor any child his parent.'
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is a much greater wave than the other; and
|
|
the possibility as well as the utility of such a law are far more
|
|
questionable.
|
|
|
|
I do not think, I said, that there can be any dispute about the very
|
|
great utility of having wives and children in common; the possibility is
|
|
quite another matter, and will be very much disputed.
|
|
|
|
I think that a good many doubts may be raised about both.
|
|
|
|
You imply that the two questions must be combined, I replied. Now I
|
|
meant that you should admit the utility; and in this way, as I thought,
|
|
I should escape from one of them, and then there would remain only the
|
|
possibility.
|
|
|
|
But that little attempt is detected, and therefore you will please to
|
|
give a defence of both.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, I submit to my fate. Yet grant me a little favour: let
|
|
me feast my mind with the dream as day dreamers are in the habit of
|
|
feasting themselves when they are walking alone; for before they have
|
|
discovered any means of effecting their wishes--that is a matter which
|
|
never troubles them--they would rather not tire themselves by thinking
|
|
about possibilities; but assuming that what they desire is already
|
|
granted to them, they proceed with their plan, and delight in detailing
|
|
what they mean to do when their wish has come true--that is a way which
|
|
they have of not doing much good to a capacity which was never good for
|
|
much. Now I myself am beginning to lose heart, and I should like, with
|
|
your permission, to pass over the question of possibility at present.
|
|
Assuming therefore the possibility of the proposal, I shall now proceed
|
|
to enquire how the rulers will carry out these arrangements, and I shall
|
|
demonstrate that our plan, if executed, will be of the greatest benefit
|
|
to the State and to the guardians. First of all, then, if you have no
|
|
objection, I will endeavour with your help to consider the advantages of
|
|
the measure; and hereafter the question of possibility.
|
|
|
|
I have no objection; proceed.
|
|
|
|
First, I think that if our rulers and their auxiliaries are to be worthy
|
|
of the name which they bear, there must be willingness to obey in the
|
|
one and the power of command in the other; the guardians must themselves
|
|
obey the laws, and they must also imitate the spirit of them in any
|
|
details which are entrusted to their care.
|
|
|
|
That is right, he said.
|
|
|
|
You, I said, who are their legislator, having selected the men, will now
|
|
select the women and give them to them;--they must be as far as possible
|
|
of like natures with them; and they must live in common houses and meet
|
|
at common meals. None of them will have anything specially his or her
|
|
own; they will be together, and will be brought up together, and
|
|
will associate at gymnastic exercises. And so they will be drawn by
|
|
a necessity of their natures to have intercourse with each
|
|
other--necessity is not too strong a word, I think?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said;--necessity, not geometrical, but another sort of necessity
|
|
which lovers know, and which is far more convincing and constraining to
|
|
the mass of mankind.
|
|
|
|
True, I said; and this, Glaucon, like all the rest, must proceed after
|
|
an orderly fashion; in a city of the blessed, licentiousness is an
|
|
unholy thing which the rulers will forbid.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, and it ought not to be permitted.
|
|
|
|
Then clearly the next thing will be to make matrimony sacred in the
|
|
highest degree, and what is most beneficial will be deemed sacred?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
And how can marriages be made most beneficial?--that is a question which
|
|
I put to you, because I see in your house dogs for hunting, and of the
|
|
nobler sort of birds not a few. Now, I beseech you, do tell me, have you
|
|
ever attended to their pairing and breeding?
|
|
|
|
In what particulars?
|
|
|
|
Why, in the first place, although they are all of a good sort, are not
|
|
some better than others?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And do you breed from them all indifferently, or do you take care to
|
|
breed from the best only?
|
|
|
|
From the best.
|
|
|
|
And do you take the oldest or the youngest, or only those of ripe age?
|
|
|
|
I choose only those of ripe age.
|
|
|
|
And if care was not taken in the breeding, your dogs and birds would
|
|
greatly deteriorate?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And the same of horses and animals in general?
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly.
|
|
|
|
Good heavens! my dear friend, I said, what consummate skill will our
|
|
rulers need if the same principle holds of the human species!
|
|
|
|
Certainly, the same principle holds; but why does this involve any
|
|
particular skill?
|
|
|
|
Because, I said, our rulers will often have to practise upon the body
|
|
corporate with medicines. Now you know that when patients do not require
|
|
medicines, but have only to be put under a regimen, the inferior sort
|
|
of practitioner is deemed to be good enough; but when medicine has to be
|
|
given, then the doctor should be more of a man.
|
|
|
|
That is quite true, he said; but to what are you alluding?
|
|
|
|
I mean, I replied, that our rulers will find a considerable dose of
|
|
falsehood and deceit necessary for the good of their subjects: we were
|
|
saying that the use of all these things regarded as medicines might be
|
|
of advantage.
|
|
|
|
And we were very right.
|
|
|
|
And this lawful use of them seems likely to be often needed in the
|
|
regulations of marriages and births.
|
|
|
|
How so?
|
|
|
|
Why, I said, the principle has been already laid down that the best of
|
|
either sex should be united with the best as often, and the inferior
|
|
with the inferior, as seldom as possible; and that they should rear the
|
|
offspring of the one sort of union, but not of the other, if the flock
|
|
is to be maintained in first-rate condition. Now these goings on must be
|
|
a secret which the rulers only know, or there will be a further
|
|
danger of our herd, as the guardians may be termed, breaking out into
|
|
rebellion.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Had we not better appoint certain festivals at which we will bring
|
|
together the brides and bridegrooms, and sacrifices will be offered and
|
|
suitable hymeneal songs composed by our poets: the number of weddings is
|
|
a matter which must be left to the discretion of the rulers, whose aim
|
|
will be to preserve the average of population? There are many other
|
|
things which they will have to consider, such as the effects of wars and
|
|
diseases and any similar agencies, in order as far as this is possible
|
|
to prevent the State from becoming either too large or too small.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
We shall have to invent some ingenious kind of lots which the less
|
|
worthy may draw on each occasion of our bringing them together, and then
|
|
they will accuse their own ill-luck and not the rulers.
|
|
|
|
To be sure, he said.
|
|
|
|
And I think that our braver and better youth, besides their other
|
|
honours and rewards, might have greater facilities of intercourse with
|
|
women given them; their bravery will be a reason, and such fathers ought
|
|
to have as many sons as possible.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the proper officers, whether male or female or both, for offices are
|
|
to be held by women as well as by men--
|
|
|
|
Yes--
|
|
|
|
The proper officers will take the offspring of the good parents to the
|
|
pen or fold, and there they will deposit them with certain nurses who
|
|
dwell in a separate quarter; but the offspring of the inferior, or of
|
|
the better when they chance to be deformed, will be put away in some
|
|
mysterious, unknown place, as they should be.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that must be done if the breed of the guardians is to be
|
|
kept pure.
|
|
|
|
They will provide for their nurture, and will bring the mothers to the
|
|
fold when they are full of milk, taking the greatest possible care that
|
|
no mother recognises her own child; and other wet-nurses may be engaged
|
|
if more are required. Care will also be taken that the process of
|
|
suckling shall not be protracted too long; and the mothers will have no
|
|
getting up at night or other trouble, but will hand over all this sort
|
|
of thing to the nurses and attendants.
|
|
|
|
You suppose the wives of our guardians to have a fine easy time of it
|
|
when they are having children.
|
|
|
|
Why, said I, and so they ought. Let us, however, proceed with our
|
|
scheme. We were saying that the parents should be in the prime of life?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And what is the prime of life? May it not be defined as a period of
|
|
about twenty years in a woman's life, and thirty in a man's?
|
|
|
|
Which years do you mean to include?
|
|
|
|
A woman, I said, at twenty years of age may begin to bear children to
|
|
the State, and continue to bear them until forty; a man may begin at
|
|
five-and-twenty, when he has passed the point at which the pulse of life
|
|
beats quickest, and continue to beget children until he be fifty-five.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said, both in men and women those years are the prime of
|
|
physical as well as of intellectual vigour.
|
|
|
|
Any one above or below the prescribed ages who takes part in the public
|
|
hymeneals shall be said to have done an unholy and unrighteous thing;
|
|
the child of which he is the father, if it steals into life, will have
|
|
been conceived under auspices very unlike the sacrifices and prayers,
|
|
which at each hymeneal priestesses and priest and the whole city will
|
|
offer, that the new generation may be better and more useful than their
|
|
good and useful parents, whereas his child will be the offspring of
|
|
darkness and strange lust.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And the same law will apply to any one of those within the prescribed
|
|
age who forms a connection with any woman in the prime of life without
|
|
the sanction of the rulers; for we shall say that he is raising up a
|
|
bastard to the State, uncertified and unconsecrated.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
This applies, however, only to those who are within the specified age:
|
|
after that we allow them to range at will, except that a man may not
|
|
marry his daughter or his daughter's daughter, or his mother or his
|
|
mother's mother; and women, on the other hand, are prohibited from
|
|
marrying their sons or fathers, or son's son or father's father, and
|
|
so on in either direction. And we grant all this, accompanying the
|
|
permission with strict orders to prevent any embryo which may come into
|
|
being from seeing the light; and if any force a way to the birth, the
|
|
parents must understand that the offspring of such an union cannot be
|
|
maintained, and arrange accordingly.
|
|
|
|
That also, he said, is a reasonable proposition. But how will they know
|
|
who are fathers and daughters, and so on?
|
|
|
|
They will never know. The way will be this:--dating from the day of the
|
|
hymeneal, the bridegroom who was then married will call all the male
|
|
children who are born in the seventh and tenth month afterwards his
|
|
sons, and the female children his daughters, and they will call him
|
|
father, and he will call their children his grandchildren, and they will
|
|
call the elder generation grandfathers and grandmothers. All who were
|
|
begotten at the time when their fathers and mothers came together will
|
|
be called their brothers and sisters, and these, as I was saying, will
|
|
be forbidden to inter-marry. This, however, is not to be understood as
|
|
an absolute prohibition of the marriage of brothers and sisters; if the
|
|
lot favours them, and they receive the sanction of the Pythian oracle,
|
|
the law will allow them.
|
|
|
|
Quite right, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Such is the scheme, Glaucon, according to which the guardians of our
|
|
State are to have their wives and families in common. And now you would
|
|
have the argument show that this community is consistent with the rest
|
|
of our polity, and also that nothing can be better--would you not?
|
|
|
|
Yes, certainly.
|
|
|
|
Shall we try to find a common basis by asking of ourselves what ought
|
|
to be the chief aim of the legislator in making laws and in the
|
|
organization of a State,--what is the greatest good, and what is the
|
|
greatest evil, and then consider whether our previous description has
|
|
the stamp of the good or of the evil?
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
Can there be any greater evil than discord and distraction and plurality
|
|
where unity ought to reign? or any greater good than the bond of unity?
|
|
|
|
There cannot.
|
|
|
|
And there is unity where there is community of pleasures and
|
|
pains--where all the citizens are glad or grieved on the same occasions
|
|
of joy and sorrow?
|
|
|
|
No doubt.
|
|
|
|
Yes; and where there is no common but only private feeling a State is
|
|
disorganized--when you have one half of the world triumphing and the
|
|
other plunged in grief at the same events happening to the city or the
|
|
citizens?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Such differences commonly originate in a disagreement about the use of
|
|
the terms 'mine' and 'not mine,' 'his' and 'not his.'
|
|
|
|
Exactly so.
|
|
|
|
And is not that the best-ordered State in which the greatest number of
|
|
persons apply the terms 'mine' and 'not mine' in the same way to the
|
|
same thing?
|
|
|
|
Quite true.
|
|
|
|
Or that again which most nearly approaches to the condition of the
|
|
individual--as in the body, when but a finger of one of us is hurt, the
|
|
whole frame, drawn towards the soul as a centre and forming one kingdom
|
|
under the ruling power therein, feels the hurt and sympathizes all
|
|
together with the part affected, and we say that the man has a pain in
|
|
his finger; and the same expression is used about any other part of the
|
|
body, which has a sensation of pain at suffering or of pleasure at the
|
|
alleviation of suffering.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied; and I agree with you that in the best-ordered
|
|
State there is the nearest approach to this common feeling which you
|
|
describe.
|
|
|
|
Then when any one of the citizens experiences any good or evil, the
|
|
whole State will make his case their own, and will either rejoice or
|
|
sorrow with him?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is what will happen in a well-ordered State.
|
|
|
|
It will now be time, I said, for us to return to our State and see
|
|
whether this or some other form is most in accordance with these
|
|
fundamental principles.
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
Our State like every other has rulers and subjects?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
All of whom will call one another citizens?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
But is there not another name which people give to their rulers in other
|
|
States?
|
|
|
|
Generally they call them masters, but in democratic States they simply
|
|
call them rulers.
|
|
|
|
And in our State what other name besides that of citizens do the people
|
|
give the rulers?
|
|
|
|
They are called saviours and helpers, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And what do the rulers call the people?
|
|
|
|
Their maintainers and foster-fathers.
|
|
|
|
And what do they call them in other States?
|
|
|
|
Slaves.
|
|
|
|
And what do the rulers call one another in other States?
|
|
|
|
Fellow-rulers.
|
|
|
|
And what in ours?
|
|
|
|
Fellow-guardians.
|
|
|
|
Did you ever know an example in any other State of a ruler who would
|
|
speak of one of his colleagues as his friend and of another as not being
|
|
his friend?
|
|
|
|
Yes, very often.
|
|
|
|
And the friend he regards and describes as one in whom he has an
|
|
interest, and the other as a stranger in whom he has no interest?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
But would any of your guardians think or speak of any other guardian as
|
|
a stranger?
|
|
|
|
Certainly he would not; for every one whom they meet will be regarded
|
|
by them either as a brother or sister, or father or mother, or son or
|
|
daughter, or as the child or parent of those who are thus connected with
|
|
him.
|
|
|
|
Capital, I said; but let me ask you once more: Shall they be a family in
|
|
name only; or shall they in all their actions be true to the name? For
|
|
example, in the use of the word 'father,' would the care of a father be
|
|
implied and the filial reverence and duty and obedience to him which the
|
|
law commands; and is the violator of these duties to be regarded as an
|
|
impious and unrighteous person who is not likely to receive much good
|
|
either at the hands of God or of man? Are these to be or not to be the
|
|
strains which the children will hear repeated in their ears by all the
|
|
citizens about those who are intimated to them to be their parents and
|
|
the rest of their kinsfolk?
|
|
|
|
These, he said, and none other; for what can be more ridiculous than for
|
|
them to utter the names of family ties with the lips only and not to act
|
|
in the spirit of them?
|
|
|
|
Then in our city the language of harmony and concord will be more often
|
|
heard than in any other. As I was describing before, when any one is
|
|
well or ill, the universal word will be 'with me it is well' or 'it is
|
|
ill.'
|
|
|
|
Most true.
|
|
|
|
And agreeably to this mode of thinking and speaking, were we not saying
|
|
that they will have their pleasures and pains in common?
|
|
|
|
Yes, and so they will.
|
|
|
|
And they will have a common interest in the same thing which they will
|
|
alike call 'my own,' and having this common interest they will have a
|
|
common feeling of pleasure and pain?
|
|
|
|
Yes, far more so than in other States.
|
|
|
|
And the reason of this, over and above the general constitution of the
|
|
State, will be that the guardians will have a community of women and
|
|
children?
|
|
|
|
That will be the chief reason.
|
|
|
|
And this unity of feeling we admitted to be the greatest good, as was
|
|
implied in our own comparison of a well-ordered State to the relation of
|
|
the body and the members, when affected by pleasure or pain?
|
|
|
|
That we acknowledged, and very rightly.
|
|
|
|
Then the community of wives and children among our citizens is clearly
|
|
the source of the greatest good to the State?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And this agrees with the other principle which we were affirming,--that
|
|
the guardians were not to have houses or lands or any other property;
|
|
their pay was to be their food, which they were to receive from the
|
|
other citizens, and they were to have no private expenses; for we
|
|
intended them to preserve their true character of guardians.
|
|
|
|
Right, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Both the community of property and the community of families, as I am
|
|
saying, tend to make them more truly guardians; they will not tear
|
|
the city in pieces by differing about 'mine' and 'not mine;' each man
|
|
dragging any acquisition which he has made into a separate house of his
|
|
own, where he has a separate wife and children and private pleasures and
|
|
pains; but all will be affected as far as may be by the same pleasures
|
|
and pains because they are all of one opinion about what is near and
|
|
dear to them, and therefore they all tend towards a common end.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And as they have nothing but their persons which they can call their
|
|
own, suits and complaints will have no existence among them; they will
|
|
be delivered from all those quarrels of which money or children or
|
|
relations are the occasion.
|
|
|
|
Of course they will.
|
|
|
|
Neither will trials for assault or insult ever be likely to occur among
|
|
them. For that equals should defend themselves against equals we shall
|
|
maintain to be honourable and right; we shall make the protection of the
|
|
person a matter of necessity.
|
|
|
|
That is good, he said.
|
|
|
|
Yes; and there is a further good in the law; viz. that if a man has a
|
|
quarrel with another he will satisfy his resentment then and there, and
|
|
not proceed to more dangerous lengths.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
To the elder shall be assigned the duty of ruling and chastising the
|
|
younger.
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
Nor can there be a doubt that the younger will not strike or do any
|
|
other violence to an elder, unless the magistrates command him; nor will
|
|
he slight him in any way. For there are two guardians, shame and fear,
|
|
mighty to prevent him: shame, which makes men refrain from laying hands
|
|
on those who are to them in the relation of parents; fear, that the
|
|
injured one will be succoured by the others who are his brothers, sons,
|
|
fathers.
|
|
|
|
That is true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then in every way the laws will help the citizens to keep the peace with
|
|
one another?
|
|
|
|
Yes, there will be no want of peace.
|
|
|
|
And as the guardians will never quarrel among themselves there will be
|
|
no danger of the rest of the city being divided either against them or
|
|
against one another.
|
|
|
|
None whatever.
|
|
|
|
I hardly like even to mention the little meannesses of which they will
|
|
be rid, for they are beneath notice: such, for example, as the
|
|
flattery of the rich by the poor, and all the pains and pangs which
|
|
men experience in bringing up a family, and in finding money to buy
|
|
necessaries for their household, borrowing and then repudiating, getting
|
|
how they can, and giving the money into the hands of women and slaves
|
|
to keep--the many evils of so many kinds which people suffer in this way
|
|
are mean enough and obvious enough, and not worth speaking of.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, a man has no need of eyes in order to perceive that.
|
|
|
|
And from all these evils they will be delivered, and their life will be
|
|
blessed as the life of Olympic victors and yet more blessed.
|
|
|
|
How so?
|
|
|
|
The Olympic victor, I said, is deemed happy in receiving a part only of
|
|
the blessedness which is secured to our citizens, who have won a more
|
|
glorious victory and have a more complete maintenance at the public
|
|
cost. For the victory which they have won is the salvation of the whole
|
|
State; and the crown with which they and their children are crowned is
|
|
the fulness of all that life needs; they receive rewards from the
|
|
hands of their country while living, and after death have an honourable
|
|
burial.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, and glorious rewards they are.
|
|
|
|
Do you remember, I said, how in the course of the previous discussion
|
|
some one who shall be nameless accused us of making our guardians
|
|
unhappy--they had nothing and might have possessed all things--to whom
|
|
we replied that, if an occasion offered, we might perhaps hereafter
|
|
consider this question, but that, as at present advised, we would make
|
|
our guardians truly guardians, and that we were fashioning the State
|
|
with a view to the greatest happiness, not of any particular class, but
|
|
of the whole?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I remember.
|
|
|
|
And what do you say, now that the life of our protectors is made out to
|
|
be far better and nobler than that of Olympic victors--is the life of
|
|
shoemakers, or any other artisans, or of husbandmen, to be compared with
|
|
it?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
At the same time I ought here to repeat what I have said elsewhere, that
|
|
if any of our guardians shall try to be happy in such a manner that
|
|
he will cease to be a guardian, and is not content with this safe and
|
|
harmonious life, which, in our judgment, is of all lives the best, but
|
|
infatuated by some youthful conceit of happiness which gets up into his
|
|
head shall seek to appropriate the whole state to himself, then he will
|
|
have to learn how wisely Hesiod spoke, when he said, 'half is more than
|
|
the whole.'
|
|
|
|
If he were to consult me, I should say to him: Stay where you are, when
|
|
you have the offer of such a life.
|
|
|
|
You agree then, I said, that men and women are to have a common way of
|
|
life such as we have described--common education, common children; and
|
|
they are to watch over the citizens in common whether abiding in the
|
|
city or going out to war; they are to keep watch together, and to hunt
|
|
together like dogs; and always and in all things, as far as they are
|
|
able, women are to share with the men? And in so doing they will do what
|
|
is best, and will not violate, but preserve the natural relation of the
|
|
sexes.
|
|
|
|
I agree with you, he replied.
|
|
|
|
The enquiry, I said, has yet to be made, whether such a community
|
|
be found possible--as among other animals, so also among men--and if
|
|
possible, in what way possible?
|
|
|
|
You have anticipated the question which I was about to suggest.
|
|
|
|
There is no difficulty, I said, in seeing how war will be carried on by
|
|
them.
|
|
|
|
How?
|
|
|
|
Why, of course they will go on expeditions together; and will take with
|
|
them any of their children who are strong enough, that, after the manner
|
|
of the artisan's child, they may look on at the work which they will
|
|
have to do when they are grown up; and besides looking on they will
|
|
have to help and be of use in war, and to wait upon their fathers and
|
|
mothers. Did you never observe in the arts how the potters' boys look on
|
|
and help, long before they touch the wheel?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I have.
|
|
|
|
And shall potters be more careful in educating their children and in
|
|
giving them the opportunity of seeing and practising their duties than
|
|
our guardians will be?
|
|
|
|
The idea is ridiculous, he said.
|
|
|
|
There is also the effect on the parents, with whom, as with other
|
|
animals, the presence of their young ones will be the greatest incentive
|
|
to valour.
|
|
|
|
That is quite true, Socrates; and yet if they are defeated, which may
|
|
often happen in war, how great the danger is! the children will be lost
|
|
as well as their parents, and the State will never recover.
|
|
|
|
True, I said; but would you never allow them to run any risk?
|
|
|
|
I am far from saying that.
|
|
|
|
Well, but if they are ever to run a risk should they not do so on some
|
|
occasion when, if they escape disaster, they will be the better for it?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
Whether the future soldiers do or do not see war in the days of their
|
|
youth is a very important matter, for the sake of which some risk may
|
|
fairly be incurred.
|
|
|
|
Yes, very important.
|
|
|
|
This then must be our first step,--to make our children spectators
|
|
of war; but we must also contrive that they shall be secured against
|
|
danger; then all will be well.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Their parents may be supposed not to be blind to the risks of war, but
|
|
to know, as far as human foresight can, what expeditions are safe and
|
|
what dangerous?
|
|
|
|
That may be assumed.
|
|
|
|
And they will take them on the safe expeditions and be cautious about
|
|
the dangerous ones?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And they will place them under the command of experienced veterans who
|
|
will be their leaders and teachers?
|
|
|
|
Very properly.
|
|
|
|
Still, the dangers of war cannot be always foreseen; there is a good
|
|
deal of chance about them?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then against such chances the children must be at once furnished with
|
|
wings, in order that in the hour of need they may fly away and escape.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? he said.
|
|
|
|
I mean that we must mount them on horses in their earliest youth, and
|
|
when they have learnt to ride, take them on horseback to see war: the
|
|
horses must not be spirited and warlike, but the most tractable and yet
|
|
the swiftest that can be had. In this way they will get an excellent
|
|
view of what is hereafter to be their own business; and if there is
|
|
danger they have only to follow their elder leaders and escape.
|
|
|
|
I believe that you are right, he said.
|
|
|
|
Next, as to war; what are to be the relations of your soldiers to one
|
|
another and to their enemies? I should be inclined to propose that the
|
|
soldier who leaves his rank or throws away his arms, or is guilty of any
|
|
other act of cowardice, should be degraded into the rank of a husbandman
|
|
or artisan. What do you think?
|
|
|
|
By all means, I should say.
|
|
|
|
And he who allows himself to be taken prisoner may as well be made a
|
|
present of to his enemies; he is their lawful prey, and let them do what
|
|
they like with him.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
But the hero who has distinguished himself, what shall be done to
|
|
him? In the first place, he shall receive honour in the army from his
|
|
youthful comrades; every one of them in succession shall crown him. What
|
|
do you say?
|
|
|
|
I approve.
|
|
|
|
And what do you say to his receiving the right hand of fellowship?
|
|
|
|
To that too, I agree.
|
|
|
|
But you will hardly agree to my next proposal.
|
|
|
|
What is your proposal?
|
|
|
|
That he should kiss and be kissed by them.
|
|
|
|
Most certainly, and I should be disposed to go further, and say: Let
|
|
no one whom he has a mind to kiss refuse to be kissed by him while the
|
|
expedition lasts. So that if there be a lover in the army, whether
|
|
his love be youth or maiden, he may be more eager to win the prize of
|
|
valour.
|
|
|
|
Capital, I said. That the brave man is to have more wives than others
|
|
has been already determined: and he is to have first choices in such
|
|
matters more than others, in order that he may have as many children as
|
|
possible?
|
|
|
|
Agreed.
|
|
|
|
Again, there is another manner in which, according to Homer, brave
|
|
youths should be honoured; for he tells how Ajax, after he had
|
|
distinguished himself in battle, was rewarded with long chines, which
|
|
seems to be a compliment appropriate to a hero in the flower of his age,
|
|
being not only a tribute of honour but also a very strengthening thing.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then in this, I said, Homer shall be our teacher; and we too, at
|
|
sacrifices and on the like occasions, will honour the brave according to
|
|
the measure of their valour, whether men or women, with hymns and those
|
|
other distinctions which we were mentioning; also with
|
|
|
|
'seats of precedence, and meats and full cups;'
|
|
|
|
and in honouring them, we shall be at the same time training them.
|
|
|
|
That, he replied, is excellent.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and when a man dies gloriously in war shall we not say, in
|
|
the first place, that he is of the golden race?
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
Nay, have we not the authority of Hesiod for affirming that when they
|
|
are dead
|
|
|
|
'They are holy angels upon the earth, authors of good, averters of evil,
|
|
the guardians of speech-gifted men'?
|
|
|
|
Yes; and we accept his authority.
|
|
|
|
We must learn of the god how we are to order the sepulture of divine and
|
|
heroic personages, and what is to be their special distinction; and we
|
|
must do as he bids?
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
And in ages to come we will reverence them and kneel before their
|
|
sepulchres as at the graves of heroes. And not only they but any who are
|
|
deemed pre-eminently good, whether they die from age, or in any other
|
|
way, shall be admitted to the same honours.
|
|
|
|
That is very right, he said.
|
|
|
|
Next, how shall our soldiers treat their enemies? What about this?
|
|
|
|
In what respect do you mean?
|
|
|
|
First of all, in regard to slavery? Do you think it right that Hellenes
|
|
should enslave Hellenic States, or allow others to enslave them, if
|
|
they can help? Should not their custom be to spare them, considering
|
|
the danger which there is that the whole race may one day fall under the
|
|
yoke of the barbarians?
|
|
|
|
To spare them is infinitely better.
|
|
|
|
Then no Hellene should be owned by them as a slave; that is a rule which
|
|
they will observe and advise the other Hellenes to observe.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said; they will in this way be united against the
|
|
barbarians and will keep their hands off one another.
|
|
|
|
Next as to the slain; ought the conquerors, I said, to take anything
|
|
but their armour? Does not the practice of despoiling an enemy afford
|
|
an excuse for not facing the battle? Cowards skulk about the dead,
|
|
pretending that they are fulfilling a duty, and many an army before now
|
|
has been lost from this love of plunder.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And is there not illiberality and avarice in robbing a corpse, and also
|
|
a degree of meanness and womanishness in making an enemy of the dead
|
|
body when the real enemy has flown away and left only his fighting
|
|
gear behind him,--is not this rather like a dog who cannot get at his
|
|
assailant, quarrelling with the stones which strike him instead?
|
|
|
|
Very like a dog, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then we must abstain from spoiling the dead or hindering their burial?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied, we most certainly must.
|
|
|
|
Neither shall we offer up arms at the temples of the gods, least of all
|
|
the arms of Hellenes, if we care to maintain good feeling with other
|
|
Hellenes; and, indeed, we have reason to fear that the offering of
|
|
spoils taken from kinsmen may be a pollution unless commanded by the god
|
|
himself?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Again, as to the devastation of Hellenic territory or the burning of
|
|
houses, what is to be the practice?
|
|
|
|
May I have the pleasure, he said, of hearing your opinion?
|
|
|
|
Both should be forbidden, in my judgment; I would take the annual
|
|
produce and no more. Shall I tell you why?
|
|
|
|
Pray do.
|
|
|
|
Why, you see, there is a difference in the names 'discord' and 'war,'
|
|
and I imagine that there is also a difference in their natures; the one
|
|
is expressive of what is internal and domestic, the other of what is
|
|
external and foreign; and the first of the two is termed discord, and
|
|
only the second, war.
|
|
|
|
That is a very proper distinction, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And may I not observe with equal propriety that the Hellenic race is all
|
|
united together by ties of blood and friendship, and alien and strange
|
|
to the barbarians?
|
|
|
|
Very good, he said.
|
|
|
|
And therefore when Hellenes fight with barbarians and barbarians with
|
|
Hellenes, they will be described by us as being at war when they fight,
|
|
and by nature enemies, and this kind of antagonism should be called war;
|
|
but when Hellenes fight with one another we shall say that Hellas is
|
|
then in a state of disorder and discord, they being by nature friends;
|
|
and such enmity is to be called discord.
|
|
|
|
I agree.
|
|
|
|
Consider then, I said, when that which we have acknowledged to be
|
|
discord occurs, and a city is divided, if both parties destroy the lands
|
|
and burn the houses of one another, how wicked does the strife appear!
|
|
No true lover of his country would bring himself to tear in pieces his
|
|
own nurse and mother: There might be reason in the conqueror depriving
|
|
the conquered of their harvest, but still they would have the idea of
|
|
peace in their hearts and would not mean to go on fighting for ever.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is a better temper than the other.
|
|
|
|
And will not the city, which you are founding, be an Hellenic city?
|
|
|
|
It ought to be, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then will not the citizens be good and civilized?
|
|
|
|
Yes, very civilized.
|
|
|
|
And will they not be lovers of Hellas, and think of Hellas as their own
|
|
land, and share in the common temples?
|
|
|
|
Most certainly.
|
|
|
|
And any difference which arises among them will be regarded by them as
|
|
discord only--a quarrel among friends, which is not to be called a war?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Then they will quarrel as those who intend some day to be reconciled?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
They will use friendly correction, but will not enslave or destroy their
|
|
opponents; they will be correctors, not enemies?
|
|
|
|
Just so.
|
|
|
|
And as they are Hellenes themselves they will not devastate Hellas, nor
|
|
will they burn houses, nor ever suppose that the whole population of a
|
|
city--men, women, and children--are equally their enemies, for they know
|
|
that the guilt of war is always confined to a few persons and that the
|
|
many are their friends. And for all these reasons they will be unwilling
|
|
to waste their lands and rase their houses; their enmity to them will
|
|
only last until the many innocent sufferers have compelled the guilty
|
|
few to give satisfaction?
|
|
|
|
I agree, he said, that our citizens should thus deal with their Hellenic
|
|
enemies; and with barbarians as the Hellenes now deal with one another.
|
|
|
|
Then let us enact this law also for our guardians:--that they are
|
|
neither to devastate the lands of Hellenes nor to burn their houses.
|
|
|
|
Agreed; and we may agree also in thinking that these, like all our
|
|
previous enactments, are very good.
|
|
|
|
But still I must say, Socrates, that if you are allowed to go on in
|
|
this way you will entirely forget the other question which at the
|
|
commencement of this discussion you thrust aside:--Is such an order of
|
|
things possible, and how, if at all? For I am quite ready to acknowledge
|
|
that the plan which you propose, if only feasible, would do all sorts of
|
|
good to the State. I will add, what you have omitted, that your citizens
|
|
will be the bravest of warriors, and will never leave their ranks, for
|
|
they will all know one another, and each will call the other father,
|
|
brother, son; and if you suppose the women to join their armies, whether
|
|
in the same rank or in the rear, either as a terror to the enemy, or as
|
|
auxiliaries in case of need, I know that they will then be absolutely
|
|
invincible; and there are many domestic advantages which might also be
|
|
mentioned and which I also fully acknowledge: but, as I admit all these
|
|
advantages and as many more as you please, if only this State of yours
|
|
were to come into existence, we need say no more about them; assuming
|
|
then the existence of the State, let us now turn to the question of
|
|
possibility and ways and means--the rest may be left.
|
|
|
|
If I loiter for a moment, you instantly make a raid upon me, I said, and
|
|
have no mercy; I have hardly escaped the first and second waves, and you
|
|
seem not to be aware that you are now bringing upon me the third, which
|
|
is the greatest and heaviest. When you have seen and heard the third
|
|
wave, I think you will be more considerate and will acknowledge
|
|
that some fear and hesitation was natural respecting a proposal so
|
|
extraordinary as that which I have now to state and investigate.
|
|
|
|
The more appeals of this sort which you make, he said, the more
|
|
determined are we that you shall tell us how such a State is possible:
|
|
speak out and at once.
|
|
|
|
Let me begin by reminding you that we found our way hither in the search
|
|
after justice and injustice.
|
|
|
|
True, he replied; but what of that?
|
|
|
|
I was only going to ask whether, if we have discovered them, we are to
|
|
require that the just man should in nothing fail of absolute justice; or
|
|
may we be satisfied with an approximation, and the attainment in him of
|
|
a higher degree of justice than is to be found in other men?
|
|
|
|
The approximation will be enough.
|
|
|
|
We were enquiring into the nature of absolute justice and into the
|
|
character of the perfectly just, and into injustice and the perfectly
|
|
unjust, that we might have an ideal. We were to look at these in order
|
|
that we might judge of our own happiness and unhappiness according to
|
|
the standard which they exhibited and the degree in which we resembled
|
|
them, but not with any view of showing that they could exist in fact.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
Would a painter be any the worse because, after having delineated with
|
|
consummate art an ideal of a perfectly beautiful man, he was unable to
|
|
show that any such man could ever have existed?
|
|
|
|
He would be none the worse.
|
|
|
|
Well, and were we not creating an ideal of a perfect State?
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
And is our theory a worse theory because we are unable to prove the
|
|
possibility of a city being ordered in the manner described?
|
|
|
|
Surely not, he replied.
|
|
|
|
That is the truth, I said. But if, at your request, I am to try and show
|
|
how and under what conditions the possibility is highest, I must ask
|
|
you, having this in view, to repeat your former admissions.
|
|
|
|
What admissions?
|
|
|
|
I want to know whether ideals are ever fully realized in language?
|
|
Does not the word express more than the fact, and must not the actual,
|
|
whatever a man may think, always, in the nature of things, fall short of
|
|
the truth? What do you say?
|
|
|
|
I agree.
|
|
|
|
Then you must not insist on my proving that the actual State will in
|
|
every respect coincide with the ideal: if we are only able to discover
|
|
how a city may be governed nearly as we proposed, you will admit that we
|
|
have discovered the possibility which you demand; and will be contented.
|
|
I am sure that I should be contented--will not you?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I will.
|
|
|
|
Let me next endeavour to show what is that fault in States which is the
|
|
cause of their present maladministration, and what is the least change
|
|
which will enable a State to pass into the truer form; and let the
|
|
change, if possible, be of one thing only, or, if not, of two; at any
|
|
rate, let the changes be as few and slight as possible.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
I think, I said, that there might be a reform of the State if only one
|
|
change were made, which is not a slight or easy though still a possible
|
|
one.
|
|
|
|
What is it? he said.
|
|
|
|
Now then, I said, I go to meet that which I liken to the greatest of
|
|
the waves; yet shall the word be spoken, even though the wave break and
|
|
drown me in laughter and dishonour; and do you mark my words.
|
|
|
|
Proceed.
|
|
|
|
I said: 'Until philosophers are kings, or the kings and princes of this
|
|
world have the spirit and power of philosophy, and political greatness
|
|
and wisdom meet in one, and those commoner natures who pursue either
|
|
to the exclusion of the other are compelled to stand aside, cities
|
|
will never have rest from their evils,--nor the human race, as I
|
|
believe,--and then only will this our State have a possibility of life
|
|
and behold the light of day.' Such was the thought, my dear Glaucon,
|
|
which I would fain have uttered if it had not seemed too extravagant;
|
|
for to be convinced that in no other State can there be happiness
|
|
private or public is indeed a hard thing.
|
|
|
|
Socrates, what do you mean? I would have you consider that the word
|
|
which you have uttered is one at which numerous persons, and very
|
|
respectable persons too, in a figure pulling off their coats all in a
|
|
moment, and seizing any weapon that comes to hand, will run at you might
|
|
and main, before you know where you are, intending to do heaven knows
|
|
what; and if you don't prepare an answer, and put yourself in motion,
|
|
you will be 'pared by their fine wits,' and no mistake.
|
|
|
|
You got me into the scrape, I said.
|
|
|
|
And I was quite right; however, I will do all I can to get you out of
|
|
it; but I can only give you good-will and good advice, and, perhaps, I
|
|
may be able to fit answers to your questions better than another--that
|
|
is all. And now, having such an auxiliary, you must do your best to show
|
|
the unbelievers that you are right.
|
|
|
|
I ought to try, I said, since you offer me such invaluable assistance.
|
|
And I think that, if there is to be a chance of our escaping, we must
|
|
explain to them whom we mean when we say that philosophers are to rule
|
|
in the State; then we shall be able to defend ourselves: There will be
|
|
discovered to be some natures who ought to study philosophy and to be
|
|
leaders in the State; and others who are not born to be philosophers,
|
|
and are meant to be followers rather than leaders.
|
|
|
|
Then now for a definition, he said.
|
|
|
|
Follow me, I said, and I hope that I may in some way or other be able to
|
|
give you a satisfactory explanation.
|
|
|
|
Proceed.
|
|
|
|
I dare say that you remember, and therefore I need not remind you, that
|
|
a lover, if he is worthy of the name, ought to show his love, not to
|
|
some one part of that which he loves, but to the whole.
|
|
|
|
I really do not understand, and therefore beg of you to assist my
|
|
memory.
|
|
|
|
Another person, I said, might fairly reply as you do; but a man of
|
|
pleasure like yourself ought to know that all who are in the flower of
|
|
youth do somehow or other raise a pang or emotion in a lover's breast,
|
|
and are thought by him to be worthy of his affectionate regards. Is not
|
|
this a way which you have with the fair: one has a snub nose, and you
|
|
praise his charming face; the hook-nose of another has, you say, a
|
|
royal look; while he who is neither snub nor hooked has the grace of
|
|
regularity: the dark visage is manly, the fair are children of the gods;
|
|
and as to the sweet 'honey pale,' as they are called, what is the very
|
|
name but the invention of a lover who talks in diminutives, and is not
|
|
averse to paleness if appearing on the cheek of youth? In a word, there
|
|
is no excuse which you will not make, and nothing which you will not
|
|
say, in order not to lose a single flower that blooms in the spring-time
|
|
of youth.
|
|
|
|
If you make me an authority in matters of love, for the sake of the
|
|
argument, I assent.
|
|
|
|
And what do you say of lovers of wine? Do you not see them doing the
|
|
same? They are glad of any pretext of drinking any wine.
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
And the same is true of ambitious men; if they cannot command an army,
|
|
they are willing to command a file; and if they cannot be honoured by
|
|
really great and important persons, they are glad to be honoured by
|
|
lesser and meaner people,--but honour of some kind they must have.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
Once more let me ask: Does he who desires any class of goods, desire the
|
|
whole class or a part only?
|
|
|
|
The whole.
|
|
|
|
And may we not say of the philosopher that he is a lover, not of a part
|
|
of wisdom only, but of the whole?
|
|
|
|
Yes, of the whole.
|
|
|
|
And he who dislikes learning, especially in youth, when he has no power
|
|
of judging what is good and what is not, such an one we maintain not
|
|
to be a philosopher or a lover of knowledge, just as he who refuses his
|
|
food is not hungry, and may be said to have a bad appetite and not a
|
|
good one?
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Whereas he who has a taste for every sort of knowledge and who is
|
|
curious to learn and is never satisfied, may be justly termed a
|
|
philosopher? Am I not right?
|
|
|
|
Glaucon said: If curiosity makes a philosopher, you will find many a
|
|
strange being will have a title to the name. All the lovers of sights
|
|
have a delight in learning, and must therefore be included. Musical
|
|
amateurs, too, are a folk strangely out of place among philosophers, for
|
|
they are the last persons in the world who would come to anything like
|
|
a philosophical discussion, if they could help, while they run about at
|
|
the Dionysiac festivals as if they had let out their ears to hear every
|
|
chorus; whether the performance is in town or country--that makes no
|
|
difference--they are there. Now are we to maintain that all these and
|
|
any who have similar tastes, as well as the professors of quite minor
|
|
arts, are philosophers?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, I replied; they are only an imitation.
|
|
|
|
He said: Who then are the true philosophers?
|
|
|
|
Those, I said, who are lovers of the vision of truth.
|
|
|
|
That is also good, he said; but I should like to know what you mean?
|
|
|
|
To another, I replied, I might have a difficulty in explaining; but I am
|
|
sure that you will admit a proposition which I am about to make.
|
|
|
|
What is the proposition?
|
|
|
|
That since beauty is the opposite of ugliness, they are two?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And inasmuch as they are two, each of them is one?
|
|
|
|
True again.
|
|
|
|
And of just and unjust, good and evil, and of every other class, the
|
|
same remark holds: taken singly, each of them is one; but from the
|
|
various combinations of them with actions and things and with one
|
|
another, they are seen in all sorts of lights and appear many?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And this is the distinction which I draw between the sight-loving,
|
|
art-loving, practical class and those of whom I am speaking, and who are
|
|
alone worthy of the name of philosophers.
|
|
|
|
How do you distinguish them? he said.
|
|
|
|
The lovers of sounds and sights, I replied, are, as I conceive, fond of
|
|
fine tones and colours and forms and all the artificial products that
|
|
are made out of them, but their mind is incapable of seeing or loving
|
|
absolute beauty.
|
|
|
|
True, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Few are they who are able to attain to the sight of this.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And he who, having a sense of beautiful things has no sense of absolute
|
|
beauty, or who, if another lead him to a knowledge of that beauty is
|
|
unable to follow--of such an one I ask, Is he awake or in a dream
|
|
only? Reflect: is not the dreamer, sleeping or waking, one who likens
|
|
dissimilar things, who puts the copy in the place of the real object?
|
|
|
|
I should certainly say that such an one was dreaming.
|
|
|
|
But take the case of the other, who recognises the existence of absolute
|
|
beauty and is able to distinguish the idea from the objects which
|
|
participate in the idea, neither putting the objects in the place of the
|
|
idea nor the idea in the place of the objects--is he a dreamer, or is he
|
|
awake?
|
|
|
|
He is wide awake.
|
|
|
|
And may we not say that the mind of the one who knows has knowledge, and
|
|
that the mind of the other, who opines only, has opinion?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
But suppose that the latter should quarrel with us and dispute our
|
|
statement, can we administer any soothing cordial or advice to him,
|
|
without revealing to him that there is sad disorder in his wits?
|
|
|
|
We must certainly offer him some good advice, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Come, then, and let us think of something to say to him. Shall we begin
|
|
by assuring him that he is welcome to any knowledge which he may have,
|
|
and that we are rejoiced at his having it? But we should like to ask him
|
|
a question: Does he who has knowledge know something or nothing? (You
|
|
must answer for him.)
|
|
|
|
I answer that he knows something.
|
|
|
|
Something that is or is not?
|
|
|
|
Something that is; for how can that which is not ever be known?
|
|
|
|
And are we assured, after looking at the matter from many points of
|
|
view, that absolute being is or may be absolutely known, but that the
|
|
utterly non-existent is utterly unknown?
|
|
|
|
Nothing can be more certain.
|
|
|
|
Good. But if there be anything which is of such a nature as to be and
|
|
not to be, that will have a place intermediate between pure being and
|
|
the absolute negation of being?
|
|
|
|
Yes, between them.
|
|
|
|
And, as knowledge corresponded to being and ignorance of necessity to
|
|
not-being, for that intermediate between being and not-being there has
|
|
to be discovered a corresponding intermediate between ignorance and
|
|
knowledge, if there be such?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Do we admit the existence of opinion?
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly.
|
|
|
|
As being the same with knowledge, or another faculty?
|
|
|
|
Another faculty.
|
|
|
|
Then opinion and knowledge have to do with different kinds of matter
|
|
corresponding to this difference of faculties?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And knowledge is relative to being and knows being. But before I proceed
|
|
further I will make a division.
|
|
|
|
What division?
|
|
|
|
I will begin by placing faculties in a class by themselves: they are
|
|
powers in us, and in all other things, by which we do as we do. Sight
|
|
and hearing, for example, I should call faculties. Have I clearly
|
|
explained the class which I mean?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I quite understand.
|
|
|
|
Then let me tell you my view about them. I do not see them, and
|
|
therefore the distinctions of figure, colour, and the like, which enable
|
|
me to discern the differences of some things, do not apply to them. In
|
|
speaking of a faculty I think only of its sphere and its result; and
|
|
that which has the same sphere and the same result I call the same
|
|
faculty, but that which has another sphere and another result I call
|
|
different. Would that be your way of speaking?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And will you be so very good as to answer one more question? Would you
|
|
say that knowledge is a faculty, or in what class would you place it?
|
|
|
|
Certainly knowledge is a faculty, and the mightiest of all faculties.
|
|
|
|
And is opinion also a faculty?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said; for opinion is that with which we are able to form
|
|
an opinion.
|
|
|
|
And yet you were acknowledging a little while ago that knowledge is not
|
|
the same as opinion?
|
|
|
|
Why, yes, he said: how can any reasonable being ever identify that which
|
|
is infallible with that which errs?
|
|
|
|
An excellent answer, proving, I said, that we are quite conscious of a
|
|
distinction between them.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then knowledge and opinion having distinct powers have also distinct
|
|
spheres or subject-matters?
|
|
|
|
That is certain.
|
|
|
|
Being is the sphere or subject-matter of knowledge, and knowledge is to
|
|
know the nature of being?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And opinion is to have an opinion?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And do we know what we opine? or is the subject-matter of opinion the
|
|
same as the subject-matter of knowledge?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he replied, that has been already disproven; if difference in
|
|
faculty implies difference in the sphere or subject-matter, and if, as
|
|
we were saying, opinion and knowledge are distinct faculties, then the
|
|
sphere of knowledge and of opinion cannot be the same.
|
|
|
|
Then if being is the subject-matter of knowledge, something else must be
|
|
the subject-matter of opinion?
|
|
|
|
Yes, something else.
|
|
|
|
Well then, is not-being the subject-matter of opinion? or, rather, how
|
|
can there be an opinion at all about not-being? Reflect: when a man
|
|
has an opinion, has he not an opinion about something? Can he have an
|
|
opinion which is an opinion about nothing?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
He who has an opinion has an opinion about some one thing?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And not-being is not one thing but, properly speaking, nothing?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Of not-being, ignorance was assumed to be the necessary correlative; of
|
|
being, knowledge?
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then opinion is not concerned either with being or with not-being?
|
|
|
|
Not with either.
|
|
|
|
And can therefore neither be ignorance nor knowledge?
|
|
|
|
That seems to be true.
|
|
|
|
But is opinion to be sought without and beyond either of them, in
|
|
a greater clearness than knowledge, or in a greater darkness than
|
|
ignorance?
|
|
|
|
In neither.
|
|
|
|
Then I suppose that opinion appears to you to be darker than knowledge,
|
|
but lighter than ignorance?
|
|
|
|
Both; and in no small degree.
|
|
|
|
And also to be within and between them?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then you would infer that opinion is intermediate?
|
|
|
|
No question.
|
|
|
|
But were we not saying before, that if anything appeared to be of a sort
|
|
which is and is not at the same time, that sort of thing would appear
|
|
also to lie in the interval between pure being and absolute not-being;
|
|
and that the corresponding faculty is neither knowledge nor ignorance,
|
|
but will be found in the interval between them?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And in that interval there has now been discovered something which we
|
|
call opinion?
|
|
|
|
There has.
|
|
|
|
Then what remains to be discovered is the object which partakes equally
|
|
of the nature of being and not-being, and cannot rightly be termed
|
|
either, pure and simple; this unknown term, when discovered, we may
|
|
truly call the subject of opinion, and assign each to their proper
|
|
faculty,--the extremes to the faculties of the extremes and the mean to
|
|
the faculty of the mean.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
This being premised, I would ask the gentleman who is of opinion that
|
|
there is no absolute or unchangeable idea of beauty--in whose opinion
|
|
the beautiful is the manifold--he, I say, your lover of beautiful
|
|
sights, who cannot bear to be told that the beautiful is one, and the
|
|
just is one, or that anything is one--to him I would appeal, saying,
|
|
Will you be so very kind, sir, as to tell us whether, of all these
|
|
beautiful things, there is one which will not be found ugly; or of the
|
|
just, which will not be found unjust; or of the holy, which will not
|
|
also be unholy?
|
|
|
|
No, he replied; the beautiful will in some point of view be found ugly;
|
|
and the same is true of the rest.
|
|
|
|
And may not the many which are doubles be also halves?--doubles, that
|
|
is, of one thing, and halves of another?
|
|
|
|
Quite true.
|
|
|
|
And things great and small, heavy and light, as they are termed, will
|
|
not be denoted by these any more than by the opposite names?
|
|
|
|
True; both these and the opposite names will always attach to all of
|
|
them.
|
|
|
|
And can any one of those many things which are called by particular
|
|
names be said to be this rather than not to be this?
|
|
|
|
He replied: They are like the punning riddles which are asked at feasts
|
|
or the children's puzzle about the eunuch aiming at the bat, with
|
|
what he hit him, as they say in the puzzle, and upon what the bat
|
|
was sitting. The individual objects of which I am speaking are also
|
|
a riddle, and have a double sense: nor can you fix them in your mind,
|
|
either as being or not-being, or both, or neither.
|
|
|
|
Then what will you do with them? I said. Can they have a better place
|
|
than between being and not-being? For they are clearly not in greater
|
|
darkness or negation than not-being, or more full of light and existence
|
|
than being.
|
|
|
|
That is quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Thus then we seem to have discovered that the many ideas which the
|
|
multitude entertain about the beautiful and about all other things are
|
|
tossing about in some region which is half-way between pure being and
|
|
pure not-being?
|
|
|
|
We have.
|
|
|
|
Yes; and we had before agreed that anything of this kind which we might
|
|
find was to be described as matter of opinion, and not as matter of
|
|
knowledge; being the intermediate flux which is caught and detained by
|
|
the intermediate faculty.
|
|
|
|
Quite true.
|
|
|
|
Then those who see the many beautiful, and who yet neither see absolute
|
|
beauty, nor can follow any guide who points the way thither; who see the
|
|
many just, and not absolute justice, and the like,--such persons may be
|
|
said to have opinion but not knowledge?
|
|
|
|
That is certain.
|
|
|
|
But those who see the absolute and eternal and immutable may be said to
|
|
know, and not to have opinion only?
|
|
|
|
Neither can that be denied.
|
|
|
|
The one love and embrace the subjects of knowledge, the other those of
|
|
opinion? The latter are the same, as I dare say you will remember, who
|
|
listened to sweet sounds and gazed upon fair colours, but would not
|
|
tolerate the existence of absolute beauty.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I remember.
|
|
|
|
Shall we then be guilty of any impropriety in calling them lovers of
|
|
opinion rather than lovers of wisdom, and will they be very angry with
|
|
us for thus describing them?
|
|
|
|
I shall tell them not to be angry; no man should be angry at what is
|
|
true.
|
|
|
|
But those who love the truth in each thing are to be called lovers of
|
|
wisdom and not lovers of opinion.
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK VI.
|
|
|
|
And thus, Glaucon, after the argument has gone a weary way, the true and
|
|
the false philosophers have at length appeared in view.
|
|
|
|
I do not think, he said, that the way could have been shortened.
|
|
|
|
I suppose not, I said; and yet I believe that we might have had a better
|
|
view of both of them if the discussion could have been confined to this
|
|
one subject and if there were not many other questions awaiting us,
|
|
which he who desires to see in what respect the life of the just differs
|
|
from that of the unjust must consider.
|
|
|
|
And what is the next question? he asked.
|
|
|
|
Surely, I said, the one which follows next in order. Inasmuch as
|
|
philosophers only are able to grasp the eternal and unchangeable,
|
|
and those who wander in the region of the many and variable are not
|
|
philosophers, I must ask you which of the two classes should be the
|
|
rulers of our State?
|
|
|
|
And how can we rightly answer that question?
|
|
|
|
Whichever of the two are best able to guard the laws and institutions of
|
|
our State--let them be our guardians.
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
Neither, I said, can there be any question that the guardian who is to
|
|
keep anything should have eyes rather than no eyes?
|
|
|
|
There can be no question of that.
|
|
|
|
And are not those who are verily and indeed wanting in the knowledge
|
|
of the true being of each thing, and who have in their souls no clear
|
|
pattern, and are unable as with a painter's eye to look at the absolute
|
|
truth and to that original to repair, and having perfect vision of the
|
|
other world to order the laws about beauty, goodness, justice in this,
|
|
if not already ordered, and to guard and preserve the order of them--are
|
|
not such persons, I ask, simply blind?
|
|
|
|
Truly, he replied, they are much in that condition.
|
|
|
|
And shall they be our guardians when there are others who, besides being
|
|
their equals in experience and falling short of them in no particular of
|
|
virtue, also know the very truth of each thing?
|
|
|
|
There can be no reason, he said, for rejecting those who have this
|
|
greatest of all great qualities; they must always have the first place
|
|
unless they fail in some other respect.
|
|
|
|
Suppose then, I said, that we determine how far they can unite this and
|
|
the other excellences.
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
In the first place, as we began by observing, the nature of the
|
|
philosopher has to be ascertained. We must come to an understanding
|
|
about him, and, when we have done so, then, if I am not mistaken, we
|
|
shall also acknowledge that such an union of qualities is possible, and
|
|
that those in whom they are united, and those only, should be rulers in
|
|
the State.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
Let us suppose that philosophical minds always love knowledge of a sort
|
|
which shows them the eternal nature not varying from generation and
|
|
corruption.
|
|
|
|
Agreed.
|
|
|
|
And further, I said, let us agree that they are lovers of all true
|
|
being; there is no part whether greater or less, or more or less
|
|
honourable, which they are willing to renounce; as we said before of the
|
|
lover and the man of ambition.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And if they are to be what we were describing, is there not another
|
|
quality which they should also possess?
|
|
|
|
What quality?
|
|
|
|
Truthfulness: they will never intentionally receive into their mind
|
|
falsehood, which is their detestation, and they will love the truth.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that may be safely affirmed of them.
|
|
|
|
'May be,' my friend, I replied, is not the word; say rather 'must be
|
|
affirmed:' for he whose nature is amorous of anything cannot help loving
|
|
all that belongs or is akin to the object of his affections.
|
|
|
|
Right, he said.
|
|
|
|
And is there anything more akin to wisdom than truth?
|
|
|
|
How can there be?
|
|
|
|
Can the same nature be a lover of wisdom and a lover of falsehood?
|
|
|
|
Never.
|
|
|
|
The true lover of learning then must from his earliest youth, as far as
|
|
in him lies, desire all truth?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
But then again, as we know by experience, he whose desires are strong
|
|
in one direction will have them weaker in others; they will be like a
|
|
stream which has been drawn off into another channel.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
He whose desires are drawn towards knowledge in every form will be
|
|
absorbed in the pleasures of the soul, and will hardly feel bodily
|
|
pleasure--I mean, if he be a true philosopher and not a sham one.
|
|
|
|
That is most certain.
|
|
|
|
Such an one is sure to be temperate and the reverse of covetous; for the
|
|
motives which make another man desirous of having and spending, have no
|
|
place in his character.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Another criterion of the philosophical nature has also to be considered.
|
|
|
|
What is that?
|
|
|
|
There should be no secret corner of illiberality; nothing can be more
|
|
antagonistic than meanness to a soul which is ever longing after the
|
|
whole of things both divine and human.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then how can he who has magnificence of mind and is the spectator of all
|
|
time and all existence, think much of human life?
|
|
|
|
He cannot.
|
|
|
|
Or can such an one account death fearful?
|
|
|
|
No indeed.
|
|
|
|
Then the cowardly and mean nature has no part in true philosophy?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Or again: can he who is harmoniously constituted, who is not covetous or
|
|
mean, or a boaster, or a coward--can he, I say, ever be unjust or hard
|
|
in his dealings?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
Then you will soon observe whether a man is just and gentle, or rude
|
|
and unsociable; these are the signs which distinguish even in youth the
|
|
philosophical nature from the unphilosophical.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
There is another point which should be remarked.
|
|
|
|
What point?
|
|
|
|
Whether he has or has not a pleasure in learning; for no one will love
|
|
that which gives him pain, and in which after much toil he makes little
|
|
progress.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
And again, if he is forgetful and retains nothing of what he learns,
|
|
will he not be an empty vessel?
|
|
|
|
That is certain.
|
|
|
|
Labouring in vain, he must end in hating himself and his fruitless
|
|
occupation? Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then a soul which forgets cannot be ranked among genuine philosophic
|
|
natures; we must insist that the philosopher should have a good memory?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And once more, the inharmonious and unseemly nature can only tend to
|
|
disproportion?
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly.
|
|
|
|
And do you consider truth to be akin to proportion or to disproportion?
|
|
|
|
To proportion.
|
|
|
|
Then, besides other qualities, we must try to find a naturally
|
|
well-proportioned and gracious mind, which will move spontaneously
|
|
towards the true being of everything.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Well, and do not all these qualities, which we have been enumerating, go
|
|
together, and are they not, in a manner, necessary to a soul, which is
|
|
to have a full and perfect participation of being?
|
|
|
|
They are absolutely necessary, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And must not that be a blameless study which he only can pursue who has
|
|
the gift of a good memory, and is quick to learn,--noble, gracious, the
|
|
friend of truth, justice, courage, temperance, who are his kindred?
|
|
|
|
The god of jealousy himself, he said, could find no fault with such a
|
|
study.
|
|
|
|
And to men like him, I said, when perfected by years and education, and
|
|
to these only you will entrust the State.
|
|
|
|
Here Adeimantus interposed and said: To these statements, Socrates, no
|
|
one can offer a reply; but when you talk in this way, a strange feeling
|
|
passes over the minds of your hearers: They fancy that they are led
|
|
astray a little at each step in the argument, owing to their own want of
|
|
skill in asking and answering questions; these littles accumulate, and
|
|
at the end of the discussion they are found to have sustained a mighty
|
|
overthrow and all their former notions appear to be turned upside down.
|
|
And as unskilful players of draughts are at last shut up by their
|
|
more skilful adversaries and have no piece to move, so they too find
|
|
themselves shut up at last; for they have nothing to say in this new
|
|
game of which words are the counters; and yet all the time they are in
|
|
the right. The observation is suggested to me by what is now occurring.
|
|
For any one of us might say, that although in words he is not able
|
|
to meet you at each step of the argument, he sees as a fact that the
|
|
votaries of philosophy, when they carry on the study, not only in youth
|
|
as a part of education, but as the pursuit of their maturer years, most
|
|
of them become strange monsters, not to say utter rogues, and that those
|
|
who may be considered the best of them are made useless to the world by
|
|
the very study which you extol.
|
|
|
|
Well, and do you think that those who say so are wrong?
|
|
|
|
I cannot tell, he replied; but I should like to know what is your
|
|
opinion.
|
|
|
|
Hear my answer; I am of opinion that they are quite right.
|
|
|
|
Then how can you be justified in saying that cities will not cease from
|
|
evil until philosophers rule in them, when philosophers are acknowledged
|
|
by us to be of no use to them?
|
|
|
|
You ask a question, I said, to which a reply can only be given in a
|
|
parable.
|
|
|
|
Yes, Socrates; and that is a way of speaking to which you are not at all
|
|
accustomed, I suppose.
|
|
|
|
I perceive, I said, that you are vastly amused at having plunged me into
|
|
such a hopeless discussion; but now hear the parable, and then you will
|
|
be still more amused at the meagreness of my imagination: for the manner
|
|
in which the best men are treated in their own States is so grievous
|
|
that no single thing on earth is comparable to it; and therefore, if
|
|
I am to plead their cause, I must have recourse to fiction, and put
|
|
together a figure made up of many things, like the fabulous unions of
|
|
goats and stags which are found in pictures. Imagine then a fleet or a
|
|
ship in which there is a captain who is taller and stronger than any of
|
|
the crew, but he is a little deaf and has a similar infirmity in sight,
|
|
and his knowledge of navigation is not much better. The sailors are
|
|
quarrelling with one another about the steering--every one is of opinion
|
|
that he has a right to steer, though he has never learned the art of
|
|
navigation and cannot tell who taught him or when he learned, and will
|
|
further assert that it cannot be taught, and they are ready to cut in
|
|
pieces any one who says the contrary. They throng about the captain,
|
|
begging and praying him to commit the helm to them; and if at any time
|
|
they do not prevail, but others are preferred to them, they kill the
|
|
others or throw them overboard, and having first chained up the noble
|
|
captain's senses with drink or some narcotic drug, they mutiny and take
|
|
possession of the ship and make free with the stores; thus, eating
|
|
and drinking, they proceed on their voyage in such manner as might be
|
|
expected of them. Him who is their partisan and cleverly aids them in
|
|
their plot for getting the ship out of the captain's hands into their
|
|
own whether by force or persuasion, they compliment with the name of
|
|
sailor, pilot, able seaman, and abuse the other sort of man, whom they
|
|
call a good-for-nothing; but that the true pilot must pay attention
|
|
to the year and seasons and sky and stars and winds, and whatever else
|
|
belongs to his art, if he intends to be really qualified for the command
|
|
of a ship, and that he must and will be the steerer, whether other
|
|
people like or not--the possibility of this union of authority with the
|
|
steerer's art has never seriously entered into their thoughts or been
|
|
made part of their calling. Now in vessels which are in a state of
|
|
mutiny and by sailors who are mutineers, how will the true pilot be
|
|
regarded? Will he not be called by them a prater, a star-gazer, a
|
|
good-for-nothing?
|
|
|
|
Of course, said Adeimantus.
|
|
|
|
Then you will hardly need, I said, to hear the interpretation of the
|
|
figure, which describes the true philosopher in his relation to the
|
|
State; for you understand already.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then suppose you now take this parable to the gentleman who is surprised
|
|
at finding that philosophers have no honour in their cities; explain
|
|
it to him and try to convince him that their having honour would be far
|
|
more extraordinary.
|
|
|
|
I will.
|
|
|
|
Say to him, that, in deeming the best votaries of philosophy to be
|
|
useless to the rest of the world, he is right; but also tell him to
|
|
attribute their uselessness to the fault of those who will not use them,
|
|
and not to themselves. The pilot should not humbly beg the sailors to be
|
|
commanded by him--that is not the order of nature; neither are 'the wise
|
|
to go to the doors of the rich'--the ingenious author of this saying
|
|
told a lie--but the truth is, that, when a man is ill, whether he
|
|
be rich or poor, to the physician he must go, and he who wants to
|
|
be governed, to him who is able to govern. The ruler who is good for
|
|
anything ought not to beg his subjects to be ruled by him; although
|
|
the present governors of mankind are of a different stamp; they may be
|
|
justly compared to the mutinous sailors, and the true helmsmen to those
|
|
who are called by them good-for-nothings and star-gazers.
|
|
|
|
Precisely so, he said.
|
|
|
|
For these reasons, and among men like these, philosophy, the noblest
|
|
pursuit of all, is not likely to be much esteemed by those of the
|
|
opposite faction; not that the greatest and most lasting injury is done
|
|
to her by her opponents, but by her own professing followers, the same
|
|
of whom you suppose the accuser to say, that the greater number of them
|
|
are arrant rogues, and the best are useless; in which opinion I agreed.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the reason why the good are useless has now been explained?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then shall we proceed to show that the corruption of the majority is
|
|
also unavoidable, and that this is not to be laid to the charge of
|
|
philosophy any more than the other?
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
And let us ask and answer in turn, first going back to the description
|
|
of the gentle and noble nature. Truth, as you will remember, was his
|
|
leader, whom he followed always and in all things; failing in this, he
|
|
was an impostor, and had no part or lot in true philosophy.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that was said.
|
|
|
|
Well, and is not this one quality, to mention no others, greatly at
|
|
variance with present notions of him?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
And have we not a right to say in his defence, that the true lover of
|
|
knowledge is always striving after being--that is his nature; he will
|
|
not rest in the multiplicity of individuals which is an appearance only,
|
|
but will go on--the keen edge will not be blunted, nor the force of his
|
|
desire abate until he have attained the knowledge of the true nature
|
|
of every essence by a sympathetic and kindred power in the soul, and by
|
|
that power drawing near and mingling and becoming incorporate with very
|
|
being, having begotten mind and truth, he will have knowledge and will
|
|
live and grow truly, and then, and not till then, will he cease from his
|
|
travail.
|
|
|
|
Nothing, he said, can be more just than such a description of him.
|
|
|
|
And will the love of a lie be any part of a philosopher's nature? Will
|
|
he not utterly hate a lie?
|
|
|
|
He will.
|
|
|
|
And when truth is the captain, we cannot suspect any evil of the band
|
|
which he leads?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
Justice and health of mind will be of the company, and temperance will
|
|
follow after?
|
|
|
|
True, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Neither is there any reason why I should again set in array the
|
|
philosopher's virtues, as you will doubtless remember that courage,
|
|
magnificence, apprehension, memory, were his natural gifts. And you
|
|
objected that, although no one could deny what I then said, still, if
|
|
you leave words and look at facts, the persons who are thus described
|
|
are some of them manifestly useless, and the greater number utterly
|
|
depraved; we were then led to enquire into the grounds of these
|
|
accusations, and have now arrived at the point of asking why are
|
|
the majority bad, which question of necessity brought us back to the
|
|
examination and definition of the true philosopher.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
And we have next to consider the corruptions of the philosophic nature,
|
|
why so many are spoiled and so few escape spoiling--I am speaking of
|
|
those who were said to be useless but not wicked--and, when we have done
|
|
with them, we will speak of the imitators of philosophy, what manner of
|
|
men are they who aspire after a profession which is above them and of
|
|
which they are unworthy, and then, by their manifold inconsistencies,
|
|
bring upon philosophy, and upon all philosophers, that universal
|
|
reprobation of which we speak.
|
|
|
|
What are these corruptions? he said.
|
|
|
|
I will see if I can explain them to you. Every one will admit that a
|
|
nature having in perfection all the qualities which we required in a
|
|
philosopher, is a rare plant which is seldom seen among men.
|
|
|
|
Rare indeed.
|
|
|
|
And what numberless and powerful causes tend to destroy these rare
|
|
natures!
|
|
|
|
What causes?
|
|
|
|
In the first place there are their own virtues, their courage,
|
|
temperance, and the rest of them, every one of which praiseworthy
|
|
qualities (and this is a most singular circumstance) destroys and
|
|
distracts from philosophy the soul which is the possessor of them.
|
|
|
|
That is very singular, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then there are all the ordinary goods of life--beauty, wealth, strength,
|
|
rank, and great connections in the State--you understand the sort of
|
|
things--these also have a corrupting and distracting effect.
|
|
|
|
I understand; but I should like to know more precisely what you mean
|
|
about them.
|
|
|
|
Grasp the truth as a whole, I said, and in the right way; you will then
|
|
have no difficulty in apprehending the preceding remarks, and they will
|
|
no longer appear strange to you.
|
|
|
|
And how am I to do so? he asked.
|
|
|
|
Why, I said, we know that all germs or seeds, whether vegetable or
|
|
animal, when they fail to meet with proper nutriment or climate or soil,
|
|
in proportion to their vigour, are all the more sensitive to the want of
|
|
a suitable environment, for evil is a greater enemy to what is good than
|
|
to what is not.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
There is reason in supposing that the finest natures, when under alien
|
|
conditions, receive more injury than the inferior, because the contrast
|
|
is greater.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And may we not say, Adeimantus, that the most gifted minds, when they
|
|
are ill-educated, become pre-eminently bad? Do not great crimes and
|
|
the spirit of pure evil spring out of a fulness of nature ruined by
|
|
education rather than from any inferiority, whereas weak natures are
|
|
scarcely capable of any very great good or very great evil?
|
|
|
|
There I think that you are right.
|
|
|
|
And our philosopher follows the same analogy--he is like a plant which,
|
|
having proper nurture, must necessarily grow and mature into all virtue,
|
|
but, if sown and planted in an alien soil, becomes the most noxious of
|
|
all weeds, unless he be preserved by some divine power. Do you really
|
|
think, as people so often say, that our youth are corrupted by Sophists,
|
|
or that private teachers of the art corrupt them in any degree worth
|
|
speaking of? Are not the public who say these things the greatest of all
|
|
Sophists? And do they not educate to perfection young and old, men and
|
|
women alike, and fashion them after their own hearts?
|
|
|
|
When is this accomplished? he said.
|
|
|
|
When they meet together, and the world sits down at an assembly, or in
|
|
a court of law, or a theatre, or a camp, or in any other popular resort,
|
|
and there is a great uproar, and they praise some things which are
|
|
being said or done, and blame other things, equally exaggerating both,
|
|
shouting and clapping their hands, and the echo of the rocks and the
|
|
place in which they are assembled redoubles the sound of the praise or
|
|
blame--at such a time will not a young man's heart, as they say, leap
|
|
within him? Will any private training enable him to stand firm against
|
|
the overwhelming flood of popular opinion? or will he be carried away
|
|
by the stream? Will he not have the notions of good and evil which the
|
|
public in general have--he will do as they do, and as they are, such
|
|
will he be?
|
|
|
|
Yes, Socrates; necessity will compel him.
|
|
|
|
And yet, I said, there is a still greater necessity, which has not been
|
|
mentioned.
|
|
|
|
What is that?
|
|
|
|
The gentle force of attainder or confiscation or death, which, as you
|
|
are aware, these new Sophists and educators, who are the public, apply
|
|
when their words are powerless.
|
|
|
|
Indeed they do; and in right good earnest.
|
|
|
|
Now what opinion of any other Sophist, or of any private person, can be
|
|
expected to overcome in such an unequal contest?
|
|
|
|
None, he replied.
|
|
|
|
No, indeed, I said, even to make the attempt is a great piece of folly;
|
|
there neither is, nor has been, nor is ever likely to be, any different
|
|
type of character which has had no other training in virtue but that
|
|
which is supplied by public opinion--I speak, my friend, of human virtue
|
|
only; what is more than human, as the proverb says, is not included:
|
|
for I would not have you ignorant that, in the present evil state of
|
|
governments, whatever is saved and comes to good is saved by the power
|
|
of God, as we may truly say.
|
|
|
|
I quite assent, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then let me crave your assent also to a further observation.
|
|
|
|
What are you going to say?
|
|
|
|
Why, that all those mercenary individuals, whom the many call Sophists
|
|
and whom they deem to be their adversaries, do, in fact, teach nothing
|
|
but the opinion of the many, that is to say, the opinions of their
|
|
assemblies; and this is their wisdom. I might compare them to a man who
|
|
should study the tempers and desires of a mighty strong beast who is
|
|
fed by him--he would learn how to approach and handle him, also at what
|
|
times and from what causes he is dangerous or the reverse, and what
|
|
is the meaning of his several cries, and by what sounds, when another
|
|
utters them, he is soothed or infuriated; and you may suppose further,
|
|
that when, by continually attending upon him, he has become perfect in
|
|
all this, he calls his knowledge wisdom, and makes of it a system or
|
|
art, which he proceeds to teach, although he has no real notion of what
|
|
he means by the principles or passions of which he is speaking, but
|
|
calls this honourable and that dishonourable, or good or evil, or just
|
|
or unjust, all in accordance with the tastes and tempers of the great
|
|
brute. Good he pronounces to be that in which the beast delights and
|
|
evil to be that which he dislikes; and he can give no other account
|
|
of them except that the just and noble are the necessary, having never
|
|
himself seen, and having no power of explaining to others the nature
|
|
of either, or the difference between them, which is immense. By heaven,
|
|
would not such an one be a rare educator?
|
|
|
|
Indeed he would.
|
|
|
|
And in what way does he who thinks that wisdom is the discernment of
|
|
the tempers and tastes of the motley multitude, whether in painting
|
|
or music, or, finally, in politics, differ from him whom I have been
|
|
describing? For when a man consorts with the many, and exhibits to
|
|
them his poem or other work of art or the service which he has done
|
|
the State, making them his judges when he is not obliged, the so-called
|
|
necessity of Diomede will oblige him to produce whatever they
|
|
praise. And yet the reasons are utterly ludicrous which they give in
|
|
confirmation of their own notions about the honourable and good. Did you
|
|
ever hear any of them which were not?
|
|
|
|
No, nor am I likely to hear.
|
|
|
|
You recognise the truth of what I have been saying? Then let me ask you
|
|
to consider further whether the world will ever be induced to believe in
|
|
the existence of absolute beauty rather than of the many beautiful, or
|
|
of the absolute in each kind rather than of the many in each kind?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Then the world cannot possibly be a philosopher?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
And therefore philosophers must inevitably fall under the censure of the
|
|
world?
|
|
|
|
They must.
|
|
|
|
And of individuals who consort with the mob and seek to please them?
|
|
|
|
That is evident.
|
|
|
|
Then, do you see any way in which the philosopher can be preserved in
|
|
his calling to the end? and remember what we were saying of him, that
|
|
he was to have quickness and memory and courage and magnificence--these
|
|
were admitted by us to be the true philosopher's gifts.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Will not such an one from his early childhood be in all things first
|
|
among all, especially if his bodily endowments are like his mental ones?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
And his friends and fellow-citizens will want to use him as he gets
|
|
older for their own purposes?
|
|
|
|
No question.
|
|
|
|
Falling at his feet, they will make requests to him and do him honour
|
|
and flatter him, because they want to get into their hands now, the
|
|
power which he will one day possess.
|
|
|
|
That often happens, he said.
|
|
|
|
And what will a man such as he is be likely to do under such
|
|
circumstances, especially if he be a citizen of a great city, rich
|
|
and noble, and a tall proper youth? Will he not be full of boundless
|
|
aspirations, and fancy himself able to manage the affairs of Hellenes
|
|
and of barbarians, and having got such notions into his head will he
|
|
not dilate and elevate himself in the fulness of vain pomp and senseless
|
|
pride?
|
|
|
|
To be sure he will.
|
|
|
|
Now, when he is in this state of mind, if some one gently comes to him
|
|
and tells him that he is a fool and must get understanding, which can
|
|
only be got by slaving for it, do you think that, under such adverse
|
|
circumstances, he will be easily induced to listen?
|
|
|
|
Far otherwise.
|
|
|
|
And even if there be some one who through inherent goodness or natural
|
|
reasonableness has had his eyes opened a little and is humbled and taken
|
|
captive by philosophy, how will his friends behave when they think that
|
|
they are likely to lose the advantage which they were hoping to reap
|
|
from his companionship? Will they not do and say anything to prevent him
|
|
from yielding to his better nature and to render his teacher powerless,
|
|
using to this end private intrigues as well as public prosecutions?
|
|
|
|
There can be no doubt of it.
|
|
|
|
And how can one who is thus circumstanced ever become a philosopher?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
Then were we not right in saying that even the very qualities which
|
|
make a man a philosopher may, if he be ill-educated, divert him from
|
|
philosophy, no less than riches and their accompaniments and the other
|
|
so-called goods of life?
|
|
|
|
We were quite right.
|
|
|
|
Thus, my excellent friend, is brought about all that ruin and failure
|
|
which I have been describing of the natures best adapted to the best of
|
|
all pursuits; they are natures which we maintain to be rare at any time;
|
|
this being the class out of which come the men who are the authors of
|
|
the greatest evil to States and individuals; and also of the greatest
|
|
good when the tide carries them in that direction; but a small man never
|
|
was the doer of any great thing either to individuals or to States.
|
|
|
|
That is most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And so philosophy is left desolate, with her marriage rite incomplete:
|
|
for her own have fallen away and forsaken her, and while they are
|
|
leading a false and unbecoming life, other unworthy persons, seeing that
|
|
she has no kinsmen to be her protectors, enter in and dishonour her; and
|
|
fasten upon her the reproaches which, as you say, her reprovers utter,
|
|
who affirm of her votaries that some are good for nothing, and that the
|
|
greater number deserve the severest punishment.
|
|
|
|
That is certainly what people say.
|
|
|
|
Yes; and what else would you expect, I said, when you think of the puny
|
|
creatures who, seeing this land open to them--a land well stocked with
|
|
fair names and showy titles--like prisoners running out of prison into a
|
|
sanctuary, take a leap out of their trades into philosophy; those who
|
|
do so being probably the cleverest hands at their own miserable crafts?
|
|
For, although philosophy be in this evil case, still there remains a
|
|
dignity about her which is not to be found in the arts. And many are
|
|
thus attracted by her whose natures are imperfect and whose souls are
|
|
maimed and disfigured by their meannesses, as their bodies are by their
|
|
trades and crafts. Is not this unavoidable?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Are they not exactly like a bald little tinker who has just got out of
|
|
durance and come into a fortune; he takes a bath and puts on a new coat,
|
|
and is decked out as a bridegroom going to marry his master's daughter,
|
|
who is left poor and desolate?
|
|
|
|
A most exact parallel.
|
|
|
|
What will be the issue of such marriages? Will they not be vile and
|
|
bastard?
|
|
|
|
There can be no question of it.
|
|
|
|
And when persons who are unworthy of education approach philosophy and
|
|
make an alliance with her who is in a rank above them what sort of
|
|
ideas and opinions are likely to be generated? Will they not be sophisms
|
|
captivating to the ear, having nothing in them genuine, or worthy of or
|
|
akin to true wisdom?
|
|
|
|
No doubt, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then, Adeimantus, I said, the worthy disciples of philosophy will be but
|
|
a small remnant: perchance some noble and well-educated person, detained
|
|
by exile in her service, who in the absence of corrupting influences
|
|
remains devoted to her; or some lofty soul born in a mean city, the
|
|
politics of which he contemns and neglects; and there may be a gifted
|
|
few who leave the arts, which they justly despise, and come to her;--or
|
|
peradventure there are some who are restrained by our friend Theages'
|
|
bridle; for everything in the life of Theages conspired to divert him
|
|
from philosophy; but ill-health kept him away from politics. My own case
|
|
of the internal sign is hardly worth mentioning, for rarely, if ever,
|
|
has such a monitor been given to any other man. Those who belong to this
|
|
small class have tasted how sweet and blessed a possession philosophy
|
|
is, and have also seen enough of the madness of the multitude; and they
|
|
know that no politician is honest, nor is there any champion of justice
|
|
at whose side they may fight and be saved. Such an one may be compared
|
|
to a man who has fallen among wild beasts--he will not join in the
|
|
wickedness of his fellows, but neither is he able singly to resist all
|
|
their fierce natures, and therefore seeing that he would be of no use to
|
|
the State or to his friends, and reflecting that he would have to throw
|
|
away his life without doing any good either to himself or others, he
|
|
holds his peace, and goes his own way. He is like one who, in the storm
|
|
of dust and sleet which the driving wind hurries along, retires
|
|
under the shelter of a wall; and seeing the rest of mankind full of
|
|
wickedness, he is content, if only he can live his own life and be pure
|
|
from evil or unrighteousness, and depart in peace and good-will, with
|
|
bright hopes.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, and he will have done a great work before he departs.
|
|
|
|
A great work--yes; but not the greatest, unless he find a State suitable
|
|
to him; for in a State which is suitable to him, he will have a larger
|
|
growth and be the saviour of his country, as well as of himself.
|
|
|
|
The causes why philosophy is in such an evil name have now been
|
|
sufficiently explained: the injustice of the charges against her has
|
|
been shown--is there anything more which you wish to say?
|
|
|
|
Nothing more on that subject, he replied; but I should like to know
|
|
which of the governments now existing is in your opinion the one adapted
|
|
to her.
|
|
|
|
Not any of them, I said; and that is precisely the accusation which I
|
|
bring against them--not one of them is worthy of the philosophic nature,
|
|
and hence that nature is warped and estranged;--as the exotic seed
|
|
which is sown in a foreign land becomes denaturalized, and is wont to be
|
|
overpowered and to lose itself in the new soil, even so this growth
|
|
of philosophy, instead of persisting, degenerates and receives another
|
|
character. But if philosophy ever finds in the State that perfection
|
|
which she herself is, then will be seen that she is in truth divine, and
|
|
that all other things, whether natures of men or institutions, are but
|
|
human;--and now, I know, that you are going to ask, What that State is:
|
|
|
|
No, he said; there you are wrong, for I was going to ask another
|
|
question--whether it is the State of which we are the founders and
|
|
inventors, or some other?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I replied, ours in most respects; but you may remember my saying
|
|
before, that some living authority would always be required in the
|
|
State having the same idea of the constitution which guided you when as
|
|
legislator you were laying down the laws.
|
|
|
|
That was said, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Yes, but not in a satisfactory manner; you frightened us by interposing
|
|
objections, which certainly showed that the discussion would be long and
|
|
difficult; and what still remains is the reverse of easy.
|
|
|
|
What is there remaining?
|
|
|
|
The question how the study of philosophy may be so ordered as not to be
|
|
the ruin of the State: All great attempts are attended with risk; 'hard
|
|
is the good,' as men say.
|
|
|
|
Still, he said, let the point be cleared up, and the enquiry will then
|
|
be complete.
|
|
|
|
I shall not be hindered, I said, by any want of will, but, if at all,
|
|
by a want of power: my zeal you may see for yourselves; and please to
|
|
remark in what I am about to say how boldly and unhesitatingly I declare
|
|
that States should pursue philosophy, not as they do now, but in a
|
|
different spirit.
|
|
|
|
In what manner?
|
|
|
|
At present, I said, the students of philosophy are quite young;
|
|
beginning when they are hardly past childhood, they devote only the time
|
|
saved from moneymaking and housekeeping to such pursuits; and even those
|
|
of them who are reputed to have most of the philosophic spirit, when
|
|
they come within sight of the great difficulty of the subject, I mean
|
|
dialectic, take themselves off. In after life when invited by some one
|
|
else, they may, perhaps, go and hear a lecture, and about this they make
|
|
much ado, for philosophy is not considered by them to be their
|
|
proper business: at last, when they grow old, in most cases they are
|
|
extinguished more truly than Heracleitus' sun, inasmuch as they never
|
|
light up again. (Heraclitus said that the sun was extinguished every
|
|
evening and relighted every morning.)
|
|
|
|
But what ought to be their course?
|
|
|
|
Just the opposite. In childhood and youth their study, and what
|
|
philosophy they learn, should be suited to their tender years: during
|
|
this period while they are growing up towards manhood, the chief and
|
|
special care should be given to their bodies that they may have them
|
|
to use in the service of philosophy; as life advances and the intellect
|
|
begins to mature, let them increase the gymnastics of the soul; but
|
|
when the strength of our citizens fails and is past civil and military
|
|
duties, then let them range at will and engage in no serious labour,
|
|
as we intend them to live happily here, and to crown this life with a
|
|
similar happiness in another.
|
|
|
|
How truly in earnest you are, Socrates! he said; I am sure of that; and
|
|
yet most of your hearers, if I am not mistaken, are likely to be still
|
|
more earnest in their opposition to you, and will never be convinced;
|
|
Thrasymachus least of all.
|
|
|
|
Do not make a quarrel, I said, between Thrasymachus and me, who have
|
|
recently become friends, although, indeed, we were never enemies; for I
|
|
shall go on striving to the utmost until I either convert him and other
|
|
men, or do something which may profit them against the day when they
|
|
live again, and hold the like discourse in another state of existence.
|
|
|
|
You are speaking of a time which is not very near.
|
|
|
|
Rather, I replied, of a time which is as nothing in comparison with
|
|
eternity. Nevertheless, I do not wonder that the many refuse to believe;
|
|
for they have never seen that of which we are now speaking realized;
|
|
they have seen only a conventional imitation of philosophy, consisting
|
|
of words artificially brought together, not like these of ours having
|
|
a natural unity. But a human being who in word and work is perfectly
|
|
moulded, as far as he can be, into the proportion and likeness of
|
|
virtue--such a man ruling in a city which bears the same image, they
|
|
have never yet seen, neither one nor many of them--do you think that
|
|
they ever did?
|
|
|
|
No indeed.
|
|
|
|
No, my friend, and they have seldom, if ever, heard free and noble
|
|
sentiments; such as men utter when they are earnestly and by every means
|
|
in their power seeking after truth for the sake of knowledge, while
|
|
they look coldly on the subtleties of controversy, of which the end is
|
|
opinion and strife, whether they meet with them in the courts of law or
|
|
in society.
|
|
|
|
They are strangers, he said, to the words of which you speak.
|
|
|
|
And this was what we foresaw, and this was the reason why truth forced
|
|
us to admit, not without fear and hesitation, that neither cities nor
|
|
States nor individuals will ever attain perfection until the small
|
|
class of philosophers whom we termed useless but not corrupt are
|
|
providentially compelled, whether they will or not, to take care of the
|
|
State, and until a like necessity be laid on the State to obey them; or
|
|
until kings, or if not kings, the sons of kings or princes, are divinely
|
|
inspired with a true love of true philosophy. That either or both of
|
|
these alternatives are impossible, I see no reason to affirm: if
|
|
they were so, we might indeed be justly ridiculed as dreamers and
|
|
visionaries. Am I not right?
|
|
|
|
Quite right.
|
|
|
|
If then, in the countless ages of the past, or at the present hour in
|
|
some foreign clime which is far away and beyond our ken, the perfected
|
|
philosopher is or has been or hereafter shall be compelled by a superior
|
|
power to have the charge of the State, we are ready to assert to the
|
|
death, that this our constitution has been, and is--yea, and will be
|
|
whenever the Muse of Philosophy is queen. There is no impossibility in
|
|
all this; that there is a difficulty, we acknowledge ourselves.
|
|
|
|
My opinion agrees with yours, he said.
|
|
|
|
But do you mean to say that this is not the opinion of the multitude?
|
|
|
|
I should imagine not, he replied.
|
|
|
|
O my friend, I said, do not attack the multitude: they will change their
|
|
minds, if, not in an aggressive spirit, but gently and with the view
|
|
of soothing them and removing their dislike of over-education, you show
|
|
them your philosophers as they really are and describe as you were just
|
|
now doing their character and profession, and then mankind will see that
|
|
he of whom you are speaking is not such as they supposed--if they view
|
|
him in this new light, they will surely change their notion of him, and
|
|
answer in another strain. Who can be at enmity with one who loves them,
|
|
who that is himself gentle and free from envy will be jealous of one
|
|
in whom there is no jealousy? Nay, let me answer for you, that in a few
|
|
this harsh temper may be found but not in the majority of mankind.
|
|
|
|
I quite agree with you, he said.
|
|
|
|
And do you not also think, as I do, that the harsh feeling which the
|
|
many entertain towards philosophy originates in the pretenders, who rush
|
|
in uninvited, and are always abusing them, and finding fault with them,
|
|
who make persons instead of things the theme of their conversation? and
|
|
nothing can be more unbecoming in philosophers than this.
|
|
|
|
It is most unbecoming.
|
|
|
|
For he, Adeimantus, whose mind is fixed upon true being, has surely no
|
|
time to look down upon the affairs of earth, or to be filled with malice
|
|
and envy, contending against men; his eye is ever directed towards
|
|
things fixed and immutable, which he sees neither injuring nor injured
|
|
by one another, but all in order moving according to reason; these he
|
|
imitates, and to these he will, as far as he can, conform himself. Can a
|
|
man help imitating that with which he holds reverential converse?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
And the philosopher holding converse with the divine order, becomes
|
|
orderly and divine, as far as the nature of man allows; but like every
|
|
one else, he will suffer from detraction.
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And if a necessity be laid upon him of fashioning, not only himself,
|
|
but human nature generally, whether in States or individuals, into
|
|
that which he beholds elsewhere, will he, think you, be an unskilful
|
|
artificer of justice, temperance, and every civil virtue?
|
|
|
|
Anything but unskilful.
|
|
|
|
And if the world perceives that what we are saying about him is the
|
|
truth, will they be angry with philosophy? Will they disbelieve us, when
|
|
we tell them that no State can be happy which is not designed by artists
|
|
who imitate the heavenly pattern?
|
|
|
|
They will not be angry if they understand, he said. But how will they
|
|
draw out the plan of which you are speaking?
|
|
|
|
They will begin by taking the State and the manners of men, from which,
|
|
as from a tablet, they will rub out the picture, and leave a clean
|
|
surface. This is no easy task. But whether easy or not, herein will lie
|
|
the difference between them and every other legislator,--they will have
|
|
nothing to do either with individual or State, and will inscribe no
|
|
laws, until they have either found, or themselves made, a clean surface.
|
|
|
|
They will be very right, he said.
|
|
|
|
Having effected this, they will proceed to trace an outline of the
|
|
constitution?
|
|
|
|
No doubt.
|
|
|
|
And when they are filling in the work, as I conceive, they will often
|
|
turn their eyes upwards and downwards: I mean that they will first look
|
|
at absolute justice and beauty and temperance, and again at the human
|
|
copy; and will mingle and temper the various elements of life into the
|
|
image of a man; and this they will conceive according to that other
|
|
image, which, when existing among men, Homer calls the form and likeness
|
|
of God.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And one feature they will erase, and another they will put in, until
|
|
they have made the ways of men, as far as possible, agreeable to the
|
|
ways of God?
|
|
|
|
Indeed, he said, in no way could they make a fairer picture.
|
|
|
|
And now, I said, are we beginning to persuade those whom you described
|
|
as rushing at us with might and main, that the painter of constitutions
|
|
is such an one as we are praising; at whom they were so very indignant
|
|
because to his hands we committed the State; and are they growing a
|
|
little calmer at what they have just heard?
|
|
|
|
Much calmer, if there is any sense in them.
|
|
|
|
Why, where can they still find any ground for objection? Will they doubt
|
|
that the philosopher is a lover of truth and being?
|
|
|
|
They would not be so unreasonable.
|
|
|
|
Or that his nature, being such as we have delineated, is akin to the
|
|
highest good?
|
|
|
|
Neither can they doubt this.
|
|
|
|
But again, will they tell us that such a nature, placed under favourable
|
|
circumstances, will not be perfectly good and wise if any ever was? Or
|
|
will they prefer those whom we have rejected?
|
|
|
|
Surely not.
|
|
|
|
Then will they still be angry at our saying, that, until philosophers
|
|
bear rule, States and individuals will have no rest from evil, nor will
|
|
this our imaginary State ever be realized?
|
|
|
|
I think that they will be less angry.
|
|
|
|
Shall we assume that they are not only less angry but quite gentle,
|
|
and that they have been converted and for very shame, if for no other
|
|
reason, cannot refuse to come to terms?
|
|
|
|
By all means, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then let us suppose that the reconciliation has been effected. Will any
|
|
one deny the other point, that there may be sons of kings or princes who
|
|
are by nature philosophers?
|
|
|
|
Surely no man, he said.
|
|
|
|
And when they have come into being will any one say that they must of
|
|
necessity be destroyed; that they can hardly be saved is not denied even
|
|
by us; but that in the whole course of ages no single one of them can
|
|
escape--who will venture to affirm this?
|
|
|
|
Who indeed!
|
|
|
|
But, said I, one is enough; let there be one man who has a city obedient
|
|
to his will, and he might bring into existence the ideal polity about
|
|
which the world is so incredulous.
|
|
|
|
Yes, one is enough.
|
|
|
|
The ruler may impose the laws and institutions which we have been
|
|
describing, and the citizens may possibly be willing to obey them?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And that others should approve, of what we approve, is no miracle or
|
|
impossibility?
|
|
|
|
I think not.
|
|
|
|
But we have sufficiently shown, in what has preceded, that all this, if
|
|
only possible, is assuredly for the best.
|
|
|
|
We have.
|
|
|
|
And now we say not only that our laws, if they could be enacted, would
|
|
be for the best, but also that the enactment of them, though difficult,
|
|
is not impossible.
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
And so with pain and toil we have reached the end of one subject, but
|
|
more remains to be discussed;--how and by what studies and pursuits will
|
|
the saviours of the constitution be created, and at what ages are they
|
|
to apply themselves to their several studies?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
I omitted the troublesome business of the possession of women, and the
|
|
procreation of children, and the appointment of the rulers, because
|
|
I knew that the perfect State would be eyed with jealousy and was
|
|
difficult of attainment; but that piece of cleverness was not of much
|
|
service to me, for I had to discuss them all the same. The women and
|
|
children are now disposed of, but the other question of the rulers must
|
|
be investigated from the very beginning. We were saying, as you will
|
|
remember, that they were to be lovers of their country, tried by the
|
|
test of pleasures and pains, and neither in hardships, nor in dangers,
|
|
nor at any other critical moment were to lose their patriotism--he was
|
|
to be rejected who failed, but he who always came forth pure, like gold
|
|
tried in the refiner's fire, was to be made a ruler, and to receive
|
|
honours and rewards in life and after death. This was the sort of thing
|
|
which was being said, and then the argument turned aside and veiled her
|
|
face; not liking to stir the question which has now arisen.
|
|
|
|
I perfectly remember, he said.
|
|
|
|
Yes, my friend, I said, and I then shrank from hazarding the bold
|
|
word; but now let me dare to say--that the perfect guardian must be a
|
|
philosopher.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, let that be affirmed.
|
|
|
|
And do not suppose that there will be many of them; for the gifts which
|
|
were deemed by us to be essential rarely grow together; they are mostly
|
|
found in shreds and patches.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? he said.
|
|
|
|
You are aware, I replied, that quick intelligence, memory, sagacity,
|
|
cleverness, and similar qualities, do not often grow together, and that
|
|
persons who possess them and are at the same time high-spirited and
|
|
magnanimous are not so constituted by nature as to live orderly and in a
|
|
peaceful and settled manner; they are driven any way by their impulses,
|
|
and all solid principle goes out of them.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
On the other hand, those steadfast natures which can better be depended
|
|
upon, which in a battle are impregnable to fear and immovable, are
|
|
equally immovable when there is anything to be learned; they are
|
|
always in a torpid state, and are apt to yawn and go to sleep over any
|
|
intellectual toil.
|
|
|
|
Quite true.
|
|
|
|
And yet we were saying that both qualities were necessary in those to
|
|
whom the higher education is to be imparted, and who are to share in any
|
|
office or command.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
And will they be a class which is rarely found?
|
|
|
|
Yes, indeed.
|
|
|
|
Then the aspirant must not only be tested in those labours and dangers
|
|
and pleasures which we mentioned before, but there is another kind of
|
|
probation which we did not mention--he must be exercised also in many
|
|
kinds of knowledge, to see whether the soul will be able to endure the
|
|
highest of all, or will faint under them, as in any other studies and
|
|
exercises.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, you are quite right in testing him. But what do you mean
|
|
by the highest of all knowledge?
|
|
|
|
You may remember, I said, that we divided the soul into three parts; and
|
|
distinguished the several natures of justice, temperance, courage, and
|
|
wisdom?
|
|
|
|
Indeed, he said, if I had forgotten, I should not deserve to hear more.
|
|
|
|
And do you remember the word of caution which preceded the discussion of
|
|
them?
|
|
|
|
To what do you refer?
|
|
|
|
We were saying, if I am not mistaken, that he who wanted to see them in
|
|
their perfect beauty must take a longer and more circuitous way, at
|
|
the end of which they would appear; but that we could add on a popular
|
|
exposition of them on a level with the discussion which had preceded.
|
|
And you replied that such an exposition would be enough for you, and so
|
|
the enquiry was continued in what to me seemed to be a very inaccurate
|
|
manner; whether you were satisfied or not, it is for you to say.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I thought and the others thought that you gave us a fair
|
|
measure of truth.
|
|
|
|
But, my friend, I said, a measure of such things which in any degree
|
|
falls short of the whole truth is not fair measure; for nothing
|
|
imperfect is the measure of anything, although persons are too apt to be
|
|
contented and think that they need search no further.
|
|
|
|
Not an uncommon case when people are indolent.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and there cannot be any worse fault in a guardian of the
|
|
State and of the laws.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
The guardian then, I said, must be required to take the longer circuit,
|
|
and toil at learning as well as at gymnastics, or he will never reach
|
|
the highest knowledge of all which, as we were just now saying, is his
|
|
proper calling.
|
|
|
|
What, he said, is there a knowledge still higher than this--higher than
|
|
justice and the other virtues?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, there is. And of the virtues too we must behold not the
|
|
outline merely, as at present--nothing short of the most finished
|
|
picture should satisfy us. When little things are elaborated with an
|
|
infinity of pains, in order that they may appear in their full beauty
|
|
and utmost clearness, how ridiculous that we should not think the
|
|
highest truths worthy of attaining the highest accuracy!
|
|
|
|
A right noble thought; but do you suppose that we shall refrain from
|
|
asking you what is this highest knowledge?
|
|
|
|
Nay, I said, ask if you will; but I am certain that you have heard the
|
|
answer many times, and now you either do not understand me or, as I
|
|
rather think, you are disposed to be troublesome; for you have often
|
|
been told that the idea of good is the highest knowledge, and that all
|
|
other things become useful and advantageous only by their use of this.
|
|
You can hardly be ignorant that of this I was about to speak, concerning
|
|
which, as you have often heard me say, we know so little; and, without
|
|
which, any other knowledge or possession of any kind will profit us
|
|
nothing. Do you think that the possession of all other things is of
|
|
any value if we do not possess the good? or the knowledge of all other
|
|
things if we have no knowledge of beauty and goodness?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly not.
|
|
|
|
You are further aware that most people affirm pleasure to be the good,
|
|
but the finer sort of wits say it is knowledge?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And you are aware too that the latter cannot explain what they mean by
|
|
knowledge, but are obliged after all to say knowledge of the good?
|
|
|
|
How ridiculous!
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, that they should begin by reproaching us with our ignorance
|
|
of the good, and then presume our knowledge of it--for the good they
|
|
define to be knowledge of the good, just as if we understood them when
|
|
they use the term 'good'--this is of course ridiculous.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And those who make pleasure their good are in equal perplexity; for they
|
|
are compelled to admit that there are bad pleasures as well as good.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And therefore to acknowledge that bad and good are the same?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
There can be no doubt about the numerous difficulties in which this
|
|
question is involved.
|
|
|
|
There can be none.
|
|
|
|
Further, do we not see that many are willing to do or to have or to seem
|
|
to be what is just and honourable without the reality; but no one is
|
|
satisfied with the appearance of good--the reality is what they seek; in
|
|
the case of the good, appearance is despised by every one.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Of this then, which every soul of man pursues and makes the end of all
|
|
his actions, having a presentiment that there is such an end, and
|
|
yet hesitating because neither knowing the nature nor having the same
|
|
assurance of this as of other things, and therefore losing whatever
|
|
good there is in other things,--of a principle such and so great as this
|
|
ought the best men in our State, to whom everything is entrusted, to be
|
|
in the darkness of ignorance?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, he said.
|
|
|
|
I am sure, I said, that he who does not know how the beautiful and
|
|
the just are likewise good will be but a sorry guardian of them; and
|
|
I suspect that no one who is ignorant of the good will have a true
|
|
knowledge of them.
|
|
|
|
That, he said, is a shrewd suspicion of yours.
|
|
|
|
And if we only have a guardian who has this knowledge our State will be
|
|
perfectly ordered?
|
|
|
|
Of course, he replied; but I wish that you would tell me whether you
|
|
conceive this supreme principle of the good to be knowledge or pleasure,
|
|
or different from either?
|
|
|
|
Aye, I said, I knew all along that a fastidious gentleman like you would
|
|
not be contented with the thoughts of other people about these matters.
|
|
|
|
True, Socrates; but I must say that one who like you has passed a
|
|
lifetime in the study of philosophy should not be always repeating the
|
|
opinions of others, and never telling his own.
|
|
|
|
Well, but has any one a right to say positively what he does not know?
|
|
|
|
Not, he said, with the assurance of positive certainty; he has no right
|
|
to do that: but he may say what he thinks, as a matter of opinion.
|
|
|
|
And do you not know, I said, that all mere opinions are bad, and the
|
|
best of them blind? You would not deny that those who have any true
|
|
notion without intelligence are only like blind men who feel their way
|
|
along the road?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And do you wish to behold what is blind and crooked and base, when
|
|
others will tell you of brightness and beauty?
|
|
|
|
Still, I must implore you, Socrates, said Glaucon, not to turn away just
|
|
as you are reaching the goal; if you will only give such an explanation
|
|
of the good as you have already given of justice and temperance and the
|
|
other virtues, we shall be satisfied.
|
|
|
|
Yes, my friend, and I shall be at least equally satisfied, but I cannot
|
|
help fearing that I shall fail, and that my indiscreet zeal will bring
|
|
ridicule upon me. No, sweet sirs, let us not at present ask what is the
|
|
actual nature of the good, for to reach what is now in my thoughts
|
|
would be an effort too great for me. But of the child of the good who
|
|
is likest him, I would fain speak, if I could be sure that you wished to
|
|
hear--otherwise, not.
|
|
|
|
By all means, he said, tell us about the child, and you shall remain in
|
|
our debt for the account of the parent.
|
|
|
|
I do indeed wish, I replied, that I could pay, and you receive, the
|
|
account of the parent, and not, as now, of the offspring only; take,
|
|
however, this latter by way of interest, and at the same time have a
|
|
care that I do not render a false account, although I have no intention
|
|
of deceiving you.
|
|
|
|
Yes, we will take all the care that we can: proceed.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, but I must first come to an understanding with you, and
|
|
remind you of what I have mentioned in the course of this discussion,
|
|
and at many other times.
|
|
|
|
What?
|
|
|
|
The old story, that there is a many beautiful and a many good, and so
|
|
of other things which we describe and define; to all of them the term
|
|
'many' is applied.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And there is an absolute beauty and an absolute good, and of other
|
|
things to which the term 'many' is applied there is an absolute; for
|
|
they may be brought under a single idea, which is called the essence of
|
|
each.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
The many, as we say, are seen but not known, and the ideas are known but
|
|
not seen.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
And what is the organ with which we see the visible things?
|
|
|
|
The sight, he said.
|
|
|
|
And with the hearing, I said, we hear, and with the other senses
|
|
perceive the other objects of sense?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
But have you remarked that sight is by far the most costly and complex
|
|
piece of workmanship which the artificer of the senses ever contrived?
|
|
|
|
No, I never have, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then reflect; has the ear or voice need of any third or additional
|
|
nature in order that the one may be able to hear and the other to be
|
|
heard?
|
|
|
|
Nothing of the sort.
|
|
|
|
No, indeed, I replied; and the same is true of most, if not all, the
|
|
other senses--you would not say that any of them requires such an
|
|
addition?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
But you see that without the addition of some other nature there is no
|
|
seeing or being seen?
|
|
|
|
How do you mean?
|
|
|
|
Sight being, as I conceive, in the eyes, and he who has eyes wanting to
|
|
see; colour being also present in them, still unless there be a third
|
|
nature specially adapted to the purpose, the owner of the eyes will see
|
|
nothing and the colours will be invisible.
|
|
|
|
Of what nature are you speaking?
|
|
|
|
Of that which you term light, I replied.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
Noble, then, is the bond which links together sight and visibility, and
|
|
great beyond other bonds by no small difference of nature; for light is
|
|
their bond, and light is no ignoble thing?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he said, the reverse of ignoble.
|
|
|
|
And which, I said, of the gods in heaven would you say was the lord of
|
|
this element? Whose is that light which makes the eye to see perfectly
|
|
and the visible to appear?
|
|
|
|
You mean the sun, as you and all mankind say.
|
|
|
|
May not the relation of sight to this deity be described as follows?
|
|
|
|
How?
|
|
|
|
Neither sight nor the eye in which sight resides is the sun?
|
|
|
|
No.
|
|
|
|
Yet of all the organs of sense the eye is the most like the sun?
|
|
|
|
By far the most like.
|
|
|
|
And the power which the eye possesses is a sort of effluence which is
|
|
dispensed from the sun?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
Then the sun is not sight, but the author of sight who is recognised by
|
|
sight?
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And this is he whom I call the child of the good, whom the good begat in
|
|
his own likeness, to be in the visible world, in relation to sight
|
|
and the things of sight, what the good is in the intellectual world in
|
|
relation to mind and the things of mind:
|
|
|
|
Will you be a little more explicit? he said.
|
|
|
|
Why, you know, I said, that the eyes, when a person directs them towards
|
|
objects on which the light of day is no longer shining, but the moon
|
|
and stars only, see dimly, and are nearly blind; they seem to have no
|
|
clearness of vision in them?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
But when they are directed towards objects on which the sun shines, they
|
|
see clearly and there is sight in them?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And the soul is like the eye: when resting upon that on which truth and
|
|
being shine, the soul perceives and understands, and is radiant with
|
|
intelligence; but when turned towards the twilight of becoming and
|
|
perishing, then she has opinion only, and goes blinking about, and
|
|
is first of one opinion and then of another, and seems to have no
|
|
intelligence?
|
|
|
|
Just so.
|
|
|
|
Now, that which imparts truth to the known and the power of knowing to
|
|
the knower is what I would have you term the idea of good, and this
|
|
you will deem to be the cause of science, and of truth in so far as
|
|
the latter becomes the subject of knowledge; beautiful too, as are both
|
|
truth and knowledge, you will be right in esteeming this other nature as
|
|
more beautiful than either; and, as in the previous instance, light and
|
|
sight may be truly said to be like the sun, and yet not to be the sun,
|
|
so in this other sphere, science and truth may be deemed to be like the
|
|
good, but not the good; the good has a place of honour yet higher.
|
|
|
|
What a wonder of beauty that must be, he said, which is the author of
|
|
science and truth, and yet surpasses them in beauty; for you surely
|
|
cannot mean to say that pleasure is the good?
|
|
|
|
God forbid, I replied; but may I ask you to consider the image in
|
|
another point of view?
|
|
|
|
In what point of view?
|
|
|
|
You would say, would you not, that the sun is not only the author of
|
|
visibility in all visible things, but of generation and nourishment and
|
|
growth, though he himself is not generation?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
In like manner the good may be said to be not only the author of
|
|
knowledge to all things known, but of their being and essence, and yet
|
|
the good is not essence, but far exceeds essence in dignity and power.
|
|
|
|
Glaucon said, with a ludicrous earnestness: By the light of heaven, how
|
|
amazing!
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, and the exaggeration may be set down to you; for you made
|
|
me utter my fancies.
|
|
|
|
And pray continue to utter them; at any rate let us hear if there is
|
|
anything more to be said about the similitude of the sun.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, there is a great deal more.
|
|
|
|
Then omit nothing, however slight.
|
|
|
|
I will do my best, I said; but I should think that a great deal will
|
|
have to be omitted.
|
|
|
|
I hope not, he said.
|
|
|
|
You have to imagine, then, that there are two ruling powers, and that
|
|
one of them is set over the intellectual world, the other over the
|
|
visible. I do not say heaven, lest you should fancy that I am playing
|
|
upon the name ('ourhanoz, orhatoz'). May I suppose that you have this
|
|
distinction of the visible and intelligible fixed in your mind?
|
|
|
|
I have.
|
|
|
|
Now take a line which has been cut into two unequal parts, and divide
|
|
each of them again in the same proportion, and suppose the two
|
|
main divisions to answer, one to the visible and the other to the
|
|
intelligible, and then compare the subdivisions in respect of their
|
|
clearness and want of clearness, and you will find that the first
|
|
section in the sphere of the visible consists of images. And by images I
|
|
mean, in the first place, shadows, and in the second place, reflections
|
|
in water and in solid, smooth and polished bodies and the like: Do you
|
|
understand?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I understand.
|
|
|
|
Imagine, now, the other section, of which this is only the resemblance,
|
|
to include the animals which we see, and everything that grows or is
|
|
made.
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
Would you not admit that both the sections of this division have
|
|
different degrees of truth, and that the copy is to the original as the
|
|
sphere of opinion is to the sphere of knowledge?
|
|
|
|
Most undoubtedly.
|
|
|
|
Next proceed to consider the manner in which the sphere of the
|
|
intellectual is to be divided.
|
|
|
|
In what manner?
|
|
|
|
Thus:--There are two subdivisions, in the lower of which the soul uses
|
|
the figures given by the former division as images; the enquiry can only
|
|
be hypothetical, and instead of going upwards to a principle descends
|
|
to the other end; in the higher of the two, the soul passes out of
|
|
hypotheses, and goes up to a principle which is above hypotheses, making
|
|
no use of images as in the former case, but proceeding only in and
|
|
through the ideas themselves.
|
|
|
|
I do not quite understand your meaning, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then I will try again; you will understand me better when I have made
|
|
some preliminary remarks. You are aware that students of geometry,
|
|
arithmetic, and the kindred sciences assume the odd and the even and the
|
|
figures and three kinds of angles and the like in their several branches
|
|
of science; these are their hypotheses, which they and every body are
|
|
supposed to know, and therefore they do not deign to give any account of
|
|
them either to themselves or others; but they begin with them, and go
|
|
on until they arrive at last, and in a consistent manner, at their
|
|
conclusion?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I know.
|
|
|
|
And do you not know also that although they make use of the visible
|
|
forms and reason about them, they are thinking not of these, but of the
|
|
ideals which they resemble; not of the figures which they draw, but
|
|
of the absolute square and the absolute diameter, and so on--the forms
|
|
which they draw or make, and which have shadows and reflections in water
|
|
of their own, are converted by them into images, but they are really
|
|
seeking to behold the things themselves, which can only be seen with the
|
|
eye of the mind?
|
|
|
|
That is true.
|
|
|
|
And of this kind I spoke as the intelligible, although in the search
|
|
after it the soul is compelled to use hypotheses; not ascending to
|
|
a first principle, because she is unable to rise above the region of
|
|
hypothesis, but employing the objects of which the shadows below are
|
|
resemblances in their turn as images, they having in relation to the
|
|
shadows and reflections of them a greater distinctness, and therefore a
|
|
higher value.
|
|
|
|
I understand, he said, that you are speaking of the province of geometry
|
|
and the sister arts.
|
|
|
|
And when I speak of the other division of the intelligible, you will
|
|
understand me to speak of that other sort of knowledge which reason
|
|
herself attains by the power of dialectic, using the hypotheses not as
|
|
first principles, but only as hypotheses--that is to say, as steps and
|
|
points of departure into a world which is above hypotheses, in order
|
|
that she may soar beyond them to the first principle of the whole; and
|
|
clinging to this and then to that which depends on this, by successive
|
|
steps she descends again without the aid of any sensible object, from
|
|
ideas, through ideas, and in ideas she ends.
|
|
|
|
I understand you, he replied; not perfectly, for you seem to me to
|
|
be describing a task which is really tremendous; but, at any rate, I
|
|
understand you to say that knowledge and being, which the science of
|
|
dialectic contemplates, are clearer than the notions of the arts, as
|
|
they are termed, which proceed from hypotheses only: these are also
|
|
contemplated by the understanding, and not by the senses: yet, because
|
|
they start from hypotheses and do not ascend to a principle, those who
|
|
contemplate them appear to you not to exercise the higher reason
|
|
upon them, although when a first principle is added to them they are
|
|
cognizable by the higher reason. And the habit which is concerned
|
|
with geometry and the cognate sciences I suppose that you would term
|
|
understanding and not reason, as being intermediate between opinion and
|
|
reason.
|
|
|
|
You have quite conceived my meaning, I said; and now, corresponding to
|
|
these four divisions, let there be four faculties in the soul--reason
|
|
answering to the highest, understanding to the second, faith (or
|
|
conviction) to the third, and perception of shadows to the last--and let
|
|
there be a scale of them, and let us suppose that the several faculties
|
|
have clearness in the same degree that their objects have truth.
|
|
|
|
I understand, he replied, and give my assent, and accept your
|
|
arrangement.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK VII.
|
|
|
|
And now, I said, let me show in a figure how far our nature is
|
|
enlightened or unenlightened:--Behold! human beings living in a
|
|
underground den, which has a mouth open towards the light and reaching
|
|
all along the den; here they have been from their childhood, and have
|
|
their legs and necks chained so that they cannot move, and can only
|
|
see before them, being prevented by the chains from turning round
|
|
their heads. Above and behind them a fire is blazing at a distance, and
|
|
between the fire and the prisoners there is a raised way; and you will
|
|
see, if you look, a low wall built along the way, like the screen which
|
|
marionette players have in front of them, over which they show the
|
|
puppets.
|
|
|
|
I see.
|
|
|
|
And do you see, I said, men passing along the wall carrying all sorts of
|
|
vessels, and statues and figures of animals made of wood and stone and
|
|
various materials, which appear over the wall? Some of them are talking,
|
|
others silent.
|
|
|
|
You have shown me a strange image, and they are strange prisoners.
|
|
|
|
Like ourselves, I replied; and they see only their own shadows, or the
|
|
shadows of one another, which the fire throws on the opposite wall of
|
|
the cave?
|
|
|
|
True, he said; how could they see anything but the shadows if they were
|
|
never allowed to move their heads?
|
|
|
|
And of the objects which are being carried in like manner they would
|
|
only see the shadows?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said.
|
|
|
|
And if they were able to converse with one another, would they not
|
|
suppose that they were naming what was actually before them?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And suppose further that the prison had an echo which came from the
|
|
other side, would they not be sure to fancy when one of the passers-by
|
|
spoke that the voice which they heard came from the passing shadow?
|
|
|
|
No question, he replied.
|
|
|
|
To them, I said, the truth would be literally nothing but the shadows of
|
|
the images.
|
|
|
|
That is certain.
|
|
|
|
And now look again, and see what will naturally follow if the prisoners
|
|
are released and disabused of their error. At first, when any of them is
|
|
liberated and compelled suddenly to stand up and turn his neck round and
|
|
walk and look towards the light, he will suffer sharp pains; the glare
|
|
will distress him, and he will be unable to see the realities of which
|
|
in his former state he had seen the shadows; and then conceive some one
|
|
saying to him, that what he saw before was an illusion, but that now,
|
|
when he is approaching nearer to being and his eye is turned towards
|
|
more real existence, he has a clearer vision,--what will be his reply?
|
|
And you may further imagine that his instructor is pointing to the
|
|
objects as they pass and requiring him to name them,--will he not be
|
|
perplexed? Will he not fancy that the shadows which he formerly saw are
|
|
truer than the objects which are now shown to him?
|
|
|
|
Far truer.
|
|
|
|
And if he is compelled to look straight at the light, will he not have
|
|
a pain in his eyes which will make him turn away to take refuge in the
|
|
objects of vision which he can see, and which he will conceive to be in
|
|
reality clearer than the things which are now being shown to him?
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And suppose once more, that he is reluctantly dragged up a steep and
|
|
rugged ascent, and held fast until he is forced into the presence of
|
|
the sun himself, is he not likely to be pained and irritated? When he
|
|
approaches the light his eyes will be dazzled, and he will not be able
|
|
to see anything at all of what are now called realities.
|
|
|
|
Not all in a moment, he said.
|
|
|
|
He will require to grow accustomed to the sight of the upper world.
|
|
And first he will see the shadows best, next the reflections of men and
|
|
other objects in the water, and then the objects themselves; then he
|
|
will gaze upon the light of the moon and the stars and the spangled
|
|
heaven; and he will see the sky and the stars by night better than the
|
|
sun or the light of the sun by day?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Last of all he will be able to see the sun, and not mere reflections of
|
|
him in the water, but he will see him in his own proper place, and not
|
|
in another; and he will contemplate him as he is.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
He will then proceed to argue that this is he who gives the season and
|
|
the years, and is the guardian of all that is in the visible world, and
|
|
in a certain way the cause of all things which he and his fellows have
|
|
been accustomed to behold?
|
|
|
|
Clearly, he said, he would first see the sun and then reason about him.
|
|
|
|
And when he remembered his old habitation, and the wisdom of the den
|
|
and his fellow-prisoners, do you not suppose that he would felicitate
|
|
himself on the change, and pity them?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he would.
|
|
|
|
And if they were in the habit of conferring honours among themselves
|
|
on those who were quickest to observe the passing shadows and to remark
|
|
which of them went before, and which followed after, and which were
|
|
together; and who were therefore best able to draw conclusions as to the
|
|
future, do you think that he would care for such honours and glories, or
|
|
envy the possessors of them? Would he not say with Homer,
|
|
|
|
'Better to be the poor servant of a poor master,'
|
|
|
|
and to endure anything, rather than think as they do and live after
|
|
their manner?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I think that he would rather suffer anything than
|
|
entertain these false notions and live in this miserable manner.
|
|
|
|
Imagine once more, I said, such an one coming suddenly out of the sun
|
|
to be replaced in his old situation; would he not be certain to have his
|
|
eyes full of darkness?
|
|
|
|
To be sure, he said.
|
|
|
|
And if there were a contest, and he had to compete in measuring the
|
|
shadows with the prisoners who had never moved out of the den, while
|
|
his sight was still weak, and before his eyes had become steady (and the
|
|
time which would be needed to acquire this new habit of sight might be
|
|
very considerable), would he not be ridiculous? Men would say of him
|
|
that up he went and down he came without his eyes; and that it was
|
|
better not even to think of ascending; and if any one tried to loose
|
|
another and lead him up to the light, let them only catch the offender,
|
|
and they would put him to death.
|
|
|
|
No question, he said.
|
|
|
|
This entire allegory, I said, you may now append, dear Glaucon, to the
|
|
previous argument; the prison-house is the world of sight, the light of
|
|
the fire is the sun, and you will not misapprehend me if you interpret
|
|
the journey upwards to be the ascent of the soul into the intellectual
|
|
world according to my poor belief, which, at your desire, I have
|
|
expressed--whether rightly or wrongly God knows. But, whether true or
|
|
false, my opinion is that in the world of knowledge the idea of good
|
|
appears last of all, and is seen only with an effort; and, when seen,
|
|
is also inferred to be the universal author of all things beautiful and
|
|
right, parent of light and of the lord of light in this visible world,
|
|
and the immediate source of reason and truth in the intellectual; and
|
|
that this is the power upon which he who would act rationally either in
|
|
public or private life must have his eye fixed.
|
|
|
|
I agree, he said, as far as I am able to understand you.
|
|
|
|
Moreover, I said, you must not wonder that those who attain to this
|
|
beatific vision are unwilling to descend to human affairs; for their
|
|
souls are ever hastening into the upper world where they desire to
|
|
dwell; which desire of theirs is very natural, if our allegory may be
|
|
trusted.
|
|
|
|
Yes, very natural.
|
|
|
|
And is there anything surprising in one who passes from divine
|
|
contemplations to the evil state of man, misbehaving himself in a
|
|
ridiculous manner; if, while his eyes are blinking and before he has
|
|
become accustomed to the surrounding darkness, he is compelled to fight
|
|
in courts of law, or in other places, about the images or the shadows of
|
|
images of justice, and is endeavouring to meet the conceptions of those
|
|
who have never yet seen absolute justice?
|
|
|
|
Anything but surprising, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Any one who has common sense will remember that the bewilderments of the
|
|
eyes are of two kinds, and arise from two causes, either from coming out
|
|
of the light or from going into the light, which is true of the mind's
|
|
eye, quite as much as of the bodily eye; and he who remembers this when
|
|
he sees any one whose vision is perplexed and weak, will not be too
|
|
ready to laugh; he will first ask whether that soul of man has come out
|
|
of the brighter life, and is unable to see because unaccustomed to the
|
|
dark, or having turned from darkness to the day is dazzled by excess
|
|
of light. And he will count the one happy in his condition and state of
|
|
being, and he will pity the other; or, if he have a mind to laugh at the
|
|
soul which comes from below into the light, there will be more reason
|
|
in this than in the laugh which greets him who returns from above out of
|
|
the light into the den.
|
|
|
|
That, he said, is a very just distinction.
|
|
|
|
But then, if I am right, certain professors of education must be wrong
|
|
when they say that they can put a knowledge into the soul which was not
|
|
there before, like sight into blind eyes.
|
|
|
|
They undoubtedly say this, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Whereas, our argument shows that the power and capacity of learning
|
|
exists in the soul already; and that just as the eye was unable to turn
|
|
from darkness to light without the whole body, so too the instrument of
|
|
knowledge can only by the movement of the whole soul be turned from the
|
|
world of becoming into that of being, and learn by degrees to endure
|
|
the sight of being, and of the brightest and best of being, or in other
|
|
words, of the good.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And must there not be some art which will effect conversion in the
|
|
easiest and quickest manner; not implanting the faculty of sight, for
|
|
that exists already, but has been turned in the wrong direction, and is
|
|
looking away from the truth?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, such an art may be presumed.
|
|
|
|
And whereas the other so-called virtues of the soul seem to be akin to
|
|
bodily qualities, for even when they are not originally innate they can
|
|
be implanted later by habit and exercise, the virtue of wisdom more than
|
|
anything else contains a divine element which always remains, and by
|
|
this conversion is rendered useful and profitable; or, on the other
|
|
hand, hurtful and useless. Did you never observe the narrow intelligence
|
|
flashing from the keen eye of a clever rogue--how eager he is, how
|
|
clearly his paltry soul sees the way to his end; he is the reverse of
|
|
blind, but his keen eye-sight is forced into the service of evil, and he
|
|
is mischievous in proportion to his cleverness?
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
But what if there had been a circumcision of such natures in the days
|
|
of their youth; and they had been severed from those sensual pleasures,
|
|
such as eating and drinking, which, like leaden weights, were attached
|
|
to them at their birth, and which drag them down and turn the vision
|
|
of their souls upon the things that are below--if, I say, they had been
|
|
released from these impediments and turned in the opposite direction,
|
|
the very same faculty in them would have seen the truth as keenly as
|
|
they see what their eyes are turned to now.
|
|
|
|
Very likely.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and there is another thing which is likely, or rather a
|
|
necessary inference from what has preceded, that neither the uneducated
|
|
and uninformed of the truth, nor yet those who never make an end of
|
|
their education, will be able ministers of State; not the former,
|
|
because they have no single aim of duty which is the rule of all their
|
|
actions, private as well as public; nor the latter, because they will
|
|
not act at all except upon compulsion, fancying that they are already
|
|
dwelling apart in the islands of the blest.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, the business of us who are the founders of the State
|
|
will be to compel the best minds to attain that knowledge which we have
|
|
already shown to be the greatest of all--they must continue to ascend
|
|
until they arrive at the good; but when they have ascended and seen
|
|
enough we must not allow them to do as they do now.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I mean that they remain in the upper world: but this must not be
|
|
allowed; they must be made to descend again among the prisoners in the
|
|
den, and partake of their labours and honours, whether they are worth
|
|
having or not.
|
|
|
|
But is not this unjust? he said; ought we to give them a worse life,
|
|
when they might have a better?
|
|
|
|
You have again forgotten, my friend, I said, the intention of the
|
|
legislator, who did not aim at making any one class in the State happy
|
|
above the rest; the happiness was to be in the whole State, and he
|
|
held the citizens together by persuasion and necessity, making them
|
|
benefactors of the State, and therefore benefactors of one another;
|
|
to this end he created them, not to please themselves, but to be his
|
|
instruments in binding up the State.
|
|
|
|
True, he said, I had forgotten.
|
|
|
|
Observe, Glaucon, that there will be no injustice in compelling our
|
|
philosophers to have a care and providence of others; we shall explain
|
|
to them that in other States, men of their class are not obliged to
|
|
share in the toils of politics: and this is reasonable, for they grow up
|
|
at their own sweet will, and the government would rather not have them.
|
|
Being self-taught, they cannot be expected to show any gratitude for a
|
|
culture which they have never received. But we have brought you into
|
|
the world to be rulers of the hive, kings of yourselves and of the other
|
|
citizens, and have educated you far better and more perfectly than they
|
|
have been educated, and you are better able to share in the double duty.
|
|
Wherefore each of you, when his turn comes, must go down to the general
|
|
underground abode, and get the habit of seeing in the dark. When you
|
|
have acquired the habit, you will see ten thousand times better than the
|
|
inhabitants of the den, and you will know what the several images are,
|
|
and what they represent, because you have seen the beautiful and just
|
|
and good in their truth. And thus our State, which is also yours, will
|
|
be a reality, and not a dream only, and will be administered in a spirit
|
|
unlike that of other States, in which men fight with one another about
|
|
shadows only and are distracted in the struggle for power, which in
|
|
their eyes is a great good. Whereas the truth is that the State in which
|
|
the rulers are most reluctant to govern is always the best and most
|
|
quietly governed, and the State in which they are most eager, the worst.
|
|
|
|
Quite true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And will our pupils, when they hear this, refuse to take their turn at
|
|
the toils of State, when they are allowed to spend the greater part of
|
|
their time with one another in the heavenly light?
|
|
|
|
Impossible, he answered; for they are just men, and the commands which
|
|
we impose upon them are just; there can be no doubt that every one of
|
|
them will take office as a stern necessity, and not after the fashion of
|
|
our present rulers of State.
|
|
|
|
Yes, my friend, I said; and there lies the point. You must contrive for
|
|
your future rulers another and a better life than that of a ruler, and
|
|
then you may have a well-ordered State; for only in the State which
|
|
offers this, will they rule who are truly rich, not in silver and gold,
|
|
but in virtue and wisdom, which are the true blessings of life. Whereas
|
|
if they go to the administration of public affairs, poor and hungering
|
|
after their own private advantage, thinking that hence they are to
|
|
snatch the chief good, order there can never be; for they will be
|
|
fighting about office, and the civil and domestic broils which thus
|
|
arise will be the ruin of the rulers themselves and of the whole State.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And the only life which looks down upon the life of political ambition
|
|
is that of true philosophy. Do you know of any other?
|
|
|
|
Indeed, I do not, he said.
|
|
|
|
And those who govern ought not to be lovers of the task? For, if they
|
|
are, there will be rival lovers, and they will fight.
|
|
|
|
No question.
|
|
|
|
Who then are those whom we shall compel to be guardians? Surely they
|
|
will be the men who are wisest about affairs of State, and by whom the
|
|
State is best administered, and who at the same time have other honours
|
|
and another and a better life than that of politics?
|
|
|
|
They are the men, and I will choose them, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And now shall we consider in what way such guardians will be produced,
|
|
and how they are to be brought from darkness to light,--as some are said
|
|
to have ascended from the world below to the gods?
|
|
|
|
By all means, he replied.
|
|
|
|
The process, I said, is not the turning over of an oyster-shell (In
|
|
allusion to a game in which two parties fled or pursued according as an
|
|
oyster-shell which was thrown into the air fell with the dark or light
|
|
side uppermost.), but the turning round of a soul passing from a day
|
|
which is little better than night to the true day of being, that is, the
|
|
ascent from below, which we affirm to be true philosophy?
|
|
|
|
Quite so.
|
|
|
|
And should we not enquire what sort of knowledge has the power of
|
|
effecting such a change?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
What sort of knowledge is there which would draw the soul from becoming
|
|
to being? And another consideration has just occurred to me: You will
|
|
remember that our young men are to be warrior athletes?
|
|
|
|
Yes, that was said.
|
|
|
|
Then this new kind of knowledge must have an additional quality?
|
|
|
|
What quality?
|
|
|
|
Usefulness in war.
|
|
|
|
Yes, if possible.
|
|
|
|
There were two parts in our former scheme of education, were there not?
|
|
|
|
Just so.
|
|
|
|
There was gymnastic which presided over the growth and decay of the
|
|
body, and may therefore be regarded as having to do with generation and
|
|
corruption?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then that is not the knowledge which we are seeking to discover?
|
|
|
|
No.
|
|
|
|
But what do you say of music, which also entered to a certain extent
|
|
into our former scheme?
|
|
|
|
Music, he said, as you will remember, was the counterpart of gymnastic,
|
|
and trained the guardians by the influences of habit, by harmony making
|
|
them harmonious, by rhythm rhythmical, but not giving them science; and
|
|
the words, whether fabulous or possibly true, had kindred elements of
|
|
rhythm and harmony in them. But in music there was nothing which tended
|
|
to that good which you are now seeking.
|
|
|
|
You are most accurate, I said, in your recollection; in music there
|
|
certainly was nothing of the kind. But what branch of knowledge is
|
|
there, my dear Glaucon, which is of the desired nature; since all the
|
|
useful arts were reckoned mean by us?
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly; and yet if music and gymnastic are excluded, and the arts
|
|
are also excluded, what remains?
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, there may be nothing left of our special subjects; and
|
|
then we shall have to take something which is not special, but of
|
|
universal application.
|
|
|
|
What may that be?
|
|
|
|
A something which all arts and sciences and intelligences use in common,
|
|
and which every one first has to learn among the elements of education.
|
|
|
|
What is that?
|
|
|
|
The little matter of distinguishing one, two, and three--in a word,
|
|
number and calculation:--do not all arts and sciences necessarily
|
|
partake of them?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then the art of war partakes of them?
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
Then Palamedes, whenever he appears in tragedy, proves Agamemnon
|
|
ridiculously unfit to be a general. Did you never remark how he declares
|
|
that he had invented number, and had numbered the ships and set in array
|
|
the ranks of the army at Troy; which implies that they had never been
|
|
numbered before, and Agamemnon must be supposed literally to have been
|
|
incapable of counting his own feet--how could he if he was ignorant of
|
|
number? And if that is true, what sort of general must he have been?
|
|
|
|
I should say a very strange one, if this was as you say.
|
|
|
|
Can we deny that a warrior should have a knowledge of arithmetic?
|
|
|
|
Certainly he should, if he is to have the smallest understanding of
|
|
military tactics, or indeed, I should rather say, if he is to be a man
|
|
at all.
|
|
|
|
I should like to know whether you have the same notion which I have of
|
|
this study?
|
|
|
|
What is your notion?
|
|
|
|
It appears to me to be a study of the kind which we are seeking, and
|
|
which leads naturally to reflection, but never to have been rightly
|
|
used; for the true use of it is simply to draw the soul towards being.
|
|
|
|
Will you explain your meaning? he said.
|
|
|
|
I will try, I said; and I wish you would share the enquiry with me,
|
|
and say 'yes' or 'no' when I attempt to distinguish in my own mind what
|
|
branches of knowledge have this attracting power, in order that we may
|
|
have clearer proof that arithmetic is, as I suspect, one of them.
|
|
|
|
Explain, he said.
|
|
|
|
I mean to say that objects of sense are of two kinds; some of them do
|
|
not invite thought because the sense is an adequate judge of them; while
|
|
in the case of other objects sense is so untrustworthy that further
|
|
enquiry is imperatively demanded.
|
|
|
|
You are clearly referring, he said, to the manner in which the senses
|
|
are imposed upon by distance, and by painting in light and shade.
|
|
|
|
No, I said, that is not at all my meaning.
|
|
|
|
Then what is your meaning?
|
|
|
|
When speaking of uninviting objects, I mean those which do not pass from
|
|
one sensation to the opposite; inviting objects are those which do; in
|
|
this latter case the sense coming upon the object, whether at a distance
|
|
or near, gives no more vivid idea of anything in particular than of its
|
|
opposite. An illustration will make my meaning clearer:--here are three
|
|
fingers--a little finger, a second finger, and a middle finger.
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
You may suppose that they are seen quite close: And here comes the
|
|
point.
|
|
|
|
What is it?
|
|
|
|
Each of them equally appears a finger, whether seen in the middle or
|
|
at the extremity, whether white or black, or thick or thin--it makes no
|
|
difference; a finger is a finger all the same. In these cases a man is
|
|
not compelled to ask of thought the question what is a finger? for the
|
|
sight never intimates to the mind that a finger is other than a finger.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And therefore, I said, as we might expect, there is nothing here which
|
|
invites or excites intelligence.
|
|
|
|
There is not, he said.
|
|
|
|
But is this equally true of the greatness and smallness of the fingers?
|
|
Can sight adequately perceive them? and is no difference made by the
|
|
circumstance that one of the fingers is in the middle and another at
|
|
the extremity? And in like manner does the touch adequately perceive the
|
|
qualities of thickness or thinness, of softness or hardness? And so of
|
|
the other senses; do they give perfect intimations of such matters? Is
|
|
not their mode of operation on this wise--the sense which is concerned
|
|
with the quality of hardness is necessarily concerned also with the
|
|
quality of softness, and only intimates to the soul that the same thing
|
|
is felt to be both hard and soft?
|
|
|
|
You are quite right, he said.
|
|
|
|
And must not the soul be perplexed at this intimation which the sense
|
|
gives of a hard which is also soft? What, again, is the meaning of
|
|
light and heavy, if that which is light is also heavy, and that which is
|
|
heavy, light?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, these intimations which the soul receives are very curious
|
|
and require to be explained.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, and in these perplexities the soul naturally summons to her
|
|
aid calculation and intelligence, that she may see whether the several
|
|
objects announced to her are one or two.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And if they turn out to be two, is not each of them one and different?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And if each is one, and both are two, she will conceive the two as in
|
|
a state of division, for if there were undivided they could only be
|
|
conceived of as one?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
The eye certainly did see both small and great, but only in a confused
|
|
manner; they were not distinguished.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Whereas the thinking mind, intending to light up the chaos, was
|
|
compelled to reverse the process, and look at small and great as
|
|
separate and not confused.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Was not this the beginning of the enquiry 'What is great?' and 'What is
|
|
small?'
|
|
|
|
Exactly so.
|
|
|
|
And thus arose the distinction of the visible and the intelligible.
|
|
|
|
Most true.
|
|
|
|
This was what I meant when I spoke of impressions which invited the
|
|
intellect, or the reverse--those which are simultaneous with opposite
|
|
impressions, invite thought; those which are not simultaneous do not.
|
|
|
|
I understand, he said, and agree with you.
|
|
|
|
And to which class do unity and number belong?
|
|
|
|
I do not know, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Think a little and you will see that what has preceded will supply the
|
|
answer; for if simple unity could be adequately perceived by the sight
|
|
or by any other sense, then, as we were saying in the case of the
|
|
finger, there would be nothing to attract towards being; but when there
|
|
is some contradiction always present, and one is the reverse of one and
|
|
involves the conception of plurality, then thought begins to be aroused
|
|
within us, and the soul perplexed and wanting to arrive at a decision
|
|
asks 'What is absolute unity?' This is the way in which the study of the
|
|
one has a power of drawing and converting the mind to the contemplation
|
|
of true being.
|
|
|
|
And surely, he said, this occurs notably in the case of one; for we see
|
|
the same thing to be both one and infinite in multitude?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and this being true of one must be equally true of all
|
|
number?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And all arithmetic and calculation have to do with number?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And they appear to lead the mind towards truth?
|
|
|
|
Yes, in a very remarkable manner.
|
|
|
|
Then this is knowledge of the kind for which we are seeking, having a
|
|
double use, military and philosophical; for the man of war must learn
|
|
the art of number or he will not know how to array his troops, and the
|
|
philosopher also, because he has to rise out of the sea of change and
|
|
lay hold of true being, and therefore he must be an arithmetician.
|
|
|
|
That is true.
|
|
|
|
And our guardian is both warrior and philosopher?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then this is a kind of knowledge which legislation may fitly prescribe;
|
|
and we must endeavour to persuade those who are to be the principal men
|
|
of our State to go and learn arithmetic, not as amateurs, but they must
|
|
carry on the study until they see the nature of numbers with the mind
|
|
only; nor again, like merchants or retail-traders, with a view to buying
|
|
or selling, but for the sake of their military use, and of the soul
|
|
herself; and because this will be the easiest way for her to pass from
|
|
becoming to truth and being.
|
|
|
|
That is excellent, he said.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, and now having spoken of it, I must add how charming the
|
|
science is! and in how many ways it conduces to our desired end, if
|
|
pursued in the spirit of a philosopher, and not of a shopkeeper!
|
|
|
|
How do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I mean, as I was saying, that arithmetic has a very great and elevating
|
|
effect, compelling the soul to reason about abstract number, and
|
|
rebelling against the introduction of visible or tangible objects into
|
|
the argument. You know how steadily the masters of the art repel and
|
|
ridicule any one who attempts to divide absolute unity when he is
|
|
calculating, and if you divide, they multiply (Meaning either (1)
|
|
that they integrate the number because they deny the possibility of
|
|
fractions; or (2) that division is regarded by them as a process of
|
|
multiplication, for the fractions of one continue to be units.), taking
|
|
care that one shall continue one and not become lost in fractions.
|
|
|
|
That is very true.
|
|
|
|
Now, suppose a person were to say to them: O my friends, what are these
|
|
wonderful numbers about which you are reasoning, in which, as you say,
|
|
there is a unity such as you demand, and each unit is equal, invariable,
|
|
indivisible,--what would they answer?
|
|
|
|
They would answer, as I should conceive, that they were speaking of
|
|
those numbers which can only be realized in thought.
|
|
|
|
Then you see that this knowledge may be truly called necessary,
|
|
necessitating as it clearly does the use of the pure intelligence in the
|
|
attainment of pure truth?
|
|
|
|
Yes; that is a marked characteristic of it.
|
|
|
|
And have you further observed, that those who have a natural talent for
|
|
calculation are generally quick at every other kind of knowledge; and
|
|
even the dull, if they have had an arithmetical training, although they
|
|
may derive no other advantage from it, always become much quicker than
|
|
they would otherwise have been.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And indeed, you will not easily find a more difficult study, and not
|
|
many as difficult.
|
|
|
|
You will not.
|
|
|
|
And, for all these reasons, arithmetic is a kind of knowledge in which
|
|
the best natures should be trained, and which must not be given up.
|
|
|
|
I agree.
|
|
|
|
Let this then be made one of our subjects of education. And next, shall
|
|
we enquire whether the kindred science also concerns us?
|
|
|
|
You mean geometry?
|
|
|
|
Exactly so.
|
|
|
|
Clearly, he said, we are concerned with that part of geometry which
|
|
relates to war; for in pitching a camp, or taking up a position,
|
|
or closing or extending the lines of an army, or any other military
|
|
manoeuvre, whether in actual battle or on a march, it will make all the
|
|
difference whether a general is or is not a geometrician.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, but for that purpose a very little of either geometry or
|
|
calculation will be enough; the question relates rather to the greater
|
|
and more advanced part of geometry--whether that tends in any degree
|
|
to make more easy the vision of the idea of good; and thither, as I was
|
|
saying, all things tend which compel the soul to turn her gaze towards
|
|
that place, where is the full perfection of being, which she ought, by
|
|
all means, to behold.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then if geometry compels us to view being, it concerns us; if becoming
|
|
only, it does not concern us?
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is what we assert.
|
|
|
|
Yet anybody who has the least acquaintance with geometry will not deny
|
|
that such a conception of the science is in flat contradiction to the
|
|
ordinary language of geometricians.
|
|
|
|
How so?
|
|
|
|
They have in view practice only, and are always speaking, in a narrow
|
|
and ridiculous manner, of squaring and extending and applying and the
|
|
like--they confuse the necessities of geometry with those of daily life;
|
|
whereas knowledge is the real object of the whole science.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then must not a further admission be made?
|
|
|
|
What admission?
|
|
|
|
That the knowledge at which geometry aims is knowledge of the eternal,
|
|
and not of aught perishing and transient.
|
|
|
|
That, he replied, may be readily allowed, and is true.
|
|
|
|
Then, my noble friend, geometry will draw the soul towards truth,
|
|
and create the spirit of philosophy, and raise up that which is now
|
|
unhappily allowed to fall down.
|
|
|
|
Nothing will be more likely to have such an effect.
|
|
|
|
Then nothing should be more sternly laid down than that the inhabitants
|
|
of your fair city should by all means learn geometry. Moreover the
|
|
science has indirect effects, which are not small.
|
|
|
|
Of what kind? he said.
|
|
|
|
There are the military advantages of which you spoke, I said; and in all
|
|
departments of knowledge, as experience proves, any one who has studied
|
|
geometry is infinitely quicker of apprehension than one who has not.
|
|
|
|
Yes indeed, he said, there is an infinite difference between them.
|
|
|
|
Then shall we propose this as a second branch of knowledge which our
|
|
youth will study?
|
|
|
|
Let us do so, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And suppose we make astronomy the third--what do you say?
|
|
|
|
I am strongly inclined to it, he said; the observation of the seasons
|
|
and of months and years is as essential to the general as it is to the
|
|
farmer or sailor.
|
|
|
|
I am amused, I said, at your fear of the world, which makes you guard
|
|
against the appearance of insisting upon useless studies; and I quite
|
|
admit the difficulty of believing that in every man there is an eye
|
|
of the soul which, when by other pursuits lost and dimmed, is by these
|
|
purified and re-illumined; and is more precious far than ten thousand
|
|
bodily eyes, for by it alone is truth seen. Now there are two classes of
|
|
persons: one class of those who will agree with you and will take
|
|
your words as a revelation; another class to whom they will be utterly
|
|
unmeaning, and who will naturally deem them to be idle tales, for they
|
|
see no sort of profit which is to be obtained from them. And therefore
|
|
you had better decide at once with which of the two you are proposing to
|
|
argue. You will very likely say with neither, and that your chief aim in
|
|
carrying on the argument is your own improvement; at the same time you
|
|
do not grudge to others any benefit which they may receive.
|
|
|
|
I think that I should prefer to carry on the argument mainly on my own
|
|
behalf.
|
|
|
|
Then take a step backward, for we have gone wrong in the order of the
|
|
sciences.
|
|
|
|
What was the mistake? he said.
|
|
|
|
After plane geometry, I said, we proceeded at once to solids in
|
|
revolution, instead of taking solids in themselves; whereas after the
|
|
second dimension the third, which is concerned with cubes and dimensions
|
|
of depth, ought to have followed.
|
|
|
|
That is true, Socrates; but so little seems to be known as yet about
|
|
these subjects.
|
|
|
|
Why, yes, I said, and for two reasons:--in the first place, no
|
|
government patronises them; this leads to a want of energy in the
|
|
pursuit of them, and they are difficult; in the second place, students
|
|
cannot learn them unless they have a director. But then a director
|
|
can hardly be found, and even if he could, as matters now stand,
|
|
the students, who are very conceited, would not attend to him. That,
|
|
however, would be otherwise if the whole State became the director of
|
|
these studies and gave honour to them; then disciples would want to
|
|
come, and there would be continuous and earnest search, and discoveries
|
|
would be made; since even now, disregarded as they are by the world, and
|
|
maimed of their fair proportions, and although none of their votaries
|
|
can tell the use of them, still these studies force their way by their
|
|
natural charm, and very likely, if they had the help of the State, they
|
|
would some day emerge into light.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, there is a remarkable charm in them. But I do not clearly
|
|
understand the change in the order. First you began with a geometry of
|
|
plane surfaces?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said.
|
|
|
|
And you placed astronomy next, and then you made a step backward?
|
|
|
|
Yes, and I have delayed you by my hurry; the ludicrous state of solid
|
|
geometry, which, in natural order, should have followed, made me pass
|
|
over this branch and go on to astronomy, or motion of solids.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then assuming that the science now omitted would come into existence
|
|
if encouraged by the State, let us go on to astronomy, which will be
|
|
fourth.
|
|
|
|
The right order, he replied. And now, Socrates, as you rebuked the
|
|
vulgar manner in which I praised astronomy before, my praise shall
|
|
be given in your own spirit. For every one, as I think, must see that
|
|
astronomy compels the soul to look upwards and leads us from this world
|
|
to another.
|
|
|
|
Every one but myself, I said; to every one else this may be clear, but
|
|
not to me.
|
|
|
|
And what then would you say?
|
|
|
|
I should rather say that those who elevate astronomy into philosophy
|
|
appear to me to make us look downwards and not upwards.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? he asked.
|
|
|
|
You, I replied, have in your mind a truly sublime conception of our
|
|
knowledge of the things above. And I dare say that if a person were to
|
|
throw his head back and study the fretted ceiling, you would still think
|
|
that his mind was the percipient, and not his eyes. And you are very
|
|
likely right, and I may be a simpleton: but, in my opinion, that
|
|
knowledge only which is of being and of the unseen can make the soul
|
|
look upwards, and whether a man gapes at the heavens or blinks on the
|
|
ground, seeking to learn some particular of sense, I would deny that he
|
|
can learn, for nothing of that sort is matter of science; his soul is
|
|
looking downwards, not upwards, whether his way to knowledge is by water
|
|
or by land, whether he floats, or only lies on his back.
|
|
|
|
I acknowledge, he said, the justice of your rebuke. Still, I should like
|
|
to ascertain how astronomy can be learned in any manner more conducive
|
|
to that knowledge of which we are speaking?
|
|
|
|
I will tell you, I said: The starry heaven which we behold is wrought
|
|
upon a visible ground, and therefore, although the fairest and most
|
|
perfect of visible things, must necessarily be deemed inferior far to
|
|
the true motions of absolute swiftness and absolute slowness, which are
|
|
relative to each other, and carry with them that which is contained in
|
|
them, in the true number and in every true figure. Now, these are to be
|
|
apprehended by reason and intelligence, but not by sight.
|
|
|
|
True, he replied.
|
|
|
|
The spangled heavens should be used as a pattern and with a view to that
|
|
higher knowledge; their beauty is like the beauty of figures or pictures
|
|
excellently wrought by the hand of Daedalus, or some other great artist,
|
|
which we may chance to behold; any geometrician who saw them would
|
|
appreciate the exquisiteness of their workmanship, but he would never
|
|
dream of thinking that in them he could find the true equal or the true
|
|
double, or the truth of any other proportion.
|
|
|
|
No, he replied, such an idea would be ridiculous.
|
|
|
|
And will not a true astronomer have the same feeling when he looks at
|
|
the movements of the stars? Will he not think that heaven and the things
|
|
in heaven are framed by the Creator of them in the most perfect manner?
|
|
But he will never imagine that the proportions of night and day, or of
|
|
both to the month, or of the month to the year, or of the stars to these
|
|
and to one another, and any other things that are material and visible
|
|
can also be eternal and subject to no deviation--that would be absurd;
|
|
and it is equally absurd to take so much pains in investigating their
|
|
exact truth.
|
|
|
|
I quite agree, though I never thought of this before.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, in astronomy, as in geometry, we should employ problems,
|
|
and let the heavens alone if we would approach the subject in the right
|
|
way and so make the natural gift of reason to be of any real use.
|
|
|
|
That, he said, is a work infinitely beyond our present astronomers.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and there are many other things which must also have a
|
|
similar extension given to them, if our legislation is to be of any
|
|
value. But can you tell me of any other suitable study?
|
|
|
|
No, he said, not without thinking.
|
|
|
|
Motion, I said, has many forms, and not one only; two of them are
|
|
obvious enough even to wits no better than ours; and there are others,
|
|
as I imagine, which may be left to wiser persons.
|
|
|
|
But where are the two?
|
|
|
|
There is a second, I said, which is the counterpart of the one already
|
|
named.
|
|
|
|
And what may that be?
|
|
|
|
The second, I said, would seem relatively to the ears to be what the
|
|
first is to the eyes; for I conceive that as the eyes are designed to
|
|
look up at the stars, so are the ears to hear harmonious motions; and
|
|
these are sister sciences--as the Pythagoreans say, and we, Glaucon,
|
|
agree with them?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied.
|
|
|
|
But this, I said, is a laborious study, and therefore we had better go
|
|
and learn of them; and they will tell us whether there are any other
|
|
applications of these sciences. At the same time, we must not lose sight
|
|
of our own higher object.
|
|
|
|
What is that?
|
|
|
|
There is a perfection which all knowledge ought to reach, and which our
|
|
pupils ought also to attain, and not to fall short of, as I was saying
|
|
that they did in astronomy. For in the science of harmony, as you
|
|
probably know, the same thing happens. The teachers of harmony compare
|
|
the sounds and consonances which are heard only, and their labour, like
|
|
that of the astronomers, is in vain.
|
|
|
|
Yes, by heaven! he said; and 'tis as good as a play to hear them talking
|
|
about their condensed notes, as they call them; they put their ears
|
|
close alongside of the strings like persons catching a sound from their
|
|
neighbour's wall--one set of them declaring that they distinguish an
|
|
intermediate note and have found the least interval which should be
|
|
the unit of measurement; the others insisting that the two sounds have
|
|
passed into the same--either party setting their ears before their
|
|
understanding.
|
|
|
|
You mean, I said, those gentlemen who tease and torture the strings and
|
|
rack them on the pegs of the instrument: I might carry on the metaphor
|
|
and speak after their manner of the blows which the plectrum gives,
|
|
and make accusations against the strings, both of backwardness and
|
|
forwardness to sound; but this would be tedious, and therefore I will
|
|
only say that these are not the men, and that I am referring to the
|
|
Pythagoreans, of whom I was just now proposing to enquire about harmony.
|
|
For they too are in error, like the astronomers; they investigate the
|
|
numbers of the harmonies which are heard, but they never attain to
|
|
problems--that is to say, they never reach the natural harmonies of
|
|
number, or reflect why some numbers are harmonious and others not.
|
|
|
|
That, he said, is a thing of more than mortal knowledge.
|
|
|
|
A thing, I replied, which I would rather call useful; that is, if sought
|
|
after with a view to the beautiful and good; but if pursued in any other
|
|
spirit, useless.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Now, when all these studies reach the point of inter-communion and
|
|
connection with one another, and come to be considered in their mutual
|
|
affinities, then, I think, but not till then, will the pursuit of them
|
|
have a value for our objects; otherwise there is no profit in them.
|
|
|
|
I suspect so; but you are speaking, Socrates, of a vast work.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? I said; the prelude or what? Do you not know that all
|
|
this is but the prelude to the actual strain which we have to learn? For
|
|
you surely would not regard the skilled mathematician as a dialectician?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly not, he said; I have hardly ever known a mathematician who was
|
|
capable of reasoning.
|
|
|
|
But do you imagine that men who are unable to give and take a reason
|
|
will have the knowledge which we require of them?
|
|
|
|
Neither can this be supposed.
|
|
|
|
And so, Glaucon, I said, we have at last arrived at the hymn of
|
|
dialectic. This is that strain which is of the intellect only, but which
|
|
the faculty of sight will nevertheless be found to imitate; for sight,
|
|
as you may remember, was imagined by us after a while to behold the
|
|
real animals and stars, and last of all the sun himself. And so with
|
|
dialectic; when a person starts on the discovery of the absolute by
|
|
the light of reason only, and without any assistance of sense, and
|
|
perseveres until by pure intelligence he arrives at the perception
|
|
of the absolute good, he at last finds himself at the end of the
|
|
intellectual world, as in the case of sight at the end of the visible.
|
|
|
|
Exactly, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then this is the progress which you call dialectic?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
But the release of the prisoners from chains, and their translation
|
|
from the shadows to the images and to the light, and the ascent from the
|
|
underground den to the sun, while in his presence they are vainly trying
|
|
to look on animals and plants and the light of the sun, but are able to
|
|
perceive even with their weak eyes the images in the water (which are
|
|
divine), and are the shadows of true existence (not shadows of images
|
|
cast by a light of fire, which compared with the sun is only an
|
|
image)--this power of elevating the highest principle in the soul to
|
|
the contemplation of that which is best in existence, with which we may
|
|
compare the raising of that faculty which is the very light of the body
|
|
to the sight of that which is brightest in the material and visible
|
|
world--this power is given, as I was saying, by all that study and
|
|
pursuit of the arts which has been described.
|
|
|
|
I agree in what you are saying, he replied, which may be hard to
|
|
believe, yet, from another point of view, is harder still to deny. This,
|
|
however, is not a theme to be treated of in passing only, but will have
|
|
to be discussed again and again. And so, whether our conclusion be true
|
|
or false, let us assume all this, and proceed at once from the prelude
|
|
or preamble to the chief strain (A play upon the Greek word, which means
|
|
both 'law' and 'strain.'), and describe that in like manner. Say, then,
|
|
what is the nature and what are the divisions of dialectic, and what
|
|
are the paths which lead thither; for these paths will also lead to our
|
|
final rest.
|
|
|
|
Dear Glaucon, I said, you will not be able to follow me here, though
|
|
I would do my best, and you should behold not an image only but the
|
|
absolute truth, according to my notion. Whether what I told you would
|
|
or would not have been a reality I cannot venture to say; but you would
|
|
have seen something like reality; of that I am confident.
|
|
|
|
Doubtless, he replied.
|
|
|
|
But I must also remind you, that the power of dialectic alone can reveal
|
|
this, and only to one who is a disciple of the previous sciences.
|
|
|
|
Of that assertion you may be as confident as of the last.
|
|
|
|
And assuredly no one will argue that there is any other method
|
|
of comprehending by any regular process all true existence or of
|
|
ascertaining what each thing is in its own nature; for the arts in
|
|
general are concerned with the desires or opinions of men, or are
|
|
cultivated with a view to production and construction, or for the
|
|
preservation of such productions and constructions; and as to the
|
|
mathematical sciences which, as we were saying, have some apprehension
|
|
of true being--geometry and the like--they only dream about being,
|
|
but never can they behold the waking reality so long as they leave the
|
|
hypotheses which they use unexamined, and are unable to give an account
|
|
of them. For when a man knows not his own first principle, and when the
|
|
conclusion and intermediate steps are also constructed out of he knows
|
|
not what, how can he imagine that such a fabric of convention can ever
|
|
become science?
|
|
|
|
Impossible, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then dialectic, and dialectic alone, goes directly to the first
|
|
principle and is the only science which does away with hypotheses in
|
|
order to make her ground secure; the eye of the soul, which is literally
|
|
buried in an outlandish slough, is by her gentle aid lifted upwards;
|
|
and she uses as handmaids and helpers in the work of conversion, the
|
|
sciences which we have been discussing. Custom terms them sciences,
|
|
but they ought to have some other name, implying greater clearness
|
|
than opinion and less clearness than science: and this, in our previous
|
|
sketch, was called understanding. But why should we dispute about names
|
|
when we have realities of such importance to consider?
|
|
|
|
Why indeed, he said, when any name will do which expresses the thought
|
|
of the mind with clearness?
|
|
|
|
At any rate, we are satisfied, as before, to have four divisions;
|
|
two for intellect and two for opinion, and to call the first division
|
|
science, the second understanding, the third belief, and the fourth
|
|
perception of shadows, opinion being concerned with becoming, and
|
|
intellect with being; and so to make a proportion:--
|
|
|
|
As being is to becoming, so is pure intellect to opinion. And as
|
|
intellect is to opinion, so is science to belief, and understanding to
|
|
the perception of shadows.
|
|
|
|
But let us defer the further correlation and subdivision of the subjects
|
|
of opinion and of intellect, for it will be a long enquiry, many times
|
|
longer than this has been.
|
|
|
|
As far as I understand, he said, I agree.
|
|
|
|
And do you also agree, I said, in describing the dialectician as one who
|
|
attains a conception of the essence of each thing? And he who does not
|
|
possess and is therefore unable to impart this conception, in
|
|
whatever degree he fails, may in that degree also be said to fail in
|
|
intelligence? Will you admit so much?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; how can I deny it?
|
|
|
|
And you would say the same of the conception of the good? Until the
|
|
person is able to abstract and define rationally the idea of good,
|
|
and unless he can run the gauntlet of all objections, and is ready to
|
|
disprove them, not by appeals to opinion, but to absolute truth, never
|
|
faltering at any step of the argument--unless he can do all this, you
|
|
would say that he knows neither the idea of good nor any other good; he
|
|
apprehends only a shadow, if anything at all, which is given by opinion
|
|
and not by science;--dreaming and slumbering in this life, before he
|
|
is well awake here, he arrives at the world below, and has his final
|
|
quietus.
|
|
|
|
In all that I should most certainly agree with you.
|
|
|
|
And surely you would not have the children of your ideal State, whom you
|
|
are nurturing and educating--if the ideal ever becomes a reality--you
|
|
would not allow the future rulers to be like posts (Literally 'lines,'
|
|
probably the starting-point of a race-course.), having no reason in
|
|
them, and yet to be set in authority over the highest matters?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Then you will make a law that they shall have such an education as
|
|
will enable them to attain the greatest skill in asking and answering
|
|
questions?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, you and I together will make it.
|
|
|
|
Dialectic, then, as you will agree, is the coping-stone of the sciences,
|
|
and is set over them; no other science can be placed higher--the nature
|
|
of knowledge can no further go?
|
|
|
|
I agree, he said.
|
|
|
|
But to whom we are to assign these studies, and in what way they are to
|
|
be assigned, are questions which remain to be considered.
|
|
|
|
Yes, clearly.
|
|
|
|
You remember, I said, how the rulers were chosen before?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
The same natures must still be chosen, and the preference again given
|
|
to the surest and the bravest, and, if possible, to the fairest; and,
|
|
having noble and generous tempers, they should also have the natural
|
|
gifts which will facilitate their education.
|
|
|
|
And what are these?
|
|
|
|
Such gifts as keenness and ready powers of acquisition; for the mind
|
|
more often faints from the severity of study than from the severity of
|
|
gymnastics: the toil is more entirely the mind's own, and is not shared
|
|
with the body.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Further, he of whom we are in search should have a good memory, and be
|
|
an unwearied solid man who is a lover of labour in any line; or he will
|
|
never be able to endure the great amount of bodily exercise and to go
|
|
through all the intellectual discipline and study which we require of
|
|
him.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said; he must have natural gifts.
|
|
|
|
The mistake at present is, that those who study philosophy have no
|
|
vocation, and this, as I was before saying, is the reason why she has
|
|
fallen into disrepute: her true sons should take her by the hand and not
|
|
bastards.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
In the first place, her votary should not have a lame or halting
|
|
industry--I mean, that he should not be half industrious and half idle:
|
|
as, for example, when a man is a lover of gymnastic and hunting, and all
|
|
other bodily exercises, but a hater rather than a lover of the labour
|
|
of learning or listening or enquiring. Or the occupation to which he
|
|
devotes himself may be of an opposite kind, and he may have the other
|
|
sort of lameness.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
And as to truth, I said, is not a soul equally to be deemed halt and
|
|
lame which hates voluntary falsehood and is extremely indignant at
|
|
herself and others when they tell lies, but is patient of involuntary
|
|
falsehood, and does not mind wallowing like a swinish beast in the mire
|
|
of ignorance, and has no shame at being detected?
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
And, again, in respect of temperance, courage, magnificence, and every
|
|
other virtue, should we not carefully distinguish between the true son
|
|
and the bastard? for where there is no discernment of such qualities
|
|
states and individuals unconsciously err; and the state makes a ruler,
|
|
and the individual a friend, of one who, being defective in some part of
|
|
virtue, is in a figure lame or a bastard.
|
|
|
|
That is very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
All these things, then, will have to be carefully considered by us; and
|
|
if only those whom we introduce to this vast system of education and
|
|
training are sound in body and mind, justice herself will have nothing
|
|
to say against us, and we shall be the saviours of the constitution and
|
|
of the State; but, if our pupils are men of another stamp, the reverse
|
|
will happen, and we shall pour a still greater flood of ridicule on
|
|
philosophy than she has to endure at present.
|
|
|
|
That would not be creditable.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, I said; and yet perhaps, in thus turning jest into
|
|
earnest I am equally ridiculous.
|
|
|
|
In what respect?
|
|
|
|
I had forgotten, I said, that we were not serious, and spoke with too
|
|
much excitement. For when I saw philosophy so undeservedly trampled
|
|
under foot of men I could not help feeling a sort of indignation at the
|
|
authors of her disgrace: and my anger made me too vehement.
|
|
|
|
Indeed! I was listening, and did not think so.
|
|
|
|
But I, who am the speaker, felt that I was. And now let me remind you
|
|
that, although in our former selection we chose old men, we must not do
|
|
so in this. Solon was under a delusion when he said that a man when he
|
|
grows old may learn many things--for he can no more learn much than he
|
|
can run much; youth is the time for any extraordinary toil.
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And, therefore, calculation and geometry and all the other elements of
|
|
instruction, which are a preparation for dialectic, should be presented
|
|
to the mind in childhood; not, however, under any notion of forcing our
|
|
system of education.
|
|
|
|
Why not?
|
|
|
|
Because a freeman ought not to be a slave in the acquisition of
|
|
knowledge of any kind. Bodily exercise, when compulsory, does no harm
|
|
to the body; but knowledge which is acquired under compulsion obtains no
|
|
hold on the mind.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Then, my good friend, I said, do not use compulsion, but let early
|
|
education be a sort of amusement; you will then be better able to find
|
|
out the natural bent.
|
|
|
|
That is a very rational notion, he said.
|
|
|
|
Do you remember that the children, too, were to be taken to see the
|
|
battle on horseback; and that if there were no danger they were to be
|
|
brought close up and, like young hounds, have a taste of blood given
|
|
them?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I remember.
|
|
|
|
The same practice may be followed, I said, in all these things--labours,
|
|
lessons, dangers--and he who is most at home in all of them ought to be
|
|
enrolled in a select number.
|
|
|
|
At what age?
|
|
|
|
At the age when the necessary gymnastics are over: the period whether of
|
|
two or three years which passes in this sort of training is useless for
|
|
any other purpose; for sleep and exercise are unpropitious to learning;
|
|
and the trial of who is first in gymnastic exercises is one of the most
|
|
important tests to which our youth are subjected.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
After that time those who are selected from the class of twenty years
|
|
old will be promoted to higher honour, and the sciences which they
|
|
learned without any order in their early education will now be brought
|
|
together, and they will be able to see the natural relationship of them
|
|
to one another and to true being.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is the only kind of knowledge which takes lasting
|
|
root.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and the capacity for such knowledge is the great criterion
|
|
of dialectical talent: the comprehensive mind is always the dialectical.
|
|
|
|
I agree with you, he said.
|
|
|
|
These, I said, are the points which you must consider; and those who
|
|
have most of this comprehension, and who are most steadfast in their
|
|
learning, and in their military and other appointed duties, when they
|
|
have arrived at the age of thirty have to be chosen by you out of the
|
|
select class, and elevated to higher honour; and you will have to prove
|
|
them by the help of dialectic, in order to learn which of them is able
|
|
to give up the use of sight and the other senses, and in company with
|
|
truth to attain absolute being: And here, my friend, great caution is
|
|
required.
|
|
|
|
Why great caution?
|
|
|
|
Do you not remark, I said, how great is the evil which dialectic has
|
|
introduced?
|
|
|
|
What evil? he said.
|
|
|
|
The students of the art are filled with lawlessness.
|
|
|
|
Quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Do you think that there is anything so very unnatural or inexcusable in
|
|
their case? or will you make allowance for them?
|
|
|
|
In what way make allowance?
|
|
|
|
I want you, I said, by way of parallel, to imagine a supposititious son
|
|
who is brought up in great wealth; he is one of a great and numerous
|
|
family, and has many flatterers. When he grows up to manhood, he learns
|
|
that his alleged are not his real parents; but who the real are he
|
|
is unable to discover. Can you guess how he will be likely to behave
|
|
towards his flatterers and his supposed parents, first of all during the
|
|
period when he is ignorant of the false relation, and then again when he
|
|
knows? Or shall I guess for you?
|
|
|
|
If you please.
|
|
|
|
Then I should say, that while he is ignorant of the truth he will be
|
|
likely to honour his father and his mother and his supposed relations
|
|
more than the flatterers; he will be less inclined to neglect them when
|
|
in need, or to do or say anything against them; and he will be less
|
|
willing to disobey them in any important matter.
|
|
|
|
He will.
|
|
|
|
But when he has made the discovery, I should imagine that he would
|
|
diminish his honour and regard for them, and would become more devoted
|
|
to the flatterers; their influence over him would greatly increase; he
|
|
would now live after their ways, and openly associate with them, and,
|
|
unless he were of an unusually good disposition, he would trouble
|
|
himself no more about his supposed parents or other relations.
|
|
|
|
Well, all that is very probable. But how is the image applicable to the
|
|
disciples of philosophy?
|
|
|
|
In this way: you know that there are certain principles about justice
|
|
and honour, which were taught us in childhood, and under their parental
|
|
authority we have been brought up, obeying and honouring them.
|
|
|
|
That is true.
|
|
|
|
There are also opposite maxims and habits of pleasure which flatter and
|
|
attract the soul, but do not influence those of us who have any sense of
|
|
right, and they continue to obey and honour the maxims of their fathers.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Now, when a man is in this state, and the questioning spirit asks what
|
|
is fair or honourable, and he answers as the legislator has taught him,
|
|
and then arguments many and diverse refute his words, until he is driven
|
|
into believing that nothing is honourable any more than dishonourable,
|
|
or just and good any more than the reverse, and so of all the notions
|
|
which he most valued, do you think that he will still honour and obey
|
|
them as before?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
And when he ceases to think them honourable and natural as heretofore,
|
|
and he fails to discover the true, can he be expected to pursue any life
|
|
other than that which flatters his desires?
|
|
|
|
He cannot.
|
|
|
|
And from being a keeper of the law he is converted into a breaker of it?
|
|
|
|
Unquestionably.
|
|
|
|
Now all this is very natural in students of philosophy such as I have
|
|
described, and also, as I was just now saying, most excusable.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; and, I may add, pitiable.
|
|
|
|
Therefore, that your feelings may not be moved to pity about our
|
|
citizens who are now thirty years of age, every care must be taken in
|
|
introducing them to dialectic.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
There is a danger lest they should taste the dear delight too early; for
|
|
youngsters, as you may have observed, when they first get the taste
|
|
in their mouths, argue for amusement, and are always contradicting and
|
|
refuting others in imitation of those who refute them; like puppy-dogs,
|
|
they rejoice in pulling and tearing at all who come near them.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, there is nothing which they like better.
|
|
|
|
And when they have made many conquests and received defeats at the hands
|
|
of many, they violently and speedily get into a way of not believing
|
|
anything which they believed before, and hence, not only they, but
|
|
philosophy and all that relates to it is apt to have a bad name with the
|
|
rest of the world.
|
|
|
|
Too true, he said.
|
|
|
|
But when a man begins to get older, he will no longer be guilty of such
|
|
insanity; he will imitate the dialectician who is seeking for truth, and
|
|
not the eristic, who is contradicting for the sake of amusement; and the
|
|
greater moderation of his character will increase instead of diminishing
|
|
the honour of the pursuit.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And did we not make special provision for this, when we said that the
|
|
disciples of philosophy were to be orderly and steadfast, not, as now,
|
|
any chance aspirant or intruder?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Suppose, I said, the study of philosophy to take the place of gymnastics
|
|
and to be continued diligently and earnestly and exclusively for twice
|
|
the number of years which were passed in bodily exercise--will that be
|
|
enough?
|
|
|
|
Would you say six or four years? he asked.
|
|
|
|
Say five years, I replied; at the end of the time they must be sent down
|
|
again into the den and compelled to hold any military or other office
|
|
which young men are qualified to hold: in this way they will get their
|
|
experience of life, and there will be an opportunity of trying whether,
|
|
when they are drawn all manner of ways by temptation, they will stand
|
|
firm or flinch.
|
|
|
|
And how long is this stage of their lives to last?
|
|
|
|
Fifteen years, I answered; and when they have reached fifty years of
|
|
age, then let those who still survive and have distinguished themselves
|
|
in every action of their lives and in every branch of knowledge come at
|
|
last to their consummation: the time has now arrived at which they must
|
|
raise the eye of the soul to the universal light which lightens all
|
|
things, and behold the absolute good; for that is the pattern according
|
|
to which they are to order the State and the lives of individuals, and
|
|
the remainder of their own lives also; making philosophy their chief
|
|
pursuit, but, when their turn comes, toiling also at politics and ruling
|
|
for the public good, not as though they were performing some heroic
|
|
action, but simply as a matter of duty; and when they have brought up in
|
|
each generation others like themselves and left them in their place to
|
|
be governors of the State, then they will depart to the Islands of the
|
|
Blest and dwell there; and the city will give them public memorials and
|
|
sacrifices and honour them, if the Pythian oracle consent, as demigods,
|
|
but if not, as in any case blessed and divine.
|
|
|
|
You are a sculptor, Socrates, and have made statues of our governors
|
|
faultless in beauty.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, Glaucon, and of our governesses too; for you must not
|
|
suppose that what I have been saying applies to men only and not to
|
|
women as far as their natures can go.
|
|
|
|
There you are right, he said, since we have made them to share in all
|
|
things like the men.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, and you would agree (would you not?) that what has
|
|
been said about the State and the government is not a mere dream, and
|
|
although difficult not impossible, but only possible in the way which
|
|
has been supposed; that is to say, when the true philosopher kings are
|
|
born in a State, one or more of them, despising the honours of this
|
|
present world which they deem mean and worthless, esteeming above all
|
|
things right and the honour that springs from right, and regarding
|
|
justice as the greatest and most necessary of all things, whose
|
|
ministers they are, and whose principles will be exalted by them when
|
|
they set in order their own city?
|
|
|
|
How will they proceed?
|
|
|
|
They will begin by sending out into the country all the inhabitants of
|
|
the city who are more than ten years old, and will take possession of
|
|
their children, who will be unaffected by the habits of their parents;
|
|
these they will train in their own habits and laws, I mean in the laws
|
|
which we have given them: and in this way the State and constitution of
|
|
which we were speaking will soonest and most easily attain happiness,
|
|
and the nation which has such a constitution will gain most.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that will be the best way. And I think, Socrates, that you have
|
|
very well described how, if ever, such a constitution might come into
|
|
being.
|
|
|
|
Enough then of the perfect State, and of the man who bears its
|
|
image--there is no difficulty in seeing how we shall describe him.
|
|
|
|
There is no difficulty, he replied; and I agree with you in thinking
|
|
that nothing more need be said.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK VIII.
|
|
|
|
And so, Glaucon, we have arrived at the conclusion that in the perfect
|
|
State wives and children are to be in common; and that all education
|
|
and the pursuits of war and peace are also to be common, and the best
|
|
philosophers and the bravest warriors are to be their kings?
|
|
|
|
That, replied Glaucon, has been acknowledged.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and we have further acknowledged that the governors, when
|
|
appointed themselves, will take their soldiers and place them in houses
|
|
such as we were describing, which are common to all, and contain nothing
|
|
private, or individual; and about their property, you remember what we
|
|
agreed?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I remember that no one was to have any of the ordinary possessions
|
|
of mankind; they were to be warrior athletes and guardians, receiving
|
|
from the other citizens, in lieu of annual payment, only their
|
|
maintenance, and they were to take care of themselves and of the whole
|
|
State.
|
|
|
|
True, I said; and now that this division of our task is concluded, let
|
|
us find the point at which we digressed, that we may return into the old
|
|
path.
|
|
|
|
There is no difficulty in returning; you implied, then as now, that you
|
|
had finished the description of the State: you said that such a State
|
|
was good, and that the man was good who answered to it, although, as now
|
|
appears, you had more excellent things to relate both of State and man.
|
|
And you said further, that if this was the true form, then the others
|
|
were false; and of the false forms, you said, as I remember, that there
|
|
were four principal ones, and that their defects, and the defects of
|
|
the individuals corresponding to them, were worth examining. When we had
|
|
seen all the individuals, and finally agreed as to who was the best and
|
|
who was the worst of them, we were to consider whether the best was not
|
|
also the happiest, and the worst the most miserable. I asked you
|
|
what were the four forms of government of which you spoke, and then
|
|
Polemarchus and Adeimantus put in their word; and you began again, and
|
|
have found your way to the point at which we have now arrived.
|
|
|
|
Your recollection, I said, is most exact.
|
|
|
|
Then, like a wrestler, he replied, you must put yourself again in the
|
|
same position; and let me ask the same questions, and do you give me the
|
|
same answer which you were about to give me then.
|
|
|
|
Yes, if I can, I will, I said.
|
|
|
|
I shall particularly wish to hear what were the four constitutions of
|
|
which you were speaking.
|
|
|
|
That question, I said, is easily answered: the four governments of which
|
|
I spoke, so far as they have distinct names, are, first, those of Crete
|
|
and Sparta, which are generally applauded; what is termed oligarchy
|
|
comes next; this is not equally approved, and is a form of government
|
|
which teems with evils: thirdly, democracy, which naturally follows
|
|
oligarchy, although very different: and lastly comes tyranny, great
|
|
and famous, which differs from them all, and is the fourth and worst
|
|
disorder of a State. I do not know, do you? of any other constitution
|
|
which can be said to have a distinct character. There are lordships and
|
|
principalities which are bought and sold, and some other intermediate
|
|
forms of government. But these are nondescripts and may be found equally
|
|
among Hellenes and among barbarians.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied, we certainly hear of many curious forms of government
|
|
which exist among them.
|
|
|
|
Do you know, I said, that governments vary as the dispositions of men
|
|
vary, and that there must be as many of the one as there are of the
|
|
other? For we cannot suppose that States are made of 'oak and rock,' and
|
|
not out of the human natures which are in them, and which in a figure
|
|
turn the scale and draw other things after them?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, the States are as the men are; they grow out of human
|
|
characters.
|
|
|
|
Then if the constitutions of States are five, the dispositions of
|
|
individual minds will also be five?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Him who answers to aristocracy, and whom we rightly call just and good,
|
|
we have already described.
|
|
|
|
We have.
|
|
|
|
Then let us now proceed to describe the inferior sort of natures, being
|
|
the contentious and ambitious, who answer to the Spartan polity; also
|
|
the oligarchical, democratical, and tyrannical. Let us place the most
|
|
just by the side of the most unjust, and when we see them we shall be
|
|
able to compare the relative happiness or unhappiness of him who leads
|
|
a life of pure justice or pure injustice. The enquiry will then be
|
|
completed. And we shall know whether we ought to pursue injustice,
|
|
as Thrasymachus advises, or in accordance with the conclusions of the
|
|
argument to prefer justice.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied, we must do as you say.
|
|
|
|
Shall we follow our old plan, which we adopted with a view to clearness,
|
|
of taking the State first and then proceeding to the individual, and
|
|
begin with the government of honour?--I know of no name for such a
|
|
government other than timocracy, or perhaps timarchy. We will compare
|
|
with this the like character in the individual; and, after that,
|
|
consider oligarchy and the oligarchical man; and then again we will turn
|
|
our attention to democracy and the democratical man; and lastly, we
|
|
will go and view the city of tyranny, and once more take a look into the
|
|
tyrant's soul, and try to arrive at a satisfactory decision.
|
|
|
|
That way of viewing and judging of the matter will be very suitable.
|
|
|
|
First, then, I said, let us enquire how timocracy (the government of
|
|
honour) arises out of aristocracy (the government of the best). Clearly,
|
|
all political changes originate in divisions of the actual governing
|
|
power; a government which is united, however small, cannot be moved.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
In what way, then, will our city be moved, and in what manner will the
|
|
two classes of auxiliaries and rulers disagree among themselves or with
|
|
one another? Shall we, after the manner of Homer, pray the Muses to tell
|
|
us 'how discord first arose'? Shall we imagine them in solemn mockery,
|
|
to play and jest with us as if we were children, and to address us in a
|
|
lofty tragic vein, making believe to be in earnest?
|
|
|
|
How would they address us?
|
|
|
|
After this manner:--A city which is thus constituted can hardly be
|
|
shaken; but, seeing that everything which has a beginning has also an
|
|
end, even a constitution such as yours will not last for ever, but will
|
|
in time be dissolved. And this is the dissolution:--In plants that grow
|
|
in the earth, as well as in animals that move on the earth's surface,
|
|
fertility and sterility of soul and body occur when the circumferences
|
|
of the circles of each are completed, which in short-lived existences
|
|
pass over a short space, and in long-lived ones over a long space. But
|
|
to the knowledge of human fecundity and sterility all the wisdom and
|
|
education of your rulers will not attain; the laws which regulate them
|
|
will not be discovered by an intelligence which is alloyed with sense,
|
|
but will escape them, and they will bring children into the world when
|
|
they ought not. Now that which is of divine birth has a period which is
|
|
contained in a perfect number (i.e. a cyclical number, such as 6, which
|
|
is equal to the sum of its divisors 1, 2, 3, so that when the circle
|
|
or time represented by 6 is completed, the lesser times or rotations
|
|
represented by 1, 2, 3 are also completed.), but the period of
|
|
human birth is comprehended in a number in which first increments
|
|
by involution and evolution (or squared and cubed) obtaining three
|
|
intervals and four terms of like and unlike, waxing and waning numbers,
|
|
make all the terms commensurable and agreeable to one another. (Probably
|
|
the numbers 3, 4, 5, 6 of which the three first = the sides of the
|
|
Pythagorean triangle. The terms will then be 3 cubed, 4 cubed, 5 cubed,
|
|
which together = 6 cubed = 216.) The base of these (3) with a third
|
|
added (4) when combined with five (20) and raised to the third power
|
|
furnishes two harmonies; the first a square which is a hundred times
|
|
as great (400 = 4 x 100) (Or the first a square which is 100 x 100 =
|
|
10,000. The whole number will then be 17,500 = a square of 100, and an
|
|
oblong of 100 by 75.), and the other a figure having one side equal to
|
|
the former, but oblong, consisting of a hundred numbers squared upon
|
|
rational diameters of a square (i.e. omitting fractions), the side of
|
|
which is five (7 x 7 = 49 x 100 = 4900), each of them being less by one
|
|
(than the perfect square which includes the fractions, sc. 50) or less
|
|
by (Or, 'consisting of two numbers squared upon irrational diameters,'
|
|
etc. = 100. For other explanations of the passage see Introduction.) two
|
|
perfect squares of irrational diameters (of a square the side of which
|
|
is five = 50 + 50 = 100); and a hundred cubes of three (27 x 100 = 2700
|
|
+ 4900 + 400 = 8000). Now this number represents a geometrical figure
|
|
which has control over the good and evil of births. For when your
|
|
guardians are ignorant of the law of births, and unite bride and
|
|
bridegroom out of season, the children will not be goodly or
|
|
fortunate. And though only the best of them will be appointed by their
|
|
predecessors, still they will be unworthy to hold their fathers' places,
|
|
and when they come into power as guardians, they will soon be found
|
|
to fail in taking care of us, the Muses, first by under-valuing music;
|
|
which neglect will soon extend to gymnastic; and hence the young men of
|
|
your State will be less cultivated. In the succeeding generation rulers
|
|
will be appointed who have lost the guardian power of testing the metal
|
|
of your different races, which, like Hesiod's, are of gold and silver
|
|
and brass and iron. And so iron will be mingled with silver, and brass
|
|
with gold, and hence there will arise dissimilarity and inequality and
|
|
irregularity, which always and in all places are causes of hatred
|
|
and war. This the Muses affirm to be the stock from which discord has
|
|
sprung, wherever arising; and this is their answer to us.
|
|
|
|
Yes, and we may assume that they answer truly.
|
|
|
|
Why, yes, I said, of course they answer truly; how can the Muses speak
|
|
falsely?
|
|
|
|
And what do the Muses say next?
|
|
|
|
When discord arose, then the two races were drawn different ways: the
|
|
iron and brass fell to acquiring money and land and houses and gold and
|
|
silver; but the gold and silver races, not wanting money but having the
|
|
true riches in their own nature, inclined towards virtue and the ancient
|
|
order of things. There was a battle between them, and at last they
|
|
agreed to distribute their land and houses among individual owners;
|
|
and they enslaved their friends and maintainers, whom they had formerly
|
|
protected in the condition of freemen, and made of them subjects and
|
|
servants; and they themselves were engaged in war and in keeping a watch
|
|
against them.
|
|
|
|
I believe that you have rightly conceived the origin of the change.
|
|
|
|
And the new government which thus arises will be of a form intermediate
|
|
between oligarchy and aristocracy?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Such will be the change, and after the change has been made, how will
|
|
they proceed? Clearly, the new State, being in a mean between oligarchy
|
|
and the perfect State, will partly follow one and partly the other, and
|
|
will also have some peculiarities.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
In the honour given to rulers, in the abstinence of the warrior class
|
|
from agriculture, handicrafts, and trade in general, in the institution
|
|
of common meals, and in the attention paid to gymnastics and military
|
|
training--in all these respects this State will resemble the former.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
But in the fear of admitting philosophers to power, because they are no
|
|
longer to be had simple and earnest, but are made up of mixed elements;
|
|
and in turning from them to passionate and less complex characters, who
|
|
are by nature fitted for war rather than peace; and in the value set
|
|
by them upon military stratagems and contrivances, and in the waging of
|
|
everlasting wars--this State will be for the most part peculiar.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and men of this stamp will be covetous of money, like those
|
|
who live in oligarchies; they will have, a fierce secret longing after
|
|
gold and silver, which they will hoard in dark places, having magazines
|
|
and treasuries of their own for the deposit and concealment of them;
|
|
also castles which are just nests for their eggs, and in which they will
|
|
spend large sums on their wives, or on any others whom they please.
|
|
|
|
That is most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And they are miserly because they have no means of openly acquiring the
|
|
money which they prize; they will spend that which is another man's on
|
|
the gratification of their desires, stealing their pleasures and running
|
|
away like children from the law, their father: they have been schooled
|
|
not by gentle influences but by force, for they have neglected her
|
|
who is the true Muse, the companion of reason and philosophy, and have
|
|
honoured gymnastic more than music.
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly, he said, the form of government which you describe is a
|
|
mixture of good and evil.
|
|
|
|
Why, there is a mixture, I said; but one thing, and one thing only, is
|
|
predominantly seen,--the spirit of contention and ambition; and these
|
|
are due to the prevalence of the passionate or spirited element.
|
|
|
|
Assuredly, he said.
|
|
|
|
Such is the origin and such the character of this State, which has been
|
|
described in outline only; the more perfect execution was not required,
|
|
for a sketch is enough to show the type of the most perfectly just and
|
|
most perfectly unjust; and to go through all the States and all the
|
|
characters of men, omitting none of them, would be an interminable
|
|
labour.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Now what man answers to this form of government-how did he come into
|
|
being, and what is he like?
|
|
|
|
I think, said Adeimantus, that in the spirit of contention which
|
|
characterises him, he is not unlike our friend Glaucon.
|
|
|
|
Perhaps, I said, he may be like him in that one point; but there are
|
|
other respects in which he is very different.
|
|
|
|
In what respects?
|
|
|
|
He should have more of self-assertion and be less cultivated, and yet
|
|
a friend of culture; and he should be a good listener, but no speaker.
|
|
Such a person is apt to be rough with slaves, unlike the educated man,
|
|
who is too proud for that; and he will also be courteous to freemen, and
|
|
remarkably obedient to authority; he is a lover of power and a lover of
|
|
honour; claiming to be a ruler, not because he is eloquent, or on any
|
|
ground of that sort, but because he is a soldier and has performed feats
|
|
of arms; he is also a lover of gymnastic exercises and of the chase.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is the type of character which answers to timocracy.
|
|
|
|
Such an one will despise riches only when he is young; but as he gets
|
|
older he will be more and more attracted to them, because he has a
|
|
piece of the avaricious nature in him, and is not single-minded towards
|
|
virtue, having lost his best guardian.
|
|
|
|
Who was that? said Adeimantus.
|
|
|
|
Philosophy, I said, tempered with music, who comes and takes up her
|
|
abode in a man, and is the only saviour of his virtue throughout life.
|
|
|
|
Good, he said.
|
|
|
|
Such, I said, is the timocratical youth, and he is like the timocratical
|
|
State.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
His origin is as follows:--He is often the young son of a brave father,
|
|
who dwells in an ill-governed city, of which he declines the honours
|
|
and offices, and will not go to law, or exert himself in any way, but is
|
|
ready to waive his rights in order that he may escape trouble.
|
|
|
|
And how does the son come into being?
|
|
|
|
The character of the son begins to develope when he hears his mother
|
|
complaining that her husband has no place in the government, of which
|
|
the consequence is that she has no precedence among other women.
|
|
Further, when she sees her husband not very eager about money, and
|
|
instead of battling and railing in the law courts or assembly, taking
|
|
whatever happens to him quietly; and when she observes that his thoughts
|
|
always centre in himself, while he treats her with very considerable
|
|
indifference, she is annoyed, and says to her son that his father is
|
|
only half a man and far too easy-going: adding all the other complaints
|
|
about her own ill-treatment which women are so fond of rehearsing.
|
|
|
|
Yes, said Adeimantus, they give us plenty of them, and their complaints
|
|
are so like themselves.
|
|
|
|
And you know, I said, that the old servants also, who are supposed to
|
|
be attached to the family, from time to time talk privately in the same
|
|
strain to the son; and if they see any one who owes money to his father,
|
|
or is wronging him in any way, and he fails to prosecute them, they tell
|
|
the youth that when he grows up he must retaliate upon people of this
|
|
sort, and be more of a man than his father. He has only to walk abroad
|
|
and he hears and sees the same sort of thing: those who do their own
|
|
business in the city are called simpletons, and held in no esteem, while
|
|
the busy-bodies are honoured and applauded. The result is that the young
|
|
man, hearing and seeing all these things--hearing, too, the words of
|
|
his father, and having a nearer view of his way of life, and making
|
|
comparisons of him and others--is drawn opposite ways: while his father
|
|
is watering and nourishing the rational principle in his soul, the
|
|
others are encouraging the passionate and appetitive; and he being not
|
|
originally of a bad nature, but having kept bad company, is at last
|
|
brought by their joint influence to a middle point, and gives up the
|
|
kingdom which is within him to the middle principle of contentiousness
|
|
and passion, and becomes arrogant and ambitious.
|
|
|
|
You seem to me to have described his origin perfectly.
|
|
|
|
Then we have now, I said, the second form of government and the second
|
|
type of character?
|
|
|
|
We have.
|
|
|
|
Next, let us look at another man who, as Aeschylus says,
|
|
|
|
'Is set over against another State;'
|
|
|
|
or rather, as our plan requires, begin with the State.
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
I believe that oligarchy follows next in order.
|
|
|
|
And what manner of government do you term oligarchy?
|
|
|
|
A government resting on a valuation of property, in which the rich have
|
|
power and the poor man is deprived of it.
|
|
|
|
I understand, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Ought I not to begin by describing how the change from timocracy to
|
|
oligarchy arises?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, no eyes are required in order to see how the one passes
|
|
into the other.
|
|
|
|
How?
|
|
|
|
The accumulation of gold in the treasury of private individuals is the
|
|
ruin of timocracy; they invent illegal modes of expenditure; for what do
|
|
they or their wives care about the law?
|
|
|
|
Yes, indeed.
|
|
|
|
And then one, seeing another grow rich, seeks to rival him, and thus the
|
|
great mass of the citizens become lovers of money.
|
|
|
|
Likely enough.
|
|
|
|
And so they grow richer and richer, and the more they think of making
|
|
a fortune the less they think of virtue; for when riches and virtue are
|
|
placed together in the scales of the balance, the one always rises as
|
|
the other falls.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And in proportion as riches and rich men are honoured in the State,
|
|
virtue and the virtuous are dishonoured.
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And what is honoured is cultivated, and that which has no honour is
|
|
neglected.
|
|
|
|
That is obvious.
|
|
|
|
And so at last, instead of loving contention and glory, men become
|
|
lovers of trade and money; they honour and look up to the rich man, and
|
|
make a ruler of him, and dishonour the poor man.
|
|
|
|
They do so.
|
|
|
|
They next proceed to make a law which fixes a sum of money as the
|
|
qualification of citizenship; the sum is higher in one place and lower
|
|
in another, as the oligarchy is more or less exclusive; and they allow
|
|
no one whose property falls below the amount fixed to have any share in
|
|
the government. These changes in the constitution they effect by force
|
|
of arms, if intimidation has not already done their work.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And this, speaking generally, is the way in which oligarchy is
|
|
established.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; but what are the characteristics of this form of
|
|
government, and what are the defects of which we were speaking?
|
|
|
|
First of all, I said, consider the nature of the qualification. Just
|
|
think what would happen if pilots were to be chosen according to their
|
|
property, and a poor man were refused permission to steer, even though
|
|
he were a better pilot?
|
|
|
|
You mean that they would shipwreck?
|
|
|
|
Yes; and is not this true of the government of anything?
|
|
|
|
I should imagine so.
|
|
|
|
Except a city?--or would you include a city?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he said, the case of a city is the strongest of all, inasmuch as
|
|
the rule of a city is the greatest and most difficult of all.
|
|
|
|
This, then, will be the first great defect of oligarchy?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And here is another defect which is quite as bad.
|
|
|
|
What defect?
|
|
|
|
The inevitable division: such a State is not one, but two States, the
|
|
one of poor, the other of rich men; and they are living on the same spot
|
|
and always conspiring against one another.
|
|
|
|
That, surely, is at least as bad.
|
|
|
|
Another discreditable feature is, that, for a like reason, they are
|
|
incapable of carrying on any war. Either they arm the multitude, and
|
|
then they are more afraid of them than of the enemy; or, if they do not
|
|
call them out in the hour of battle, they are oligarchs indeed, few to
|
|
fight as they are few to rule. And at the same time their fondness for
|
|
money makes them unwilling to pay taxes.
|
|
|
|
How discreditable!
|
|
|
|
And, as we said before, under such a constitution the same persons have
|
|
too many callings--they are husbandmen, tradesmen, warriors, all in one.
|
|
Does that look well?
|
|
|
|
Anything but well.
|
|
|
|
There is another evil which is, perhaps, the greatest of all, and to
|
|
which this State first begins to be liable.
|
|
|
|
What evil?
|
|
|
|
A man may sell all that he has, and another may acquire his property;
|
|
yet after the sale he may dwell in the city of which he is no longer a
|
|
part, being neither trader, nor artisan, nor horseman, nor hoplite, but
|
|
only a poor, helpless creature.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is an evil which also first begins in this State.
|
|
|
|
The evil is certainly not prevented there; for oligarchies have both the
|
|
extremes of great wealth and utter poverty.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
But think again: In his wealthy days, while he was spending his money,
|
|
was a man of this sort a whit more good to the State for the purposes
|
|
of citizenship? Or did he only seem to be a member of the ruling
|
|
body, although in truth he was neither ruler nor subject, but just a
|
|
spendthrift?
|
|
|
|
As you say, he seemed to be a ruler, but was only a spendthrift.
|
|
|
|
May we not say that this is the drone in the house who is like the drone
|
|
in the honeycomb, and that the one is the plague of the city as the
|
|
other is of the hive?
|
|
|
|
Just so, Socrates.
|
|
|
|
And God has made the flying drones, Adeimantus, all without stings,
|
|
whereas of the walking drones he has made some without stings but others
|
|
have dreadful stings; of the stingless class are those who in their old
|
|
age end as paupers; of the stingers come all the criminal class, as they
|
|
are termed.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Clearly then, whenever you see paupers in a State, somewhere in that
|
|
neighborhood there are hidden away thieves, and cut-purses and robbers
|
|
of temples, and all sorts of malefactors.
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, and in oligarchical States do you not find paupers?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; nearly everybody is a pauper who is not a ruler.
|
|
|
|
And may we be so bold as to affirm that there are also many criminals to
|
|
be found in them, rogues who have stings, and whom the authorities are
|
|
careful to restrain by force?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, we may be so bold.
|
|
|
|
The existence of such persons is to be attributed to want of education,
|
|
ill-training, and an evil constitution of the State?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Such, then, is the form and such are the evils of oligarchy; and there
|
|
may be many other evils.
|
|
|
|
Very likely.
|
|
|
|
Then oligarchy, or the form of government in which the rulers are
|
|
elected for their wealth, may now be dismissed. Let us next proceed to
|
|
consider the nature and origin of the individual who answers to this
|
|
State.
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
Does not the timocratical man change into the oligarchical on this wise?
|
|
|
|
How?
|
|
|
|
A time arrives when the representative of timocracy has a son: at first
|
|
he begins by emulating his father and walking in his footsteps, but
|
|
presently he sees him of a sudden foundering against the State as upon
|
|
a sunken reef, and he and all that he has is lost; he may have been
|
|
a general or some other high officer who is brought to trial under a
|
|
prejudice raised by informers, and either put to death, or exiled, or
|
|
deprived of the privileges of a citizen, and all his property taken from
|
|
him.
|
|
|
|
Nothing more likely.
|
|
|
|
And the son has seen and known all this--he is a ruined man, and his
|
|
fear has taught him to knock ambition and passion headforemost from his
|
|
bosom's throne; humbled by poverty he takes to money-making and by mean
|
|
and miserly savings and hard work gets a fortune together. Is not such
|
|
an one likely to seat the concupiscent and covetous element on the
|
|
vacant throne and to suffer it to play the great king within him, girt
|
|
with tiara and chain and scimitar?
|
|
|
|
Most true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And when he has made reason and spirit sit down on the ground obediently
|
|
on either side of their sovereign, and taught them to know their place,
|
|
he compels the one to think only of how lesser sums may be turned into
|
|
larger ones, and will not allow the other to worship and admire anything
|
|
but riches and rich men, or to be ambitious of anything so much as the
|
|
acquisition of wealth and the means of acquiring it.
|
|
|
|
Of all changes, he said, there is none so speedy or so sure as the
|
|
conversion of the ambitious youth into the avaricious one.
|
|
|
|
And the avaricious, I said, is the oligarchical youth?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; at any rate the individual out of whom he came is like the
|
|
State out of which oligarchy came.
|
|
|
|
Let us then consider whether there is any likeness between them.
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
First, then, they resemble one another in the value which they set upon
|
|
wealth?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Also in their penurious, laborious character; the individual only
|
|
satisfies his necessary appetites, and confines his expenditure to them;
|
|
his other desires he subdues, under the idea that they are unprofitable.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
He is a shabby fellow, who saves something out of everything and makes a
|
|
purse for himself; and this is the sort of man whom the vulgar applaud.
|
|
Is he not a true image of the State which he represents?
|
|
|
|
He appears to me to be so; at any rate money is highly valued by him as
|
|
well as by the State.
|
|
|
|
You see that he is not a man of cultivation, I said.
|
|
|
|
I imagine not, he said; had he been educated he would never have made a
|
|
blind god director of his chorus, or given him chief honour.
|
|
|
|
Excellent! I said. Yet consider: Must we not further admit that owing to
|
|
this want of cultivation there will be found in him dronelike desires as
|
|
of pauper and rogue, which are forcibly kept down by his general habit
|
|
of life?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Do you know where you will have to look if you want to discover his
|
|
rogueries?
|
|
|
|
Where must I look?
|
|
|
|
You should see him where he has some great opportunity of acting
|
|
dishonestly, as in the guardianship of an orphan.
|
|
|
|
Aye.
|
|
|
|
It will be clear enough then that in his ordinary dealings which give
|
|
him a reputation for honesty he coerces his bad passions by an enforced
|
|
virtue; not making them see that they are wrong, or taming them by
|
|
reason, but by necessity and fear constraining them, and because he
|
|
trembles for his possessions.
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
Yes, indeed, my dear friend, but you will find that the natural desires
|
|
of the drone commonly exist in him all the same whenever he has to spend
|
|
what is not his own.
|
|
|
|
Yes, and they will be strong in him too.
|
|
|
|
The man, then, will be at war with himself; he will be two men, and not
|
|
one; but, in general, his better desires will be found to prevail over
|
|
his inferior ones.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
For these reasons such an one will be more respectable than most people;
|
|
yet the true virtue of a unanimous and harmonious soul will flee far
|
|
away and never come near him.
|
|
|
|
I should expect so.
|
|
|
|
And surely, the miser individually will be an ignoble competitor in a
|
|
State for any prize of victory, or other object of honourable ambition;
|
|
he will not spend his money in the contest for glory; so afraid is he of
|
|
awakening his expensive appetites and inviting them to help and join in
|
|
the struggle; in true oligarchical fashion he fights with a small part
|
|
only of his resources, and the result commonly is that he loses the
|
|
prize and saves his money.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Can we any longer doubt, then, that the miser and money-maker answers to
|
|
the oligarchical State?
|
|
|
|
There can be no doubt.
|
|
|
|
Next comes democracy; of this the origin and nature have still to
|
|
be considered by us; and then we will enquire into the ways of the
|
|
democratic man, and bring him up for judgment.
|
|
|
|
That, he said, is our method.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, and how does the change from oligarchy into democracy
|
|
arise? Is it not on this wise?--The good at which such a State aims is
|
|
to become as rich as possible, a desire which is insatiable?
|
|
|
|
What then?
|
|
|
|
The rulers, being aware that their power rests upon their wealth, refuse
|
|
to curtail by law the extravagance of the spendthrift youth because
|
|
they gain by their ruin; they take interest from them and buy up their
|
|
estates and thus increase their own wealth and importance?
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
There can be no doubt that the love of wealth and the spirit of
|
|
moderation cannot exist together in citizens of the same state to any
|
|
considerable extent; one or the other will be disregarded.
|
|
|
|
That is tolerably clear.
|
|
|
|
And in oligarchical States, from the general spread of carelessness and
|
|
extravagance, men of good family have often been reduced to beggary?
|
|
|
|
Yes, often.
|
|
|
|
And still they remain in the city; there they are, ready to sting and
|
|
fully armed, and some of them owe money, some have forfeited their
|
|
citizenship; a third class are in both predicaments; and they hate
|
|
and conspire against those who have got their property, and against
|
|
everybody else, and are eager for revolution.
|
|
|
|
That is true.
|
|
|
|
On the other hand, the men of business, stooping as they walk, and
|
|
pretending not even to see those whom they have already ruined, insert
|
|
their sting--that is, their money--into some one else who is not on
|
|
his guard against them, and recover the parent sum many times over
|
|
multiplied into a family of children: and so they make drone and pauper
|
|
to abound in the State.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, there are plenty of them--that is certain.
|
|
|
|
The evil blazes up like a fire; and they will not extinguish it, either
|
|
by restricting a man's use of his own property, or by another remedy:
|
|
|
|
What other?
|
|
|
|
One which is the next best, and has the advantage of compelling the
|
|
citizens to look to their characters:--Let there be a general rule that
|
|
every one shall enter into voluntary contracts at his own risk, and
|
|
there will be less of this scandalous money-making, and the evils of
|
|
which we were speaking will be greatly lessened in the State.
|
|
|
|
Yes, they will be greatly lessened.
|
|
|
|
At present the governors, induced by the motives which I have named,
|
|
treat their subjects badly; while they and their adherents, especially
|
|
the young men of the governing class, are habituated to lead a life
|
|
of luxury and idleness both of body and mind; they do nothing, and are
|
|
incapable of resisting either pleasure or pain.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
They themselves care only for making money, and are as indifferent as
|
|
the pauper to the cultivation of virtue.
|
|
|
|
Yes, quite as indifferent.
|
|
|
|
Such is the state of affairs which prevails among them. And often rulers
|
|
and their subjects may come in one another's way, whether on a journey
|
|
or on some other occasion of meeting, on a pilgrimage or a march,
|
|
as fellow-soldiers or fellow-sailors; aye and they may observe the
|
|
behaviour of each other in the very moment of danger--for where danger
|
|
is, there is no fear that the poor will be despised by the rich--and
|
|
very likely the wiry sunburnt poor man may be placed in battle at the
|
|
side of a wealthy one who has never spoilt his complexion and has
|
|
plenty of superfluous flesh--when he sees such an one puffing and at his
|
|
wits'-end, how can he avoid drawing the conclusion that men like him are
|
|
only rich because no one has the courage to despoil them? And when they
|
|
meet in private will not people be saying to one another 'Our warriors
|
|
are not good for much'?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I am quite aware that this is their way of talking.
|
|
|
|
And, as in a body which is diseased the addition of a touch from without
|
|
may bring on illness, and sometimes even when there is no external
|
|
provocation a commotion may arise within--in the same way wherever there
|
|
is weakness in the State there is also likely to be illness, of which
|
|
the occasion may be very slight, the one party introducing from without
|
|
their oligarchical, the other their democratical allies, and then
|
|
the State falls sick, and is at war with herself; and may be at times
|
|
distracted, even when there is no external cause.
|
|
|
|
Yes, surely.
|
|
|
|
And then democracy comes into being after the poor have conquered their
|
|
opponents, slaughtering some and banishing some, while to the remainder
|
|
they give an equal share of freedom and power; and this is the form of
|
|
government in which the magistrates are commonly elected by lot.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is the nature of democracy, whether the revolution
|
|
has been effected by arms, or whether fear has caused the opposite party
|
|
to withdraw.
|
|
|
|
And now what is their manner of life, and what sort of a government have
|
|
they? for as the government is, such will be the man.
|
|
|
|
Clearly, he said.
|
|
|
|
In the first place, are they not free; and is not the city full of
|
|
freedom and frankness--a man may say and do what he likes?
|
|
|
|
'Tis said so, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And where freedom is, the individual is clearly able to order for
|
|
himself his own life as he pleases?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
Then in this kind of State there will be the greatest variety of human
|
|
natures?
|
|
|
|
There will.
|
|
|
|
This, then, seems likely to be the fairest of States, being like an
|
|
embroidered robe which is spangled with every sort of flower. And just
|
|
as women and children think a variety of colours to be of all things
|
|
most charming, so there are many men to whom this State, which is
|
|
spangled with the manners and characters of mankind, will appear to be
|
|
the fairest of States.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Yes, my good Sir, and there will be no better in which to look for a
|
|
government.
|
|
|
|
Why?
|
|
|
|
Because of the liberty which reigns there--they have a complete
|
|
assortment of constitutions; and he who has a mind to establish a State,
|
|
as we have been doing, must go to a democracy as he would to a bazaar at
|
|
which they sell them, and pick out the one that suits him; then, when he
|
|
has made his choice, he may found his State.
|
|
|
|
He will be sure to have patterns enough.
|
|
|
|
And there being no necessity, I said, for you to govern in this State,
|
|
even if you have the capacity, or to be governed, unless you like, or
|
|
go to war when the rest go to war, or to be at peace when others are
|
|
at peace, unless you are so disposed--there being no necessity also,
|
|
because some law forbids you to hold office or be a dicast, that you
|
|
should not hold office or be a dicast, if you have a fancy--is not this
|
|
a way of life which for the moment is supremely delightful?
|
|
|
|
For the moment, yes.
|
|
|
|
And is not their humanity to the condemned in some cases quite charming?
|
|
Have you not observed how, in a democracy, many persons, although they
|
|
have been sentenced to death or exile, just stay where they are and walk
|
|
about the world--the gentleman parades like a hero, and nobody sees or
|
|
cares?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied, many and many a one.
|
|
|
|
See too, I said, the forgiving spirit of democracy, and the 'don't
|
|
care' about trifles, and the disregard which she shows of all the fine
|
|
principles which we solemnly laid down at the foundation of the city--as
|
|
when we said that, except in the case of some rarely gifted nature,
|
|
there never will be a good man who has not from his childhood been used
|
|
to play amid things of beauty and make of them a joy and a study--how
|
|
grandly does she trample all these fine notions of ours under her feet,
|
|
never giving a thought to the pursuits which make a statesman, and
|
|
promoting to honour any one who professes to be the people's friend.
|
|
|
|
Yes, she is of a noble spirit.
|
|
|
|
These and other kindred characteristics are proper to democracy, which
|
|
is a charming form of government, full of variety and disorder, and
|
|
dispensing a sort of equality to equals and unequals alike.
|
|
|
|
We know her well.
|
|
|
|
Consider now, I said, what manner of man the individual is, or rather
|
|
consider, as in the case of the State, how he comes into being.
|
|
|
|
Very good, he said.
|
|
|
|
Is not this the way--he is the son of the miserly and oligarchical
|
|
father who has trained him in his own habits?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
And, like his father, he keeps under by force the pleasures which are of
|
|
the spending and not of the getting sort, being those which are called
|
|
unnecessary?
|
|
|
|
Obviously.
|
|
|
|
Would you like, for the sake of clearness, to distinguish which are the
|
|
necessary and which are the unnecessary pleasures?
|
|
|
|
I should.
|
|
|
|
Are not necessary pleasures those of which we cannot get rid, and of
|
|
which the satisfaction is a benefit to us? And they are rightly called
|
|
so, because we are framed by nature to desire both what is beneficial
|
|
and what is necessary, and cannot help it.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
We are not wrong therefore in calling them necessary?
|
|
|
|
We are not.
|
|
|
|
And the desires of which a man may get rid, if he takes pains from his
|
|
youth upwards--of which the presence, moreover, does no good, and in
|
|
some cases the reverse of good--shall we not be right in saying that all
|
|
these are unnecessary?
|
|
|
|
Yes, certainly.
|
|
|
|
Suppose we select an example of either kind, in order that we may have a
|
|
general notion of them?
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
Will not the desire of eating, that is, of simple food and condiments,
|
|
in so far as they are required for health and strength, be of the
|
|
necessary class?
|
|
|
|
That is what I should suppose.
|
|
|
|
The pleasure of eating is necessary in two ways; it does us good and it
|
|
is essential to the continuance of life?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
But the condiments are only necessary in so far as they are good for
|
|
health?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And the desire which goes beyond this, of more delicate food, or other
|
|
luxuries, which might generally be got rid of, if controlled and trained
|
|
in youth, and is hurtful to the body, and hurtful to the soul in the
|
|
pursuit of wisdom and virtue, may be rightly called unnecessary?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
May we not say that these desires spend, and that the others make money
|
|
because they conduce to production?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And of the pleasures of love, and all other pleasures, the same holds
|
|
good?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the drone of whom we spoke was he who was surfeited in pleasures
|
|
and desires of this sort, and was the slave of the unnecessary desires,
|
|
whereas he who was subject to the necessary only was miserly and
|
|
oligarchical?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Again, let us see how the democratical man grows out of the
|
|
oligarchical: the following, as I suspect, is commonly the process.
|
|
|
|
What is the process?
|
|
|
|
When a young man who has been brought up as we were just now describing,
|
|
in a vulgar and miserly way, has tasted drones' honey and has come to
|
|
associate with fierce and crafty natures who are able to provide for
|
|
him all sorts of refinements and varieties of pleasure--then, as you may
|
|
imagine, the change will begin of the oligarchical principle within him
|
|
into the democratical?
|
|
|
|
Inevitably.
|
|
|
|
And as in the city like was helping like, and the change was effected by
|
|
an alliance from without assisting one division of the citizens, so too
|
|
the young man is changed by a class of desires coming from without
|
|
to assist the desires within him, that which is akin and alike again
|
|
helping that which is akin and alike?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And if there be any ally which aids the oligarchical principle within
|
|
him, whether the influence of a father or of kindred, advising or
|
|
rebuking him, then there arises in his soul a faction and an opposite
|
|
faction, and he goes to war with himself.
|
|
|
|
It must be so.
|
|
|
|
And there are times when the democratical principle gives way to the
|
|
oligarchical, and some of his desires die, and others are banished;
|
|
a spirit of reverence enters into the young man's soul and order is
|
|
restored.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that sometimes happens.
|
|
|
|
And then, again, after the old desires have been driven out, fresh ones
|
|
spring up, which are akin to them, and because he their father does not
|
|
know how to educate them, wax fierce and numerous.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is apt to be the way.
|
|
|
|
They draw him to his old associates, and holding secret intercourse with
|
|
them, breed and multiply in him.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
At length they seize upon the citadel of the young man's soul, which
|
|
they perceive to be void of all accomplishments and fair pursuits and
|
|
true words, which make their abode in the minds of men who are dear to
|
|
the gods, and are their best guardians and sentinels.
|
|
|
|
None better.
|
|
|
|
False and boastful conceits and phrases mount upwards and take their
|
|
place.
|
|
|
|
They are certain to do so.
|
|
|
|
And so the young man returns into the country of the lotus-eaters, and
|
|
takes up his dwelling there in the face of all men; and if any help be
|
|
sent by his friends to the oligarchical part of him, the aforesaid vain
|
|
conceits shut the gate of the king's fastness; and they will neither
|
|
allow the embassy itself to enter, nor if private advisers offer the
|
|
fatherly counsel of the aged will they listen to them or receive them.
|
|
There is a battle and they gain the day, and then modesty, which
|
|
they call silliness, is ignominiously thrust into exile by them, and
|
|
temperance, which they nickname unmanliness, is trampled in the mire and
|
|
cast forth; they persuade men that moderation and orderly expenditure
|
|
are vulgarity and meanness, and so, by the help of a rabble of evil
|
|
appetites, they drive them beyond the border.
|
|
|
|
Yes, with a will.
|
|
|
|
And when they have emptied and swept clean the soul of him who is now in
|
|
their power and who is being initiated by them in great mysteries, the
|
|
next thing is to bring back to their house insolence and anarchy and
|
|
waste and impudence in bright array having garlands on their heads, and
|
|
a great company with them, hymning their praises and calling them by
|
|
sweet names; insolence they term breeding, and anarchy liberty, and
|
|
waste magnificence, and impudence courage. And so the young man
|
|
passes out of his original nature, which was trained in the school of
|
|
necessity, into the freedom and libertinism of useless and unnecessary
|
|
pleasures.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, the change in him is visible enough.
|
|
|
|
After this he lives on, spending his money and labour and time on
|
|
unnecessary pleasures quite as much as on necessary ones; but if he be
|
|
fortunate, and is not too much disordered in his wits, when years have
|
|
elapsed, and the heyday of passion is over--supposing that he then
|
|
re-admits into the city some part of the exiled virtues, and does not
|
|
wholly give himself up to their successors--in that case he balances his
|
|
pleasures and lives in a sort of equilibrium, putting the government of
|
|
himself into the hands of the one which comes first and wins the turn;
|
|
and when he has had enough of that, then into the hands of another; he
|
|
despises none of them but encourages them all equally.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Neither does he receive or let pass into the fortress any true word of
|
|
advice; if any one says to him that some pleasures are the satisfactions
|
|
of good and noble desires, and others of evil desires, and that he ought
|
|
to use and honour some and chastise and master the others--whenever this
|
|
is repeated to him he shakes his head and says that they are all alike,
|
|
and that one is as good as another.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; that is the way with him.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, he lives from day to day indulging the appetite of the
|
|
hour; and sometimes he is lapped in drink and strains of the flute; then
|
|
he becomes a water-drinker, and tries to get thin; then he takes a turn
|
|
at gymnastics; sometimes idling and neglecting everything, then once
|
|
more living the life of a philosopher; often he is busy with politics,
|
|
and starts to his feet and says and does whatever comes into his head;
|
|
and, if he is emulous of any one who is a warrior, off he is in that
|
|
direction, or of men of business, once more in that. His life has
|
|
neither law nor order; and this distracted existence he terms joy and
|
|
bliss and freedom; and so he goes on.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied, he is all liberty and equality.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; his life is motley and manifold and an epitome of the
|
|
lives of many;--he answers to the State which we described as fair
|
|
and spangled. And many a man and many a woman will take him for their
|
|
pattern, and many a constitution and many an example of manners is
|
|
contained in him.
|
|
|
|
Just so.
|
|
|
|
Let him then be set over against democracy; he may truly be called the
|
|
democratic man.
|
|
|
|
Let that be his place, he said.
|
|
|
|
Last of all comes the most beautiful of all, man and State alike,
|
|
tyranny and the tyrant; these we have now to consider.
|
|
|
|
Quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Say then, my friend, In what manner does tyranny arise?--that it has a
|
|
democratic origin is evident.
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And does not tyranny spring from democracy in the same manner as
|
|
democracy from oligarchy--I mean, after a sort?
|
|
|
|
How?
|
|
|
|
The good which oligarchy proposed to itself and the means by which it
|
|
was maintained was excess of wealth--am I not right?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the insatiable desire of wealth and the neglect of all other things
|
|
for the sake of money-getting was also the ruin of oligarchy?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And democracy has her own good, of which the insatiable desire brings
|
|
her to dissolution?
|
|
|
|
What good?
|
|
|
|
Freedom, I replied; which, as they tell you in a democracy, is the glory
|
|
of the State--and that therefore in a democracy alone will the freeman
|
|
of nature deign to dwell.
|
|
|
|
Yes; the saying is in every body's mouth.
|
|
|
|
I was going to observe, that the insatiable desire of this and the
|
|
neglect of other things introduces the change in democracy, which
|
|
occasions a demand for tyranny.
|
|
|
|
How so?
|
|
|
|
When a democracy which is thirsting for freedom has evil cup-bearers
|
|
presiding over the feast, and has drunk too deeply of the strong wine of
|
|
freedom, then, unless her rulers are very amenable and give a plentiful
|
|
draught, she calls them to account and punishes them, and says that they
|
|
are cursed oligarchs.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied, a very common occurrence.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and loyal citizens are insultingly termed by her slaves who
|
|
hug their chains and men of naught; she would have subjects who are like
|
|
rulers, and rulers who are like subjects: these are men after her own
|
|
heart, whom she praises and honours both in private and public. Now, in
|
|
such a State, can liberty have any limit?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
By degrees the anarchy finds a way into private houses, and ends by
|
|
getting among the animals and infecting them.
|
|
|
|
How do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I mean that the father grows accustomed to descend to the level of his
|
|
sons and to fear them, and the son is on a level with his father, he
|
|
having no respect or reverence for either of his parents; and this is
|
|
his freedom, and the metic is equal with the citizen and the citizen
|
|
with the metic, and the stranger is quite as good as either.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is the way.
|
|
|
|
And these are not the only evils, I said--there are several lesser ones:
|
|
In such a state of society the master fears and flatters his scholars,
|
|
and the scholars despise their masters and tutors; young and old are
|
|
all alike; and the young man is on a level with the old, and is ready
|
|
to compete with him in word or deed; and old men condescend to the
|
|
young and are full of pleasantry and gaiety; they are loth to be thought
|
|
morose and authoritative, and therefore they adopt the manners of the
|
|
young.
|
|
|
|
Quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
The last extreme of popular liberty is when the slave bought with money,
|
|
whether male or female, is just as free as his or her purchaser; nor
|
|
must I forget to tell of the liberty and equality of the two sexes in
|
|
relation to each other.
|
|
|
|
Why not, as Aeschylus says, utter the word which rises to our lips?
|
|
|
|
That is what I am doing, I replied; and I must add that no one who
|
|
does not know would believe, how much greater is the liberty which the
|
|
animals who are under the dominion of man have in a democracy than in
|
|
any other State: for truly, the she-dogs, as the proverb says, are as
|
|
good as their she-mistresses, and the horses and asses have a way of
|
|
marching along with all the rights and dignities of freemen; and they
|
|
will run at any body who comes in their way if he does not leave
|
|
the road clear for them: and all things are just ready to burst with
|
|
liberty.
|
|
|
|
When I take a country walk, he said, I often experience what you
|
|
describe. You and I have dreamed the same thing.
|
|
|
|
And above all, I said, and as the result of all, see how sensitive the
|
|
citizens become; they chafe impatiently at the least touch of authority,
|
|
and at length, as you know, they cease to care even for the laws,
|
|
written or unwritten; they will have no one over them.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I know it too well.
|
|
|
|
Such, my friend, I said, is the fair and glorious beginning out of which
|
|
springs tyranny.
|
|
|
|
Glorious indeed, he said. But what is the next step?
|
|
|
|
The ruin of oligarchy is the ruin of democracy; the same disease
|
|
magnified and intensified by liberty overmasters democracy--the truth
|
|
being that the excessive increase of anything often causes a reaction in
|
|
the opposite direction; and this is the case not only in the seasons and
|
|
in vegetable and animal life, but above all in forms of government.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
The excess of liberty, whether in States or individuals, seems only to
|
|
pass into excess of slavery.
|
|
|
|
Yes, the natural order.
|
|
|
|
And so tyranny naturally arises out of democracy, and the most
|
|
aggravated form of tyranny and slavery out of the most extreme form of
|
|
liberty?
|
|
|
|
As we might expect.
|
|
|
|
That, however, was not, as I believe, your question--you rather desired
|
|
to know what is that disorder which is generated alike in oligarchy and
|
|
democracy, and is the ruin of both?
|
|
|
|
Just so, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, I meant to refer to the class of idle spendthrifts,
|
|
of whom the more courageous are the leaders and the more timid the
|
|
followers, the same whom we were comparing to drones, some stingless,
|
|
and others having stings.
|
|
|
|
A very just comparison.
|
|
|
|
These two classes are the plagues of every city in which they are
|
|
generated, being what phlegm and bile are to the body. And the good
|
|
physician and lawgiver of the State ought, like the wise bee-master, to
|
|
keep them at a distance and prevent, if possible, their ever coming in;
|
|
and if they have anyhow found a way in, then he should have them and
|
|
their cells cut out as speedily as possible.
|
|
|
|
Yes, by all means, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then, in order that we may see clearly what we are doing, let us imagine
|
|
democracy to be divided, as indeed it is, into three classes; for in the
|
|
first place freedom creates rather more drones in the democratic than
|
|
there were in the oligarchical State.
|
|
|
|
That is true.
|
|
|
|
And in the democracy they are certainly more intensified.
|
|
|
|
How so?
|
|
|
|
Because in the oligarchical State they are disqualified and driven from
|
|
office, and therefore they cannot train or gather strength; whereas in a
|
|
democracy they are almost the entire ruling power, and while the keener
|
|
sort speak and act, the rest keep buzzing about the bema and do not
|
|
suffer a word to be said on the other side; hence in democracies almost
|
|
everything is managed by the drones.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then there is another class which is always being severed from the mass.
|
|
|
|
What is that?
|
|
|
|
They are the orderly class, which in a nation of traders is sure to be
|
|
the richest.
|
|
|
|
Naturally so.
|
|
|
|
They are the most squeezable persons and yield the largest amount of
|
|
honey to the drones.
|
|
|
|
Why, he said, there is little to be squeezed out of people who have
|
|
little.
|
|
|
|
And this is called the wealthy class, and the drones feed upon them.
|
|
|
|
That is pretty much the case, he said.
|
|
|
|
The people are a third class, consisting of those who work with their
|
|
own hands; they are not politicians, and have not much to live upon.
|
|
This, when assembled, is the largest and most powerful class in a
|
|
democracy.
|
|
|
|
True, he said; but then the multitude is seldom willing to congregate
|
|
unless they get a little honey.
|
|
|
|
And do they not share? I said. Do not their leaders deprive the rich
|
|
of their estates and distribute them among the people; at the same time
|
|
taking care to reserve the larger part for themselves?
|
|
|
|
Why, yes, he said, to that extent the people do share.
|
|
|
|
And the persons whose property is taken from them are compelled to
|
|
defend themselves before the people as they best can?
|
|
|
|
What else can they do?
|
|
|
|
And then, although they may have no desire of change, the others charge
|
|
them with plotting against the people and being friends of oligarchy?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the end is that when they see the people, not of their own accord,
|
|
but through ignorance, and because they are deceived by informers,
|
|
seeking to do them wrong, then at last they are forced to become
|
|
oligarchs in reality; they do not wish to be, but the sting of the
|
|
drones torments them and breeds revolution in them.
|
|
|
|
That is exactly the truth.
|
|
|
|
Then come impeachments and judgments and trials of one another.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
The people have always some champion whom they set over them and nurse
|
|
into greatness.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is their way.
|
|
|
|
This and no other is the root from which a tyrant springs; when he first
|
|
appears above ground he is a protector.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is quite clear.
|
|
|
|
How then does a protector begin to change into a tyrant? Clearly when
|
|
he does what the man is said to do in the tale of the Arcadian temple of
|
|
Lycaean Zeus.
|
|
|
|
What tale?
|
|
|
|
The tale is that he who has tasted the entrails of a single human victim
|
|
minced up with the entrails of other victims is destined to become a
|
|
wolf. Did you never hear it?
|
|
|
|
Oh, yes.
|
|
|
|
And the protector of the people is like him; having a mob entirely at
|
|
his disposal, he is not restrained from shedding the blood of kinsmen;
|
|
by the favourite method of false accusation he brings them into court
|
|
and murders them, making the life of man to disappear, and with unholy
|
|
tongue and lips tasting the blood of his fellow citizens; some he kills
|
|
and others he banishes, at the same time hinting at the abolition of
|
|
debts and partition of lands: and after this, what will be his destiny?
|
|
Must he not either perish at the hands of his enemies, or from being a
|
|
man become a wolf--that is, a tyrant?
|
|
|
|
Inevitably.
|
|
|
|
This, I said, is he who begins to make a party against the rich?
|
|
|
|
The same.
|
|
|
|
After a while he is driven out, but comes back, in spite of his enemies,
|
|
a tyrant full grown.
|
|
|
|
That is clear.
|
|
|
|
And if they are unable to expel him, or to get him condemned to death by
|
|
a public accusation, they conspire to assassinate him.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is their usual way.
|
|
|
|
Then comes the famous request for a body-guard, which is the device of
|
|
all those who have got thus far in their tyrannical career--'Let not the
|
|
people's friend,' as they say, 'be lost to them.'
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
The people readily assent; all their fears are for him--they have none
|
|
for themselves.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And when a man who is wealthy and is also accused of being an enemy of
|
|
the people sees this, then, my friend, as the oracle said to Croesus,
|
|
|
|
'By pebbly Hermus' shore he flees and rests not, and is not ashamed to
|
|
be a coward.'
|
|
|
|
And quite right too, said he, for if he were, he would never be ashamed
|
|
again.
|
|
|
|
But if he is caught he dies.
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And he, the protector of whom we spoke, is to be seen, not 'larding the
|
|
plain' with his bulk, but himself the overthrower of many, standing up
|
|
in the chariot of State with the reins in his hand, no longer protector,
|
|
but tyrant absolute.
|
|
|
|
No doubt, he said.
|
|
|
|
And now let us consider the happiness of the man, and also of the State
|
|
in which a creature like him is generated.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, let us consider that.
|
|
|
|
At first, in the early days of his power, he is full of smiles, and
|
|
he salutes every one whom he meets;--he to be called a tyrant, who is
|
|
making promises in public and also in private! liberating debtors, and
|
|
distributing land to the people and his followers, and wanting to be so
|
|
kind and good to every one!
|
|
|
|
Of course, he said.
|
|
|
|
But when he has disposed of foreign enemies by conquest or treaty, and
|
|
there is nothing to fear from them, then he is always stirring up some
|
|
war or other, in order that the people may require a leader.
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
Has he not also another object, which is that they may be impoverished
|
|
by payment of taxes, and thus compelled to devote themselves to their
|
|
daily wants and therefore less likely to conspire against him?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And if any of them are suspected by him of having notions of freedom,
|
|
and of resistance to his authority, he will have a good pretext for
|
|
destroying them by placing them at the mercy of the enemy; and for all
|
|
these reasons the tyrant must be always getting up a war.
|
|
|
|
He must.
|
|
|
|
Now he begins to grow unpopular.
|
|
|
|
A necessary result.
|
|
|
|
Then some of those who joined in setting him up, and who are in power,
|
|
speak their minds to him and to one another, and the more courageous of
|
|
them cast in his teeth what is being done.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that may be expected.
|
|
|
|
And the tyrant, if he means to rule, must get rid of them; he cannot
|
|
stop while he has a friend or an enemy who is good for anything.
|
|
|
|
He cannot.
|
|
|
|
And therefore he must look about him and see who is valiant, who is
|
|
high-minded, who is wise, who is wealthy; happy man, he is the enemy
|
|
of them all, and must seek occasion against them whether he will or no,
|
|
until he has made a purgation of the State.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, and a rare purgation.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, not the sort of purgation which the physicians make of the
|
|
body; for they take away the worse and leave the better part, but he
|
|
does the reverse.
|
|
|
|
If he is to rule, I suppose that he cannot help himself.
|
|
|
|
What a blessed alternative, I said:--to be compelled to dwell only with
|
|
the many bad, and to be by them hated, or not to live at all!
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is the alternative.
|
|
|
|
And the more detestable his actions are to the citizens the more
|
|
satellites and the greater devotion in them will he require?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And who are the devoted band, and where will he procure them?
|
|
|
|
They will flock to him, he said, of their own accord, if he pays them.
|
|
|
|
By the dog! I said, here are more drones, of every sort and from every
|
|
land.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, there are.
|
|
|
|
But will he not desire to get them on the spot?
|
|
|
|
How do you mean?
|
|
|
|
He will rob the citizens of their slaves; he will then set them free and
|
|
enrol them in his body-guard.
|
|
|
|
To be sure, he said; and he will be able to trust them best of all.
|
|
|
|
What a blessed creature, I said, must this tyrant be; he has put to
|
|
death the others and has these for his trusted friends.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; they are quite of his sort.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, and these are the new citizens whom he has called into
|
|
existence, who admire him and are his companions, while the good hate
|
|
and avoid him.
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
Verily, then, tragedy is a wise thing and Euripides a great tragedian.
|
|
|
|
Why so?
|
|
|
|
Why, because he is the author of the pregnant saying,
|
|
|
|
'Tyrants are wise by living with the wise;'
|
|
|
|
and he clearly meant to say that they are the wise whom the tyrant makes
|
|
his companions.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, and he also praises tyranny as godlike; and many other
|
|
things of the same kind are said by him and by the other poets.
|
|
|
|
And therefore, I said, the tragic poets being wise men will forgive us
|
|
and any others who live after our manner if we do not receive them into
|
|
our State, because they are the eulogists of tyranny.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, those who have the wit will doubtless forgive us.
|
|
|
|
But they will continue to go to other cities and attract mobs, and
|
|
hire voices fair and loud and persuasive, and draw the cities over to
|
|
tyrannies and democracies.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Moreover, they are paid for this and receive honour--the greatest
|
|
honour, as might be expected, from tyrants, and the next greatest from
|
|
democracies; but the higher they ascend our constitution hill, the more
|
|
their reputation fails, and seems unable from shortness of breath to
|
|
proceed further.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
But we are wandering from the subject: Let us therefore return and
|
|
enquire how the tyrant will maintain that fair and numerous and various
|
|
and ever-changing army of his.
|
|
|
|
If, he said, there are sacred treasures in the city, he will confiscate
|
|
and spend them; and in so far as the fortunes of attainted persons may
|
|
suffice, he will be able to diminish the taxes which he would otherwise
|
|
have to impose upon the people.
|
|
|
|
And when these fail?
|
|
|
|
Why, clearly, he said, then he and his boon companions, whether male or
|
|
female, will be maintained out of his father's estate.
|
|
|
|
You mean to say that the people, from whom he has derived his being,
|
|
will maintain him and his companions?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; they cannot help themselves.
|
|
|
|
But what if the people fly into a passion, and aver that a grown-up son
|
|
ought not to be supported by his father, but that the father should be
|
|
supported by the son? The father did not bring him into being, or settle
|
|
him in life, in order that when his son became a man he should himself
|
|
be the servant of his own servants and should support him and his rabble
|
|
of slaves and companions; but that his son should protect him, and that
|
|
by his help he might be emancipated from the government of the rich and
|
|
aristocratic, as they are termed. And so he bids him and his companions
|
|
depart, just as any other father might drive out of the house a riotous
|
|
son and his undesirable associates.
|
|
|
|
By heaven, he said, then the parent will discover what a monster he has
|
|
been fostering in his bosom; and, when he wants to drive him out, he
|
|
will find that he is weak and his son strong.
|
|
|
|
Why, you do not mean to say that the tyrant will use violence? What!
|
|
beat his father if he opposes him?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he will, having first disarmed him.
|
|
|
|
Then he is a parricide, and a cruel guardian of an aged parent; and this
|
|
is real tyranny, about which there can be no longer a mistake: as the
|
|
saying is, the people who would escape the smoke which is the slavery of
|
|
freemen, has fallen into the fire which is the tyranny of slaves. Thus
|
|
liberty, getting out of all order and reason, passes into the harshest
|
|
and bitterest form of slavery.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
Very well; and may we not rightly say that we have sufficiently
|
|
discussed the nature of tyranny, and the manner of the transition from
|
|
democracy to tyranny?
|
|
|
|
Yes, quite enough, he said.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK IX.
|
|
|
|
Last of all comes the tyrannical man; about whom we have once more to
|
|
ask, how is he formed out of the democratical? and how does he live, in
|
|
happiness or in misery?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, he is the only one remaining.
|
|
|
|
There is, however, I said, a previous question which remains unanswered.
|
|
|
|
What question?
|
|
|
|
I do not think that we have adequately determined the nature and number
|
|
of the appetites, and until this is accomplished the enquiry will always
|
|
be confused.
|
|
|
|
Well, he said, it is not too late to supply the omission.
|
|
|
|
Very true, I said; and observe the point which I want to understand:
|
|
Certain of the unnecessary pleasures and appetites I conceive to be
|
|
unlawful; every one appears to have them, but in some persons they are
|
|
controlled by the laws and by reason, and the better desires prevail
|
|
over them--either they are wholly banished or they become few and weak;
|
|
while in the case of others they are stronger, and there are more of
|
|
them.
|
|
|
|
Which appetites do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I mean those which are awake when the reasoning and human and ruling
|
|
power is asleep; then the wild beast within us, gorged with meat or
|
|
drink, starts up and having shaken off sleep, goes forth to satisfy
|
|
his desires; and there is no conceivable folly or crime--not excepting
|
|
incest or any other unnatural union, or parricide, or the eating of
|
|
forbidden food--which at such a time, when he has parted company with
|
|
all shame and sense, a man may not be ready to commit.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
But when a man's pulse is healthy and temperate, and when before going
|
|
to sleep he has awakened his rational powers, and fed them on noble
|
|
thoughts and enquiries, collecting himself in meditation; after having
|
|
first indulged his appetites neither too much nor too little, but just
|
|
enough to lay them to sleep, and prevent them and their enjoyments and
|
|
pains from interfering with the higher principle--which he leaves in
|
|
the solitude of pure abstraction, free to contemplate and aspire to
|
|
the knowledge of the unknown, whether in past, present, or future: when
|
|
again he has allayed the passionate element, if he has a quarrel against
|
|
any one--I say, when, after pacifying the two irrational principles, he
|
|
rouses up the third, which is reason, before he takes his rest, then,
|
|
as you know, he attains truth most nearly, and is least likely to be the
|
|
sport of fantastic and lawless visions.
|
|
|
|
I quite agree.
|
|
|
|
In saying this I have been running into a digression; but the point
|
|
which I desire to note is that in all of us, even in good men, there is
|
|
a lawless wild-beast nature, which peers out in sleep. Pray, consider
|
|
whether I am right, and you agree with me.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I agree.
|
|
|
|
And now remember the character which we attributed to the democratic
|
|
man. He was supposed from his youth upwards to have been trained under
|
|
a miserly parent, who encouraged the saving appetites in him, but
|
|
discountenanced the unnecessary, which aim only at amusement and
|
|
ornament?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And then he got into the company of a more refined, licentious sort of
|
|
people, and taking to all their wanton ways rushed into the opposite
|
|
extreme from an abhorrence of his father's meanness. At last, being a
|
|
better man than his corruptors, he was drawn in both directions until he
|
|
halted midway and led a life, not of vulgar and slavish passion, but
|
|
of what he deemed moderate indulgence in various pleasures. After this
|
|
manner the democrat was generated out of the oligarch?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; that was our view of him, and is so still.
|
|
|
|
And now, I said, years will have passed away, and you must conceive this
|
|
man, such as he is, to have a son, who is brought up in his father's
|
|
principles.
|
|
|
|
I can imagine him.
|
|
|
|
Then you must further imagine the same thing to happen to the son
|
|
which has already happened to the father:--he is drawn into a perfectly
|
|
lawless life, which by his seducers is termed perfect liberty; and his
|
|
father and friends take part with his moderate desires, and the opposite
|
|
party assist the opposite ones. As soon as these dire magicians and
|
|
tyrant-makers find that they are losing their hold on him, they contrive
|
|
to implant in him a master passion, to be lord over his idle and
|
|
spendthrift lusts--a sort of monstrous winged drone--that is the only
|
|
image which will adequately describe him.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is the only adequate image of him.
|
|
|
|
And when his other lusts, amid clouds of incense and perfumes and
|
|
garlands and wines, and all the pleasures of a dissolute life, now let
|
|
loose, come buzzing around him, nourishing to the utmost the sting of
|
|
desire which they implant in his drone-like nature, then at last this
|
|
lord of the soul, having Madness for the captain of his guard, breaks
|
|
out into a frenzy: and if he finds in himself any good opinions or
|
|
appetites in process of formation, and there is in him any sense of
|
|
shame remaining, to these better principles he puts an end, and casts
|
|
them forth until he has purged away temperance and brought in madness to
|
|
the full.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is the way in which the tyrannical man is generated.
|
|
|
|
And is not this the reason why of old love has been called a tyrant?
|
|
|
|
I should not wonder.
|
|
|
|
Further, I said, has not a drunken man also the spirit of a tyrant?
|
|
|
|
He has.
|
|
|
|
And you know that a man who is deranged and not right in his mind, will
|
|
fancy that he is able to rule, not only over men, but also over the
|
|
gods?
|
|
|
|
That he will.
|
|
|
|
And the tyrannical man in the true sense of the word comes into being
|
|
when, either under the influence of nature, or habit, or both, he
|
|
becomes drunken, lustful, passionate? O my friend, is not that so?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
Such is the man and such is his origin. And next, how does he live?
|
|
|
|
Suppose, as people facetiously say, you were to tell me.
|
|
|
|
I imagine, I said, at the next step in his progress, that there will be
|
|
feasts and carousals and revellings and courtezans, and all that sort
|
|
of thing; Love is the lord of the house within him, and orders all the
|
|
concerns of his soul.
|
|
|
|
That is certain.
|
|
|
|
Yes; and every day and every night desires grow up many and formidable,
|
|
and their demands are many.
|
|
|
|
They are indeed, he said.
|
|
|
|
His revenues, if he has any, are soon spent.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then comes debt and the cutting down of his property.
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
When he has nothing left, must not his desires, crowding in the nest
|
|
like young ravens, be crying aloud for food; and he, goaded on by them,
|
|
and especially by love himself, who is in a manner the captain of them,
|
|
is in a frenzy, and would fain discover whom he can defraud or despoil
|
|
of his property, in order that he may gratify them?
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is sure to be the case.
|
|
|
|
He must have money, no matter how, if he is to escape horrid pains and
|
|
pangs.
|
|
|
|
He must.
|
|
|
|
And as in himself there was a succession of pleasures, and the new got
|
|
the better of the old and took away their rights, so he being younger
|
|
will claim to have more than his father and his mother, and if he has
|
|
spent his own share of the property, he will take a slice of theirs.
|
|
|
|
No doubt he will.
|
|
|
|
And if his parents will not give way, then he will try first of all to
|
|
cheat and deceive them.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And if he fails, then he will use force and plunder them.
|
|
|
|
Yes, probably.
|
|
|
|
And if the old man and woman fight for their own, what then, my friend?
|
|
Will the creature feel any compunction at tyrannizing over them?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he said, I should not feel at all comfortable about his parents.
|
|
|
|
But, O heavens! Adeimantus, on account of some new-fangled love of a
|
|
harlot, who is anything but a necessary connection, can you believe that
|
|
he would strike the mother who is his ancient friend and necessary
|
|
to his very existence, and would place her under the authority of the
|
|
other, when she is brought under the same roof with her; or that, under
|
|
like circumstances, he would do the same to his withered old father,
|
|
first and most indispensable of friends, for the sake of some
|
|
newly-found blooming youth who is the reverse of indispensable?
|
|
|
|
Yes, indeed, he said; I believe that he would.
|
|
|
|
Truly, then, I said, a tyrannical son is a blessing to his father and
|
|
mother.
|
|
|
|
He is indeed, he replied.
|
|
|
|
He first takes their property, and when that fails, and pleasures are
|
|
beginning to swarm in the hive of his soul, then he breaks into a house,
|
|
or steals the garments of some nightly wayfarer; next he proceeds to
|
|
clear a temple. Meanwhile the old opinions which he had when a child,
|
|
and which gave judgment about good and evil, are overthrown by those
|
|
others which have just been emancipated, and are now the body-guard of
|
|
love and share his empire. These in his democratic days, when he was
|
|
still subject to the laws and to his father, were only let loose in
|
|
the dreams of sleep. But now that he is under the dominion of love, he
|
|
becomes always and in waking reality what he was then very rarely and in
|
|
a dream only; he will commit the foulest murder, or eat forbidden food,
|
|
or be guilty of any other horrid act. Love is his tyrant, and lives
|
|
lordly in him and lawlessly, and being himself a king, leads him on, as
|
|
a tyrant leads a State, to the performance of any reckless deed by which
|
|
he can maintain himself and the rabble of his associates, whether those
|
|
whom evil communications have brought in from without, or those whom
|
|
he himself has allowed to break loose within him by reason of a similar
|
|
evil nature in himself. Have we not here a picture of his way of life?
|
|
|
|
Yes, indeed, he said.
|
|
|
|
And if there are only a few of them in the State, and the rest of the
|
|
people are well disposed, they go away and become the body-guard or
|
|
mercenary soldiers of some other tyrant who may probably want them for a
|
|
war; and if there is no war, they stay at home and do many little pieces
|
|
of mischief in the city.
|
|
|
|
What sort of mischief?
|
|
|
|
For example, they are the thieves, burglars, cut-purses, foot-pads,
|
|
robbers of temples, man-stealers of the community; or if they are able
|
|
to speak they turn informers, and bear false witness, and take bribes.
|
|
|
|
A small catalogue of evils, even if the perpetrators of them are few in
|
|
number.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; but small and great are comparative terms, and all these
|
|
things, in the misery and evil which they inflict upon a State, do not
|
|
come within a thousand miles of the tyrant; when this noxious class and
|
|
their followers grow numerous and become conscious of their strength,
|
|
assisted by the infatuation of the people, they choose from among
|
|
themselves the one who has most of the tyrant in his own soul, and him
|
|
they create their tyrant.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, and he will be the most fit to be a tyrant.
|
|
|
|
If the people yield, well and good; but if they resist him, as he began
|
|
by beating his own father and mother, so now, if he has the power, he
|
|
beats them, and will keep his dear old fatherland or motherland, as the
|
|
Cretans say, in subjection to his young retainers whom he has introduced
|
|
to be their rulers and masters. This is the end of his passions and
|
|
desires.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
When such men are only private individuals and before they get power,
|
|
this is their character; they associate entirely with their own
|
|
flatterers or ready tools; or if they want anything from anybody, they
|
|
in their turn are equally ready to bow down before them: they profess
|
|
every sort of affection for them; but when they have gained their point
|
|
they know them no more.
|
|
|
|
Yes, truly.
|
|
|
|
They are always either the masters or servants and never the friends of
|
|
anybody; the tyrant never tastes of true freedom or friendship.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
And may we not rightly call such men treacherous?
|
|
|
|
No question.
|
|
|
|
Also they are utterly unjust, if we were right in our notion of justice?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, and we were perfectly right.
|
|
|
|
Let us then sum up in a word, I said, the character of the worst man: he
|
|
is the waking reality of what we dreamed.
|
|
|
|
Most true.
|
|
|
|
And this is he who being by nature most of a tyrant bears rule, and the
|
|
longer he lives the more of a tyrant he becomes.
|
|
|
|
That is certain, said Glaucon, taking his turn to answer.
|
|
|
|
And will not he who has been shown to be the wickedest, be also the most
|
|
miserable? and he who has tyrannized longest and most, most continually
|
|
and truly miserable; although this may not be the opinion of men in
|
|
general?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, inevitably.
|
|
|
|
And must not the tyrannical man be like the tyrannical State, and
|
|
the democratical man like the democratical State; and the same of the
|
|
others?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And as State is to State in virtue and happiness, so is man in relation
|
|
to man?
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
Then comparing our original city, which was under a king, and the city
|
|
which is under a tyrant, how do they stand as to virtue?
|
|
|
|
They are the opposite extremes, he said, for one is the very best and
|
|
the other is the very worst.
|
|
|
|
There can be no mistake, I said, as to which is which, and therefore
|
|
I will at once enquire whether you would arrive at a similar decision
|
|
about their relative happiness and misery. And here we must not allow
|
|
ourselves to be panic-stricken at the apparition of the tyrant, who is
|
|
only a unit and may perhaps have a few retainers about him; but let us
|
|
go as we ought into every corner of the city and look all about, and
|
|
then we will give our opinion.
|
|
|
|
A fair invitation, he replied; and I see, as every one must, that a
|
|
tyranny is the wretchedest form of government, and the rule of a king
|
|
the happiest.
|
|
|
|
And in estimating the men too, may I not fairly make a like request,
|
|
that I should have a judge whose mind can enter into and see through
|
|
human nature? he must not be like a child who looks at the outside and
|
|
is dazzled at the pompous aspect which the tyrannical nature assumes to
|
|
the beholder, but let him be one who has a clear insight. May I suppose
|
|
that the judgment is given in the hearing of us all by one who is able
|
|
to judge, and has dwelt in the same place with him, and been present at
|
|
his dally life and known him in his family relations, where he may be
|
|
seen stripped of his tragedy attire, and again in the hour of public
|
|
danger--he shall tell us about the happiness and misery of the tyrant
|
|
when compared with other men?
|
|
|
|
That again, he said, is a very fair proposal.
|
|
|
|
Shall I assume that we ourselves are able and experienced judges and
|
|
have before now met with such a person? We shall then have some one who
|
|
will answer our enquiries.
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
Let me ask you not to forget the parallel of the individual and the
|
|
State; bearing this in mind, and glancing in turn from one to the other
|
|
of them, will you tell me their respective conditions?
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? he asked.
|
|
|
|
Beginning with the State, I replied, would you say that a city which is
|
|
governed by a tyrant is free or enslaved?
|
|
|
|
No city, he said, can be more completely enslaved.
|
|
|
|
And yet, as you see, there are freemen as well as masters in such a
|
|
State?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I see that there are--a few; but the people, speaking
|
|
generally, and the best of them are miserably degraded and enslaved.
|
|
|
|
Then if the man is like the State, I said, must not the same rule
|
|
prevail? his soul is full of meanness and vulgarity--the best elements
|
|
in him are enslaved; and there is a small ruling part, which is also the
|
|
worst and maddest.
|
|
|
|
Inevitably.
|
|
|
|
And would you say that the soul of such an one is the soul of a freeman,
|
|
or of a slave?
|
|
|
|
He has the soul of a slave, in my opinion.
|
|
|
|
And the State which is enslaved under a tyrant is utterly incapable of
|
|
acting voluntarily?
|
|
|
|
Utterly incapable.
|
|
|
|
And also the soul which is under a tyrant (I am speaking of the soul
|
|
taken as a whole) is least capable of doing what she desires; there is a
|
|
gadfly which goads her, and she is full of trouble and remorse?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And is the city which is under a tyrant rich or poor?
|
|
|
|
Poor.
|
|
|
|
And the tyrannical soul must be always poor and insatiable?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And must not such a State and such a man be always full of fear?
|
|
|
|
Yes, indeed.
|
|
|
|
Is there any State in which you will find more of lamentation and sorrow
|
|
and groaning and pain?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
And is there any man in whom you will find more of this sort of misery
|
|
than in the tyrannical man, who is in a fury of passions and desires?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
Reflecting upon these and similar evils, you held the tyrannical State
|
|
to be the most miserable of States?
|
|
|
|
And I was right, he said.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, I said. And when you see the same evils in the tyrannical
|
|
man, what do you say of him?
|
|
|
|
I say that he is by far the most miserable of all men.
|
|
|
|
There, I said, I think that you are beginning to go wrong.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I do not think that he has as yet reached the utmost extreme of misery.
|
|
|
|
Then who is more miserable?
|
|
|
|
One of whom I am about to speak.
|
|
|
|
Who is that?
|
|
|
|
He who is of a tyrannical nature, and instead of leading a private life
|
|
has been cursed with the further misfortune of being a public tyrant.
|
|
|
|
From what has been said, I gather that you are right.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I replied, but in this high argument you should be a little more
|
|
certain, and should not conjecture only; for of all questions, this
|
|
respecting good and evil is the greatest.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Let me then offer you an illustration, which may, I think, throw a light
|
|
upon this subject.
|
|
|
|
What is your illustration?
|
|
|
|
The case of rich individuals in cities who possess many slaves: from
|
|
them you may form an idea of the tyrant's condition, for they both have
|
|
slaves; the only difference is that he has more slaves.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is the difference.
|
|
|
|
You know that they live securely and have nothing to apprehend from
|
|
their servants?
|
|
|
|
What should they fear?
|
|
|
|
Nothing. But do you observe the reason of this?
|
|
|
|
Yes; the reason is, that the whole city is leagued together for the
|
|
protection of each individual.
|
|
|
|
Very true, I said. But imagine one of these owners, the master say of
|
|
some fifty slaves, together with his family and property and slaves,
|
|
carried off by a god into the wilderness, where there are no freemen to
|
|
help him--will he not be in an agony of fear lest he and his wife and
|
|
children should be put to death by his slaves?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, he will be in the utmost fear.
|
|
|
|
The time has arrived when he will be compelled to flatter divers of his
|
|
slaves, and make many promises to them of freedom and other things, much
|
|
against his will--he will have to cajole his own servants.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that will be the only way of saving himself.
|
|
|
|
And suppose the same god, who carried him away, to surround him with
|
|
neighbours who will not suffer one man to be the master of another, and
|
|
who, if they could catch the offender, would take his life?
|
|
|
|
His case will be still worse, if you suppose him to be everywhere
|
|
surrounded and watched by enemies.
|
|
|
|
And is not this the sort of prison in which the tyrant will be bound--he
|
|
who being by nature such as we have described, is full of all sorts of
|
|
fears and lusts? His soul is dainty and greedy, and yet alone, of all
|
|
men in the city, he is never allowed to go on a journey, or to see the
|
|
things which other freemen desire to see, but he lives in his hole like
|
|
a woman hidden in the house, and is jealous of any other citizen who
|
|
goes into foreign parts and sees anything of interest.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And amid evils such as these will not he who is ill-governed in his own
|
|
person--the tyrannical man, I mean--whom you just now decided to be the
|
|
most miserable of all--will not he be yet more miserable when, instead
|
|
of leading a private life, he is constrained by fortune to be a public
|
|
tyrant? He has to be master of others when he is not master of himself:
|
|
he is like a diseased or paralytic man who is compelled to pass his
|
|
life, not in retirement, but fighting and combating with other men.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, the similitude is most exact.
|
|
|
|
Is not his case utterly miserable? and does not the actual tyrant lead a
|
|
worse life than he whose life you determined to be the worst?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
He who is the real tyrant, whatever men may think, is the real slave,
|
|
and is obliged to practise the greatest adulation and servility, and to
|
|
be the flatterer of the vilest of mankind. He has desires which he is
|
|
utterly unable to satisfy, and has more wants than any one, and is truly
|
|
poor, if you know how to inspect the whole soul of him: all his life
|
|
long he is beset with fear and is full of convulsions and distractions,
|
|
even as the State which he resembles: and surely the resemblance holds?
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Moreover, as we were saying before, he grows worse from having power: he
|
|
becomes and is of necessity more jealous, more faithless, more unjust,
|
|
more friendless, more impious, than he was at first; he is the purveyor
|
|
and cherisher of every sort of vice, and the consequence is that he is
|
|
supremely miserable, and that he makes everybody else as miserable as
|
|
himself.
|
|
|
|
No man of any sense will dispute your words.
|
|
|
|
Come then, I said, and as the general umpire in theatrical contests
|
|
proclaims the result, do you also decide who in your opinion is first
|
|
in the scale of happiness, and who second, and in what order the others
|
|
follow: there are five of them in all--they are the royal, timocratical,
|
|
oligarchical, democratical, tyrannical.
|
|
|
|
The decision will be easily given, he replied; they shall be choruses
|
|
coming on the stage, and I must judge them in the order in which they
|
|
enter, by the criterion of virtue and vice, happiness and misery.
|
|
|
|
Need we hire a herald, or shall I announce, that the son of Ariston (the
|
|
best) has decided that the best and justest is also the happiest, and
|
|
that this is he who is the most royal man and king over himself; and
|
|
that the worst and most unjust man is also the most miserable, and that
|
|
this is he who being the greatest tyrant of himself is also the greatest
|
|
tyrant of his State?
|
|
|
|
Make the proclamation yourself, he said.
|
|
|
|
And shall I add, 'whether seen or unseen by gods and men'?
|
|
|
|
Let the words be added.
|
|
|
|
Then this, I said, will be our first proof; and there is another, which
|
|
may also have some weight.
|
|
|
|
What is that?
|
|
|
|
The second proof is derived from the nature of the soul: seeing that
|
|
the individual soul, like the State, has been divided by us into three
|
|
principles, the division may, I think, furnish a new demonstration.
|
|
|
|
Of what nature?
|
|
|
|
It seems to me that to these three principles three pleasures
|
|
correspond; also three desires and governing powers.
|
|
|
|
How do you mean? he said.
|
|
|
|
There is one principle with which, as we were saying, a man learns,
|
|
another with which he is angry; the third, having many forms, has no
|
|
special name, but is denoted by the general term appetitive, from
|
|
the extraordinary strength and vehemence of the desires of eating and
|
|
drinking and the other sensual appetites which are the main elements of
|
|
it; also money-loving, because such desires are generally satisfied by
|
|
the help of money.
|
|
|
|
That is true, he said.
|
|
|
|
If we were to say that the loves and pleasures of this third part were
|
|
concerned with gain, we should then be able to fall back on a single
|
|
notion; and might truly and intelligibly describe this part of the soul
|
|
as loving gain or money.
|
|
|
|
I agree with you.
|
|
|
|
Again, is not the passionate element wholly set on ruling and conquering
|
|
and getting fame?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Suppose we call it the contentious or ambitious--would the term be
|
|
suitable?
|
|
|
|
Extremely suitable.
|
|
|
|
On the other hand, every one sees that the principle of knowledge is
|
|
wholly directed to the truth, and cares less than either of the others
|
|
for gain or fame.
|
|
|
|
Far less.
|
|
|
|
'Lover of wisdom,' 'lover of knowledge,' are titles which we may fitly
|
|
apply to that part of the soul?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
One principle prevails in the souls of one class of men, another in
|
|
others, as may happen?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then we may begin by assuming that there are three classes of
|
|
men--lovers of wisdom, lovers of honour, lovers of gain?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
And there are three kinds of pleasure, which are their several objects?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Now, if you examine the three classes of men, and ask of them in turn
|
|
which of their lives is pleasantest, each will be found praising his
|
|
own and depreciating that of others: the money-maker will contrast the
|
|
vanity of honour or of learning if they bring no money with the solid
|
|
advantages of gold and silver?
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And the lover of honour--what will be his opinion? Will he not think
|
|
that the pleasure of riches is vulgar, while the pleasure of learning,
|
|
if it brings no distinction, is all smoke and nonsense to him?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And are we to suppose, I said, that the philosopher sets any value on
|
|
other pleasures in comparison with the pleasure of knowing the truth,
|
|
and in that pursuit abiding, ever learning, not so far indeed from the
|
|
heaven of pleasure? Does he not call the other pleasures necessary,
|
|
under the idea that if there were no necessity for them, he would rather
|
|
not have them?
|
|
|
|
There can be no doubt of that, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Since, then, the pleasures of each class and the life of each are in
|
|
dispute, and the question is not which life is more or less honourable,
|
|
or better or worse, but which is the more pleasant or painless--how
|
|
shall we know who speaks truly?
|
|
|
|
I cannot myself tell, he said.
|
|
|
|
Well, but what ought to be the criterion? Is any better than experience
|
|
and wisdom and reason?
|
|
|
|
There cannot be a better, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, reflect. Of the three individuals, which has the greatest
|
|
experience of all the pleasures which we enumerated? Has the lover of
|
|
gain, in learning the nature of essential truth, greater experience of
|
|
the pleasure of knowledge than the philosopher has of the pleasure of
|
|
gain?
|
|
|
|
The philosopher, he replied, has greatly the advantage; for he has
|
|
of necessity always known the taste of the other pleasures from his
|
|
childhood upwards: but the lover of gain in all his experience has not
|
|
of necessity tasted--or, I should rather say, even had he desired, could
|
|
hardly have tasted--the sweetness of learning and knowing truth.
|
|
|
|
Then the lover of wisdom has a great advantage over the lover of gain,
|
|
for he has a double experience?
|
|
|
|
Yes, very great.
|
|
|
|
Again, has he greater experience of the pleasures of honour, or the
|
|
lover of honour of the pleasures of wisdom?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he said, all three are honoured in proportion as they attain their
|
|
object; for the rich man and the brave man and the wise man alike have
|
|
their crowd of admirers, and as they all receive honour they all have
|
|
experience of the pleasures of honour; but the delight which is to be
|
|
found in the knowledge of true being is known to the philosopher only.
|
|
|
|
His experience, then, will enable him to judge better than any one?
|
|
|
|
Far better.
|
|
|
|
And he is the only one who has wisdom as well as experience?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Further, the very faculty which is the instrument of judgment is not
|
|
possessed by the covetous or ambitious man, but only by the philosopher?
|
|
|
|
What faculty?
|
|
|
|
Reason, with whom, as we were saying, the decision ought to rest.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And reasoning is peculiarly his instrument?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
If wealth and gain were the criterion, then the praise or blame of the
|
|
lover of gain would surely be the most trustworthy?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
Or if honour or victory or courage, in that case the judgment of the
|
|
ambitious or pugnacious would be the truest?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
But since experience and wisdom and reason are the judges--
|
|
|
|
The only inference possible, he replied, is that pleasures which are
|
|
approved by the lover of wisdom and reason are the truest.
|
|
|
|
And so we arrive at the result, that the pleasure of the intelligent
|
|
part of the soul is the pleasantest of the three, and that he of us in
|
|
whom this is the ruling principle has the pleasantest life.
|
|
|
|
Unquestionably, he said, the wise man speaks with authority when he
|
|
approves of his own life.
|
|
|
|
And what does the judge affirm to be the life which is next, and the
|
|
pleasure which is next?
|
|
|
|
Clearly that of the soldier and lover of honour; who is nearer to
|
|
himself than the money-maker.
|
|
|
|
Last comes the lover of gain?
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Twice in succession, then, has the just man overthrown the unjust in
|
|
this conflict; and now comes the third trial, which is dedicated to
|
|
Olympian Zeus the saviour: a sage whispers in my ear that no pleasure
|
|
except that of the wise is quite true and pure--all others are a shadow
|
|
only; and surely this will prove the greatest and most decisive of
|
|
falls?
|
|
|
|
Yes, the greatest; but will you explain yourself?
|
|
|
|
I will work out the subject and you shall answer my questions.
|
|
|
|
Proceed.
|
|
|
|
Say, then, is not pleasure opposed to pain?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And there is a neutral state which is neither pleasure nor pain?
|
|
|
|
There is.
|
|
|
|
A state which is intermediate, and a sort of repose of the soul about
|
|
either--that is what you mean?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
You remember what people say when they are sick?
|
|
|
|
What do they say?
|
|
|
|
That after all nothing is pleasanter than health. But then they never
|
|
knew this to be the greatest of pleasures until they were ill.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I know, he said.
|
|
|
|
And when persons are suffering from acute pain, you must have heard them
|
|
say that there is nothing pleasanter than to get rid of their pain?
|
|
|
|
I have.
|
|
|
|
And there are many other cases of suffering in which the mere rest and
|
|
cessation of pain, and not any positive enjoyment, is extolled by them
|
|
as the greatest pleasure?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; at the time they are pleased and well content to be at
|
|
rest.
|
|
|
|
Again, when pleasure ceases, that sort of rest or cessation will be
|
|
painful?
|
|
|
|
Doubtless, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then the intermediate state of rest will be pleasure and will also be
|
|
pain?
|
|
|
|
So it would seem.
|
|
|
|
But can that which is neither become both?
|
|
|
|
I should say not.
|
|
|
|
And both pleasure and pain are motions of the soul, are they not?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
But that which is neither was just now shown to be rest and not motion,
|
|
and in a mean between them?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
How, then, can we be right in supposing that the absence of pain is
|
|
pleasure, or that the absence of pleasure is pain?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
This then is an appearance only and not a reality; that is to say, the
|
|
rest is pleasure at the moment and in comparison of what is painful,
|
|
and painful in comparison of what is pleasant; but all these
|
|
representations, when tried by the test of true pleasure, are not real
|
|
but a sort of imposition?
|
|
|
|
That is the inference.
|
|
|
|
Look at the other class of pleasures which have no antecedent pains and
|
|
you will no longer suppose, as you perhaps may at present, that pleasure
|
|
is only the cessation of pain, or pain of pleasure.
|
|
|
|
What are they, he said, and where shall I find them?
|
|
|
|
There are many of them: take as an example the pleasures of smell, which
|
|
are very great and have no antecedent pains; they come in a moment, and
|
|
when they depart leave no pain behind them.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Let us not, then, be induced to believe that pure pleasure is the
|
|
cessation of pain, or pain of pleasure.
|
|
|
|
No.
|
|
|
|
Still, the more numerous and violent pleasures which reach the soul
|
|
through the body are generally of this sort--they are reliefs of pain.
|
|
|
|
That is true.
|
|
|
|
And the anticipations of future pleasures and pains are of a like
|
|
nature?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Shall I give you an illustration of them?
|
|
|
|
Let me hear.
|
|
|
|
You would allow, I said, that there is in nature an upper and lower and
|
|
middle region?
|
|
|
|
I should.
|
|
|
|
And if a person were to go from the lower to the middle region, would
|
|
he not imagine that he is going up; and he who is standing in the middle
|
|
and sees whence he has come, would imagine that he is already in the
|
|
upper region, if he has never seen the true upper world?
|
|
|
|
To be sure, he said; how can he think otherwise?
|
|
|
|
But if he were taken back again he would imagine, and truly imagine,
|
|
that he was descending?
|
|
|
|
No doubt.
|
|
|
|
All that would arise out of his ignorance of the true upper and middle
|
|
and lower regions?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then can you wonder that persons who are inexperienced in the truth, as
|
|
they have wrong ideas about many other things, should also have wrong
|
|
ideas about pleasure and pain and the intermediate state; so that when
|
|
they are only being drawn towards the painful they feel pain and think
|
|
the pain which they experience to be real, and in like manner, when
|
|
drawn away from pain to the neutral or intermediate state, they firmly
|
|
believe that they have reached the goal of satiety and pleasure; they,
|
|
not knowing pleasure, err in contrasting pain with the absence of pain,
|
|
which is like contrasting black with grey instead of white--can you
|
|
wonder, I say, at this?
|
|
|
|
No, indeed; I should be much more disposed to wonder at the opposite.
|
|
|
|
Look at the matter thus:--Hunger, thirst, and the like, are inanitions
|
|
of the bodily state?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And ignorance and folly are inanitions of the soul?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And food and wisdom are the corresponding satisfactions of either?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And is the satisfaction derived from that which has less or from that
|
|
which has more existence the truer?
|
|
|
|
Clearly, from that which has more.
|
|
|
|
What classes of things have a greater share of pure existence in your
|
|
judgment--those of which food and drink and condiments and all kinds of
|
|
sustenance are examples, or the class which contains true opinion
|
|
and knowledge and mind and all the different kinds of virtue? Put
|
|
the question in this way:--Which has a more pure being--that which is
|
|
concerned with the invariable, the immortal, and the true, and is of
|
|
such a nature, and is found in such natures; or that which is concerned
|
|
with and found in the variable and mortal, and is itself variable and
|
|
mortal?
|
|
|
|
Far purer, he replied, is the being of that which is concerned with the
|
|
invariable.
|
|
|
|
And does the essence of the invariable partake of knowledge in the same
|
|
degree as of essence?
|
|
|
|
Yes, of knowledge in the same degree.
|
|
|
|
And of truth in the same degree?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And, conversely, that which has less of truth will also have less of
|
|
essence?
|
|
|
|
Necessarily.
|
|
|
|
Then, in general, those kinds of things which are in the service of the
|
|
body have less of truth and essence than those which are in the service
|
|
of the soul?
|
|
|
|
Far less.
|
|
|
|
And has not the body itself less of truth and essence than the soul?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
What is filled with more real existence, and actually has a more real
|
|
existence, is more really filled than that which is filled with less
|
|
real existence and is less real?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And if there be a pleasure in being filled with that which is according
|
|
to nature, that which is more really filled with more real being
|
|
will more really and truly enjoy true pleasure; whereas that which
|
|
participates in less real being will be less truly and surely satisfied,
|
|
and will participate in an illusory and less real pleasure?
|
|
|
|
Unquestionably.
|
|
|
|
Those then who know not wisdom and virtue, and are always busy with
|
|
gluttony and sensuality, go down and up again as far as the mean; and
|
|
in this region they move at random throughout life, but they never pass
|
|
into the true upper world; thither they neither look, nor do they ever
|
|
find their way, neither are they truly filled with true being, nor do
|
|
they taste of pure and abiding pleasure. Like cattle, with their eyes
|
|
always looking down and their heads stooping to the earth, that is,
|
|
to the dining-table, they fatten and feed and breed, and, in their
|
|
excessive love of these delights, they kick and butt at one another with
|
|
horns and hoofs which are made of iron; and they kill one another by
|
|
reason of their insatiable lust. For they fill themselves with that
|
|
which is not substantial, and the part of themselves which they fill is
|
|
also unsubstantial and incontinent.
|
|
|
|
Verily, Socrates, said Glaucon, you describe the life of the many like
|
|
an oracle.
|
|
|
|
Their pleasures are mixed with pains--how can they be otherwise? For
|
|
they are mere shadows and pictures of the true, and are coloured by
|
|
contrast, which exaggerates both light and shade, and so they implant
|
|
in the minds of fools insane desires of themselves; and they are fought
|
|
about as Stesichorus says that the Greeks fought about the shadow of
|
|
Helen at Troy in ignorance of the truth.
|
|
|
|
Something of that sort must inevitably happen.
|
|
|
|
And must not the like happen with the spirited or passionate element
|
|
of the soul? Will not the passionate man who carries his passion into
|
|
action, be in the like case, whether he is envious and ambitious, or
|
|
violent and contentious, or angry and discontented, if he be seeking
|
|
to attain honour and victory and the satisfaction of his anger without
|
|
reason or sense?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, the same will happen with the spirited element also.
|
|
|
|
Then may we not confidently assert that the lovers of money and honour,
|
|
when they seek their pleasures under the guidance and in the company
|
|
of reason and knowledge, and pursue after and win the pleasures which
|
|
wisdom shows them, will also have the truest pleasures in the highest
|
|
degree which is attainable to them, inasmuch as they follow truth; and
|
|
they will have the pleasures which are natural to them, if that which is
|
|
best for each one is also most natural to him?
|
|
|
|
Yes, certainly; the best is the most natural.
|
|
|
|
And when the whole soul follows the philosophical principle, and there
|
|
is no division, the several parts are just, and do each of them their
|
|
own business, and enjoy severally the best and truest pleasures of which
|
|
they are capable?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
But when either of the two other principles prevails, it fails in
|
|
attaining its own pleasure, and compels the rest to pursue after a
|
|
pleasure which is a shadow only and which is not their own?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the greater the interval which separates them from philosophy and
|
|
reason, the more strange and illusive will be the pleasure?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And is not that farthest from reason which is at the greatest distance
|
|
from law and order?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And the lustful and tyrannical desires are, as we saw, at the greatest
|
|
distance? Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the royal and orderly desires are nearest?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then the tyrant will live at the greatest distance from true or natural
|
|
pleasure, and the king at the least?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
But if so, the tyrant will live most unpleasantly, and the king most
|
|
pleasantly?
|
|
|
|
Inevitably.
|
|
|
|
Would you know the measure of the interval which separates them?
|
|
|
|
Will you tell me?
|
|
|
|
There appear to be three pleasures, one genuine and two spurious: now
|
|
the transgression of the tyrant reaches a point beyond the spurious; he
|
|
has run away from the region of law and reason, and taken up his abode
|
|
with certain slave pleasures which are his satellites, and the measure
|
|
of his inferiority can only be expressed in a figure.
|
|
|
|
How do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I assume, I said, that the tyrant is in the third place from the
|
|
oligarch; the democrat was in the middle?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And if there is truth in what has preceded, he will be wedded to an
|
|
image of pleasure which is thrice removed as to truth from the pleasure
|
|
of the oligarch?
|
|
|
|
He will.
|
|
|
|
And the oligarch is third from the royal; since we count as one royal
|
|
and aristocratical?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he is third.
|
|
|
|
Then the tyrant is removed from true pleasure by the space of a number
|
|
which is three times three?
|
|
|
|
Manifestly.
|
|
|
|
The shadow then of tyrannical pleasure determined by the number of
|
|
length will be a plane figure.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And if you raise the power and make the plane a solid, there is no
|
|
difficulty in seeing how vast is the interval by which the tyrant is
|
|
parted from the king.
|
|
|
|
Yes; the arithmetician will easily do the sum.
|
|
|
|
Or if some person begins at the other end and measures the interval by
|
|
which the king is parted from the tyrant in truth of pleasure, he will
|
|
find him, when the multiplication is completed, living 729 times more
|
|
pleasantly, and the tyrant more painfully by this same interval.
|
|
|
|
What a wonderful calculation! And how enormous is the distance which
|
|
separates the just from the unjust in regard to pleasure and pain!
|
|
|
|
Yet a true calculation, I said, and a number which nearly concerns human
|
|
life, if human beings are concerned with days and nights and months and
|
|
years. (729 NEARLY equals the number of days and nights in the year.)
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, human life is certainly concerned with them.
|
|
|
|
Then if the good and just man be thus superior in pleasure to the evil
|
|
and unjust, his superiority will be infinitely greater in propriety of
|
|
life and in beauty and virtue?
|
|
|
|
Immeasurably greater.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, and now having arrived at this stage of the argument, we
|
|
may revert to the words which brought us hither: Was not some one saying
|
|
that injustice was a gain to the perfectly unjust who was reputed to be
|
|
just?
|
|
|
|
Yes, that was said.
|
|
|
|
Now then, having determined the power and quality of justice and
|
|
injustice, let us have a little conversation with him.
|
|
|
|
What shall we say to him?
|
|
|
|
Let us make an image of the soul, that he may have his own words
|
|
presented before his eyes.
|
|
|
|
Of what sort?
|
|
|
|
An ideal image of the soul, like the composite creations of ancient
|
|
mythology, such as the Chimera or Scylla or Cerberus, and there are many
|
|
others in which two or more different natures are said to grow into one.
|
|
|
|
There are said of have been such unions.
|
|
|
|
Then do you now model the form of a multitudinous, many-headed monster,
|
|
having a ring of heads of all manner of beasts, tame and wild, which he
|
|
is able to generate and metamorphose at will.
|
|
|
|
You suppose marvellous powers in the artist; but, as language is more
|
|
pliable than wax or any similar substance, let there be such a model as
|
|
you propose.
|
|
|
|
Suppose now that you make a second form as of a lion, and a third of a
|
|
man, the second smaller than the first, and the third smaller than the
|
|
second.
|
|
|
|
That, he said, is an easier task; and I have made them as you say.
|
|
|
|
And now join them, and let the three grow into one.
|
|
|
|
That has been accomplished.
|
|
|
|
Next fashion the outside of them into a single image, as of a man, so
|
|
that he who is not able to look within, and sees only the outer hull,
|
|
may believe the beast to be a single human creature.
|
|
|
|
I have done so, he said.
|
|
|
|
And now, to him who maintains that it is profitable for the human
|
|
creature to be unjust, and unprofitable to be just, let us reply
|
|
that, if he be right, it is profitable for this creature to feast
|
|
the multitudinous monster and strengthen the lion and the lion-like
|
|
qualities, but to starve and weaken the man, who is consequently liable
|
|
to be dragged about at the mercy of either of the other two; and he is
|
|
not to attempt to familiarize or harmonize them with one another--he
|
|
ought rather to suffer them to fight and bite and devour one another.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said; that is what the approver of injustice says.
|
|
|
|
To him the supporter of justice makes answer that he should ever so
|
|
speak and act as to give the man within him in some way or other the
|
|
most complete mastery over the entire human creature. He should watch
|
|
over the many-headed monster like a good husbandman, fostering and
|
|
cultivating the gentle qualities, and preventing the wild ones from
|
|
growing; he should be making the lion-heart his ally, and in common care
|
|
of them all should be uniting the several parts with one another and
|
|
with himself.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is quite what the maintainer of justice say.
|
|
|
|
And so from every point of view, whether of pleasure, honour, or
|
|
advantage, the approver of justice is right and speaks the truth, and
|
|
the disapprover is wrong and false and ignorant?
|
|
|
|
Yes, from every point of view.
|
|
|
|
Come, now, and let us gently reason with the unjust, who is not
|
|
intentionally in error. 'Sweet Sir,' we will say to him, 'what think
|
|
you of things esteemed noble and ignoble? Is not the noble that which
|
|
subjects the beast to the man, or rather to the god in man; and the
|
|
ignoble that which subjects the man to the beast?' He can hardly avoid
|
|
saying Yes--can he now?
|
|
|
|
Not if he has any regard for my opinion.
|
|
|
|
But, if he agree so far, we may ask him to answer another question:
|
|
'Then how would a man profit if he received gold and silver on the
|
|
condition that he was to enslave the noblest part of him to the worst?
|
|
Who can imagine that a man who sold his son or daughter into slavery for
|
|
money, especially if he sold them into the hands of fierce and evil men,
|
|
would be the gainer, however large might be the sum which he
|
|
received? And will any one say that he is not a miserable caitiff who
|
|
remorselessly sells his own divine being to that which is most godless
|
|
and detestable? Eriphyle took the necklace as the price of her husband's
|
|
life, but he is taking a bribe in order to compass a worse ruin.'
|
|
|
|
Yes, said Glaucon, far worse--I will answer for him.
|
|
|
|
Has not the intemperate been censured of old, because in him the huge
|
|
multiform monster is allowed to be too much at large?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And men are blamed for pride and bad temper when the lion and serpent
|
|
element in them disproportionately grows and gains strength?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And luxury and softness are blamed, because they relax and weaken this
|
|
same creature, and make a coward of him?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And is not a man reproached for flattery and meanness who subordinates
|
|
the spirited animal to the unruly monster, and, for the sake of money,
|
|
of which he can never have enough, habituates him in the days of his
|
|
youth to be trampled in the mire, and from being a lion to become a
|
|
monkey?
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And why are mean employments and manual arts a reproach? Only because
|
|
they imply a natural weakness of the higher principle; the individual is
|
|
unable to control the creatures within him, but has to court them, and
|
|
his great study is how to flatter them.
|
|
|
|
Such appears to be the reason.
|
|
|
|
And therefore, being desirous of placing him under a rule like that of
|
|
the best, we say that he ought to be the servant of the best, in whom
|
|
the Divine rules; not, as Thrasymachus supposed, to the injury of the
|
|
servant, but because every one had better be ruled by divine wisdom
|
|
dwelling within him; or, if this be impossible, then by an external
|
|
authority, in order that we may be all, as far as possible, under the
|
|
same government, friends and equals.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And this is clearly seen to be the intention of the law, which is the
|
|
ally of the whole city; and is seen also in the authority which we
|
|
exercise over children, and the refusal to let them be free until we
|
|
have established in them a principle analogous to the constitution of
|
|
a state, and by cultivation of this higher element have set up in their
|
|
hearts a guardian and ruler like our own, and when this is done they may
|
|
go their ways.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, the purpose of the law is manifest.
|
|
|
|
From what point of view, then, and on what ground can we say that a man
|
|
is profited by injustice or intemperance or other baseness, which will
|
|
make him a worse man, even though he acquire money or power by his
|
|
wickedness?
|
|
|
|
From no point of view at all.
|
|
|
|
What shall he profit, if his injustice be undetected and unpunished?
|
|
He who is undetected only gets worse, whereas he who is detected and
|
|
punished has the brutal part of his nature silenced and humanized; the
|
|
gentler element in him is liberated, and his whole soul is perfected and
|
|
ennobled by the acquirement of justice and temperance and wisdom, more
|
|
than the body ever is by receiving gifts of beauty, strength and health,
|
|
in proportion as the soul is more honourable than the body.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
To this nobler purpose the man of understanding will devote the energies
|
|
of his life. And in the first place, he will honour studies which
|
|
impress these qualities on his soul and will disregard others?
|
|
|
|
Clearly, he said.
|
|
|
|
In the next place, he will regulate his bodily habit and training, and
|
|
so far will he be from yielding to brutal and irrational pleasures, that
|
|
he will regard even health as quite a secondary matter; his first object
|
|
will be not that he may be fair or strong or well, unless he is likely
|
|
thereby to gain temperance, but he will always desire so to attemper the
|
|
body as to preserve the harmony of the soul?
|
|
|
|
Certainly he will, if he has true music in him.
|
|
|
|
And in the acquisition of wealth there is a principle of order and
|
|
harmony which he will also observe; he will not allow himself to be
|
|
dazzled by the foolish applause of the world, and heap up riches to his
|
|
own infinite harm?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, he said.
|
|
|
|
He will look at the city which is within him, and take heed that no
|
|
disorder occur in it, such as might arise either from superfluity or
|
|
from want; and upon this principle he will regulate his property and
|
|
gain or spend according to his means.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And, for the same reason, he will gladly accept and enjoy such honours
|
|
as he deems likely to make him a better man; but those, whether private
|
|
or public, which are likely to disorder his life, he will avoid?
|
|
|
|
Then, if that is his motive, he will not be a statesman.
|
|
|
|
By the dog of Egypt, he will! in the city which is his own he certainly
|
|
will, though in the land of his birth perhaps not, unless he have a
|
|
divine call.
|
|
|
|
I understand; you mean that he will be a ruler in the city of which we
|
|
are the founders, and which exists in idea only; for I do not believe
|
|
that there is such an one anywhere on earth?
|
|
|
|
In heaven, I replied, there is laid up a pattern of it, methinks, which
|
|
he who desires may behold, and beholding, may set his own house in
|
|
order. But whether such an one exists, or ever will exist in fact, is no
|
|
matter; for he will live after the manner of that city, having nothing
|
|
to do with any other.
|
|
|
|
I think so, he said.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK X.
|
|
|
|
Of the many excellences which I perceive in the order of our State,
|
|
there is none which upon reflection pleases me better than the rule
|
|
about poetry.
|
|
|
|
To what do you refer?
|
|
|
|
To the rejection of imitative poetry, which certainly ought not to be
|
|
received; as I see far more clearly now that the parts of the soul have
|
|
been distinguished.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
Speaking in confidence, for I should not like to have my words repeated
|
|
to the tragedians and the rest of the imitative tribe--but I do not
|
|
mind saying to you, that all poetical imitations are ruinous to the
|
|
understanding of the hearers, and that the knowledge of their true
|
|
nature is the only antidote to them.
|
|
|
|
Explain the purport of your remark.
|
|
|
|
Well, I will tell you, although I have always from my earliest youth had
|
|
an awe and love of Homer, which even now makes the words falter on
|
|
my lips, for he is the great captain and teacher of the whole of that
|
|
charming tragic company; but a man is not to be reverenced more than the
|
|
truth, and therefore I will speak out.
|
|
|
|
Very good, he said.
|
|
|
|
Listen to me then, or rather, answer me.
|
|
|
|
Put your question.
|
|
|
|
Can you tell me what imitation is? for I really do not know.
|
|
|
|
A likely thing, then, that I should know.
|
|
|
|
Why not? for the duller eye may often see a thing sooner than the
|
|
keener.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said; but in your presence, even if I had any faint
|
|
notion, I could not muster courage to utter it. Will you enquire
|
|
yourself?
|
|
|
|
Well then, shall we begin the enquiry in our usual manner: Whenever a
|
|
number of individuals have a common name, we assume them to have also a
|
|
corresponding idea or form:--do you understand me?
|
|
|
|
I do.
|
|
|
|
Let us take any common instance; there are beds and tables in the
|
|
world--plenty of them, are there not?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
But there are only two ideas or forms of them--one the idea of a bed,
|
|
the other of a table.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the maker of either of them makes a bed or he makes a table for our
|
|
use, in accordance with the idea--that is our way of speaking in this
|
|
and similar instances--but no artificer makes the ideas themselves: how
|
|
could he?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
And there is another artist,--I should like to know what you would say
|
|
of him.
|
|
|
|
Who is he?
|
|
|
|
One who is the maker of all the works of all other workmen.
|
|
|
|
What an extraordinary man!
|
|
|
|
Wait a little, and there will be more reason for your saying so. For
|
|
this is he who is able to make not only vessels of every kind, but
|
|
plants and animals, himself and all other things--the earth and heaven,
|
|
and the things which are in heaven or under the earth; he makes the gods
|
|
also.
|
|
|
|
He must be a wizard and no mistake.
|
|
|
|
Oh! you are incredulous, are you? Do you mean that there is no such
|
|
maker or creator, or that in one sense there might be a maker of all
|
|
these things but in another not? Do you see that there is a way in which
|
|
you could make them all yourself?
|
|
|
|
What way?
|
|
|
|
An easy way enough; or rather, there are many ways in which the feat
|
|
might be quickly and easily accomplished, none quicker than that of
|
|
turning a mirror round and round--you would soon enough make the sun and
|
|
the heavens, and the earth and yourself, and other animals and plants,
|
|
and all the other things of which we were just now speaking, in the
|
|
mirror.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; but they would be appearances only.
|
|
|
|
Very good, I said, you are coming to the point now. And the painter too
|
|
is, as I conceive, just such another--a creator of appearances, is he
|
|
not?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
But then I suppose you will say that what he creates is untrue. And yet
|
|
there is a sense in which the painter also creates a bed?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, but not a real bed.
|
|
|
|
And what of the maker of the bed? were you not saying that he too makes,
|
|
not the idea which, according to our view, is the essence of the bed,
|
|
but only a particular bed?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I did.
|
|
|
|
Then if he does not make that which exists he cannot make true
|
|
existence, but only some semblance of existence; and if any one were to
|
|
say that the work of the maker of the bed, or of any other workman, has
|
|
real existence, he could hardly be supposed to be speaking the truth.
|
|
|
|
At any rate, he replied, philosophers would say that he was not speaking
|
|
the truth.
|
|
|
|
No wonder, then, that his work too is an indistinct expression of truth.
|
|
|
|
No wonder.
|
|
|
|
Suppose now that by the light of the examples just offered we enquire
|
|
who this imitator is?
|
|
|
|
If you please.
|
|
|
|
Well then, here are three beds: one existing in nature, which is made by
|
|
God, as I think that we may say--for no one else can be the maker?
|
|
|
|
No.
|
|
|
|
There is another which is the work of the carpenter?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the work of the painter is a third?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Beds, then, are of three kinds, and there are three artists who
|
|
superintend them: God, the maker of the bed, and the painter?
|
|
|
|
Yes, there are three of them.
|
|
|
|
God, whether from choice or from necessity, made one bed in nature and
|
|
one only; two or more such ideal beds neither ever have been nor ever
|
|
will be made by God.
|
|
|
|
Why is that?
|
|
|
|
Because even if He had made but two, a third would still appear behind
|
|
them which both of them would have for their idea, and that would be the
|
|
ideal bed and not the two others.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
God knew this, and He desired to be the real maker of a real bed, not
|
|
a particular maker of a particular bed, and therefore He created a bed
|
|
which is essentially and by nature one only.
|
|
|
|
So we believe.
|
|
|
|
Shall we, then, speak of Him as the natural author or maker of the bed?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied; inasmuch as by the natural process of creation He is
|
|
the author of this and of all other things.
|
|
|
|
And what shall we say of the carpenter--is not he also the maker of the
|
|
bed?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
But would you call the painter a creator and maker?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Yet if he is not the maker, what is he in relation to the bed?
|
|
|
|
I think, he said, that we may fairly designate him as the imitator of
|
|
that which the others make.
|
|
|
|
Good, I said; then you call him who is third in the descent from nature
|
|
an imitator?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
And the tragic poet is an imitator, and therefore, like all other
|
|
imitators, he is thrice removed from the king and from the truth?
|
|
|
|
That appears to be so.
|
|
|
|
Then about the imitator we are agreed. And what about the painter?--I
|
|
would like to know whether he may be thought to imitate that which
|
|
originally exists in nature, or only the creations of artists?
|
|
|
|
The latter.
|
|
|
|
As they are or as they appear? you have still to determine this.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I mean, that you may look at a bed from different points of view,
|
|
obliquely or directly or from any other point of view, and the bed will
|
|
appear different, but there is no difference in reality. And the same of
|
|
all things.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, the difference is only apparent.
|
|
|
|
Now let me ask you another question: Which is the art of painting
|
|
designed to be--an imitation of things as they are, or as they
|
|
appear--of appearance or of reality?
|
|
|
|
Of appearance.
|
|
|
|
Then the imitator, I said, is a long way off the truth, and can do all
|
|
things because he lightly touches on a small part of them, and that part
|
|
an image. For example: A painter will paint a cobbler, carpenter, or
|
|
any other artist, though he knows nothing of their arts; and, if he is
|
|
a good artist, he may deceive children or simple persons, when he shows
|
|
them his picture of a carpenter from a distance, and they will fancy
|
|
that they are looking at a real carpenter.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And whenever any one informs us that he has found a man who knows all
|
|
the arts, and all things else that anybody knows, and every single thing
|
|
with a higher degree of accuracy than any other man--whoever tells us
|
|
this, I think that we can only imagine him to be a simple creature who
|
|
is likely to have been deceived by some wizard or actor whom he met, and
|
|
whom he thought all-knowing, because he himself was unable to analyse
|
|
the nature of knowledge and ignorance and imitation.
|
|
|
|
Most true.
|
|
|
|
And so, when we hear persons saying that the tragedians, and Homer, who
|
|
is at their head, know all the arts and all things human, virtue as well
|
|
as vice, and divine things too, for that the good poet cannot compose
|
|
well unless he knows his subject, and that he who has not this knowledge
|
|
can never be a poet, we ought to consider whether here also there may
|
|
not be a similar illusion. Perhaps they may have come across imitators
|
|
and been deceived by them; they may not have remembered when they saw
|
|
their works that these were but imitations thrice removed from the
|
|
truth, and could easily be made without any knowledge of the truth,
|
|
because they are appearances only and not realities? Or, after all, they
|
|
may be in the right, and poets do really know the things about which
|
|
they seem to the many to speak so well?
|
|
|
|
The question, he said, should by all means be considered.
|
|
|
|
Now do you suppose that if a person were able to make the original as
|
|
well as the image, he would seriously devote himself to the image-making
|
|
branch? Would he allow imitation to be the ruling principle of his life,
|
|
as if he had nothing higher in him?
|
|
|
|
I should say not.
|
|
|
|
The real artist, who knew what he was imitating, would be interested in
|
|
realities and not in imitations; and would desire to leave as memorials
|
|
of himself works many and fair; and, instead of being the author of
|
|
encomiums, he would prefer to be the theme of them.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that would be to him a source of much greater honour and
|
|
profit.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, we must put a question to Homer; not about medicine, or
|
|
any of the arts to which his poems only incidentally refer: we are not
|
|
going to ask him, or any other poet, whether he has cured patients
|
|
like Asclepius, or left behind him a school of medicine such as the
|
|
Asclepiads were, or whether he only talks about medicine and other arts
|
|
at second-hand; but we have a right to know respecting military tactics,
|
|
politics, education, which are the chiefest and noblest subjects of his
|
|
poems, and we may fairly ask him about them. 'Friend Homer,' then we say
|
|
to him, 'if you are only in the second remove from truth in what you say
|
|
of virtue, and not in the third--not an image maker or imitator--and
|
|
if you are able to discern what pursuits make men better or worse in
|
|
private or public life, tell us what State was ever better governed by
|
|
your help? The good order of Lacedaemon is due to Lycurgus, and many
|
|
other cities great and small have been similarly benefited by others;
|
|
but who says that you have been a good legislator to them and have done
|
|
them any good? Italy and Sicily boast of Charondas, and there is Solon
|
|
who is renowned among us; but what city has anything to say about you?'
|
|
Is there any city which he might name?
|
|
|
|
I think not, said Glaucon; not even the Homerids themselves pretend that
|
|
he was a legislator.
|
|
|
|
Well, but is there any war on record which was carried on successfully
|
|
by him, or aided by his counsels, when he was alive?
|
|
|
|
There is not.
|
|
|
|
Or is there any invention of his, applicable to the arts or to human
|
|
life, such as Thales the Milesian or Anacharsis the Scythian, and other
|
|
ingenious men have conceived, which is attributed to him?
|
|
|
|
There is absolutely nothing of the kind.
|
|
|
|
But, if Homer never did any public service, was he privately a guide or
|
|
teacher of any? Had he in his lifetime friends who loved to associate
|
|
with him, and who handed down to posterity an Homeric way of life, such
|
|
as was established by Pythagoras who was so greatly beloved for his
|
|
wisdom, and whose followers are to this day quite celebrated for the
|
|
order which was named after him?
|
|
|
|
Nothing of the kind is recorded of him. For surely, Socrates,
|
|
Creophylus, the companion of Homer, that child of flesh, whose name
|
|
always makes us laugh, might be more justly ridiculed for his stupidity,
|
|
if, as is said, Homer was greatly neglected by him and others in his own
|
|
day when he was alive?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I replied, that is the tradition. But can you imagine, Glaucon,
|
|
that if Homer had really been able to educate and improve mankind--if he
|
|
had possessed knowledge and not been a mere imitator--can you imagine,
|
|
I say, that he would not have had many followers, and been honoured and
|
|
loved by them? Protagoras of Abdera, and Prodicus of Ceos, and a host of
|
|
others, have only to whisper to their contemporaries: 'You will never be
|
|
able to manage either your own house or your own State until you appoint
|
|
us to be your ministers of education'--and this ingenious device of
|
|
theirs has such an effect in making men love them that their companions
|
|
all but carry them about on their shoulders. And is it conceivable that
|
|
the contemporaries of Homer, or again of Hesiod, would have allowed
|
|
either of them to go about as rhapsodists, if they had really been able
|
|
to make mankind virtuous? Would they not have been as unwilling to part
|
|
with them as with gold, and have compelled them to stay at home with
|
|
them? Or, if the master would not stay, then the disciples would have
|
|
followed him about everywhere, until they had got education enough?
|
|
|
|
Yes, Socrates, that, I think, is quite true.
|
|
|
|
Then must we not infer that all these poetical individuals, beginning
|
|
with Homer, are only imitators; they copy images of virtue and the like,
|
|
but the truth they never reach? The poet is like a painter who, as
|
|
we have already observed, will make a likeness of a cobbler though he
|
|
understands nothing of cobbling; and his picture is good enough for
|
|
those who know no more than he does, and judge only by colours and
|
|
figures.
|
|
|
|
Quite so.
|
|
|
|
In like manner the poet with his words and phrases may be said to lay on
|
|
the colours of the several arts, himself understanding their nature only
|
|
enough to imitate them; and other people, who are as ignorant as he is,
|
|
and judge only from his words, imagine that if he speaks of cobbling,
|
|
or of military tactics, or of anything else, in metre and harmony and
|
|
rhythm, he speaks very well--such is the sweet influence which melody
|
|
and rhythm by nature have. And I think that you must have observed again
|
|
and again what a poor appearance the tales of poets make when stripped
|
|
of the colours which music puts upon them, and recited in simple prose.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said.
|
|
|
|
They are like faces which were never really beautiful, but only
|
|
blooming; and now the bloom of youth has passed away from them?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
Here is another point: The imitator or maker of the image knows nothing
|
|
of true existence; he knows appearances only. Am I not right?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then let us have a clear understanding, and not be satisfied with half
|
|
an explanation.
|
|
|
|
Proceed.
|
|
|
|
Of the painter we say that he will paint reins, and he will paint a bit?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the worker in leather and brass will make them?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
But does the painter know the right form of the bit and reins? Nay,
|
|
hardly even the workers in brass and leather who make them; only the
|
|
horseman who knows how to use them--he knows their right form.
|
|
|
|
Most true.
|
|
|
|
And may we not say the same of all things?
|
|
|
|
What?
|
|
|
|
That there are three arts which are concerned with all things: one which
|
|
uses, another which makes, a third which imitates them?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the excellence or beauty or truth of every structure, animate or
|
|
inanimate, and of every action of man, is relative to the use for which
|
|
nature or the artist has intended them.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then the user of them must have the greatest experience of them, and
|
|
he must indicate to the maker the good or bad qualities which develop
|
|
themselves in use; for example, the flute-player will tell the
|
|
flute-maker which of his flutes is satisfactory to the performer; he
|
|
will tell him how he ought to make them, and the other will attend to
|
|
his instructions?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
The one knows and therefore speaks with authority about the goodness and
|
|
badness of flutes, while the other, confiding in him, will do what he is
|
|
told by him?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
The instrument is the same, but about the excellence or badness of it
|
|
the maker will only attain to a correct belief; and this he will gain
|
|
from him who knows, by talking to him and being compelled to hear what
|
|
he has to say, whereas the user will have knowledge?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
But will the imitator have either? Will he know from use whether or no
|
|
his drawing is correct or beautiful? or will he have right opinion
|
|
from being compelled to associate with another who knows and gives him
|
|
instructions about what he should draw?
|
|
|
|
Neither.
|
|
|
|
Then he will no more have true opinion than he will have knowledge about
|
|
the goodness or badness of his imitations?
|
|
|
|
I suppose not.
|
|
|
|
The imitative artist will be in a brilliant state of intelligence about
|
|
his own creations?
|
|
|
|
Nay, very much the reverse.
|
|
|
|
And still he will go on imitating without knowing what makes a thing
|
|
good or bad, and may be expected therefore to imitate only that which
|
|
appears to be good to the ignorant multitude?
|
|
|
|
Just so.
|
|
|
|
Thus far then we are pretty well agreed that the imitator has no
|
|
knowledge worth mentioning of what he imitates. Imitation is only a kind
|
|
of play or sport, and the tragic poets, whether they write in Iambic or
|
|
in Heroic verse, are imitators in the highest degree?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And now tell me, I conjure you, has not imitation been shown by us to be
|
|
concerned with that which is thrice removed from the truth?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And what is the faculty in man to which imitation is addressed?
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I will explain: The body which is large when seen near, appears small
|
|
when seen at a distance?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the same object appears straight when looked at out of the water,
|
|
and crooked when in the water; and the concave becomes convex, owing to
|
|
the illusion about colours to which the sight is liable. Thus every sort
|
|
of confusion is revealed within us; and this is that weakness of the
|
|
human mind on which the art of conjuring and of deceiving by light and
|
|
shadow and other ingenious devices imposes, having an effect upon us
|
|
like magic.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the arts of measuring and numbering and weighing come to the
|
|
rescue of the human understanding--there is the beauty of them--and the
|
|
apparent greater or less, or more or heavier, no longer have the mastery
|
|
over us, but give way before calculation and measure and weight?
|
|
|
|
Most true.
|
|
|
|
And this, surely, must be the work of the calculating and rational
|
|
principle in the soul?
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
And when this principle measures and certifies that some things are
|
|
equal, or that some are greater or less than others, there occurs an
|
|
apparent contradiction?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
But were we not saying that such a contradiction is impossible--the same
|
|
faculty cannot have contrary opinions at the same time about the same
|
|
thing?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Then that part of the soul which has an opinion contrary to measure is
|
|
not the same with that which has an opinion in accordance with measure?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the better part of the soul is likely to be that which trusts to
|
|
measure and calculation?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And that which is opposed to them is one of the inferior principles of
|
|
the soul?
|
|
|
|
No doubt.
|
|
|
|
This was the conclusion at which I was seeking to arrive when I said
|
|
that painting or drawing, and imitation in general, when doing their own
|
|
proper work, are far removed from truth, and the companions and friends
|
|
and associates of a principle within us which is equally removed from
|
|
reason, and that they have no true or healthy aim.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
The imitative art is an inferior who marries an inferior, and has
|
|
inferior offspring.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And is this confined to the sight only, or does it extend to the hearing
|
|
also, relating in fact to what we term poetry?
|
|
|
|
Probably the same would be true of poetry.
|
|
|
|
Do not rely, I said, on a probability derived from the analogy of
|
|
painting; but let us examine further and see whether the faculty with
|
|
which poetical imitation is concerned is good or bad.
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
We may state the question thus:--Imitation imitates the actions of men,
|
|
whether voluntary or involuntary, on which, as they imagine, a good or
|
|
bad result has ensued, and they rejoice or sorrow accordingly. Is there
|
|
anything more?
|
|
|
|
No, there is nothing else.
|
|
|
|
But in all this variety of circumstances is the man at unity with
|
|
himself--or rather, as in the instance of sight there was confusion and
|
|
opposition in his opinions about the same things, so here also is there
|
|
not strife and inconsistency in his life? Though I need hardly raise the
|
|
question again, for I remember that all this has been already admitted;
|
|
and the soul has been acknowledged by us to be full of these and ten
|
|
thousand similar oppositions occurring at the same moment?
|
|
|
|
And we were right, he said.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, thus far we were right; but there was an omission which
|
|
must now be supplied.
|
|
|
|
What was the omission?
|
|
|
|
Were we not saying that a good man, who has the misfortune to lose his
|
|
son or anything else which is most dear to him, will bear the loss with
|
|
more equanimity than another?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
But will he have no sorrow, or shall we say that although he cannot help
|
|
sorrowing, he will moderate his sorrow?
|
|
|
|
The latter, he said, is the truer statement.
|
|
|
|
Tell me: will he be more likely to struggle and hold out against his
|
|
sorrow when he is seen by his equals, or when he is alone?
|
|
|
|
It will make a great difference whether he is seen or not.
|
|
|
|
When he is by himself he will not mind saying or doing many things which
|
|
he would be ashamed of any one hearing or seeing him do?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
There is a principle of law and reason in him which bids him resist, as
|
|
well as a feeling of his misfortune which is forcing him to indulge his
|
|
sorrow?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
But when a man is drawn in two opposite directions, to and from the same
|
|
object, this, as we affirm, necessarily implies two distinct principles
|
|
in him?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
One of them is ready to follow the guidance of the law?
|
|
|
|
How do you mean?
|
|
|
|
The law would say that to be patient under suffering is best, and that
|
|
we should not give way to impatience, as there is no knowing whether
|
|
such things are good or evil; and nothing is gained by impatience; also,
|
|
because no human thing is of serious importance, and grief stands in the
|
|
way of that which at the moment is most required.
|
|
|
|
What is most required? he asked.
|
|
|
|
That we should take counsel about what has happened, and when the dice
|
|
have been thrown order our affairs in the way which reason deems best;
|
|
not, like children who have had a fall, keeping hold of the part struck
|
|
and wasting time in setting up a howl, but always accustoming the soul
|
|
forthwith to apply a remedy, raising up that which is sickly and fallen,
|
|
banishing the cry of sorrow by the healing art.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is the true way of meeting the attacks of fortune.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and the higher principle is ready to follow this suggestion
|
|
of reason?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And the other principle, which inclines us to recollection of our
|
|
troubles and to lamentation, and can never have enough of them, we may
|
|
call irrational, useless, and cowardly?
|
|
|
|
Indeed, we may.
|
|
|
|
And does not the latter--I mean the rebellious principle--furnish a
|
|
great variety of materials for imitation? Whereas the wise and calm
|
|
temperament, being always nearly equable, is not easy to imitate or
|
|
to appreciate when imitated, especially at a public festival when a
|
|
promiscuous crowd is assembled in a theatre. For the feeling represented
|
|
is one to which they are strangers.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then the imitative poet who aims at being popular is not by nature made,
|
|
nor is his art intended, to please or to affect the rational principle
|
|
in the soul; but he will prefer the passionate and fitful temper, which
|
|
is easily imitated?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And now we may fairly take him and place him by the side of the painter,
|
|
for he is like him in two ways: first, inasmuch as his creations have an
|
|
inferior degree of truth--in this, I say, he is like him; and he is
|
|
also like him in being concerned with an inferior part of the soul; and
|
|
therefore we shall be right in refusing to admit him into a well-ordered
|
|
State, because he awakens and nourishes and strengthens the feelings
|
|
and impairs the reason. As in a city when the evil are permitted to have
|
|
authority and the good are put out of the way, so in the soul of man,
|
|
as we maintain, the imitative poet implants an evil constitution, for he
|
|
indulges the irrational nature which has no discernment of greater
|
|
and less, but thinks the same thing at one time great and at another
|
|
small--he is a manufacturer of images and is very far removed from the
|
|
truth.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
But we have not yet brought forward the heaviest count in our
|
|
accusation:--the power which poetry has of harming even the good (and
|
|
there are very few who are not harmed), is surely an awful thing?
|
|
|
|
Yes, certainly, if the effect is what you say.
|
|
|
|
Hear and judge: The best of us, as I conceive, when we listen to a
|
|
passage of Homer, or one of the tragedians, in which he represents
|
|
some pitiful hero who is drawling out his sorrows in a long oration, or
|
|
weeping, and smiting his breast--the best of us, you know, delight in
|
|
giving way to sympathy, and are in raptures at the excellence of the
|
|
poet who stirs our feelings most.
|
|
|
|
Yes, of course I know.
|
|
|
|
But when any sorrow of our own happens to us, then you may observe that
|
|
we pride ourselves on the opposite quality--we would fain be quiet and
|
|
patient; this is the manly part, and the other which delighted us in the
|
|
recitation is now deemed to be the part of a woman.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Now can we be right in praising and admiring another who is doing that
|
|
which any one of us would abominate and be ashamed of in his own person?
|
|
|
|
No, he said, that is certainly not reasonable.
|
|
|
|
Nay, I said, quite reasonable from one point of view.
|
|
|
|
What point of view?
|
|
|
|
If you consider, I said, that when in misfortune we feel a natural
|
|
hunger and desire to relieve our sorrow by weeping and lamentation, and
|
|
that this feeling which is kept under control in our own calamities is
|
|
satisfied and delighted by the poets;--the better nature in each of
|
|
us, not having been sufficiently trained by reason or habit, allows the
|
|
sympathetic element to break loose because the sorrow is another's;
|
|
and the spectator fancies that there can be no disgrace to himself in
|
|
praising and pitying any one who comes telling him what a good man he
|
|
is, and making a fuss about his troubles; he thinks that the pleasure
|
|
is a gain, and why should he be supercilious and lose this and the poem
|
|
too? Few persons ever reflect, as I should imagine, that from the evil
|
|
of other men something of evil is communicated to themselves. And so
|
|
the feeling of sorrow which has gathered strength at the sight of the
|
|
misfortunes of others is with difficulty repressed in our own.
|
|
|
|
How very true!
|
|
|
|
And does not the same hold also of the ridiculous? There are jests which
|
|
you would be ashamed to make yourself, and yet on the comic stage, or
|
|
indeed in private, when you hear them, you are greatly amused by them,
|
|
and are not at all disgusted at their unseemliness;--the case of pity
|
|
is repeated;--there is a principle in human nature which is disposed to
|
|
raise a laugh, and this which you once restrained by reason, because you
|
|
were afraid of being thought a buffoon, is now let out again; and
|
|
having stimulated the risible faculty at the theatre, you are betrayed
|
|
unconsciously to yourself into playing the comic poet at home.
|
|
|
|
Quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And the same may be said of lust and anger and all the other affections,
|
|
of desire and pain and pleasure, which are held to be inseparable
|
|
from every action--in all of them poetry feeds and waters the passions
|
|
instead of drying them up; she lets them rule, although they ought to be
|
|
controlled, if mankind are ever to increase in happiness and virtue.
|
|
|
|
I cannot deny it.
|
|
|
|
Therefore, Glaucon, I said, whenever you meet with any of the eulogists
|
|
of Homer declaring that he has been the educator of Hellas, and that he
|
|
is profitable for education and for the ordering of human things, and
|
|
that you should take him up again and again and get to know him and
|
|
regulate your whole life according to him, we may love and honour those
|
|
who say these things--they are excellent people, as far as their lights
|
|
extend; and we are ready to acknowledge that Homer is the greatest
|
|
of poets and first of tragedy writers; but we must remain firm in our
|
|
conviction that hymns to the gods and praises of famous men are the only
|
|
poetry which ought to be admitted into our State. For if you go beyond
|
|
this and allow the honeyed muse to enter, either in epic or lyric verse,
|
|
not law and the reason of mankind, which by common consent have ever
|
|
been deemed best, but pleasure and pain will be the rulers in our State.
|
|
|
|
That is most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And now since we have reverted to the subject of poetry, let this our
|
|
defence serve to show the reasonableness of our former judgment in
|
|
sending away out of our State an art having the tendencies which we have
|
|
described; for reason constrained us. But that she may not impute to us
|
|
any harshness or want of politeness, let us tell her that there is an
|
|
ancient quarrel between philosophy and poetry; of which there are many
|
|
proofs, such as the saying of 'the yelping hound howling at her lord,'
|
|
or of one 'mighty in the vain talk of fools,' and 'the mob of sages
|
|
circumventing Zeus,' and the 'subtle thinkers who are beggars after
|
|
all'; and there are innumerable other signs of ancient enmity between
|
|
them. Notwithstanding this, let us assure our sweet friend and the
|
|
sister arts of imitation, that if she will only prove her title to exist
|
|
in a well-ordered State we shall be delighted to receive her--we are
|
|
very conscious of her charms; but we may not on that account betray the
|
|
truth. I dare say, Glaucon, that you are as much charmed by her as I am,
|
|
especially when she appears in Homer?
|
|
|
|
Yes, indeed, I am greatly charmed.
|
|
|
|
Shall I propose, then, that she be allowed to return from exile, but
|
|
upon this condition only--that she make a defence of herself in lyrical
|
|
or some other metre?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And we may further grant to those of her defenders who are lovers of
|
|
poetry and yet not poets the permission to speak in prose on her behalf:
|
|
let them show not only that she is pleasant but also useful to States
|
|
and to human life, and we will listen in a kindly spirit; for if this
|
|
can be proved we shall surely be the gainers--I mean, if there is a use
|
|
in poetry as well as a delight?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said, we shall be the gainers.
|
|
|
|
If her defence fails, then, my dear friend, like other persons who are
|
|
enamoured of something, but put a restraint upon themselves when they
|
|
think their desires are opposed to their interests, so too must we after
|
|
the manner of lovers give her up, though not without a struggle. We too
|
|
are inspired by that love of poetry which the education of noble States
|
|
has implanted in us, and therefore we would have her appear at her best
|
|
and truest; but so long as she is unable to make good her defence,
|
|
this argument of ours shall be a charm to us, which we will repeat to
|
|
ourselves while we listen to her strains; that we may not fall away into
|
|
the childish love of her which captivates the many. At all events we
|
|
are well aware that poetry being such as we have described is not to be
|
|
regarded seriously as attaining to the truth; and he who listens to her,
|
|
fearing for the safety of the city which is within him, should be on his
|
|
guard against her seductions and make our words his law.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I quite agree with you.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, my dear Glaucon, for great is the issue at stake, greater
|
|
than appears, whether a man is to be good or bad. And what will any one
|
|
be profited if under the influence of honour or money or power, aye, or
|
|
under the excitement of poetry, he neglect justice and virtue?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; I have been convinced by the argument, as I believe that
|
|
any one else would have been.
|
|
|
|
And yet no mention has been made of the greatest prizes and rewards
|
|
which await virtue.
|
|
|
|
What, are there any greater still? If there are, they must be of an
|
|
inconceivable greatness.
|
|
|
|
Why, I said, what was ever great in a short time? The whole period of
|
|
three score years and ten is surely but a little thing in comparison
|
|
with eternity?
|
|
|
|
Say rather 'nothing,' he replied.
|
|
|
|
And should an immortal being seriously think of this little space rather
|
|
than of the whole?
|
|
|
|
Of the whole, certainly. But why do you ask?
|
|
|
|
Are you not aware, I said, that the soul of man is immortal and
|
|
imperishable?
|
|
|
|
He looked at me in astonishment, and said: No, by heaven: And are you
|
|
really prepared to maintain this?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, I ought to be, and you too--there is no difficulty in
|
|
proving it.
|
|
|
|
I see a great difficulty; but I should like to hear you state this
|
|
argument of which you make so light.
|
|
|
|
Listen then.
|
|
|
|
I am attending.
|
|
|
|
There is a thing which you call good and another which you call evil?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Would you agree with me in thinking that the corrupting and destroying
|
|
element is the evil, and the saving and improving element the good?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And you admit that every thing has a good and also an evil; as
|
|
ophthalmia is the evil of the eyes and disease of the whole body; as
|
|
mildew is of corn, and rot of timber, or rust of copper and iron: in
|
|
everything, or in almost everything, there is an inherent evil and
|
|
disease?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said.
|
|
|
|
And anything which is infected by any of these evils is made evil, and
|
|
at last wholly dissolves and dies?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
The vice and evil which is inherent in each is the destruction of each;
|
|
and if this does not destroy them there is nothing else that will; for
|
|
good certainly will not destroy them, nor again, that which is neither
|
|
good nor evil.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
If, then, we find any nature which having this inherent corruption
|
|
cannot be dissolved or destroyed, we may be certain that of such a
|
|
nature there is no destruction?
|
|
|
|
That may be assumed.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, and is there no evil which corrupts the soul?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, there are all the evils which we were just now passing in
|
|
review: unrighteousness, intemperance, cowardice, ignorance.
|
|
|
|
But does any of these dissolve or destroy her?--and here do not let us
|
|
fall into the error of supposing that the unjust and foolish man, when
|
|
he is detected, perishes through his own injustice, which is an evil
|
|
of the soul. Take the analogy of the body: The evil of the body is a
|
|
disease which wastes and reduces and annihilates the body; and all the
|
|
things of which we were just now speaking come to annihilation through
|
|
their own corruption attaching to them and inhering in them and so
|
|
destroying them. Is not this true?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Consider the soul in like manner. Does the injustice or other evil which
|
|
exists in the soul waste and consume her? Do they by attaching to the
|
|
soul and inhering in her at last bring her to death, and so separate her
|
|
from the body?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
And yet, I said, it is unreasonable to suppose that anything can perish
|
|
from without through affection of external evil which could not be
|
|
destroyed from within by a corruption of its own?
|
|
|
|
It is, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Consider, I said, Glaucon, that even the badness of food, whether
|
|
staleness, decomposition, or any other bad quality, when confined to
|
|
the actual food, is not supposed to destroy the body; although, if the
|
|
badness of food communicates corruption to the body, then we should say
|
|
that the body has been destroyed by a corruption of itself, which is
|
|
disease, brought on by this; but that the body, being one thing, can be
|
|
destroyed by the badness of food, which is another, and which does not
|
|
engender any natural infection--this we shall absolutely deny?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And, on the same principle, unless some bodily evil can produce an evil
|
|
of the soul, we must not suppose that the soul, which is one thing, can
|
|
be dissolved by any merely external evil which belongs to another?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, there is reason in that.
|
|
|
|
Either, then, let us refute this conclusion, or, while it remains
|
|
unrefuted, let us never say that fever, or any other disease, or the
|
|
knife put to the throat, or even the cutting up of the whole body into
|
|
the minutest pieces, can destroy the soul, until she herself is proved
|
|
to become more unholy or unrighteous in consequence of these things
|
|
being done to the body; but that the soul, or anything else if not
|
|
destroyed by an internal evil, can be destroyed by an external one, is
|
|
not to be affirmed by any man.
|
|
|
|
And surely, he replied, no one will ever prove that the souls of men
|
|
become more unjust in consequence of death.
|
|
|
|
But if some one who would rather not admit the immortality of the soul
|
|
boldly denies this, and says that the dying do really become more
|
|
evil and unrighteous, then, if the speaker is right, I suppose that
|
|
injustice, like disease, must be assumed to be fatal to the unjust, and
|
|
that those who take this disorder die by the natural inherent power of
|
|
destruction which evil has, and which kills them sooner or later, but
|
|
in quite another way from that in which, at present, the wicked receive
|
|
death at the hands of others as the penalty of their deeds?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he said, in that case injustice, if fatal to the unjust, will not
|
|
be so very terrible to him, for he will be delivered from evil. But I
|
|
rather suspect the opposite to be the truth, and that injustice which,
|
|
if it have the power, will murder others, keeps the murderer alive--aye,
|
|
and well awake too; so far removed is her dwelling-place from being a
|
|
house of death.
|
|
|
|
True, I said; if the inherent natural vice or evil of the soul is unable
|
|
to kill or destroy her, hardly will that which is appointed to be the
|
|
destruction of some other body, destroy a soul or anything else except
|
|
that of which it was appointed to be the destruction.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that can hardly be.
|
|
|
|
But the soul which cannot be destroyed by an evil, whether inherent
|
|
or external, must exist for ever, and if existing for ever, must be
|
|
immortal?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
That is the conclusion, I said; and, if a true conclusion, then the
|
|
souls must always be the same, for if none be destroyed they will not
|
|
diminish in number. Neither will they increase, for the increase of the
|
|
immortal natures must come from something mortal, and all things would
|
|
thus end in immortality.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
But this we cannot believe--reason will not allow us--any more than we
|
|
can believe the soul, in her truest nature, to be full of variety and
|
|
difference and dissimilarity.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? he said.
|
|
|
|
The soul, I said, being, as is now proven, immortal, must be the fairest
|
|
of compositions and cannot be compounded of many elements?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Her immortality is demonstrated by the previous argument, and there are
|
|
many other proofs; but to see her as she really is, not as we now behold
|
|
her, marred by communion with the body and other miseries, you must
|
|
contemplate her with the eye of reason, in her original purity; and
|
|
then her beauty will be revealed, and justice and injustice and all the
|
|
things which we have described will be manifested more clearly. Thus
|
|
far, we have spoken the truth concerning her as she appears at present,
|
|
but we must remember also that we have seen her only in a condition
|
|
which may be compared to that of the sea-god Glaucus, whose original
|
|
image can hardly be discerned because his natural members are broken
|
|
off and crushed and damaged by the waves in all sorts of ways, and
|
|
incrustations have grown over them of seaweed and shells and stones, so
|
|
that he is more like some monster than he is to his own natural form.
|
|
And the soul which we behold is in a similar condition, disfigured by
|
|
ten thousand ills. But not there, Glaucon, not there must we look.
|
|
|
|
Where then?
|
|
|
|
At her love of wisdom. Let us see whom she affects, and what society and
|
|
converse she seeks in virtue of her near kindred with the immortal
|
|
and eternal and divine; also how different she would become if wholly
|
|
following this superior principle, and borne by a divine impulse out of
|
|
the ocean in which she now is, and disengaged from the stones and shells
|
|
and things of earth and rock which in wild variety spring up around her
|
|
because she feeds upon earth, and is overgrown by the good things of
|
|
this life as they are termed: then you would see her as she is, and know
|
|
whether she have one shape only or many, or what her nature is. Of her
|
|
affections and of the forms which she takes in this present life I think
|
|
that we have now said enough.
|
|
|
|
True, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And thus, I said, we have fulfilled the conditions of the argument; we
|
|
have not introduced the rewards and glories of justice, which, as you
|
|
were saying, are to be found in Homer and Hesiod; but justice in her own
|
|
nature has been shown to be best for the soul in her own nature. Let a
|
|
man do what is just, whether he have the ring of Gyges or not, and even
|
|
if in addition to the ring of Gyges he put on the helmet of Hades.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And now, Glaucon, there will be no harm in further enumerating how
|
|
many and how great are the rewards which justice and the other virtues
|
|
procure to the soul from gods and men, both in life and after death.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, he said.
|
|
|
|
Will you repay me, then, what you borrowed in the argument?
|
|
|
|
What did I borrow?
|
|
|
|
The assumption that the just man should appear unjust and the unjust
|
|
just: for you were of opinion that even if the true state of the case
|
|
could not possibly escape the eyes of gods and men, still this admission
|
|
ought to be made for the sake of the argument, in order that pure
|
|
justice might be weighed against pure injustice. Do you remember?
|
|
|
|
I should be much to blame if I had forgotten.
|
|
|
|
Then, as the cause is decided, I demand on behalf of justice that the
|
|
estimation in which she is held by gods and men and which we acknowledge
|
|
to be her due should now be restored to her by us; since she has been
|
|
shown to confer reality, and not to deceive those who truly possess her,
|
|
let what has been taken from her be given back, that so she may win that
|
|
palm of appearance which is hers also, and which she gives to her own.
|
|
|
|
The demand, he said, is just.
|
|
|
|
In the first place, I said--and this is the first thing which you will
|
|
have to give back--the nature both of the just and unjust is truly known
|
|
to the gods.
|
|
|
|
Granted.
|
|
|
|
And if they are both known to them, one must be the friend and the other
|
|
the enemy of the gods, as we admitted from the beginning?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the friend of the gods may be supposed to receive from them all
|
|
things at their best, excepting only such evil as is the necessary
|
|
consequence of former sins?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then this must be our notion of the just man, that even when he is in
|
|
poverty or sickness, or any other seeming misfortune, all things will
|
|
in the end work together for good to him in life and death: for the gods
|
|
have a care of any one whose desire is to become just and to be like
|
|
God, as far as man can attain the divine likeness, by the pursuit of
|
|
virtue?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; if he is like God he will surely not be neglected by him.
|
|
|
|
And of the unjust may not the opposite be supposed?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Such, then, are the palms of victory which the gods give the just?
|
|
|
|
That is my conviction.
|
|
|
|
And what do they receive of men? Look at things as they really are, and
|
|
you will see that the clever unjust are in the case of runners, who run
|
|
well from the starting-place to the goal but not back again from the
|
|
goal: they go off at a great pace, but in the end only look foolish,
|
|
slinking away with their ears draggling on their shoulders, and without
|
|
a crown; but the true runner comes to the finish and receives the prize
|
|
and is crowned. And this is the way with the just; he who endures to the
|
|
end of every action and occasion of his entire life has a good report
|
|
and carries off the prize which men have to bestow.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And now you must allow me to repeat of the just the blessings which you
|
|
were attributing to the fortunate unjust. I shall say of them, what you
|
|
were saying of the others, that as they grow older, they become rulers
|
|
in their own city if they care to be; they marry whom they like and give
|
|
in marriage to whom they will; all that you said of the others I now say
|
|
of these. And, on the other hand, of the unjust I say that the greater
|
|
number, even though they escape in their youth, are found out at last
|
|
and look foolish at the end of their course, and when they come to be
|
|
old and miserable are flouted alike by stranger and citizen; they are
|
|
beaten and then come those things unfit for ears polite, as you truly
|
|
term them; they will be racked and have their eyes burned out, as you
|
|
were saying. And you may suppose that I have repeated the remainder of
|
|
your tale of horrors. But will you let me assume, without reciting them,
|
|
that these things are true?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said, what you say is true.
|
|
|
|
These, then, are the prizes and rewards and gifts which are bestowed
|
|
upon the just by gods and men in this present life, in addition to the
|
|
other good things which justice of herself provides.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; and they are fair and lasting.
|
|
|
|
And yet, I said, all these are as nothing either in number or greatness
|
|
in comparison with those other recompenses which await both just and
|
|
unjust after death. And you ought to hear them, and then both just and
|
|
unjust will have received from us a full payment of the debt which the
|
|
argument owes to them.
|
|
|
|
Speak, he said; there are few things which I would more gladly hear.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, I will tell you a tale; not one of the tales which
|
|
Odysseus tells to the hero Alcinous, yet this too is a tale of a hero,
|
|
Er the son of Armenius, a Pamphylian by birth. He was slain in battle,
|
|
and ten days afterwards, when the bodies of the dead were taken up
|
|
already in a state of corruption, his body was found unaffected by
|
|
decay, and carried away home to be buried. And on the twelfth day, as he
|
|
was lying on the funeral pile, he returned to life and told them what he
|
|
had seen in the other world. He said that when his soul left the body
|
|
he went on a journey with a great company, and that they came to a
|
|
mysterious place at which there were two openings in the earth; they
|
|
were near together, and over against them were two other openings in the
|
|
heaven above. In the intermediate space there were judges seated, who
|
|
commanded the just, after they had given judgment on them and had bound
|
|
their sentences in front of them, to ascend by the heavenly way on the
|
|
right hand; and in like manner the unjust were bidden by them to descend
|
|
by the lower way on the left hand; these also bore the symbols of their
|
|
deeds, but fastened on their backs. He drew near, and they told him that
|
|
he was to be the messenger who would carry the report of the other world
|
|
to men, and they bade him hear and see all that was to be heard and seen
|
|
in that place. Then he beheld and saw on one side the souls departing at
|
|
either opening of heaven and earth when sentence had been given on them;
|
|
and at the two other openings other souls, some ascending out of the
|
|
earth dusty and worn with travel, some descending out of heaven clean
|
|
and bright. And arriving ever and anon they seemed to have come from a
|
|
long journey, and they went forth with gladness into the meadow, where
|
|
they encamped as at a festival; and those who knew one another embraced
|
|
and conversed, the souls which came from earth curiously enquiring about
|
|
the things above, and the souls which came from heaven about the things
|
|
beneath. And they told one another of what had happened by the way,
|
|
those from below weeping and sorrowing at the remembrance of the things
|
|
which they had endured and seen in their journey beneath the earth
|
|
(now the journey lasted a thousand years), while those from above were
|
|
describing heavenly delights and visions of inconceivable beauty. The
|
|
story, Glaucon, would take too long to tell; but the sum was this:--He
|
|
said that for every wrong which they had done to any one they suffered
|
|
tenfold; or once in a hundred years--such being reckoned to be the
|
|
length of man's life, and the penalty being thus paid ten times in a
|
|
thousand years. If, for example, there were any who had been the cause
|
|
of many deaths, or had betrayed or enslaved cities or armies, or been
|
|
guilty of any other evil behaviour, for each and all of their offences
|
|
they received punishment ten times over, and the rewards of beneficence
|
|
and justice and holiness were in the same proportion. I need hardly
|
|
repeat what he said concerning young children dying almost as soon
|
|
as they were born. Of piety and impiety to gods and parents, and of
|
|
murderers, there were retributions other and greater far which he
|
|
described. He mentioned that he was present when one of the spirits
|
|
asked another, 'Where is Ardiaeus the Great?' (Now this Ardiaeus lived
|
|
a thousand years before the time of Er: he had been the tyrant of
|
|
some city of Pamphylia, and had murdered his aged father and his elder
|
|
brother, and was said to have committed many other abominable crimes.)
|
|
The answer of the other spirit was: 'He comes not hither and will never
|
|
come. And this,' said he, 'was one of the dreadful sights which we
|
|
ourselves witnessed. We were at the mouth of the cavern, and, having
|
|
completed all our experiences, were about to reascend, when of a sudden
|
|
Ardiaeus appeared and several others, most of whom were tyrants; and
|
|
there were also besides the tyrants private individuals who had been
|
|
great criminals: they were just, as they fancied, about to return into
|
|
the upper world, but the mouth, instead of admitting them, gave a roar,
|
|
whenever any of these incurable sinners or some one who had not been
|
|
sufficiently punished tried to ascend; and then wild men of fiery
|
|
aspect, who were standing by and heard the sound, seized and carried
|
|
them off; and Ardiaeus and others they bound head and foot and hand, and
|
|
threw them down and flayed them with scourges, and dragged them along
|
|
the road at the side, carding them on thorns like wool, and declaring
|
|
to the passers-by what were their crimes, and that they were being taken
|
|
away to be cast into hell.' And of all the many terrors which they had
|
|
endured, he said that there was none like the terror which each of them
|
|
felt at that moment, lest they should hear the voice; and when there was
|
|
silence, one by one they ascended with exceeding joy. These, said Er,
|
|
were the penalties and retributions, and there were blessings as great.
|
|
|
|
Now when the spirits which were in the meadow had tarried seven days,
|
|
on the eighth they were obliged to proceed on their journey, and, on the
|
|
fourth day after, he said that they came to a place where they could
|
|
see from above a line of light, straight as a column, extending right
|
|
through the whole heaven and through the earth, in colour resembling the
|
|
rainbow, only brighter and purer; another day's journey brought them to
|
|
the place, and there, in the midst of the light, they saw the ends of
|
|
the chains of heaven let down from above: for this light is the belt
|
|
of heaven, and holds together the circle of the universe, like the
|
|
under-girders of a trireme. From these ends is extended the spindle of
|
|
Necessity, on which all the revolutions turn. The shaft and hook of this
|
|
spindle are made of steel, and the whorl is made partly of steel and
|
|
also partly of other materials. Now the whorl is in form like the whorl
|
|
used on earth; and the description of it implied that there is one large
|
|
hollow whorl which is quite scooped out, and into this is fitted another
|
|
lesser one, and another, and another, and four others, making eight
|
|
in all, like vessels which fit into one another; the whorls show their
|
|
edges on the upper side, and on their lower side all together form one
|
|
continuous whorl. This is pierced by the spindle, which is driven home
|
|
through the centre of the eighth. The first and outermost whorl has the
|
|
rim broadest, and the seven inner whorls are narrower, in the following
|
|
proportions--the sixth is next to the first in size, the fourth next
|
|
to the sixth; then comes the eighth; the seventh is fifth, the fifth
|
|
is sixth, the third is seventh, last and eighth comes the second.
|
|
The largest (or fixed stars) is spangled, and the seventh (or sun) is
|
|
brightest; the eighth (or moon) coloured by the reflected light of the
|
|
seventh; the second and fifth (Saturn and Mercury) are in colour like
|
|
one another, and yellower than the preceding; the third (Venus) has the
|
|
whitest light; the fourth (Mars) is reddish; the sixth (Jupiter) is in
|
|
whiteness second. Now the whole spindle has the same motion; but, as the
|
|
whole revolves in one direction, the seven inner circles move slowly in
|
|
the other, and of these the swiftest is the eighth; next in swiftness
|
|
are the seventh, sixth, and fifth, which move together; third in
|
|
swiftness appeared to move according to the law of this reversed motion
|
|
the fourth; the third appeared fourth and the second fifth. The spindle
|
|
turns on the knees of Necessity; and on the upper surface of each circle
|
|
is a siren, who goes round with them, hymning a single tone or note. The
|
|
eight together form one harmony; and round about, at equal intervals,
|
|
there is another band, three in number, each sitting upon her throne:
|
|
these are the Fates, daughters of Necessity, who are clothed in white
|
|
robes and have chaplets upon their heads, Lachesis and Clotho
|
|
and Atropos, who accompany with their voices the harmony of the
|
|
sirens--Lachesis singing of the past, Clotho of the present, Atropos of
|
|
the future; Clotho from time to time assisting with a touch of her right
|
|
hand the revolution of the outer circle of the whorl or spindle, and
|
|
Atropos with her left hand touching and guiding the inner ones, and
|
|
Lachesis laying hold of either in turn, first with one hand and then
|
|
with the other.
|
|
|
|
When Er and the spirits arrived, their duty was to go at once to
|
|
Lachesis; but first of all there came a prophet who arranged them in
|
|
order; then he took from the knees of Lachesis lots and samples of
|
|
lives, and having mounted a high pulpit, spoke as follows: 'Hear the
|
|
word of Lachesis, the daughter of Necessity. Mortal souls, behold a new
|
|
cycle of life and mortality. Your genius will not be allotted to you,
|
|
but you will choose your genius; and let him who draws the first lot
|
|
have the first choice, and the life which he chooses shall be his
|
|
destiny. Virtue is free, and as a man honours or dishonours her he will
|
|
have more or less of her; the responsibility is with the chooser--God
|
|
is justified.' When the Interpreter had thus spoken he scattered lots
|
|
indifferently among them all, and each of them took up the lot which
|
|
fell near him, all but Er himself (he was not allowed), and each as
|
|
he took his lot perceived the number which he had obtained. Then the
|
|
Interpreter placed on the ground before them the samples of lives; and
|
|
there were many more lives than the souls present, and they were of all
|
|
sorts. There were lives of every animal and of man in every condition.
|
|
And there were tyrannies among them, some lasting out the tyrant's life,
|
|
others which broke off in the middle and came to an end in poverty and
|
|
exile and beggary; and there were lives of famous men, some who were
|
|
famous for their form and beauty as well as for their strength and
|
|
success in games, or, again, for their birth and the qualities of their
|
|
ancestors; and some who were the reverse of famous for the opposite
|
|
qualities. And of women likewise; there was not, however, any definite
|
|
character in them, because the soul, when choosing a new life, must of
|
|
necessity become different. But there was every other quality, and
|
|
the all mingled with one another, and also with elements of wealth and
|
|
poverty, and disease and health; and there were mean states also. And
|
|
here, my dear Glaucon, is the supreme peril of our human state; and
|
|
therefore the utmost care should be taken. Let each one of us leave
|
|
every other kind of knowledge and seek and follow one thing only, if
|
|
peradventure he may be able to learn and may find some one who will make
|
|
him able to learn and discern between good and evil, and so to choose
|
|
always and everywhere the better life as he has opportunity. He should
|
|
consider the bearing of all these things which have been mentioned
|
|
severally and collectively upon virtue; he should know what the effect
|
|
of beauty is when combined with poverty or wealth in a particular soul,
|
|
and what are the good and evil consequences of noble and humble birth,
|
|
of private and public station, of strength and weakness, of cleverness
|
|
and dullness, and of all the natural and acquired gifts of the soul, and
|
|
the operation of them when conjoined; he will then look at the nature of
|
|
the soul, and from the consideration of all these qualities he will be
|
|
able to determine which is the better and which is the worse; and so
|
|
he will choose, giving the name of evil to the life which will make his
|
|
soul more unjust, and good to the life which will make his soul more
|
|
just; all else he will disregard. For we have seen and know that this is
|
|
the best choice both in life and after death. A man must take with him
|
|
into the world below an adamantine faith in truth and right, that there
|
|
too he may be undazzled by the desire of wealth or the other allurements
|
|
of evil, lest, coming upon tyrannies and similar villainies, he do
|
|
irremediable wrongs to others and suffer yet worse himself; but let him
|
|
know how to choose the mean and avoid the extremes on either side, as
|
|
far as possible, not only in this life but in all that which is to come.
|
|
For this is the way of happiness.
|
|
|
|
And according to the report of the messenger from the other world this
|
|
was what the prophet said at the time: 'Even for the last comer, if he
|
|
chooses wisely and will live diligently, there is appointed a happy and
|
|
not undesirable existence. Let not him who chooses first be careless,
|
|
and let not the last despair.' And when he had spoken, he who had the
|
|
first choice came forward and in a moment chose the greatest tyranny;
|
|
his mind having been darkened by folly and sensuality, he had not
|
|
thought out the whole matter before he chose, and did not at first
|
|
sight perceive that he was fated, among other evils, to devour his own
|
|
children. But when he had time to reflect, and saw what was in the lot,
|
|
he began to beat his breast and lament over his choice, forgetting the
|
|
proclamation of the prophet; for, instead of throwing the blame of his
|
|
misfortune on himself, he accused chance and the gods, and everything
|
|
rather than himself. Now he was one of those who came from heaven, and
|
|
in a former life had dwelt in a well-ordered State, but his virtue was
|
|
a matter of habit only, and he had no philosophy. And it was true of
|
|
others who were similarly overtaken, that the greater number of them
|
|
came from heaven and therefore they had never been schooled by trial,
|
|
whereas the pilgrims who came from earth having themselves suffered and
|
|
seen others suffer, were not in a hurry to choose. And owing to this
|
|
inexperience of theirs, and also because the lot was a chance, many of
|
|
the souls exchanged a good destiny for an evil or an evil for a good.
|
|
For if a man had always on his arrival in this world dedicated himself
|
|
from the first to sound philosophy, and had been moderately fortunate
|
|
in the number of the lot, he might, as the messenger reported, be happy
|
|
here, and also his journey to another life and return to this, instead
|
|
of being rough and underground, would be smooth and heavenly. Most
|
|
curious, he said, was the spectacle--sad and laughable and strange; for
|
|
the choice of the souls was in most cases based on their experience of
|
|
a previous life. There he saw the soul which had once been Orpheus
|
|
choosing the life of a swan out of enmity to the race of women, hating
|
|
to be born of a woman because they had been his murderers; he beheld
|
|
also the soul of Thamyras choosing the life of a nightingale; birds, on
|
|
the other hand, like the swan and other musicians, wanting to be men.
|
|
The soul which obtained the twentieth lot chose the life of a lion, and
|
|
this was the soul of Ajax the son of Telamon, who would not be a man,
|
|
remembering the injustice which was done him in the judgment about the
|
|
arms. The next was Agamemnon, who took the life of an eagle, because,
|
|
like Ajax, he hated human nature by reason of his sufferings. About
|
|
the middle came the lot of Atalanta; she, seeing the great fame of
|
|
an athlete, was unable to resist the temptation: and after her there
|
|
followed the soul of Epeus the son of Panopeus passing into the nature
|
|
of a woman cunning in the arts; and far away among the last who chose,
|
|
the soul of the jester Thersites was putting on the form of a monkey.
|
|
There came also the soul of Odysseus having yet to make a choice, and
|
|
his lot happened to be the last of them all. Now the recollection of
|
|
former toils had disenchanted him of ambition, and he went about for
|
|
a considerable time in search of the life of a private man who had no
|
|
cares; he had some difficulty in finding this, which was lying about and
|
|
had been neglected by everybody else; and when he saw it, he said that
|
|
he would have done the same had his lot been first instead of last,
|
|
and that he was delighted to have it. And not only did men pass into
|
|
animals, but I must also mention that there were animals tame and wild
|
|
who changed into one another and into corresponding human natures--the
|
|
good into the gentle and the evil into the savage, in all sorts of
|
|
combinations.
|
|
|
|
All the souls had now chosen their lives, and they went in the order of
|
|
their choice to Lachesis, who sent with them the genius whom they had
|
|
severally chosen, to be the guardian of their lives and the fulfiller
|
|
of the choice: this genius led the souls first to Clotho, and drew
|
|
them within the revolution of the spindle impelled by her hand, thus
|
|
ratifying the destiny of each; and then, when they were fastened to
|
|
this, carried them to Atropos, who spun the threads and made them
|
|
irreversible, whence without turning round they passed beneath the
|
|
throne of Necessity; and when they had all passed, they marched on in a
|
|
scorching heat to the plain of Forgetfulness, which was a barren waste
|
|
destitute of trees and verdure; and then towards evening they encamped
|
|
by the river of Unmindfulness, whose water no vessel can hold; of this
|
|
they were all obliged to drink a certain quantity, and those who were
|
|
not saved by wisdom drank more than was necessary; and each one as he
|
|
drank forgot all things. Now after they had gone to rest, about the
|
|
middle of the night there was a thunderstorm and earthquake, and then
|
|
in an instant they were driven upwards in all manner of ways to their
|
|
birth, like stars shooting. He himself was hindered from drinking the
|
|
water. But in what manner or by what means he returned to the body he
|
|
could not say; only, in the morning, awaking suddenly, he found himself
|
|
lying on the pyre.
|
|
|
|
And thus, Glaucon, the tale has been saved and has not perished, and
|
|
will save us if we are obedient to the word spoken; and we shall pass
|
|
safely over the river of Forgetfulness and our soul will not be defiled.
|
|
Wherefore my counsel is, that we hold fast ever to the heavenly way and
|
|
follow after justice and virtue always, considering that the soul is
|
|
immortal and able to endure every sort of good and every sort of evil.
|
|
Thus shall we live dear to one another and to the gods, both while
|
|
remaining here and when, like conquerors in the games who go round to
|
|
gather gifts, we receive our reward. And it shall be well with us both
|
|
in this life and in the pilgrimage of a thousand years which we have
|
|
been describing.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Republic, by Plato
|
|
|
|
*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE REPUBLIC ***
|
|
|
|
***** This file should be named 1497.txt or 1497.zip *****
|
|
This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
|
|
http://www.gutenberg.org/1/4/9/1497/
|
|
|
|
Produced by Sue Asscher
|
|
|
|
Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
|
|
will be renamed.
|
|
|
|
Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
|
|
one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
|
|
(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
|
|
permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
|
|
set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
|
|
copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
|
|
protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
|
|
Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
|
|
charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
|
|
do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
|
|
rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
|
|
such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
|
|
research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
|
|
practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
|
|
subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
|
|
redistribution.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
|
|
|
|
THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
|
|
PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
|
|
|
|
To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
|
|
distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
|
|
(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
|
|
Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
|
|
http://gutenberg.org/license).
|
|
|
|
|
|
Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
|
|
electronic works
|
|
|
|
1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
|
|
electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
|
|
and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
|
|
(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
|
|
the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
|
|
all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
|
|
If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
|
|
terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
|
|
entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
|
|
|
|
1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
|
|
used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
|
|
agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
|
|
things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
|
|
even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
|
|
paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
|
|
and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
|
|
works. See paragraph 1.E below.
|
|
|
|
1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
|
|
or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
|
|
collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
|
|
individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
|
|
located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
|
|
copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
|
|
works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
|
|
are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
|
|
freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
|
|
this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
|
|
the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
|
|
keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
|
|
|
|
1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
|
|
what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
|
|
a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
|
|
the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
|
|
before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
|
|
creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
|
|
the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
|
|
States.
|
|
|
|
1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
|
|
|
|
1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
|
|
access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
|
|
whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
|
|
phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
|
|
Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
|
|
copied or distributed:
|
|
|
|
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
|
|
almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
|
|
re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
|
|
with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
|
|
|
|
1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
|
|
from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
|
|
posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
|
|
and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
|
|
or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
|
|
with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
|
|
work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
|
|
through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
|
|
Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
|
|
1.E.9.
|
|
|
|
1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
|
|
with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
|
|
must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
|
|
terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
|
|
to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
|
|
permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
|
|
|
|
1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
|
|
License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
|
|
work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
|
|
|
|
1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
|
|
electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
|
|
prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
|
|
active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm License.
|
|
|
|
1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
|
|
compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
|
|
word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
|
|
distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
|
|
"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
|
|
posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
|
|
you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
|
|
copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
|
|
request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
|
|
form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
|
|
License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
|
|
|
|
1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
|
|
performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
|
|
unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
|
|
|
|
1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
|
|
access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
|
|
that
|
|
|
|
- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
|
|
the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
|
|
you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
|
|
owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
|
|
has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
|
|
Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
|
|
must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
|
|
prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
|
|
returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
|
|
sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
|
|
address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
|
|
the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
|
|
|
|
- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
|
|
you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
|
|
does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
|
|
License. You must require such a user to return or
|
|
destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
|
|
and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
|
|
Project Gutenberg-tm works.
|
|
|
|
- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
|
|
money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
|
|
electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
|
|
of receipt of the work.
|
|
|
|
- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
|
|
distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
|
|
|
|
1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
|
|
electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
|
|
forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
|
|
both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
|
|
Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
|
|
Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
|
|
|
|
1.F.
|
|
|
|
1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
|
|
effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
|
|
public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
|
|
collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
|
|
works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
|
|
"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
|
|
corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
|
|
property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
|
|
computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
|
|
your equipment.
|
|
|
|
1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
|
|
of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
|
|
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
|
|
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
|
|
fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
|
|
LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
|
|
PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
|
|
TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
|
|
LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
|
|
INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
|
|
DAMAGE.
|
|
|
|
1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
|
|
defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
|
|
receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
|
|
written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
|
|
received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
|
|
your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
|
|
the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
|
|
refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
|
|
providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
|
|
receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
|
|
is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
|
|
opportunities to fix the problem.
|
|
|
|
1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
|
|
in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
|
|
WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
|
|
WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
|
|
|
|
1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
|
|
warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
|
|
If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
|
|
law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
|
|
interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
|
|
the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
|
|
provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
|
|
|
|
1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
|
|
trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
|
|
providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
|
|
with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
|
|
promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
|
|
harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
|
|
that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
|
|
or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
|
|
work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
|
|
Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
|
|
|
|
Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
|
|
electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
|
|
including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
|
|
because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
|
|
people in all walks of life.
|
|
|
|
Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
|
|
assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
|
|
goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
|
|
remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
|
|
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
|
|
and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
|
|
To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
|
|
and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
|
|
and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
|
|
Foundation
|
|
|
|
The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
|
|
501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
|
|
state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
|
|
Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
|
|
number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
|
|
http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
|
|
Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
|
|
permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
|
|
|
|
The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
|
|
Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
|
|
throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
|
|
809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
|
|
business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
|
|
information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
|
|
page at http://pglaf.org
|
|
|
|
For additional contact information:
|
|
Dr. Gregory B. Newby
|
|
Chief Executive and Director
|
|
gbnewby@pglaf.org
|
|
|
|
|
|
Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
|
|
Literary Archive Foundation
|
|
|
|
Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
|
|
spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
|
|
increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
|
|
freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
|
|
array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
|
|
($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
|
|
status with the IRS.
|
|
|
|
The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
|
|
charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
|
|
States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
|
|
considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
|
|
with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
|
|
where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
|
|
SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
|
|
particular state visit http://pglaf.org
|
|
|
|
While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
|
|
have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
|
|
against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
|
|
approach us with offers to donate.
|
|
|
|
International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
|
|
any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
|
|
outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
|
|
|
|
Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
|
|
methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
|
|
ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
|
|
To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
|
|
|
|
|
|
Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
|
|
works.
|
|
|
|
Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
|
|
concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
|
|
with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
|
|
editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
|
|
unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
|
|
keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
|
|
|
|
http://www.gutenberg.org
|
|
|
|
This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
|
|
including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
|
|
Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
|
|
subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
|